THE FOUR GOSPELS—GENERAL
In each of the
four Gospels we have a historic account of the Lord's earthly life and work,
and in each the individuality of the writer appears. Each, in his own manner
and style, records those items which seem to him most important; and, under the
Lord's supervision, all together furnish as complete an account as is necessary
to establish the faith of the Church (a) in the identity of Jesus of Nazareth
with the Messiah of the prophets; (b) in the fulfillment of the prophecies concerning
him; and (c) in the facts of his life, and the divine inspiration of all his
teachings. If the inspiration had been verbal (i.e., by word-for-word
dictation), it would not have been necessary for four men to rephrase the same
events. But it is noteworthy that while each exercised his own individual
freedom of expression, the Lord so supervised the matter that among them
nothing of importance was omitted, and that all that is needed is faithfully
recorded and is thoroughly trustworthy, as evidenced both by the personal
integrity of the writers, and also by the promise of the influence of the holy
Spirit to refresh their memories. R1525:4,5; F218
They are simply told. Unfavorable truths are not ignored. It is freely
conceded that Jesus died between two thieves; that he was betrayed by one of
his own disciples; that all forsook him and fled; that one of them even denied
him with cursing. The humble origin of the disciples is stated, yet without
parade, and in narrative form it is innocently declared that when the Apostles
Peter and John preached under the power of the holy Spirit their learned
hearers could "perceive that they were ignorant and unlearned men."
What biographies or other writings of today display as much candor as we thus see
at a glance as we open the Bible? OM11:6; SM169:4
The world was then for a time at peace and quiet, the Roman dominion
having brought all the world under its powerful control; and as all men were in
expectation of Messiah's advent according to the Jewish prophets, whose fame
had gone out into the world, the sudden announcement of his birth attracted
wide attention, as it would not have done in less peaceful times. The Greek
language, noted by all scholars as the most nearly perfect, exact and precise
medium for human speech, had at that time been fully developed and widely
disseminated. Thus was prepared in due time the very best medium for the
communication of the Gospel. The Old Testament had been translated into the
Greek language three centuries before Christ; and Jews had been dispersed among
all peoples, carrying the Old Testament with them and bearing witness to its
prophecies of a coming Messiah. It was a time, too, of increased intellectual
activity, which was ready to operate on this and every other question of public
interest. Thus the circumstances of the time were peculiarly adapted to the
announcement of this wonderful event--the advent of the world's Redeemer. The
fullness of time had come, and under the overruling providence of God, the
conditions were ripe. R1673, 1674
In the last analysis we must admit that the great influence which has
moulded the civilization of our day has come to us from the words and example
of "the man Christ Jesus." The great truths which he uttered have
come echoing down the centuries, speaking righteousness, peace and love, even
for our enemies. Everywhere his wonderful words of life have made an
impression, and here and there have affected the transformation of character.
R4866:5
Many and varied are the precious lessons taught by the Master during his
earthly ministry, and they never grow old. To the true disciple of Christ they
are ever new, ever fresh. Whether he taught by the seaside or on the mountains
or by the wayside, as he walked and talked with his chosen twelve, his words of
wisdom and grace come to us vibrant with meaning, pulsating with life, full of
strength and power, cheering, encouraging and blessing our hearts. R5990:2
Regarding Higher Criticism of the gospel writers and canon of the four
books--R2816
The evangelists differ, but do not disagree. Matthew is the Jewish
Gospel, connecting the Old Testament with the New Testament, and is written to
prove the Messiahship of Christ. Mark is written to the Gentiles, and its theme
is Christ's ministry, his works. Luke applies universally to both Jew and
Gentile, and brings our Christ's humanity; while John is an essentially
spiritual Gospel, dealing wholly with the divinity of our Lord. R1046:3*
Matthew
General
Matthew, elsewhere styled Levi, was a publican--that is to say, a
collector of taxes for the Roman government. Publicans were despised for two
reasons: (1) It was considered very disreputable to assist a foreign government
to collect taxes from one's friends--kin. (2) Many of these publicans were rascally
and took advantage of their position to make themselves wealthy through bribes,
over-collections, etc. We may be sure that Matthew--Levi was not of the
dishonest type, else he never would have been called to association with
Messiah as one of his apostles and prospective joint-heirs with him in his
kingdom. For such position the highest degree of honesty is requisite. And if
Jesus would never call a dishonest man, neither would a dishonest man have
accepted his call, because there was nothing to be gained--neither reputation,
wages nor fraud. R4587:4
It is worthy of note that Matthew tells us of himself that he was a
publican, while none of the other evangelists make this comment, doubtless
because the occupation of a publican was considered a very dishonorable one.
Hence, for Matthew to tell us of his previous occupation may be esteemed an
evidence of his humility, and his desire not to represent himself more
honorably than was truthful. Matthew was known by the name of Levi while he was
a publican, but his name was changed when he changed his occupation and became
a member of the Lord's company. His new name, Matthew, signifies "the gift
of God." How great a change the Gospel of the kingdom produced upon
Matthew, to lead him to forsake all--the profitable income of his occupation,
leaving it to others--and to become a follower of the despised Nazarene! The
influence of the fact that our Lord would accept a publican to be his disciple
was far-reaching, and no doubt inspired an interest in our Lord amongst the
degraded and outcast classes. We are not surprised, therefore, when we are told
that many publicans and sinners resorted to our Lord, and gave ear to his
teachings. Nor did he treat them after the manner of the scribes and Pharisees,
but on the contrary received them as the children of Abraham--as some of the
lost sheep of the house of Israel. R2260:1,2
Matthew 1
Matthew 1:1
The book -- Matthew is the Jewish Gospel, connecting the Old Testament
with the New, and is written to prove the Messiahship of Christ. R1046:3*
The son of David -- Matthew speaks of Christ as the Son of David; hence his
genealogy is complete. R1046:6*
The necessity of thoroughly
establishing the pedigree was important since of this tribe (Gen. 49:10) was to
come the ruling king of Israel as well as the promised Messiah. A42; HG532:4
But it was not necessary that he
should have a human father of the Davidic line. R453:1
Matthew 1:6
David the king -- Matthew presents Jesus as king of the Jews, Luke presents
him as a worker, and the other two gospels as a philanthropist and as the
manifestation of God. R1046:6*
Begat Solomon -- But Solomon's line was not the Messianic line. E129
Only the legal heirship came
through Solomon, through his descendant Joseph, the legal father of Jesus.
R2060:4
Matthew 1:12
Jechonias begat -- That this line of genealogy is not that of Mary, our Lord's
mother according to the flesh, is conclusively shown by a comparison of this
verse with Jer. 22:30. R2060:4
Matthew 1:16
And Jacob -- The real father of Joseph, in contrast with Heli, his
father-in-law. (Luke 3:23) E129; Q791:2
Begat Joseph -- Christ's legal father; but it is not necessary for Christ
to use Joseph's genealogy. E130; Q791:2
If Jesus was a son of Joseph and
Mary, he was just as much a son of Adam as you and I; and just as much an
inheritor of Adam's sin, under the death sentence, and therefore not able to
redeem himself, let alone the world. Q363:1
Matthew traces Joseph's genealogy;
for, though Jesus was not the son of Joseph, nevertheless, being adopted by him
as his son, he might, without impropriety, inherit through him. R2555:3,6;
Q791:2
Mary, of whom was born -- The principle of inherited royalty through a mother is
illustrated by the heir apparent to the throne of England-- the Prince of Wales,
an heir, not of his father, but of his mother, the present queen. R453:1
Matthew 1:17
Fourteen generations -- Greek, genea, as in "This generation shall not
pass." (Matt. 24:34) D603
The difference in the number of
generations from David to Christ--27 in Matthew, 42 in Luke--need not be
considered as remarkable. It would be remarkable had they been the same.
Q791:2,1
Matthew 1:18
Before they came together --
Mary was a sharer with Joseph when
Jesus was born, though not when he was conceived; hence the genealogy of
Joseph, the son of Solomon the son of David. R453:2
The knowledge of these
circumstances was the evident cause of his kinsfolk's sneer at him, "We be
not born of fornication." (John 8:41) R2425:1
With child -- If we can have a perfect life germ, we can have a perfect
child from an imperfect mother. R4964:1
Matthew 1:20
Of the Holy Ghost -- Holy Spirit. His life came not from an earthly father, but
from his heavenly Father. R4964:2
Not the seed of man, hence his
very nature was perfect, holy, unlike our nature. R84:3*
Matthew 1:21
His name JESUS -- Meaning "Savior" or "Jehovah's
salvation." R3687:6, 5335:3
In olden times, the name stood for
the character. OV423:4
The Greek form for Joshua,
signifying Savior. In the Syriac, Savior signifies life-giver. He has not yet
become the life-giver or king. R4534:6
Signifying Savior or Liberator.
Hence, only those who receive him as such are given liberty to become sons of
God--none else. R1006:1
The entire work of our Lord Jesus
is summed up in the meaning of the name, Jesus. R3687:6
Our Lord was publicly recognized
as Savior as a babe; but it was only when he had fully completed that sacrifice
at Calvary that he had the full right, and became owner, or Lord. R745:1,4
Only at the conclusion of the
Millennial age will the full meaning of Savior be appreciated by the world.
R4535:4
For he shall save -- The name of Jesus is nothing, except as it means a Savior
from sin and its penalty. R687:6
The Church's salvation begins now
in the sense of reformation and rest in the Lord's promises; but they are not
saved actually, but "saved by hope." (Rom. 8:24) R4535:1
His people -- The good tidings of a Savior shall be to all people (Luke
2:10,11), but the special salvation from sin and death will come only to his
people, those who believe into him. A107
All who ultimately become his
people, no others. R4534:4, 3687:6, 1604:4; SM502:2
Let us make sure that we have
accepted him and are "his people." R1604:4
Such noble shining heathen lights
as Aristotle, Plato, Confucius and others are the Lord's "sheep" and
"friends"--"his people" whom he came to save from their
sins. (John 10:16; 15:13,14) R1180:3, 1178:3
From their sins -- From all the mental, moral and physical degradation which
came through father Adam's disobedience. R4702:4; A107
And from the penalty of their
sins, death--which includes degradation, mental, moral and physical. R1604:4
Matthew 1:22
That it might be fulfilled
-- Matthew's characteristic
introduction to a quotation. Mark uses "as it is written." John has
"as said Esaias," and Luke seldom makes any introductory references.
R1047:1*
Quoting Isa. 7:14 and partially
fulfilled at that time, as a type, with the prophet representing Jehovah, the
prophetess representing the virgin Mary, and their child representing Jesus.
R436:2,4
Matthew 1:23
Virgin shall be with child
-- Showing that it was not the child
of Joseph, but specially begotten by divine power. R4964:1
The narrative of Jesus' miraculous
conception has the best and oldest Greek manuscripts to support it--the
Sinaitic and the Vatican; the Alexandrian contains it in Luke, though in
Matthew it is missing--not omitted. R434:4
Zoroaster taught that in the
latter days a pure virgin should conceive and, at his birth, a star would
appear with undiminished luster, even at midday. R4098:4*, 1674:6
Call his name Emmanuel -- Must we set aside this prophecy because the child was
called Jesus? Many names and many offices are his. His name has been called
Immanuel (God with us). The church in general has recognized him by that name
for 1800 years. R436:4
God with us -- "God was manifest in the flesh." (1 Tim. 3:16)
R27:2*
Matthew 1:25
Her firstborn son -- The birth of Jesus was a gift of love divine. R5135:2
Implying that she brought forth
other sons--his brothers and sisters (Mark 6:3)--afterward; a contradiction of
the Catholic doctrine that Mary is "ever a virgin." R560:2*
Matthew 2
Matthew 2:1
When Jesus was born -- For the suffering of death; the first step in the divine
plan for our salvation. R1603:6
About October 1, BC 2; 33-1/2
years prior to his death in April AD 33. B60
Herod -- Of the house of Esau, an Edomite. R4956:2
There came wise men -- Magi, sages, philosophers. R1674:3
According to tradition, three in
number. R3702:3, 4098:4
When we remember that Daniel was
at one time a prince in Persia, it is easy to see how Daniel's prophecy
respecting Messiah's birth would be handed down, and well known to the
disciples of Zoroaster. R3702:3 The Nestorians say that Zoroaster was a pupil
of Jeremiah. R3703:3
We are not informed whether or not
these were Hebrews; but we consider it probable that they were part of the
twelve tribes scattered abroad "waiting for the consolation of
Israel." (Acts 26:7; Luke 2:25) R4098:3
Not only wise men, but reverential
men, full of faith. R3703:3
Although heathen, not of Israel,
they were good men. R3703:3
Thirty years before our Lord was
anointed as the Messiah. B247
Even the Gentile world was in
expectation of the coming Messiah. (Luke 3:15) R1674:3; B21; C85
Typifying the Millerite movement
in 1844 AD. B247, 241; C85
Those in full harmony with God
were not left in ignorance of so important an event. B21
Astrologers, rather than
astronomers, affecting to read in the stars the history of nations and
individuals. R3703:1
The term originally belonged to a
class of priests among the Medes and Persians who constituted the king's privy
council and who cultivated astrology, medicine, occult and natural science.
R1674:3
From the east -- Supposedly Persia. R4534:3, 3702:2, 1674:3
In the Far East, the Chinese and
Japanese and other nations have cherished a very ancient tradition that God
would descend to the earth in visible form to enlighten men and to redeem them
from their sins. R1674:3
Today even the Mohammedans and the
Brahmins of the East are waiting for Messiah and the Golden Age, seeking
evidences. Contrast this with the unbelief of the prominent ministers of
"Christendom." R4956:5
To Jerusalem -- Apparently the star's leading discontinued when they
reached Judea. R4534:3, 4098:6
The Lord may have given them
additional explanation of the matter, even as he subsequently warned them in a
dream. R3703:1
Matthew 2:2
King of the Jews -- Tacitus, Suetonius, Josephus, Virgil, Confucius and
Zoroaster all bear testimony that there prevailed throughout the entire East at
this time an intense conviction, derived from the prophecies, that about this
time a child from heaven would be born in Judea, gain dominion over the whole
world, establish the Golden Age and take away sin. R4098:4, 3703:2
He was born King of the Jews, but
that work was still future--at his second coming when he appears in glory and
becomes King of Israel--on the spirit plane. R4534:6, 4956:5, 1675:1
Have seen his star -- God made some astrological sign which the wise men
understood and reverently followed. R4534:4
Because they had no special
revelation from God, the nobler minds among the other nations gave special
study to the starry heavens along the lines of astronomy or astrology. R4534:2
Thus, kindly, God condescends to
human ignorance and weakness. R1675:1
It is not a rare occasion for
stars to suddenly blaze up, and then suddenly fade in a year or two. Such a
star was observed in 1901. We think this was different, however. R3703:2
We have the assurance that there
was a truth connected with the manifestation of a special peculiar star, but we
have "the more sure word of prophecy." (2 Pet. 1:9) R3703:1
Come to worship him -- Showing their reverence to the mighty God of Israel, their
faith in the divinely inspired prophecies, and their zeal as truth-seekers and
their humility to inquire of the God of another nation. R1675:1
Matthew 2:3
Herod the king -- Although called King of the Jews, Herod was the
representative of their conquerors, the Romans. R4098:5
An Edomite, who had built a temple
grander than Solomon's. R4956:2
He was troubled -- By the suggestion that his dynasty might be overthrown.
R4956:2, 4098:5
With jealousy on his own behalf,
and on behalf of the Roman Empire. R3702:6
Similarly, those who are now in
influence and power are troubled at the prospect of a change in government
which their own wise men announce as imminent. R4966:2, 4534:3, 4099:1
Any announcement today that
Messiah's Kingdom is nigh meets with resentment. R4534:3, 4956:2
And all Jerusalem -- All under Herod's political influence. R4098:5
Evidently they were in a very
self-satisfied condition, experiencing great prosperity, and had ceased to
specially long and pray for Messiah. R4956:2
Matthew 2:4
When he had gathered -- Evidently, knowing of the Jewish tradition respecting
Messiah, he sent for those who were learned in the Scriptures. R4098:5
Priests and scribes -- Although they answered correctly, they showed no enthusiasm
in quoting the prophecies of Messiah's birth. R4956:3
Matthew 2:5
They said unto him -- Showing their faith, even though it was an irreverent and
selfishly jealous faith; indirect evidence of the esteem which the Hebrew
Scriptures commanded. R1675:2
In Bethlehem -- Only six miles distant. R3703:2
For thus it is written -- Though the scribes and chief priests understood his
birthplace from Micah 5:2, they could not see that, as the Judge of Israel, he
would be smitten with "a rod upon the cheek." (Mic. 5:1) R436:1
Matthew 2:8
Bring me word again -- Let the civil government, if it chooses, fight down
everything associated with the new dispensation; the religious elements remain
quite indifferent. R4956:5
That I may come -- Herod's selfish faith was in strong contrast with the
reverent and devotional faith of the wise men. R1675:4
Worship him also -- The crafty Herod feigned reverence, but only that he might
destroy the child. R4534:3,5
Matthew 2:9
They departed -- None of the priests and teachers of the day followed them
to Bethlehem to find the newborn king of the Jews. They had become Higher Critics
and no longer believed the prophets. They had less faith in them than had
Herod. R4956:3
And, lo, the star -- Probably a bright, electrical, luminous spot travelling
near the earth. R3703:2
Thus, even in his infancy, this
light that was to lighten the Gentiles began to shine into some waiting and
devout Gentile hearts. R1675:5
Near Rachel's tomb, by
Bethlehem, is a cistern where tradition says the star appeared to the wise men
the second time to guide them to Bethlehem and the manger. R1401:2 Till it came
-- Greek, elthon, it ceased to go. Its
arrival was accomplished; it stood. R149:5*
Stood over -- Apparently indicating the very house in which they found
the newborn king. R4098:6
Matthew 2:11
And fell down -- Prostrated themselves, physically expressing their
reverence. R3703:4
And worshipped him -- By prostrating themselves; in their hearts and with their
tongues, by giving expression to their rejoicing; and by opening their treasure
boxes to him. R3703:4
The humble surroundings did not
alter the reverent condition of their hearts. R4534:5, 3703:4
Unto him gifts -- Let us be true wise men and present to him our
treasures--all that we have and are--our hearts. R4534:6, 1604:4
Gold -- Representing obedience and consecration. R4534:5, 3703:4,5
Our earthly substance. R3703:5
And frankincense -- Representing praise, devotion, heart adoration,
appreciation, gratitude. R4534:6, 3703:4,5
And myrrh -- Representing submission, a willingness for service, to the
extent of bitterness and suffering. R4534:6, 3703:4,5
Have we shown a joy to honor the
King even to the extent of suffering with him? R3703:5
Matthew 2:13
Angel of the Lord -- "Are they not all ministering spirits, sent forth to
minister for them who shall be heirs of salvation." (Heb. 1:14) R1681:3
Flee into Egypt -- We should be on the lookout for divine deliverance and the
opening of a way of escape from things too difficult for us to endure. F508
God did not miraculously interfere
with Herod's plans. The lease of power granted to the kingdoms of this world
has not yet expired. R1681:6
Matthew 2:14
When he arose -- The faith and prompt obedience of Joseph and Mary to the
warning and counsel of the angel of the Lord is notable. They did not hesitate
or question, but immediately acted. R1681:3
Matthew 2:15
Death of Herod -- Unreliably and variously dated by scholars as 4 BC, 2
AD, 7 AD; therefore not reliable
evidence in establishing the date of Jesus' birth. B56, 57
By the prophet -- This prophecy has three fulfillments: the deliverance of
Israel in the days of Pharaoh; the return of the infant Jesus to the land of
his birth; and The Christ being called out of the world (Egypt). R1681:6,
436:1; C316
Out of Egypt -- Type of the world. C316
I called my Son -- To the higher, divine nature. C316
Likewise his joint-heirs are
called out of Egypt. "They are not of this world even as I am not of this
world." (John 17:16) C316
Matthew 2:16
Slew all the children -- Seeking to destroy Christ that thus the kingdom of Israel
might be preserved to his own family--as it was through his six successors.
R4534:3
Matthew 2:18
Lamentation and weeping -- But another note of the long wail of distress of the
groaning creation which will be permitted for wise and benevolent ends until
the "times of restitution." R1682:4
Rachel -- Rachel was the mother of two of the tribes, Joseph and
Benjamin, which tribes occupied Palestine at the time of the first advent.
R436:1
They are not -- Not in hell or purgatory; they have ceased to exist.
CR430:2; R822:5
Matthew 2:20
Young child's life -- Greek, psuche, soul, being. E335
Matthew 2:22
Archelaus -- Herod's son and successor, who even surpassed his father in
oppression, cruelty, egotism and sensuality. R1681:3
He turned aside -- Not disregarding the Lord's directions, which were to go
into the land of Israel--in any part of which they might settle. R1681:6
Matthew 2:23
Called Nazareth -- A despised place, the object doubtless being to bring the
truth into disrepute; as Second Adventism has brought the time features into
disrepute. B29
Called a Nazarene -- Although born in Bethlehem, he was reared in Nazareth,
"that he might be called a Nazarene"--that he might not have the
honor of the "City of David," but the odium of "a mean
city." R4556:3
Matthew 3
Matthew 3:1
In those days -- It was the time of the greatest missionary effort that had
ever been made by the Jews. As Jesus said, "Ye compass sea and land to
make one proselyte." (Matt. 23:15) R2236:3
John the Baptist -- Six months older than our Lord, he began his ministry that
much sooner. R3292:2
The last of the prophets, and none
of them was his superior. "There hath not arisen a greater prophet than
John the Baptist." (Matt. 11:11) R4958:2, 4543:1
John was the first one to use
baptism. R5964:4
Type of the Church, especially in
the harvest. R4958:5; B253
We are to be copies of God's dear
Son, our Lord, and not to be copies of John the Baptist--not to stir up strife
by trying to mind other people's business. R4978:5
Of Judea -- At the time, Judaism was in a more flourishing condition
than ever before. Idolatry in its cruder forms was unknown, and Pharisaism was
the controlling influence. R2236:3, 358:3*
Matthew 3:2
Repent ye -- Reform (Diaglott). R358:4*
"Change your
minds"--(See Young's Concordance). R357:3*, 358:4*, 191:6*
This act of repentance brought
them back under the blessings and favor of their Law Covenant. R5963:4
The only ones who can claim to
belong to Abraham's spiritual seed are such as show repentance from sin, and
make a full consecration to oppose sin. R4958:6, 2245:6
Saying, in substance, Examine your
life. If you are living according to a lower standard than the best of which
you are capable, you are guilty. R5962:2
John had given them more definite
instruction, and with increase of knowledge there should be a corresponding
change of mind. R358:4*
And not that they should believe
on God, for he was addressing only the believing, covenanted people, Israel.
R2417:2
It was because they were not in
the right condition of heart that they were not fit to have the Kingdom which,
therefore, was taken from them and given to a new nation, a peculiar people, a
royal priesthood. R2417:2
Change of mind is a necessary
operation with all finite creatures, so far as we know, because their knowledge
is imperfect. R358:1*
Some had nothing to repent of and
nothing to wash away by baptism. R5963:3
The words of this verse have been
the message of the Christ in the flesh down through the centuries. R4958:5,
2245:6
Kingdom of heaven -- The royal majesty of the heavens. R358:4,6*
In its embryotic state. B14
John's mission was to announce
that Kingdom, but it was not his privilege to become a member of it. R3292:1
The Lord commenced his ministry
with the same announcement exactly (Matt. 4:17); and the apostles were sent
forth to preach the same message. (Matt. 10:7; Luke 9:2) A273
This Kingdom was the hope of every
Israelite. A273
The Jews had been waiting for that
Kingdom for centuries, and John's mission was the announcement that the
fulfillment of the divine promise was at hand. R2417:2
This message was expected to
arouse all the "Israelites indeed" and point them to Jesus the King.
R4593:2, 4543:2
As the Jews were all baptized into
Moses, so when Jesus took the place of Moses, the baptism into Moses was
counted as baptism into Christ for all who accepted Jesus as the Messiah.
R5963:5
Is at hand -- Has approached. R358:4,6*
The royal heir was then present,
though unknown. R191:6*
In the sense that Jesus was
present to make a formal tender of the Kingdom to Abraham's natural seed.
R4958:5, 4557:2
Announcing to the Jewish nation,
in the beginning of the Gospel age, the great feast of Jesus' parable in Luke
14:15-24. R1957:3
The great feast of fat things for
Israel, which God has so long promised, is ready. R2701:4
Now true in the sense in which he
declared it was yet to come at that time (John 18:36,37)--"in power and
great glory." B14
Matthew 3:3
The voice of one -- Not "the Word." R2409:2
John the Baptist was an antitype
of Elijah. R3292:6
Directly announcing the Savior.
R4543:1
God chose a strong, rugged
character to bear his message. R4543:3
In the wilderness -- John's peculiar raiment and food enabled him to be free of
sectarian bondage, and gave him freedom of utterance. R4543:3
His wilderness experiences
specially qualified him. R4543:3
The Church has cried "in the
wilderness" in the sense that she has been alienated and separated from
the world. R4958:6
Prepare ye -- John's work and baptism were merely preparatory. R4543:4
The way of the Lord -- To arouse the people of Israel to the fact that Messiah had
come. R4543:2
Make his paths straight -- As a forerunner was sent to fleshly Israel to prepare them
for the first advent, so a greater forerunner would precede the second advent.
R2563:4
This greater Elijah will be
equally unsuccessful with that of the lesser antitype of Elijah, John the
Baptist. The Church in the flesh has not succeeded in making straight the paths
of the Lord for a triumphal entry to his Kingdom on earth. R2563:5
Messiah's Kingdom will straighten
every crooked path, level up the path of righteousness, and make of it "a
highway." (Isa. 35:8) R2563:5
By the end of the Millennial age
this great messenger will have prepared all the arrangements, all the affairs,
for the establishment of the everlasting reign of the Kingdom. R3683:4
Matthew 3:4
Raiment of camel's hair -- His peculiar raiment and food enabled him to be independent
of all religious sects and parties, gave him a freedom of utterance and made
his message more striking to the minds of the people. R4543:3
We do not advocate the example of
John in respect to food and raiment, but we believe a good lesson may be drawn
from his course--a simplicity of diet and wardrobe. R3292:2
And wild honey -- John's course indicated that his entire life was devoted to
the special service of the Lord; that he had nothing, wanted nothing and needed
nothing. R3712:3, 3292:2
Matthew 3:5
Jerusalem, and all Judea -- The baptism of John was not appropriate to any but Jews.
Gentiles could not repent or come back into harmony with Moses' Law because
Gentiles were never under the Law of Moses. HG254:5; PD56/69; NS48:4, 49:6
He did not go to sinners in the
ordinary sense of that term, those living outside the pale of divine influence;
but he went to the sinner class, the renegade class, of the Jews,
"publicans and sinners." HG254:3
Matthew 3:6
Baptized -- The Jews did not practice baptism. The whole nation was
recognized as baptized into Moses in the sea and in the cloud. (1 Cor. 10:1,2)
HG254:3
Symbol of washing, cleansing, or
reformation from sin. SM643:3
John's was a special baptism for a
special purpose, and not a matter of getting outsiders in, for he did not
assume to get anyone in. Q32:3
Not into Christ. They were already
baptized into Moses. But, Repent, be baptized, and wash away your sins. Q33:5
Not the "Israelites
indeed," but those who conceded that they had been living in open sin.
HG254:5
John's baptism was not Christian
baptism, though it would amount to Christian baptism for the Jews who observed
it; they would thus be transferred into Christ after Pentecost. R5964:6
"The baptism of John"
was to the Jews only and was wholly different from the baptism appointed for
those called from amongst the Gentiles. R2417:3
An acknowledgment that you repent
of sins, and you will thus wash away your sins. R5963:1, 4543:2, 3292:3
We have no reason to think that
any of the disciples except Paul participated in that baptism, because they
were not of the class that were called sinners at that time. Q34:T
Water baptism could not remit sin,
but it restored the sinner to full harmony with God's arrangement for Israel.
R5963:4
Baptism for the remission of sins
is no longer effective for the Jews because their opportunity is closed, the
way by which they might have a preference over the Gentiles. R5963:6
Not an actual cleansing from guilt.
Only the blood of Jesus could actually take away sin. R5963:1
We don't know if baptism will be
practiced in the new dispensation. It may be introduced as a symbol of washing
away sin, or as a symbol of consecration. R5964:3
The very word signifies to
immerse, as is fully admitted by the best exegetes--Catholic, Protestant,
English and German. (Supported with 15
quotes.) NS56:3-6
Of him -- Many of them who received Jesus had previously received
John. R3292:4
Confessing their sins -- Thereby coming again into harmony with Moses, type of
Christ, into whom they had all once been baptized. F432; R5963:4; Q33:4
Recognized sin. NS49:5
What sins? All things against the
Mosaic covenant, against the law covenant, all the outward transgressions they
had committed that they could have avoided. Q33:5, 34:2
The people washed away their own
sins, typically. John the Baptist did not wash them away. R5963:1
Matthew 3:7
Pharisees -- Today a synonym of hypocrite and impostor; but, at the
time, the professedly most pious class in Israel, professing consecration,
studying the Law diligently, zealous in prayer and the propagation of the
Jewish religion. R2236:3
Sadducees -- Practically unbelievers; of the wealthier, more respectable
class. R4986:3
Professed holiness of life, though
denying much of the Scripture; practically the "higher critics" in
religious matters among the Jews of that city. R2236:3
To his baptism -- John would not baptize these until they showed by outward
conduct a change of life, a change of heart, and not merely a changed
profession. R3292:5
Generation -- Greek, Gennema, race. D603
Of vipers -- By some prophetic power John was enabled to read their
hearts in a manner which would be improper for us to do. R3292:5
Thus implying that their religion
was one of outward forms and ceremony merely, and not of the heart; similarly
today, many have "a form of godliness" and outward devotion to
Sectarianism and its propagation. R2236:3
Their repentance would not be
considered genuine without certain proofs. R4543:4, 2236:3
Who hath warned you -- Exercising the same godly boldness as Elijah in denouncing
popular and respected sin and sinners. R556:6
Wrath to come -- Not torments after death; but a wrath of God about to come
upon that nation because of its hypocritical formalism and failure to live up
to the light and privileges it enjoyed. R2236:6
"Wrath to the uttermost"
(1 Thess. 2:16) which came upon the Jewish nation in the end of the Jewish age.
R3292:5, 2301:3,4
Matthew 3:9
Think not to say -- Although God had elected or chosen them as a people in the
past, that was no proof that they would always be the people of his special
favor. R1140:3
Within yourselves -- As nominal Christendom says to itself. R2564:3
Arrogant, haughty and
self-confident. R4782:1
We have Abraham -- They were his natural children without having his faith.
R3292:5, 2236:6
To our father -- We are nominally God's people. R2564:3
Concluding that God must keep his
promise to Abraham and that they, being his children, must sooner or later be
the Kingdom to bless the world. R4782:1, 2236:6, 1217:4
God is able -- Also, thus able to resurrect, or create again, that which
was once destroyed. R1018:1*
Of these stones -- Of some that you consider as far beneath you as the stones
under your feet. R2564:3
As a matter of fact, after the
wheat had been separated from the chaff of that nation, the Lord sought others
from among the Gentiles to complete the elect number of Israelites indeed, the
true seed of Abraham. R2245:6, 2236:6, 1795:1
Raise up children -- Neither will God destroy the wills of the unwilling and
make them mere machines; rather than have such children, he could and would
create men out of stone. R1176:3
Matthew 3:10
And now also -- A type of the end of the Gospel age. R2237:5,6
The axe -- Of divine judgment. R2237:1
The same axe of Gospel
requirement, reckoning the intention for the act (see Matt. 5:22-28), still
lies at the root of the trees--there must be an utter destruction of the flesh.
R518:3*
Is laid to the root -- Pruning would no longer do. R4958:6, 731:4
True again today. It is no longer
a question of being a citizen of favored Christendom, nor of being a member of
its various sects; but it is an individual test. R2237:5
Every tree -- It would thenceforth be an individual matter and not a
national question as to who shall be the children of Abraham in whom would be
found the good fruitage of righteousness. R2237:1
Good fruit -- The fruitage of righteousness. R2237:4
Only such as bore good fruit in
their characters and lives would any longer be recognized of the Lord as
Israelites and identified with the Kingdom. R4543:4
These would be spared of the Lord
and transplanted into the more favorable conditions of the Gospel dispensation.
R2237:1
Is hewn down -- Nominal fleshly Israel was thus cast off from divine favor.
R3292:5
Cast into the fire -- The time of trouble in AD 69-70. R3292:5, 4958:6, 4543:4,
2237:1, 376:3; B233,242
Matthew 3:11
I indeed baptize you -- The three baptisms of this verse (of water, of Spirit and
of fire) correspond to the three activities of verse 12: separation of wheat
and chaff, gathering of wheat, and burning of chaff. R198:4*
Unto repentance -- See comments on Matt. 3:6. He that cometh after me --
John recognized that his work was merely a reformatory and preparatory
work, and that the one who was to do the testing was mightier than himself--the
Messiah. R2237:1
When John had announced Jesus as
the Messiah, his work soon began to wane; so the work of the John class closes
with the announcement that the Kingdom of Heaven is at hand and the King is
present. R968:5
Not worthy to bear -- As his most menial servant. R4543:5
He shall baptize you -- Messiah's baptism was to be of two parts: one upon the
faithful and the other upon the unfaithful. R4543:5
With the Holy Ghost -- At Pentecost, upon the Israelites indeed. R5443:2, 4959:4,
2237:2; B233; E290
And with fire -- The fire of God's anger, wrath to the uttermost. F445;
NS21:2, 626:4
The fire of trouble upon all
others during the 37 years following their rejection of Messiah. B233
Culminating in the destruction of
the Jewish polity in the year AD 70. E290; R4959:4, 4543:5, 2237:2
The baptism of fire is not a
blessing, nor is it intelligently that Christian people sometimes pray for it.
F445
As there was a baptism of fire in
the end of the Jewish age upon the chaff of that nation, so there will be, in
the end of this age, upon the tare class of Christendom. F445
Not to be confused with the
fire-likeness of the tongues on the Day of Pentecost. R2820:4
Matthew 3:12
Whose fan is in his hand -- As a winnower, he separated the wheat of the Jewish people
from the chaff. R3292:5, 162:3
Throughly -- In order that every grain of wheat might be found and
separated from the chaff. R4543:5
Purge his floor -- Cleanse his threshing floor. B260,261; R175:3
The purification of the sons of
Levi (Mal. 3:3); the household of faith. R4708:6, 4709:1
Gather his wheat -- The true Israelites indeed. B233; C149; R2237:2
A small proportion of the whole.
B205; R4408:3
The harvesting of the Jewish age
began with our Lord's first advent and ended forty years later at the
destruction of Jerusalem. NS626:3
One of the three great periods of
separation revealed in God's Word--chaff from wheat, tares from wheat (Matt.
13:37,43), and sheep from the goats. (Matt. 25:31) R34:2*
Into the garner -- The Christian Church. R5443:2, 4543:5, 3292:5; B233; C149
The Gospel dispensation. R162:3
By begetting them of the holy
Spirit at Pentecost and onward. R4959:4
He will -- Not only the work of separation and gathering of the wheat
are under the supervision of Christ, but also the burning of the chaff. R115:3*
Burn up the chaff -- The balance of the nation, the refuse. A229; B233; C149;
R2237:2, 1316:6
As the closing of the Jewish age
included the burning of the chaff, so the closing of the Gospel age includes
the burning of the tares. (Matt. 13:40) R98:4*
As soon as all of the worthy have
been selected out. R3433:6
The Jewish harvest is spoken of as
being a separation of wheat from chaff, while the harvest of this age is designated
a separation of wheat from tares. (Matt. 13:30) R2237:6
Indicating the compactness of that
people, as contrasted with the wheat and tares, indicating the scattered and
confused condition of the present harvest. R1743:3
Unquenchable -- The Jews were powerless to avert the catastrophe. A229;
R2237:2
In the sense that it was the
divine intention that the nation should be consumed, and it was not in the
power of the ablest of the statesmen and rulers to prevent this. R4543:5
"Wrath is come upon this people
to the uttermost." (1 Thess. 2:16) R4959:4, 4543:5; F445
Fire -- Not literal, but symbolic fire. C149; R5363:3
The great fire of religious and
political contention which destroyed the Jewish nation. B233; C148; R5443:2,
4543:5, 175:3
Confusion, anarchy and the Roman
legions. R3292:6
Matthew 3:13
Then cometh Jesus -- He was thirty years of age, the legal age at which a priest
could offer sacrifice. R4544:2, 3297:1, 2565:1, 2417:1, 2237:3; A179; B66
To Jordan -- Meaning "judged down," "condemned";
typifying the curse, the sentence against our race, which has rested for 6000
years. R3086:4
Unto John -- His second-cousin. R2565:1
Baptism is valid even though the
baptizer be a believer not of the Kingdom or Church class. R1541:4
To be baptized -- Symbolizing his death. CR460:1
This was a cross, a humiliation;
for the masses, as well as John, thought of it as a washing away of sin instead
of a symbol of death. SM643:3
Matthew 3:14
John forbad him -- Because he knew nothing of the baptism which is unto death.
R3296:6
Asserting that, of the two, he
himself, rather than Jesus, needed that baptism. R3296:3
Our Lord Jesus was holy, harmless,
undefiled, separate from sinners (Heb. 7:26); hence it would have been wrong
for him to have been baptized for the remission of sins--John's only
understanding of baptism. R2565:5, 4644:2, 2417:5, 2237:3, 1917:1; HG261:6;
NS51:4
He knew Jesus well from infancy to
manhood; as cousins they doubtless had discussed various features of divine
law, and were of one heart as respects service to the Lord. R2417:1
I have need -- We have no record that John was ever immersed himself; nor
would we need to have, since he was evidently a godly man, living up to the
standard of the Law Covenant to the best of his ability. R2417:5
If either of the two needed to
confess sin and profess a washing away of sin, it would be John himself rather
than the Master. HG254:5; Q34:T, 35:6
To be baptized of thee -- But Jesus did not baptize John and he did not explain to
John the philosophy of it all. Q32:3
Matthew 3:15
Suffer it to be so -- Thus intimating that he was not following John's baptism to
wash away sins, but that His baptism had another special meaning. PD57/69;
R4544:2; Q35:6, 32:3 "I have a baptism to be baptized with; and how am I
straitened till it be accomplished." (Luke 12:50) R2417:6; PD57/69; NS51:6
He did not dispute John's
argument, but insisted upon being baptized. HG261:6
Jesus did not stop to argue the
matter with John because John could not have understood; it was not due time
for John to understand; he was not of those begotten of the holy Spirit. Q35:6
It was not then due time to
explain Christian baptism because the new baptism belonged to the new
dispensation which did not begin until Pentecost. R2565:2
Thus it becometh us -- I have a reason for so desiring it, and it is proper that I
should do it in the fulfillment of certain things which I recognize to be
right. R3296:6, R2417:5
It behooved him, who was the
prospective Head of the prospective Body, to set an example that we, coming after,
might follow in his steps. NS51:5
The Christ, Head and Body. R1917:4
Fulfil all righteousness -- Righteousness obtained through Jesus only. PT390:3*
The righteousness of God's law
which could by no means clear the guilty without a satisfaction of the claims
of justice by the sacrifice of a life for a life, which he was about to fulfill
by the sacrifice of himself. R1917:1
It is merely a question of
knowledge and obedience, both as respects the real baptism of the will, and
also respecting the outward, symbolic baptism in water. R2167:1
This act was doubtless
foreshadowed by the high priest washing himself with water and putting on the
holy linen garments (Lev. 16:4). Clean linen is the symbol of righteousness.
(Rev. 19:8) R157:4*
The satisfaction of mind and peace
of heart that we, like our Lord, have endeavored to "fulfill all
righteousness" contributes to the peace of God that passeth all
understanding in our hearts. NS56:1
Matthew 3:16
And Jesus -- At 30 years of age, manhood according to the Law, the right
time to consecrate himself as a man. A179
When he was baptized -- Symbolizing the full consecration of his life, even unto
death. He was laying down a foundation for a new order of things. Q32:3; A197
He sacrificed all the blessings
and favors that were his under the Law Covenant. R5090:1
Our Lord's baptism was more than
John's baptism. R3296:3
Our Lord's baptism in water was
not his real baptism, but merely a symbol or picture of it. His real baptism
was unto death, and his real raising up was his resurrection. HG262:2; NS51:5
Not as a sinner, but as a
sin-offering. R4544:2
A new baptism, not for sinners,
but exclusively for holy ones; not symbolic of cleansing from sin, but symbolic
of a sacrificial death for the sins of others. R2565:2
As Jesus' baptism signified his
death sacrificially for sins, so the baptism of Christians symbolizes their
participation with the Lord in his sacrifice. R2565:4
Symbolizing the laying down,
burial, of "the man Christ Jesus, a ransom for all" (1 Tim. 2:5,6).
In the dying he represented the sacrificial bullock of the Jewish Atonement
Day. HG262:1; Q183:T
Not into the Church of Christ, for
there was no Church of Christ as yet, not until Pentecost; but the beginning of
a new institution in every sense of the word. HG261:6
It was a symbol, not a type. Q35:2
Scriptures tell us it is pleasing
in God's sight that we symbolize our consecration by water immersion as Jesus
symbolized his by water immersion. So we will follow his example. Q32:3, 33:T
Out of the water -- His raising up from the water symbolized his resurrection
from death on the third day after Calvary. In the rising from the water, he
represented the antitypical High Priest. HG262:1; Q183:T
The heavens -- The word heavens in both the Greek and Hebrew signifies
"higher things." In this case, spiritual truths, the higher things
that he had not seen before. Q183:T
Opened unto him -- Connecting his experiences as a man with his prehuman
experiences with the Father. R5157:5, 5065:1, 2565:5
The higher, the spiritual things,
the heavenly things, were opened unto him. R5128:5, 5847:1, 5157:5; OV159:1;
CR402:5; Q183:T; PD57/69
Things, which as a natural man he
could not receive, revealing the divine purpose respecting himself. R4968:2,
4970:1, 5054:2, 5157:5, 3297:2; Q547:4
Literally, rent asunder. R4970:1
Jesus became conscious of some
great change in his own condition and in his relationship to the Father and to
spiritual things. R5157:5
This enlightenment came by the
receiving of the holy Spirit. PD57/69
That very moment marked the time
of our Lord's spirit begetting, and we believe that he then received special
knowledge of heavenly things. R5157:5, 4544:2 No matter how perfect a man may
be he cannot receive spiritual things. "The natural man receiveth not the
things of the Spirit of God." (1 Cor. 2:14) R5157:5, 4544:3
With us, as with Jesus, the Father
provides not only a clearer appreciation of our trials and responsibilities,
but also a clearer perception of the glories which will follow to the faithful.
R4970:1
All who are baptized into his
death (1) receive an opening of their minds to see heavenly things; (2) hear
the voice of the Father saying they are now beloved sons; and (3) receive the
holy Spirit in their hearts, the peace-giving, meek and gentile spirit of holiness.
R2565:6
And he saw -- John alone, probably, saw the dove. E212; R5157:4, 3297:1,
3296:6, 2565:5, 2417:6
John was granted the privilege of
seeing the dove and hearing the voice to the intent that he might bear witness
to the fact. R2565:5, 2417:6, 2237:4; Q35:4, 36:8
The Spirit of God -- A manifestation representing the invisible. E212
Jesus could receive the spirit
without measure, whereas all imperfect members of his Church may have a measure
of the spirit only. R370:1
The human nature had to be consecrated
to death before he could receive even the pledge of the divine nature. A179
Our Lord was already dead to his
own will; otherwise he would not have gone down to John at Jordan. But God's
manifestation of his acceptance of Jesus' sacrifice apparently waited until
after Jesus had performed the symbol. Q36:8
Illustrated by the oil that
anointed the unleavened wafers of the meat-offering. R84:3*
Like a dove -- An outward representation of God's power coming on Jesus.
CR460:2; R5291:6
Emblem of peace and purity,
representing the fullness of Jehovah's spirit of love in Jesus. E212
Possibly a stream of light which
came not violently, like the lightning, but gently, like a dove. R3296:6
A dove was a favorite figure with
the Jews as an emblem of peace and salvation. It represented fittingly the meek
and quiet spirit of all those who possess the spirit of holiness unto the Lord.
R2565:5, 2237:4
Neither the voice, the opened
heavens or the dove are experiences granted to his followers; nor to be
expected today. The coming of the holy Spirit at Pentecost was signalized by an
outward demonstration which serves the entire Church. R2565:6
Lighting upon him -- Giving the earnest of his inheritance of the divine nature.
A179
Anointing him. Jesus was not the
Messiah, the Christ, until this anointing took place. T27, 37; B66
Matthew 3:17
And lo a voice -- Such a voice was heard on three different occasions: (1) on
this occasion, (2) on the Mount of Transfiguration (Mark 9:7) and (3) at the
close of our Lord's ministry (John 12:28). R2237:4
Both the voice and the descent of
the holy Spirit showed the Lord to be perfect and to have made a perfect
consecration. R5080:5
My beloved Son -- Jesus was the first Son of God after Adam. R5623:5
Being begotten again to the
spiritual plan and to the divine nature. R418:3, 164:5*
Again, after his baptism unto
death, the Spirit bore witness to him still being the well-beloved Son, in
raising him from death and highly exalting him to the right hand of power.
R1411:3
Jesus claimed to be the Son of God
and, consequently, the Messiah. R944:4*
I am well pleased -- At his baptism our Lord was at the mark of character which
merited the promised reward of the Father. R5081:5
Because he was holy, harmless,
undefiled and separate from sinners and knew no sin. (Heb. 7:26; 1 John 3:5)
R1585:5
The words, deeds and character of
our Lord Jesus illustrate to us what pleases God. R1781:4, 1273:1
Pictured in the fine flour of the
meat offering, flour that had no roughness or unevenness. R84:2*
Matthew 4
Matthew 4:1
Then -- Temptations immediately followed his baptism. This is the
experience of all who follow in his steps. R3296:3, 2566:3, 1688:1; F141
Was Jesus -- Not God, "For God cannot be tempted with evil, neither
tempteth he any man." (Jas. 1:13) R370:2
Led up -- Mark expresses it, "driven into the wilderness."
(Mark 1:12) R3297:2, 2566:1
We should never voluntarily go
into temptation, but, knowing our weakness, should seek to avoid it. R3715:6
Therefore we think that the
Scripture, "Lead us not into temptation" (Matt. 6:13) should be
translated as in the Diaglott, "Abandon us not in temptation."
R3716:1
Of the Spirit -- The holy Spirit--which was now his own spirit, or mind, or
will. R3297:2
His own spirit: his own
enlightened new mind. Thus it is our new mind, the result of full consecration
to the Lord, that leads us into temptations, trials and difficulties. R3716:1,
4970:2, 5054:2, 5579:3; Q183:T
The illumination (Matt. 3:16) gave
Jesus such new views respecting his work that he was impelled to go aside to
think, pray and study what his course should be as outlined by the Law and the
prophets. R4544:3, 2566:1, 2243:2
He must not even take his own
previous conceptions of his work. He must look at everything from the new
standpoint of the Spirit. No wonder he wished to be alone with God. R3297:3
That he might study the divine
Word, treasured up in a perfect memory, and now fully intelligible by the power
of the Spirit. "The natural man receiveth not the things of the
spirit." (1 Cor. 2:14) R5157:6, 3297:3,2, 1688:2
Into the wilderness -- Away from every friend and acquaintance and distracting
thing. R3297:2
Instead of being taken to the
mountain top of joy. F141
That in solitude he might know
thoroughly the proper course for him to take in announcing himself as Messiah
to Israel and the world. R3716:3
He must not confer with flesh and
blood respecting his future course, even if there had been anyone perfect like
himself with whom he might have conferred. He must confer with the Father.
R3297:3, 2566:2
To be tempted -- Along the very lines of his work--the consecration which he
had already made. R5065:5
Along the line of selfishness.
R3715:3
The three temptations here
recorded illustrate practically all the temptations that came to our Lord
during his ministry; and, likewise, the temptations that come to his followers.
R3297:6
The environment of the present
world, and the natural and often legitimate desires of the flesh, are the
mediums through which the temptations are presented. R1689:5
Temptation does not imply sin. Our
Lord was tempted "without sin"; so may his brethren be if they follow
his example. Sin only comes through yielding to temptation. R2568:5, 1802:5*,
1689:5
"In all points tempted like
as we are, yet without sin" (Heb. 4:15); not referring to ordinary
temptation, but trials and temptations as a new creature. R3715:6, 3297:6,
2566:3, 2243:5, 1689:5; E110; Q706:2
There is a difference between
temptations which the Father considers proper and the temptations which come of
the Adversary. R3297:5
The temptations or trials which
Jehovah permits to come upon his consecrated people are of the same kind that
he permitted to come upon our Redeemer. R4970:3, 4544:3
Since we read that God tempteth
not, neither is tempted of any man (Jas. 1:13), then Jesus must not be God.
R370:2
Of the devil -- Greek, diabolus. The word always appears in the singular
and undoubtedly refers to Satan. R3716:1, 3297:5, 2567:5
Whose very existence is now denied
by many. F609
Satan is the Adversary in a sense
that the world and our own flesh are not our adversaries. They are not bitter
nor malicious. Satan alone is the willful, intelligent plotter and schemer.
F611, 612
Matthew 4:2
Fasted forty days -- Doubtless the entire period was spent in meditation and
prayer, being led to this course by his spirit of devotion to the Father--his
anxiety to do the Father's will in the Father's way. R3716:4, 5054:2
Mark and Luke imply that he was
tempted for the entire period. Both thoughts are evidently true--he was tempted
all during the 40 days, while the three temptations narrated here occurred at
the close of the 40 days. R3716:1, 2566:3
Aided by a perfect memory, he
considered the prophecies, including those which showed he should be rejected
of men and led as a lamb to the slaughter. R3716:4,5
These 40 days were spent in
meditation and prayer. He had no Bibles nor concordances, but a perfect memory
and 18 years of hearing and reading the Law. We may safely say that he knew the
entire Word of God by heart. R3716:4, 3297:3, 1688:2
Apparently he neither ate nor
slept. R4970:2, 3716:6
If it was proper for the Master to
make a study of the divine plan before beginning his work, how much more is it
necessary for his followers to do so. "Study to show thyself approved unto
God, a workman that needeth not to be ashamed, rightly dividing the word of
truth." (2 Tim. 2:15) R3717:1, 2566:2
Afterward an hungred -- It was an appeal to one of the strongest cravings known to
human nature. R2243:4
Up to this time his perfect mind
was so absorbed in his great theme, and so perfect was he physically, that he
probably neither ate nor slept. R3716:6, 3297:3,4, 2567:5; Q184:T
While busily engaged in searching
the Father's will he was not molested by the tempter; but when he had reached a
conclusion, that was the moment of the tempter's assault. It is the same with
us. R3717:5
Shipwrecked sailors have been
exonerated for turning cannibals under the stress of hunger when they have been
without food much less than 40 days. R2243:4
Matthew 4:3
When the tempter -- One who was of a higher order of being than himself, who
had not taken upon himself a bondman's form. R5084:6
Choosing the time when Jesus'
overtaxed human powers sought refreshment and recuperation. R4970:2,3, 3717:2,
3297:5; Q184:T
Came to him -- Probably not personally, but by suggestion. R3717:3, 5084:2
He said -- I remember you well from the long ago when we were in
fellowship, before my deflection. R4970:4
In approaching our Lord, Satan did
not attempt to lie outright, nor to distort the facts, but rather to put a
false color on them. R5084:6
Representing himself as a friend,
an angel of light. R3717:3, 4970:3
If thou be -- This demand of the tempter would seem to be a challenge to
prove himself the Son of God, to prove that he received the holy Spirit in full
power; and that, if he did not do so, his claim might be considered fraudulent.
R2243:3
Compliance meant not only the
relief of his hunger, but additionally it meant the apparent conversion of
Satan, who seemingly was in a repentant attitude. R2567:1
Be made bread -- The first temptation--the flesh. R3717:4
Use spiritual gifts to further
temporal ends. E110; R4970:3, 3798:1, 3058:2
Since you have so unwisely
forfeited your higher form of life, so that you may never regain it, don't give
up, but keep the life you now have. If you die now you shall never live again,
neither will you be able to liberate mankind from death. R314:2 Illustrating
our temptations to preach for worldly applause, wealth and social positions,
and to seek the healing of our bodies which we have consecrated to death in
God's service. R5965:5, 4970:6, 3798:1, 3717:6
The spiritual gift could no more
be used to procure temporal comforts than it could be sold for money to Simon.
(Acts 8:18-20) R2567:2
So far from using his miraculous
powers selfishly, we find that many of his miracles, especially healings, were
done at his own personal expense. "Virtue [vitality] went out of him and
healed them all." (Luke 6:19) R2243:5
Our Lord subsequently used this
power in feeding multitudes and turning water into wine, but it would have been
sinful for him to use it upon himself, to sustain the human life which he had
already consecrated unto death. R4544:5, 1689:4; Q707:2
Food thus secured could sustain
life for but a little while; the better plan would be to trust in the Word of
God and have eternal life with God. R4897:1
When he hungered, he sent his
disciples to buy bread. When weary, he rested on the well or elsewhere. He
never prayed for deliverance from natural troubles, but cheerfully endured them
as part of his sacrifice. So should we. F636, 650
Matthew 4:4
But he answered -- The fact that Jesus discussed matters with the Adversary
does not furnish us with an excuse to try our ability in this direction--as in
spiritism. R5084:6
If we are positive in our
rejection of temptation it increases our strength of character, not only for
that time, but also for subsequent temptations. R2567:3
It is written -- Although filled with the Spirit, he relied upon that which
was "written" for his replies to temptations. R1688:4; Q708:T
The sure defense of the true child
of God. F200
Man shall not live -- I could not enjoy life, even with all my wants supplied,
apart from communion with my Father. R314:3
By bread alone -- Thus refusing to use divine power for his personal comfort
and healing. F636, 650; R4970:4
Natural food alone will not
sustain us. We cannot live except as we have the smile, the favor, the approval
of the Lord our God. To live without that, for us, would not be living. R3717:6
Man can find no kind of bread, no
kind of food, that will produce life in the full and complete sense of that
word--that will swallow up death in life. R3058:3 The increase of learning,
wealth, conveniences, medical skill and dietetic knowledge which the world has
recently experienced has not increased its peace. NS521:2
Every temptation to sacrifice
spiritual privileges or violate spiritual responsibilities for the attainment
of earthly advantages would be a yielding to this form of temptation. R4544:6
The most that we should do is to
make mention to him of those promises for temporal provision and of our trust
in them. R5202:5
If God calls us to be members of
the body of Christ, neither lack of food nor anything else can hinder us from
the full opportunity of making our calling and election sure. R5202:5
The wrong course is symbolically
prefigured in Esau's selling the birthright for a mess of pottage. (Heb. 12:16)
R4544:6, 3717:6, 2567:2
But by every word -- Not merely the milk of the Word. R3622:2, 1568:2
All hopes of eternal life depend
upon God--upon the divine plan and its promises. R3058:5, 4896:3
Every admonition, every
encouragement, every promise, is necessary to the development of those called
to eternal life. R4896:6, 3060:4
It is as certain that we need
spiritual bread--the truth--constantly, in order that our spiritual life be
sustained, as that we need natural bread daily to sustain our physical life.
R136:3*
Truth is the proper food of man,
and a large share of it must be received by faith. Thus we must live by faith.
Faith is to truth as eating is to bread. R74:1*
The words of God's mouth to us are
not exactly the same as to our Lord Jesus and to the holy angels. To us they
are the words of justice, pity, sonship, promise, admonition, patience,
consolation and resurrection. R3058:6-3060:4
His word is that "whosoever
seeketh to save his [earthly] life [at the expense of his covenant] shall lose
it; and whosoever shall lose his [earthly] life [laying down his life in
harmony with his covenant of consecration, faithfully unto death] shall find it
[eternal life]." (Matt. 10:39) R2244:1
If he would deserve eternal life,
it must be as a result of absolute obedience to the divine law. R4544:5,
3058:5, 2567:2
He had been feeding upon this
heavenly food. He was strong in spirit and determination to do the Father's
will. R3717:6
Our meat and drink should be to do
the will of our God, and to finish his work. (John 4:34) R1689:3
"Whoso keepeth his Word, in
him verily is the love of God perfected." (1
John 2:5) R4897:4
Mouth of God -- God's word is that obedience is the condition of life
everlasting. R4896:6
Matthew 4:5
Then the devil -- The second temptation--the world. R3718:2
Not even dissenting from our
Lord's decision, he presented him a second subtle temptation. R5084:6, 3718:2
Into the holy city -- Mentally, not physically. R5084:3, 4970:4, 4544:6, 3719:2
On a pinnacle -- The roof of the southern wing of the Temple. R3718:2,
3298:2, 2567:4
About 600 feet above the bottom of
the valley. R3298:2
Of the temple -- Overlooking the Valley of Hinnom (Gehenna). R3718:2,
3298:2, 2567:4
Matthew 4:6
And saith unto him -- Again posing as a friend, an angel of light. R3718:3
If thou be -- Your trust in Jehovah is misplaced; first prove Him and see
if He will keep His word. R314:4
Cast thyself down -- Not a temptation to gross wickedness, but a temptation to
do the Lord's work in another way than that which the Lord had planned. R2567:3
Recklessly expose yourself in
proof of your mission. E111
Thus drawing the immediate
attention of all Israel to the fact that you are the Messiah. R3718:3, 5965:6,
4970:4, 4544:6
"A wicked and adulterous
generation seeketh after a sign" (Matt. 16:4), such as the laying on of
hands, the gift of tongues, physical healing, peculiar dress, robes, mitres,
relics of saints, etc. R3718:5
"This generation seeketh a
sign" (Mark 8:12); and thus it is with every generation. The world wants
miracles or outward shows of sanctity and great professions. R3718:5
Illustrating the temptation to
recklessly expose ourselves to any danger--moral, financial, phy-sical or
spiritual--expecting miraculous deliverance. R2244:2,3, 4970:6
He had not been called upon to
thus hazard his life, but rather was required to sacrifice it--laying it down
in the service of the truth and of humanity. R4545:1
The Lord's people should be on
guard against any unreasonable procedures in the proclamation of the Gospel.
The service of ambassadors for God is a reasonable service. R3718:6, 3298:6,
2567:5
Another temptation of the same
character: To expect divine interposition to put truth into our mouths and
hearts while failing to obey the divine instruction to "Search the
Scriptures." R2244:3
It would be a sin to use spiritual
power for the gratifying of our human nature when it was given us wherewith to
crucify it. R146:5
The wonder-working spirit is
contrary to the spirit of humility and, if gratified, would lead to spiritual
pride and egotism. R4545:1
We are to do all in our power
before expecting divine interpositions. We are not to thus tempt providence.
R2421:2
If we should presume to go out in
cold or stormy weather improperly clad, when it is not necessary to do so, and
thus risk contracting illness, we would be doing a wrong and unwarranted thing.
Q708:1
It requires greater courage to
ignore the shame and ignominy of the world in the disesteemed service of God
than to perform some great and wonderful feat that would cause the natural man
to wonder and admire. E112
For it is written -- Satan quoted Scripture but misapplied it. R3718:2,6, 4970:4
His angels -- Ministers of divine truth who, in the present harvest-time,
would be commissioned to bear up the feet members with such counsels,
admonitions and expositions of Scripture as would be necessary for them. (Psa.
91:11,12) R2567:6
Bear thee up -- If he had been thrust off the Temple pinnacle by the hands
of an angry mob before his time had come, or if he accidentally fell, surely
the Father would have intervened that he not be injured; but to do so
deliberately would have been to tempt God. R4970:5, 3718:4, 3298:3
Dash thy foot -- This Scripture really belongs to the feet members of the
Body of Christ, that they may surmount the difficulties and receive blessing
instead of injury. R4545:1, 3719:1, 3298:4, 2567:5, 2244:2, 1680:6, 844:3
Against a stone -- It is possible that our Lord at that time did not know the
proper interpretation of this Scripture; if he had, there would have been
little temptation in the suggestion. R3298:3
We now see that the Lord himself
was the "stone of stumbling and a rock of offence to both the houses of
Israel" (Isa. 8:14), and that his "feet" represent spiritual
Israel particularly during the harvest time. R3298:4
In our day there is a
stumbling-stone permitted for the testing of our faith. Whoever is of the
proper character will be aided of the Lord to victory so that the
stumbling-stone will become a stepping-stone to higher riches of grace and
blessing. R3719:1, 3298:5
Matthew 4:7
It is written again -- Seemingly conflicting Scriptures should be harmonized by
examining the underlying principles. R3298:3
Not tempt the Lord -- By trying him through a misapplication of his promise.
Q708:T
To deliberately defy the laws of
nature and to expect divine protection would have been to tempt God. This Jesus
refused to do. R4970:5, 3718:4, 1688:4; Q707:4
Matthew 4:8
Again, the devil -- The third temptation--the devil. R3719:2
In seeming sympathy with our Lord.
R3719:3
Again changing his method of
attack. R5084:5
This time he no longer disputed
with Jesus that he was the Son of God. R2244:5
Taketh him up -- Mentally, not physically. R4970:5, 3719:2, 3298:4
High mountain -- Satan's own dominion over the world. R5084:5, 4970:5,
4545:2, 3719:2, 3299:1, 2244:4
And sheweth him -- Thus picturing his own power over the world, the power of a
usurping prince imposing upon him the ignorance and superstition of mankind.
R4545:2
This panoramic presentation of
Satan's power was designed to impress upon our Redeemer the thought that
Satan's friendship and assistance would be most valuable--nay, of almost vital
importance to the success of his mission. R2567:6
All the kingdoms -- Held and ruled through his minions, the blood-thirsty kings
of earth. R615:1*
Our Lord clearly understood that
sometime he was to have authority over these kingdoms, and that his mission was
to lay the foundation for a Kingdom, but he probably did not yet fully
understand how or when--hence, the peculiar force of this temptation. R3299:1
Though God has given over the
world to the "prince of this world" until the full end of the Gentile
times, yet God has not given him unlimited power. R5205:4
Pray God's guidance and direction
over all the affairs of life and over rulers to the end that the piety,
sobriety and growth of the Church may be conserved. R5205:4; HG570:4
Matthew 4:9
All these things -- You will be great indeed. You are a perfect man and you can
live forever. Since your life is not forfeited, no one can take it from you.
You can be Lord of lords and King of kings to bless mankind. R314:4
Will I give thee -- Satan controls the invisible spiritual phase of the present
kingdoms of earth, as well as the visible human phase. A251; R4970:5
This offer was no farce; it was
the climax of the temptations, the last resort of a baffled enemy. R615:1*
To give the impression that he
himself was tired of rebellion against God in the world and that he was ready
to join our Lord in a great social uplift. R5084:5, 4970:5, 4545:4, 3719:3,
3299:2; E113
Furthermore, this would involve my
own conversion to righteousness, which surely would not be amiss, either in
your sight or in the sight of Jehovah. R2244:5; E114
The suggestion was that with some
maneuvering and wire-pulling he, as a perfect man, and therefore far superior
to other men, could soon win his way to a chief place of power and dominion
over the whole world. R1688:6
His proposition is a social uplift
which shall ignore individual responsibilities and sins and merely regard
social conditions and make society outwardly clean. E115
If thou wilt fall down -- Bend a little; make compromise with the worldly spirit.
R2568:2
He foresaw that the suggested
course would involve many compromises with evil men then in power, just as all
office-seekers under the present order have always found it. R1689:1
Similarly today, he proposes to
the Lord's followers identification with nominal Churchianity. R3299:5
The temptation is, Will we connive
with and recognize unjust and sinful institutions because they have power and
because to oppose them would imply their opposition and the bringing of shame,
scorn and death. R4545:5, 3299:5
Satan was willing to become a
reformer in all particulars except one--his ambition must be gratified. E113
Worship me -- Cooperate with me for the world's uplift. R4970:5; E112
Implying that Satan would not
require such suffering and sacrifice as God required; that, if Jesus would
cooperate with him, all would work smoothly and prosperously. R5966:1; Q708:3
As does the nominal church when it
seeks to increase membership by resorting to worldly customs, games,
entertainments, etc. R3719:5, 4970:6
When the Papacy did this, Satan
was true to his promise. B293; E114
Recognize his influence and
cooperation in the work. Not for a moment can we suppose that he expected him
to kneel before him and worship him as a God. R2568:1
I do not ask that you shall not
recognize Jehovah, but that you shall be under my supervision. You will not be
required to do anything very bad. R5084:6
I, on the spirit plane, and you,
on the human plane, will be quite masters of the situation. Let us federate and
cooperate. R4970:5, 4545:4
By not opposing evil, by
respecting or reverencing evil customs already established under Satan's
regime, Satan would cooperate with our Lord in the establishment of his
Kingdom. E74
It was not long after the apostles
fell asleep in death that the Adversary succeeded in deluding the church to go
into partnership with him for the control of the world and its blessings
through a combination of religion and politics. R2245:1
Matthew 4:10
Get thee hence, Satan -- Adversary, opposing spirit. F611
I cannot be a co-worker with you
in any sense of the word. R4970:6, 3299:4
Fully awakening in Jesus a
realization of the fact that there was no real reformation at work in Satan's
heart. R2568:2
Our Lord was saved from any
vacillation on the subject by reason of the fullness of his consecration.
R3299:4
Our Lord was indignant that it
should be thought for a moment he would prove traitor to his covenant and enter
into a confederacy with the great Arch-enemy of righteousness, Satan. R4970:6
Had he not reached this final
decision we may presume that Satan's temptations would have continued for days
or weeks or years. R3299:6
Let each of us, as followers of
the Master, be prompt in giving our response to the Adversary's proposition of
compromise. He who dallies with temptation increases its power every moment.
R3720:1, 3299:6; Q184:T
We are to resist the Adversary
courageously that he may leave us permanently. R4970:6
When we take a positive stand on
any question we have special help from the Lord along those lines. R4339:4*
Worship the Lord -- The Greek word translated "worship" in the New
Testament is proskuneo which signifies "to kiss the hand," as a dog
licks the hand of its master. The significance is reverence. E72
Thy God, and him only -- Reverence to those in honored positions, if not rivals of
Jehovah, is proper. E73
Shalt thou serve -- I will follow the divine program at any cost. R2244:6
Matthew 4:11
Devil leaveth him -- And never made another attempt, as far as the record goes.
R5292:4, 4970:6; Q184:T
"Resist the devil and he will
flee from you." (Jas. 4:7) R1689:5; Q184:T
Behold, angels came -- Uninvited. R1689:6
From the moment of our positive
resistance of temptation and positive standing up for the Lord we become
stronger in the Lord and in the power of his might. R3300:4
Our Lord had no Advocate to
sympathize with him, and to succor and encourage him in the hour of temptation.
With us, however, matters are different. R4545:5
Whatever terror lay in the
intimated opposition of the Adversary was more than counterbalanced by the
assurance of divine favor and assistance. So it is with us. R3300:4
Ministered unto him -- Strengthened him, revived him. R4970:6
Matthew 4:12
Now when Jesus -- Probably six months or a year after his baptism. R2245:2
Heard that John -- Foreshadowed the closing work of the Church at the second
advent. B261,253
He departed -- "When they persecute you in this city, flee to
another." (Matt. 10:23) F508
It is our duty to be on the
lookout for divine deliverance and the opening of a way of escape from things
too difficult to endure. F508
Into Galilee -- More amenable to the teachings of Jesus than were many of
their more religious, more enlightened, and more priest-ridden brethren of
Judea. R4557:1
The expression "Can any good
thing come out of Nazareth?" (John 1:48) applied to all Galilee. R4556:6
Matthew 4:13
In Capernaum -- Moving there with his mother and brethren, as a family.
R2245:3
Capernaum was more closely in
touch with the Gentile world, its good and its evil, than was Jerusalem.
R4557:2
Matthew 4:15
Galilee -- Signifies circle; implying that this land would be
encircled by the Gentiles. R4556:6
Matthew 4:16
The people -- The people of Palestine, long in doubt, uncertainty, etc.
R4988:2
Sat in darkness -- Separated from the great religious center of their day,
they were in greater darkness than their brethren. R4557:1
Saw great light -- Jesus and his teachings. R4988:2
Symbol of God, of Christ, of the
Church, of truth, of influence for righteousness. R4987:3
Which flared forth in Capernaum,
Bethsaida, Chorazin and Nazareth, chief cities of Galilee, and blessed and
gathered some, the elect. R4557:1,5
The benighted Galileans were
blessed in the great light which shone in their midst; but it also tested them
as truth, light, always does. R4557:5
All mankind shall see the great
light which God has provided. R4988:5, 4557:1
Shadow of death -- In the very shadow of the death-darkness that was upon the
Gentiles. R4557:1
Subject to a reign of sin and
death, under a pall of darkness, ignorance, superstition, sin, etc. R4987:6
Even these must come forth that
all may be enlightened by this "true light which lighteth every man that
cometh into the world." (John 1:9) R4988:6
Light is sprung up -- Before the world will be enlightened, the Church must be
enlightened, completed and glorified together with her Lord. R4988:4
Matthew 4:17
Repent -- From our Lord's viewpoint the healing of soul-sickness was
of greater importance than physical healing, which was merely incidental.
R2246:4
Kingdom of heaven -- The hope of every Israelite. A273
Matthew uses the terms
"kingdom of heaven" and "kingdom of God" interchangeably.
R396:3,6
Is at hand -- The 69 (of 70) weeks of Daniel's prophecy have expired.
R3630:2
In the sense that Jesus was
present to make a formal tender of the Kingdom to Abraham's natural seed.
R4557:2
Matthew 4:18
Simon called Peter -- "Simon Peter, lovest thou me more than these? [nets,
boats, etc.]" (John 21:15) NS656:4
And Andrew -- This calling was not their first introduction to Jesus, but
merely the Lord's invitation to them to become special associates in the work.
R2245:2
They were fishers -- Christ did not call idlers, but workers, into his ministry.
R2246:1
All his disciples (the twelve)
were from what might be termed the humbler walks of life. It is declared
without disapproval that the rulers "perceived that they were unlearned
men." (Acts 4:13) F210
Matthew 4:19
Follow me -- While the Lord called each individually, there was also a
special occasion upon which he dedicated them to their office as apostles.
(Luke 6:13) R1521:2
I will make you -- The twelve whom I have specially chosen. F217
Fishers of men -- Spiritual fishing requires knowledge, tact, bait, and that
self be kept out of sight. Fish are easily alarmed when they think anyone
wishes to take them. "Be ye wise as serpents and harmless as doves."
(Matt. 10:16) R5555:1,3, 3308:3; CR156:4
The skillful fisherman catches the
fish individually. Likewise, very much of the work of this age has been an
individual work, accomplished by talking to people. R5555:1
"The Kingdom of heaven is
like unto a net that was cast into the sea and gathered fish of every
kind." (Matt. 13:47) C214; R920:1
Matthew 4:20
Left their nets -- Forsook all to follow him. The "seventy"
commissioned later on were never recognized as apostles. F210
Evidently retaining some sort of
interest in them, however, as they had no difficulty in regaining possession of
them when they re-embarked in the fishing business after our Lord's death.
R3308:2
Not instantly, but after making
necessary arrangements. Similarly, we have a stewardship of duties and
responsibilities in life which we cannot abruptly cast aside. R3720:6, 3721:1
The Lord accepts none as his
disciples except those who forsake all to follow him. R4557:4
And so it is today. Those who most
cheerfully, most zealously forget self and earthly ambitions, aims and
projects, and who most fully give themselves to the Lord and to his
service--these may walk nearest to the Lord at all times. R3334:6
Matthew 4:22
And their father -- Leaving the fishing equipment in the care of Zebedee and
hired servants. R3720:6
Matthew 4:23
All Galilee -- Supposed to have had a population of over 3,000,000.
R3334:3
The people of Galilee were
evidently thrifty, prosperous work people, people best prepared to receive his
teachings. R3334:3
In their synagogues -- They could teach the people there, for a time; but as they
shunned not to declare the whole counsel of God, they soon found little and
finally no opportunity to teach the people in the synagogues. R986:5
The gospel -- His message is called "the Gospel," the good
news, because Israelites, like the rest of the groaning creation, have been
long waiting for the promised Golden Age. R2246:1
Of the kingdom -- The sum and substance of the gospel theme. R1579:3
And healing -- "These things did Jesus, and manifested forth his
glory." (John 2:11) PD64/74
All manner of sickness -- Let those who are lame through pride and self-will and
unable to follow in the narrow way cast away their crutches. Let them learn to
walk in his ways of meekness, gentleness, patience, longsuffering and
brotherly-kindness. R2246:5
Matthew 4:24
His fame -- As his fame increased, the opposition to him became more
and more pronounced, especially from those who were brought into competition
and unfavorable comparison with him as public teachers. R1735:3
And they brought -- We urge the necessity of bringing friends, and coming
oneself, to the Great Physician for the healing of soul-sickness. R2246:5
Possessed with devils -- The evil spirits of selfishness and pride. R2246:5
The palsy -- The palsy of fear of man which bringeth a snare. [Prov.
29:25] R2246:5
He healed them -- To foreshadow the still greater work to be accomplished
during his Millennial reign, and also to draw attention to the message
proclaimed. PD64/74; R4557:5, 2246:4
Matthew 5
Matthew 5:1
He went up -- Being wearied with exhaustive labor, too weary to minister
to the multitudes. R1493:3*
Into a mountain -- He did not seek a public place where the largest audience
could be gathered, but a place of retirement where he could be alone with his
disciples. R3243:1
Supposedly a site known as the
Mount of Beatitudes, sloping gradually, about 60 feet high, situated about
seven miles southwest from Capernaum. R2249:3
It is said that on this mountain
the last remnant of the Crusaders was destroyed in AD 1187. R2249:3
His disciples came -- They had not yet become sons of God in the full sense of
the word. Jesus spoke in an anticipatory or prophetic sense, as if they were
already new creatures. R5623:2,3
His disciples were nearest to him,
with the multitudes surrounding. R2249:3, 2589:1
Our Lord's first message was,
Repent and get ready for the Kingdom (Matt. 4:17). To those who accepted that
message he now gave additional blessed lessons. R4556:3
Jesus was addressing such of the
Jews as had the hearing ear, such as had an inclination to be his disciples.
Only the spirit-begotten understand these beatitudes fully. R5003:4, 4557:2,
3243:1
Not addressed to a promiscuous
congregation of saints and sinners, but to his earnest and faithful disciples
who had left all to follow him. R1493:3*
Matthew 5:2
Taught them -- A different message; others hold forth the rich, the
learned, the influential, as patterns to copy; but Jesus set forth the reverse
to attain happiness. R5003:2
The sermon is entirely devoid of
anything like oratory; for evidently its object was to instruct, rather than to
play upon the emotions of the hearers. R1493:2*
Instructed his disciples how they
could best make their calling and election sure and win the great prize.
R5003:5
His words were simple and easy to
be understood. They applied strongly both to the judgment and to the heart.
R1493:3*
His discourse was so directed as
to divide his hearers into two classes--some disappointed, others thoroughly
satisfied. Thus does the truth always separate. R3733:3
Not with threats of vengeance if
the lessons were not learned; and while only the spirit-begotten can fully
appreciate them, others may gather precious lessons from the beatitudes.
R5003:5
Saying -- The character of our Lord is one. Here the Lord divides
this one character into different sections, giving us a view of each particular
part. R2585:2
Matthew 5:3
Blessed -- Much more than happy. Happiness usually proceeds from
outward causes, while the word blessed here carries with it the thought of
great or honorable. R2249:6
Happiness describes joyful moods
which come from time to time; but blessedness relates to that permanent joy and
comfort which results from attaining character in harmony with the divine.
R3733:2
The contrast between the Ten
Commandments and the eight beatitudes illustrates the difference between the
Law Dispensation and the Dispensation of Grace. R5003:2
The beatitudes designate the
particular graces necessary to receive the blessings which the Father designed
we should enjoy through Christ. R2249:3, 2240:1
We advise a reading and pondering
on alternative Sundays of this delineation of the graces and the Apostle Paul's
summation of the same graces in 1 Cor. 13. R2240:1, 2234:5, 2205:6
The poor in spirit -- The Foundation of the Palace of Blessedness is Humility.
R5003:5
The Greek word signifies
"extremely poor, utterly destitute." R2250:1
The first blessed state, in some
respects, comprehends all the others. It is the gateway, the hallway of the
House of Blessing, from which all the other rooms are accessible. R2249:6
Not the rich, the learned, the
prominent, the rulers, the self-conceited, but those lacking self-esteem, who
appreciate their own littleness and imperfection. R3733:6, 5991:5, 2139:1
Nevertheless, evidently moderate
poverty is the most favorable condition for us in our present weak and fallen
condition. R2250:1
Humble-minded, and therefore more
teachable. R4969:4, 4557:3
While all humble persons will not
attain the Kingdom, the Kingdom cannot be attained by anyone who is not humble.
R2585:2
God would never accept as a member
of the Kingdom class one possessed of the spirit of pride and selfish ambition.
R5003:5, 2585:3
Not necessarily poor in pocket.
Some who are poor in pocket, or in intellectual gifts or attainments, are very
proud in spirit. R2585:5, 1920:5
A full appreciation of our own
spiritual destitution is essential before we will be ready to receive the
measures of divine grace provided. R2250:1
It is only when we are little in
our own eyes that God can use us with safety to ourselves. R1920:5
Luke omits "in spirit";
those who become poor in any sense of the word, whether financially, socially
or otherwise, by sacrificing themselves. Blessed are all the sacrificers.
R1493:5*
If the success of yesterday makes
you fret under the humiliation of today, then beware: you are not as roundly
developed spiritually as you should be. R1920:6
Theirs is the kingdom -- They are the prospective kings and priests of the new
dispensation. R2139:5*
To those, all the Master's
gracious promises and lessons of wisdom, comfort and instruction are given.
R5991:5
Even now these constitute the
embryo Kingdom. R2139:4*
Only the poor in spirit can submit
to the discipline and training necessary to fit them for the Kingdom. R2139:4*
Matthew 5:4
Blessed -- Growing out of the first quality, as a tree of many
branches out of the root, come the other graces of the spirit. R2585:3
So if we find that the great
majority of mankind have had considerable mourning and sorrow, there is comfort
that the majority shall be comforted and receive joy. NS614:4
They that mourn -- The Palace Reception Room is the Chamber of
Sorrow--mourning. R5003:6
The sympathetic, who realize their
own imperfections, and are touched with pity for the poor groaning creation as
they see them dying in sorrow, pain and disappointment. R3734:1,2, 5003:6,
2586:1, 2250:2; NS190:4
Necessary for our complete
separation from the things of the world, the flesh and the devil. R5003:6
Mourners in Zion, true saints in
the nominal church, distressed at the worldliness therein. D30; R1441:2
Mourning, of itself, is not a
grace, but it betokens an attitude of mind which is acceptable in the Lord's
sight. R2585:6
Our Heavenly Father is not a
continual mourner. The thought, rather, is Blessed are ye that mourn now.
R2585:6
Because iniquity abounds.
R2138:6*, 1493:6*
Not expecting that becoming his
disciples would lift them out of trials, difficulties, sorrows, tears, but that
such experiences would be overruled for their good. R4557:5
It was this mourning in sympathy
that led to Jesus' tears at Lazarus' tomb; and to his being called "the
man of sorrows and acquainted with grief." (Isa. 53:3) R3734:3 We can
cultivate this grace by frequently thinking of others and their interests and
seeking to enter into these as though they were all our own. R2586:1
"Ye shall weep and lament,
but the world shall rejoice." (John 16:20) R1493:6*
They shall be comforted -- The word comfort does not contain the thought of relief,
but rather that of strengthened together, or added strength. R3734:4
Our Lord notes their tears as well
as their efforts in opposition to sin. R2250:3
Their comforting will begin at
once, for their mourning will bring a readiness of mind to hearken for the
Lord's favor. R3734:2, 2586:1
Blessed are those who, being
comforted themselves, shall be used of the Lord in the comforting of other
members of his Body. R3734:5
In receiving the reward of the
righteous, and in beholding the final triumph of righteousness and truth.
R1493:6*
"Beauty for ashes and the oil
of joy for mourning." (Isa. 61:3) D30
Matthew 5:5
Are the meek -- The Palace Library is Meekness. R5003:6
Submissive to the divine will.
R2586:3
The teachable; not too proud to
learn. R5003:6, 5186:1, 2586:1; Q469:2
Self-controlled, gentle, not
easily provoked or irritated, forbearing under injury or annoyance. R3734:5,6
Meekness is necessary to learn
valuable lessons in character-development, to be prepared to be the teachers of
the world. R5003:6, 4557:3,6
"God resisteth the
proud." (Jas. 4:6) E255
Impossible without the first two
graces of a humble mind and the large sympathies of the mourner. R2586:2
The outward manifestation of the
second grace, which is an inward quality. R2586:2
There is quite a difference
between this gentle submission to the divine will and ordinary gentleness which
is frequently exercised to gratify selfish desires. R2586:2
Any wise man may learn something
from a child; but anyone who is not meek finds it difficult to learn anywhere.
Q469:2
Not bold, grasping, ferocious,
self-willed, getting the best of the earth and everybody in it, but submitting
to injustice in the interests of the coming Kingdom. R4557:6, 3734:5
The blessed meek of verse 5 are
the same class who, in verses 10 and 11, are bold and courageous enough to
withstand evil and error and champion righteousness and truth. R1493:6*
It is a life work with many to
conquer their too-high appreciation of themselves and to obtain the spirit of a
sound mind as respects their own talents. E255
Nothing is more dangerous to the
child of God than self-conceit; it hinders reformation of the heart, as well as
true usefulness to others, and especially usefulness in God's service. R5186:1
For they -- The seed of Abraham, members of Messiah. R5370:5, 5003:6,
4557:6
And not the selfish,
avaricious and grasping. D633 Shall inherit the earth -- Purchased, as well as man, by the great sacrifice finished
at Calvary. R2250:3
The reward of this grace, like the
others, is future. R2586:6
When God's Kingdom has come and
his will is done on earth as it is in heaven. R3734:5
The Lord's followers now have more
enjoyment of the earth than others; while others are grasping, they are
enjoying. R3734:6, 2586:3
Losing houses, lands, parents,
children and friends, eventually they will inherit the earth. R4557:6
Under the primary and original
covenant, as the Seed of Abraham. As members of Messiah, these will come into
the full possession and control of the earth. R5370:5, 5003:6
The Church of the Firstborn is
soon to have the entire Inheritance, the land as well as the power, dominion,
glory and honor. R1164:2,4
"I will give thee the heathen
for thine inheritance; and the uttermost parts of the earth for a
possession" (Psa. 2:8) as soon as the last member of the elect has been
prepared. R2250:4
To bring it to becoming again a
Paradise of God, a world-wide Eden. R4557:6
The overcomers of this age inherit
it now by faith, and the overcomers of the next age will do so actually.
R3734:6
During the Millennial age the meek
of the restitution class shall inherit the earth. R3734:6
At the close of the Messianic
reign, the meek will turn over their inheritance, the earth, to mankind.
R5004:1, 2586:3
Matthew 5:6
Blessed are they -- Others are wholly unprepared to come to Jesus--such as
those morally of a superior class who feel less the need of divine aid. NS121:1
Hunger and thirst -- In a symbolic palace of blessedness the dining room is
Hunger for Righteousness. R5004:1
"As the hart panteth after
the water brook." (Psa. 42:1) R5163:6
The human heart, as well as the
human body, has its appetites. NS119:3
Some of the soul's appetites are:
(1) craving for sympathy and fellowship; (2) craving for ease and comfort; (3)
craving for name and fame; (4) craving for pleasure. NS120:1
Uncontrolled by the other graces,
has led many reformers into wild excesses; yet, under the control of a sound
mind, the child of God waits for the fulfillment of his promises. R2586:5
The first step of justification
does not admit to the Lord's table except as it prepares us for it. The second
step is full consecration to the Lord. NS121:4
A heart condition of faith and
teachableness; and, while exercising our reasonable faculties, we expect divine
guidance. R4744:6
Nothing is more conducive to
spiritual hunger than approach to the throne of grace. NS122:3
The hope inspired by God's promise
to Abraham is the power which has taken the spiritual stone out of the
mountain--the world. (Dan. 2:45) OV429:3
God allows us to get very hungry
before he gives us the truth. CR54:3
Many of the Lord's people reach
his table without having a very keen appetite--such are easily satisfied.
NS121:6
Lovers of righteousness and haters
of iniquity. R5004:1 Who desire more and stronger spiritual food that they may
grow thereby. Milk is for babes, but strong meat is for those who have passed
the infant stage. (Heb. 5:14) R1358:2
Manifested by the desire to draw
near to God, which the Lord expects before he fulfills his promise that they
shall be filled or satisfied. R2671:1
After righteousness -- That which is right, truth. R4971:1, 3735:1
Wisdom, knowledge, understanding
of the good and true. R3284:6
The satisfying portion--at the
table of divine provision. OV260:3
The Scriptures assure us that
"There is none righteous, no, not one" (Rom. 3:10). There is a
relative righteousness, however, which God can approve. R5218:2
Righteous heart or character.
R5901:3*
Righteousness is so interwoven
with its various parts--justice and injustice, truth and error, holiness and
sin--that whoever is careless in one element is deficient in all. NS123:2
Righteousness here applies to
right in every matter--truth. R3735:1; NS120:4
New Year is a favorable time for
heart reformation--not only because of the suggestions of new things, but also
because of heart disappointments incidental to the holiday season. NS122:1
Seeking to be in harmony with Him
to the best of their ability, and trusting in the precious blood of our
Redeemer. R5218:2
With an antipathy to untruth in
every form, and to all injustice and inequity; modified by the third grace, by
patient submission to the divine will. R2586:5
So loving righteousness, truth,
that they renounce and denounce bondage to creeds and stand forth for the
truth. NS123:1
We find what we seek! Those who
desire to find God's message will be guided of the Lord. Those who approach
from the standpoint of cavil, unbelief, antagonism, are equally sure to find
what they seek--flaws, contradictions, etc. R4971:1; HG473:6; Q643:2
They shall be filled -- Made holy. R5901:3*
The truth on every subject
necessary for us will be given as the Lord is pleased to reveal it. R5570:4,
4744:5, 5004:1
The very fact that we do not know
everything, far from being a cause of disappointment, is a source of pleasure.
Each fresh item of knowledge is a new well-spring of pleasure. NS742:3
Satisfied with the spiritual
refreshment God provides; we shall be bountifully fed and sweetly refreshed
with the "meat in due season" and the water of life. R1396:5, 3735:1,
1899:2, 4558:1
The water of life and truth which
Christ has furnished satisfied as nothing else could do. Those who drink of it
have no cravings for vain philosophies of men which make void the Word of God.
R1703:4
Righteousness and truth are scarce
commodities at the present time. R4558:1
There is nothing in
unrighteousness to fill any man. There is a filling power in righteousness.
NS122:5
The appetite for truth and
righteousness will remain, but the prevalence of truth and righteousness shall
be its satisfaction. R2586:5
Does not imply a miraculous
filling. They will make use of their time, knowledge and opportunities for
seeking the bread of eternal life which satisfies. R3735:1
Repeatedly filled as full as the
present poor earthen vessel will contain. With the filling comes the
enlargement of our capacities, and still further filling and a further
enlargement, and so on. NS122:4
Satisfaction will not be attained
fully in the present life; the believer progresses more and more to this
satisfaction, receiving the full measure on the other side of the veil.
R2671:1, 2586:6, 2250:5
Their own perfection in the first
resurrection, and the establishment of righteousness in all the earth during
the 1000 years of Messiah's reign. R5004:1
Matthew 5:7
The merciful -- In a symbolic palace of blessedness the door is Mercy.
R5004:1
Those who, having recognized their
own need of divine mercy, are merciful and compassionate toward others.
R5004:1, 3735:2
Only such could be entrusted with
the works of restitution. R4558:1
A genuine mercy, a forgiving
"from your hearts." (Matt. 18:35) R2587:1
God would rather have us err in
the sense of being too lenient than have us be merely just. SM432:2
A genuine mercy and not a feigned
one; it must cover from sight, and, as far as possible, blot from memory the
failings and weaknesses of others. R2587:1
An outward expression, which men
can discern, resulting from an appreciation of righteousness and a hunger and
thirst for it in the renewed heart. R2586:6
It is for God to be just; it is
for men to exercise the blessed characteristic of mercy, compassion,
forgiveness. R2587:3
When Abraham requested mercy for
Sodom (Gen. 18:23-32) the Lord was proved, in every case, to be no less just
and no less generous than his servant. R3948:1
As applied to thought: it is
better to be deceived a hundred times than to go through life soured by a
suspicious mind. R4919:4
The unmerciful, evil-thinking mind
is father to unmerciful conduct toward others. R4919:4
It is very unbecoming for those
who themselves have need of divine mercy to be sticklers in the last degree in
the requirement of justice for others. R3735:3
"Mercy rejoices against
judgment"--against the execution of justice. (Jas. 2:13) R3735:2, 2587:2
Obtain mercy -- Only the merciful shall obtain mercy: "If ye forgive
not men their trespasses, neither will your Father forgive your
trespasses." (Matt. 6:15) R2587:1, 3803:1
The promise of mercy to the
merciful is a principle of divine government, because the more generous and
loving the heart, the nearer to the perfect condition. OV210:3
God will extend his mercy toward
us as respects those deflections which are not willful. R2587:4
God will deal gently with them,
forgiving their blemishes and weaknesses in proportion as they have this spirit
of generosity, forgiveness, toward those who trespass against them. R3805:5
But the Lord declines to forgive
our trespasses against his law unless we exercise this spirit toward our
fellow-men. R4558:2
The strongest incentive towards as
lenient a judgment of our fellow-men as circumstances will permit. R1493:6*
Matthew 5:8
The pure in heart -- In a symbolic palace of blessedness the window through
which we may see God is Purity of Heart. R5004:4
In his creation, man was made in
the image of God, and so was originally pure in heart. R5148:3, 3735:3
We will be judged according to the
purity of the heart, mind, intention, will. R4558:2
Those absolutely cleansed in will
and spirit, and, as far as possible, in flesh and tongue. F409; R5389:3;
SM335:1, 633:2; Q51:3
Loyalty to the principles of truth
and righteousness, the principles of divine government; loyalty to God and our
Lord Jesus Christ and members of his body. R4929:3
Purity of motive, of intention, of
effort, of will; in the sense of transparency, of truthfulness; sincere,
unsullied, without adulteration. R5148:3, 5004:4, 5264:5, 3735:3, 2587:3; Q51:4
So long as the motives of the new
will are honorable, we have the assurance that we will ultimately reach
perfection through obedience. R5149:2, 5756:3
If we fail to reach perfection of
heart-development during the period of our trial, we shall die the second
death. But this does not mean perfection of the flesh. R4400:6, 5902:1, 4558:3,
3735:5
To be pure-hearted means to be
sincere and to utter nothing which we do not mean. NS673:6
The pure of heart are those whose
intentions are pure, whose motives are pure, who desire the best--long for the
best. Q51:4
Hence the importance of
criticizing or judging our hearts, the necessity of purging from them
everything rebellious and sinful. NS163:6
The Lord's judgment will be, not
according to outward attainment, but according to inward attainment. NS593:4
We may be sure that the pure in
heart, in intention and endeavor, will make considerable progress in overcoming
the weaknesses of the flesh. NS654:4; SM335:1
Purity, charity, holiness of heart
and mind belong to our consecration. R2015:4
The thought is not perfection of
conduct, word or thought, but perfection of intention as respects all of these.
R2587:5, 2250:6, 1739:2
The honest-hearted, those that
have absolutely right intentions. R5148:3
A heart filled with the spirit of
love will be sure to bestow it upon others. R4770:6
Maintain purity of heart by purity
of mind. R5149:5
An evil mouth, a mouth which does
injury to others, indicates an evil heart. R2444:1
They shall see God -- Greek, horao, discern. R1494:1*
"Without holiness no man
shall see the Lord." (Heb. 12:14) R2587:3, 1739:2
Such have the clearest views of
God's character and plan now; and such shall see him shortly when changed in
the first resurrection. R3735:6
Not only attain the
character-likeness of the Lord Jesus, but eventually they shall be made like
him and "see him as he is" in the first resurrection. (1 John 3:2)
R5149:1, 2587:5
In the fullness of heavenly glory.
CR393:2; R4929:3, 5004:4, 5958:3
Having no films of prejudice or
vain philosophy before their eyes and no clouds between themselves and God.
R1494:1*
A foretaste comes in the present
life: to "comprehend with all the saints what is the breadth and length
and height and depth, and know the love of Christ." (Eph. 3:18) R2587:6
Where God sees the heart pure and
true to him and to his spirit and law of love, he will, in due time, give the
new body suited to it. F409
In his Word and his plan, in his
mighty works, in nature, in the secret closet communions, in his providences.
R1739:3
Only such as attain to heart
purity can hope ever to see God, to enjoy this evidence of his love. R3735:5
The Church of Christ, begotten of
the holy Spirit, may see him with the eyes of their understanding in a sense in
which the ancient worthies could not. R5149:5
Those who have a double mind, a
double will, also have a double vision, a double eye. They see spiritual things
cross-eyed, double, and proportionately indistinctly. R2587:6
Matthew 5:9
The peacemakers -- In a symbolic palace of blessednes the parlor is
represented by the characteristics of a Peacemaker. R5004:4
Addressed to the consecrated,
Jesus' disciples. SM452:1, 456:2
Purity of heart toward God
manifests itself in peaceable desires and efforts to promote peace in others.
R2588:1
To be a peace-maker, one must
first be a peace-lover. R2251:2
Peacemaking is chiefly done with
the tongue, though it may also operate through the eye. R2588:2
The Lord's people are to sympathize
with all and join with none in the warring world. R5767:4
We may avoid denunciation of
things we cannot endorse, especially things having no bearing on the Lord's
Word. What God sees fit to permit, we can see fit to endure. R4978:6, 2621:6,
4558:4, 2948:6
Not mischief-makers,
strife-breeders, lawless. R4558:4
Taking opportunity to help others.
R5004:4
We should seek to subdue and calm
the passions of men in the coming strife. OV287:2
The great majority of those who
have named the name of Christ, even if their hearts are pure and their
sympathies large, pursue a reverse course. Even some of the true saints use
their tongues to stir up strife. R2588:1,2, 3736:1
With perverse natural
dispositions, it may require considerable time and practice to learn and love
the path which leads to peace amongst God's people. R2251:1
Not peace at any price, otherwise
our Lord and the faithful body might not have suffered. R2251:1
There are times where
"backbone" is necessary, when principle is involved, and when retreat
would be absolutely wrong; but these cases are rare. Undoubtedly we can often
yield as Isaac did with Abimelech. (Gen. 26:12-25) R3593:6
Combativeness, exercised toward
fellow creatures, must be modified by mercy; it must be trained to fight for
truth and against error, but not against the ignorant servants of the error.
R2588:4
Fighting against the imperfections
and weaknesses of our own natures will leave comparatively little time for
assaulting others. R2588:4
If we think the majority less wise
than we, let us learn patience and wait, as the Lord does, until they learn the
error of their course and amend it. R4772:6
We are never to use the sword,
earthly power, in seeking to promote the cause of the Master. R3888:1
Children of God -- They have God's spirit. The likeness of his dear Son has
been traced in their hearts. R2588:3
Matthew 5:10
Blessed are they -- To be worthy of this blessing means to develop and possess
a character which the enemies of righteousness would deem worthy of
persecution. R4866:4
It is not until the Lord's people
have experienced the preceding blessings of his grace that they reach the point
where they can "glory in tribulation also." (Rom. 5:3) R2588:4
Which are persecuted -- In a symbolic palace of blessedness the kitchen represents
the trials and difficulties incidental to the rounding out of character and
proper nourishment and upbuilding spiritually. R5004:4
Not only in severe persecutions,
but also in the lesser ones, when our names are cast out as evil, "when
men shall separate you from their company." (Luke 6:22) R3617:4
The Lord is looking for those who
are so faithful to the principles of righteousness that they will exercise it
toward their enemies even when persecuted by them. R3736:3
For righteousness' sake -- Not for fault-finding and general cantankerousness. R2588:5
For the sake of truth in obedience
to the heavenly calling. R4637:1
Peter, John, Paul and Silas, with
backs bleeding and feet fast in the stocks, sang praises to God for the
privileges they enjoyed of suffering with Christ. R4866:1
"If any man suffer as a
Christian, let him not be ashamed, but let him glorify God." (1 Pet. 4:16)
R3736:2, 4558:4, 4326:4, 2251:4
Matthew 5:11
Blessed are ye, when -- Addressed to his disciples, all his followers throughout
this age. R5544:2
As a result of making the Gospel
your all- absorbing theme of life. A347; R5544:3
From the moment of our positive
standing up for the Lord and his cause we become stronger in the Lord. R4814:1
"Blessed are ye"
signifies that persecution is a favor from God. R5544:2
His followers must take up their
cross if they would follow him. Through much tribulation they must enter the
Kingdom. (Matt. 16:24; Acts 14:22) NS71:2
We should not court it, but should
desire this evidence of our faithfulness. R5544:3
Whoever will faithfully exercise
his ambassadorship, and not shun to declare the whole counsel of God, will
speedily know something of the sufferings of Christ. E490
Increase the sacrifice daily and
you increase the proof daily that you are his; and such as are his he gathers.
R581:3
When God gives quietness, none can
make trouble. (Job 34:29) R5879:2
Men shall revile you -- Thinking you carry matters to an extreme, are too
conscientious, give too much time to religious matters, and run not with them to
the same excesses as formerly. NS337:2, 605:2
Followers of him who "when
reviled, reviled not again." R3736:3
"Ye shall be hated of all men
for my sake." (Matt. 10:22) E490
God permitted his Son to be
reviled to demonstrate the kind of character that was pleasing to him, and he
wished to test the loyalty of Jesus himself. R5545:5
The chief opposition to our Lord
came from the religious leaders and professors; so also with his followers.
R4814:1, 4326:2; OV357:1
If, under the pressure, they yield
and revile in return, and slander and backbite, they are proving themselves
unworthy of a place in the Kingdom. R3736:5
And persecute you -- "Whosoever will live godly shall suffer
persecution." (2 Tim. 3:12) F464
Pictured by the bitter herbs of
the Passover. F464; NS75:5
The faithful followers of the Lord
will be unsympathetically viewed, hated and persecuted; for the presentations
of truth make manifest errors and hypocrisies. R4814:4, 4558:4, 4557:5,6
Such trials and difficulties are
for the rounding out of character and for nourishing and upbuilding
spiritually. R5004:4, 4326:1
Such experiences, overruled for
good, serve to test faithfulness and trust; and the joys of the Kingdom, gained
through much tribulation, will more than compensate for every tear and sorrow.
R4557:5
Should be endured faithfully,
calmly, rejoicingly. R4558:4
During the present life the
Kingdom of heaven, the true Church of Christ, suffereth violence, and the
violent take it by force. (Matt. 11:12) CR493:4
Things may seem to be going
contrary to your welfare, to be working out incalculable harm--but have faith.
R2699:4
Persecution implies that the
person persecuted possessed qualities that are feared; that the persecutor
realizes his own weakness to meet the arguments in a more rational way; that
either the persecutors are weak or the arguments of the persecuted are strong.
R4865:2
Persecution will come to those who
have the courage of their conviction. R5547:1
All who have walked the narrow way
have received persecution--the Baptists, Methodists, Presbyterians--in their
early day, because they had more light than others. R5546:6
It is safe to say that the
persecutors are always wrong, even if we cannot say that the persecuted are
always right. R4865:2
Sometimes this comes from those
who were once brethren in the truth; those who once dipped with us in the dish
of divine nourishment at the table of the Lord. R4326:4
And shall say -- Our Lord seems to have taken more notice of the
evil-speaking that would come upon his people than of the physical sufferings.
R2295:4
All manner of evil -- The call is to ignominy now. R4841:6, 4637:1, 5145:2
Boycotted socially, boycotted in
business, slandered in every conceivable manner, and often by those of whom
they had least expected it. R2496:2
Their object in this course is to
undermine by prejudice what they fail to meet by fair reasoning and Scripture.
R1192:3
Our opposers do not try to show
wherein we have retrograded in life and action, but put forth all their efforts
to show what a fearful thing it is to leave the church. R2142:4*
Those who would say all manner of
evil falsely, knowing the charges are false, are the very kind who would
crucify or burn at the stake, had they the power. R5545:2
"Woe unto you when all men
speak well of you; for so did their fathers unto the false prophets."
(Luke 6:26) R5546:1
Falsely -- We should not be surprised at false charges and false
insinuations against the faithful. R5173:1, 5294:5
Ignorance rather than malevolence
is at the foundation of opposition to the truth. R5145:3
Falsely accused of
"fanaticism" because the wisdom of God is oft esteemed foolishness
with men. R2588:5
And yet take it patiently as did
the Master, continuing faithful to the Lord and his cause at any cost. E191
For my sake -- Not for error, but for the truth; not for sects, but for
Christ. R785:4
"Your brethren that hated
you, that cast you out for my name's sake, said, Let the Lord be
glorified" (we do this for the Lord's glory). (Isa. 66:5) C182
His followers would be highly
esteemed among the nominally religious were it not for their loyalty to the
Word of God. Because of faithfully pointing out popular errors and their
fidelity to the truth, they are hated by those prominent in Churchianity.
R5173:1, 3736:4
Matthew 5:12
Rejoice -- Possible only when we understand that in these trying
experiences there is a glorious purpose. R5495:6, 4558:5, 5545:2, 5893:6
Great is your reward -- What we do not get here of prosperity we shall get there,
in the Kingdom. R5545:3
The measure of self-sacrifice and
sufferings for Christ, endured by each of the consecrated, becomes a measure of
the faithfulness of each as ambassadors. E490
There will be some least and some
greater in the Kingdom of heaven. R1973:5
He that is not willing to have the
Kingdom at such a cost is not worthy of the Kingdom. R4637:1
In heaven -- In spiritual things, not in temporal matters. R3223:2
And it is this heavenly reward for
which you have been called and for which you have entered the race. R2699:4
The rewards of Christ's
discipleship were not to be expected in the present life. All that we may now
have is the peace and blessing of the Lord in our hearts, with glorious hopes
for the future. NS602:4
So persecuted they the
prophets -- And our Lord and the
apostles. Being thus in good company in our experiences, we shall be in like
good company when the Lord makes up his jewels. R2588:6
Which were before you -- We have reason to believe that the Master would fare no
better in the world today than at his first advent, were he to appear as then.
Q752:2
Matthew 5:13
Ye are -- Even now. R2099:3*, 2073:2*
The salt of the earth -- Jesus and his higher law of love, in his own life and in
that of his followers. R3736:5
A healthful, cleansing, preserving
element in the midst of a world of moral decay and sinful pollution. R2073:2*,
1494:2*
The Christian has a special
purpose in the world--to be a preservative power, to have antiseptic qualities,
and to draw out all the good qualities of those with whom he is connected.
R5426:5
Exerting an influence and power
among men of a preservative kind, delaying, if not arresting, degrading
tendencies. R4558:5
The preservative influence of
God's people affects not only themselves, but spreads over a considerable space
around them. R3736:6
A symbol of faithfulness and loyalty,
and signifies a purifying and preservative quality that is a detriment to
corruption. Q618:1; R5426:5, 5173:2, 4558:5, 634:1*
As a savory article of diet, it
symbolized hospitality; as an antiseptic, it signified durability, fidelity,
purity; as a preservative, it is a symbol of an enduring compact. R2099:2*,
84:6*
Saltness from the Savior's
teachings has a wide influence upon the world. Without it, corruption and a
complete collapse would have come long ago. R5173:3
Civilization is merely the arrest
of those elements of decay which are at work in the human family, a preserving
or salting of the good qualities which have not yet become extinct. R634:3*
After the taking away of the salt
class, putrefaction and disintegration will speedily follow. R4706:6, 5173:3,
3737:1, 2745:1; Q618:1
It will be in and through the
glorified Salt of the Earth that the blessing will come, the stream of truth
for human refreshment for 1000
years. (2 Kings 2:19-22) R5780:2
Have lost his savour -- That which constitutes the saints the salt of the earth is
the fact that they have been salted with the truth. R634:5*
"Have salt [purity,
righteousness] in yourselves" (Mark 9:50). If we have not the salt in
ourselves, how can we be the salt of the earth? R2099:5*
How important that we not only
have salt in ourselves, but that we continue to retain its healthful
properties! R2099:5*
Good for nothing -- Absolutely useless except for its intended purpose.
R5426:5, 4558:5
"Unto every good work
worthless." (Tit. 1:16) R2517:3
Jesus made no attempt at a
reformation of the apostate Jewish church. R778:1*
But to be cast out -- If we lose the holy Spirit, there is no way by which we
could be renewed again. Q618:1
May picture the rejection of the
nominal church systems. R778:4*
Castaways from divine favor.
R2073:3*
Trodden under foot -- Destroyed. R634:6*
Matthew 5:14
Ye are the light -- Greek, phos. The same word applied to our Lord. R2409:2
Synonym for truth and
righteousness. R5038:1
The Lord was addressing the
apostles in particular, and all "overcomers" of that time. R4992:3,
4746:2
You are now so illuminated by the
truth that you yourself have become a living representative of it. R3243:2,
5129:2
By his spirit in us. CR313:1;
R375:3 The Lord's light shone into a little corner of the world called
Palestine, and from his lamp many followers have lighted their lamps. R3686:2,
627:2*
It is the light of God's truth,
shining in our hearts, which shines out upon the world. E293
The light will become brighter in
proportion to our realization of our own imperfections to the degree of our
consecration to the Lord. R5129:3
The Church is now enabled to
declare to the world the presence of Christ, the changes impending, and the
wisest course to pursue. B141, 142
Light-bearers for the benefit of
others--burning and shining lights, sympathetic and helpful lights. CR126:1
As children of the light, every
day and year will see progress; their light will be shining more and more
clearly and accomplishing the greatest good. R4189:6
Christian fellowship is thought to
be one of the very best aids to maintaining the light of the Spirit. R5129:6
Although not yet as the sun,
nevertheless luminous even now, and their light may shine within a smaller
radius for the blessing of all who will receive it. R2099:6*
It would require the light of the
Sun of Righteousness, Christ and the Church in glory, to enlighten the whole
world. R5769:3
Continuing to shine in the world
in the midst of darkness until the predicted night would come when the world
that has loved darkness shall be overwhelmed by it. R1774:1
It is the light which shines from
the true Christian which reproves, condemns and opposes the darkness of this
world. E293; R375:2
If we neglect the privilege of
prayer, of study, or of fellowship with the Lord through failure to think of
him, the illumination of the Spirit will grow dim. R5129:3
But if we should be seduced into
worldliness by the spirit of the world, our light would be quenched or
extinguished. E264; R371:6
Neither the philosophies of men
nor their moral sentiments are light. The true light cometh down from above and
only those begotten of the Spirit of the Lord have that light. R5099:6
Of the world -- Not directly, but by a reflex light--through those who
possess it--the spirit operates upon, but not in, the world. R375:3; E293
Whatever light the world gets
reaches them indirectly, as reflected from the children of God. R3646:3
Civilization is simply the
indirect result of the measures of salt and light that have been in the world
up to this present time. R2100:1*
Without the Gospel light shining
from Jesus and his followers, the corruption of Christendom would be even worse
than it is. When the lights have all been extinguished, the great time of
trouble will follow. R3736:6, 3737:1, 1774:1
A city--The Church as a whole.
R4558:5
The New Jerusalem. R1494:5*,
1185:5, 421:6, 338:5
Set on a hill -- The Kingdom. R1494:5*
"Established in the tops of
the mountains... exalted above the hills, and all nations shall flow into
it." (Isa. 2:2) R421:6, 338:5
Cannot be hid -- Its glory shall lighten the whole world. R1494:5*, 421:6*
Matthew 5:15
Light a candle -- The candle light the saints are holding up in the world is
powerless to overcome the great mass of darkness. God, in his due time, will
dispel the darkness of night by causing the sun of righteousness to arise with
healing in its beams. (Mal. 4:2) NS88:3,4
He will test us and prove whether
we are worthy to shine forth as the sun, enlightening the whole world in a
manner with which our little lamps of the present time will in no sense
compare. R3737:4
Under a bushel -- Its light would become extinguished. If light does not
shine out, it will soon die out. R4558:6
By covering his light, one
demonstrates lack of courage, of appreciation, of earnestness. R4967:5
We should not say, "We know
not the man Jesus." He will withdraw the light from such a one. R4993:1,
4558:5
On a candlestick -- In a position where it may dispel as much as possible of
the darkness of this world. R2099:6*
It giveth light -- The light is conspicuous because the darkness is general.
R4993:2
Though the darkness recognizes the
reproof of its presence, it comprehends it not. R375:4
In the house -- Our lights are to shine in the "household of
faith." SM241:2; R5769:3, 4558:6, 4305:1, 4189:6
So that our own family, our own
household, our neighbors, may see it burning. R4993:1
Matthew 5:16
Let your light -- Of the holy Spirit; its influence is Christianizing,
civilizing, uplifting, and produces a regard for right and a respect for God.
R4992:3, 4993:4
Not merely the message upon our
lips, but also the influence which emanates from our daily lives. R4330:5,
4675:6, 4460:5
It is the duty of every child of
God to be very active in the dissemination of the truth. R3243:3
The illumination comes, not only
through the truth, but also through the begetting of the holy Spirit. R4746:2
The darkness "hateth the
light." (John 3:19,20) R3686:2
So shine -- For the benefit of others, that they may discern what is
the right doctrine. R4967:4, 4746:5, 4675:6
That the spirit of devotion
pervade every family, every household, including the servants. R2989:3
Flash forth the truth into every
nook and corner where dark creeds and black theories have so long lain. R825:6
In proportion as the true
followers of Jesus have kept their lamps trimmed and burning, a measure of
enlightenment has spread throughout the world. R3686:3
All men who are directly or
indirectly in contact with these lights of the world have blessings in
proportion to their preparation for them. NS294:2
That they may see -- That all those intimately associated with the body of
Christ may be able to take knowledge of them, that they have been with Jesus.
R4746:5
This text is not in conflict with
that which says we are not to let our left hand know what our right hand does,
not to do our good deeds to be seen of men. (Matt. 6:1-3) R4993:2
Your good works -- In accord with the Master's teachings. SM183:T; R4558:5,
4967:4; CR126:1
Your likeness to the character of
the Lord. R4558:6
In our daily lives. R4967:4 Our
daily walk and conversation in all the little things of life. R1464:2* Will be
a reproof on the sins of the world without one word being uttered on the
subject. OV155:3; R4746:5
Not carrying our Bibles in an
ostentatious manner, but we are exhorted to show forth in our daily lives the
lessons we learn from its precious pages. CR126:1
Whether they account for these
works properly or evilly. R4746:5
Of some our Lord said that they
confess with their mouths, but deny with their lives. Our whole lives are to be
in conformity with the professions we are making. R4993:1
Glorify your Father -- By honoring the principles of righteousness as they see
them exemplified in God's peculiar people. Recognizing that these are of God,
that theirs is the ideal life, they glorify God. R4993:3
Some who see our good works will
glorify God in the day of visitation even though they do not become followers
now. R4746:6
This shining will have an effect
upon the world, reproving mankind and setting before them an example of better
living, better thinking. R5057:2
"In the day of their
visitation." (1 Pet. 2:12) SM153:1
Matthew 5:17
Think not -- Jesus and his apostles expounded the harmony between
Christianity and Judaism. R5006:2
To destroy the law -- The Jews reasoned that by promising a class everlasting
life, even though they were unable to keep the Mosaic Law, was a setting aside
of the Law, making void all the prophets. R5006:3,5,6
Moses' Law, the divine law given
to Israel. R5006:2
We, under the new dispensation,
are under the same Law, but with a higher definition, or explanation . R4226:4
Or the prophets -- The prophecies of selecting a priestly class are now in
process of fulfillment; neither the Law nor the prophets are being ignored.
R5007:1
But to fulfil -- Jesus was a Jew, and obligated to every feature of the Law.
R4703:1
Jesus has been fulfilling the Law
during the past 1800 years, as well as during his ministry. R5165:2
He fulfilled the Law Covenant--met
all its requirements, and obtained its reward, life. That fulfilled it, for that
was the end for which it was given. R1732:6
Only a perfect man could meet its
conditions, thus proving that Christ's perfection was not altered by the fact
that his mother was imperfect. R777:1
But he no more fulfilled all the
Law than he did all the prophecies. He fulfilled all connected with the
sacrifice, and nothing connected with the Kingdom. HG55:6
Jesus will continue the
fulfillment of the types of the law during the thousand years, until all is
fulfilled at the close of the Millennial age. R5165:2
The Gospel of Jesus magnifies the
Jewish Law by admitting its righteousness, its reasonableness, and by admitting
that the full fault is with humanity. R5006:3
Matthew 5:18
One jot -- One iota, the smallest letter in the Greek alphabet. R52:3*
Realizing God's care in making the
shadow should not only give us confidence in its correctness, but lead us to
examine closely for the meaning of those shadows. T12
One tittle -- Fine point of a letter. The holy Spirit inspired, in many
cases, the exact phraseology. R52:2*
Every good promise of the holy
Scriptures will surely have fulfillment. OV129:1
In no wise pass from the law
-- The Law stands exactly as it was
given, and applies only to those to whom it was given. R970:2
The strictness with which the Jews
were obliged to obey the Law indicates the amount of reliance which can be
placed on its numerous sacrifices and observances. R72:1; B174
The typical sacrifices continued
until Christ died, for Jesus himself was under the law, a part of which he
fulfilled. R5163:3
Note the remarkable similarity
with 2 Cor. 3:11. (R.V.) HG584:3*
Till -- Our Savior did not say the Law should not pass away, but
that it should not pass away until it was fulfilled. But he came to fulfill it,
so if it was fulfilled in him, it has passed away. HG582:3*
The observance of all types must
be kept up until their fulfillment at least began; for the keeping of a type is
not the fulfillment of it. The fulfillment is reached when the type ceases,
being replaced by the reality, the antitype. B174; HG55:5
All be fulfilled -- The Law was neither altered nor amended, but fulfilled and
set aside, abolished by our Redeemer. R970:2
Referring not only to its covenant
obligations, but that all the blessings expressed in it typically would also be
sure of fulfillment on an antitypical scale. B174
Including the great Times of
Restitution, typified by the Jubilee year. B173,187; HG55:2
Then the ceremonial, or typical,
features of the Law will pass away. R1527:3
Matthew 5:19
Whosoever -- In the Church class. Q423:1
Shall break -- If any of the followers of Jesus should violate the Ten
Commandments and teach men to do so, it would manifestly be done through
ignorance and misunderstanding, marking such as one of the least in the
Kingdom, unfit for a position of prominence in the service of the Church.
R5007:2
Shall make little of any
commandment of God. Q423:1
Whoever will go contrary to God's
arrangements or will in any respect, we should thereby consider him less.
Q423:1
Of these commandments -- The divine law is briefly summed up: "Thou shalt love
the Lord thy God with all thy heart...And thou shalt love thy neighbor as
thyself." (Deut. 6:5; Lev. 19:18; Matt. 22:37-39) R5359:6
The Ten Commandments are but the
outer shell, as it were, of deeper sentiments. R5360:1
In other words, we understand the
Master to be teaching that the Gospel is not out of sympathy with the Jewish
Law. R5359:6, 1730:5
The new hope of Gentile Christians
does not abrogate God's law, nor does it release them from the obligations of
his law; but our imperfections are covered by Christ's merit. R5359:3
Shall teach men so -- By example or precept, what is not in fullest accord with
the divine plan. F258; R5359:5
It is a responsible thing to be
the mouthpiece of God, to make sure that not a word is uttered which would
misrepresent the divine character and plan. F258; R2156:3, 1475:3
Those who hold and teach a measure
of error when it was their privilege to have clear truth shall be called least
in the Kingdom of heaven. R3243:6
"Be not many teachers."
(Jas. 3:1, Revised Version) R2156:2
Shall be called the least --
Receive a lower position. F258;
R5007:2, 5359:3
In the kingdom of heaven -- In the Church, the incipient Kingdom, the embryotic
Kingdom. R5359:5
But whosoever -- Our Lord Jesus himself. R1730:5, 5359:5
Shall do -- Those who would keep the divine law most perfectly in heart
and life would be most nearly copies of God's dear Son. R5359:5
"Love is the fulfilling of
the law." (Rom. 13:10) R5359:6
And teach -- The Christian must study the Law, but he studies it as a
shadow of better things, as typical of the blessings promised under the greater
than Moses--Christ. HG582:5
Look out amongst you those who are
walking the most in the footsteps of Jesus if you want to elect elder brothers
and deacons in the Church. Q423:1
Matthew 5:20
Shall exceed -- To be accepted,
his followers must be nearer right in heart, have more of the spirit of the
divine law, than the Pharisees. R5007:4
The Church's covenant means more
than merely the observance of the Law; it is a covenant to sacrifice; and
justice, the divine law, could not demand sacrifice. R5006:6
Of the scribes -- They had the whole Law of God and claimed to believe and
teach it; but they distorted it by their traditions and their ignoble, though
whitewashed, characters. R3243:5
They were particular respecting
the little requirements of the Law, but were careless respecting the spirit of
love. This, Jesus termed hypocrisy. R5007:4
In no case enter into the
Kingdom of heaven -- Not be fit for
the begetting at Pentecost. We must distinguish between the embryo Kingdom at
Pentecost and the glorious Kingdom of the first resurrection. R5007:4, 4559:2
Matthew 5:21
In danger of -- Amenable to. R2601:5
The judgment -- The judges. R2601:5, 4558:6
Matthew 5:22
But I say -- Jesus, who understands the perfection of God's law, and how
fully it will be defined and enforced in the Millennium. R2602:1
That the thoughts are to be
considered as well as the deeds. HG304:3
Whosoever is angry -- Thereby disobeying the spirit of the command, Thou shalt
not kill. R2601:6
In the heart, unexpressed. R4558:6
Hatred is murder, slander is
assassination, and the destruction of a neighbor's good name is robbery and
rapine. R2444:6
For one of the Lord's consecrated
people to be even slightly angry would be a serious matter. R5007:4
Without a cause -- Malicious anger and vituperation shall be considered a
violation of God's law under the New Covenant. R2601:6, 2249:2
Shall be -- Under the regulations of the Millennial Kingdom. R2601:5
In danger of -- Amenable to. R2601:5
As a violator of the Law, whose
violation forfeited all right to life under the Jewish Covenant. HG304:3
Because the spirit of anger is
that which, unrestrained, would lead to murder. R3254:1
The judgment -- The judges; a court of seven (some say 23) men, empowered
to judge some classes of crimes. R2601:5
"I will restore thy judges as
at the first." (Isa. 1:26) A294
His brother, Raca -- Villain. R2601:5
Blockhead. R4558:6
A slander is a thief according to
worldly standards, stealing one's good name; according to Christian standards,
still higher, slanderers are murderers. Thus the very suggestion of slander is
to be shunned as of the spirit of Satan. (John 8:44) R3595:4
Of the council -- The High Council or Sanhedrin, of 71 men, the highest court
of the Jews, for the gravest offenses; typical of the judges of the Millennial
Kingdom. R2601:5, 4558:6
Thou fool -- A moral degenerate. R4558:6
Apostate wretch. HG304:4
If, aside from the Bible, one
reaches a conclusion that another considers wholly illogical, neither should he
think nor speak of the other as a fool, but should remember that all present
knowledge is incomplete and our reasoning faculties at present imperfect.
R1815:4
Danger of hell fire -- Of Gehenna fire. By the aid of brimstone, the bodies of
specially detestable criminals were burned with the other refuse of Jerusalem
in the valley of Hinnom, or Gehenna, adjoining the city. A living thing was
never cast into Gehenna. The Jews were forbidden to torture any creature; thus
Gehenna typified the Second Death. R2601:2-6, 5007:4, 4558:6; OV362:6; HG304:1;
NS840:1
Dead bodies were cast into this
valley with the filth of the city, for, in their estimation, they had no hope
of a resurrection--a tomb being to them an emblem of a resurrection. HG304:3
The destruction of the body in
Gehenna after death, figuratively, implied the loss of the hope of future life
by a resurrection. R2601:6
The object of this burning in
Gehenna was to make the crime and the criminal detestable in the eyes of the
people, and signified that the culprit was a hopeless case. R2601:6
If one were angry enough to call a
brother Christian "a fool" it would imply that he were in serious
danger of the second death--Gehenna. R5007:4
An antitypical Gehenna outside the
New Jerusalem for the offal and trash of humanity who will refuse all of God's
favors, the Second Death. NS841:2
Matthew 5:23
Gift to the altar -- Anything to offer to the Lord, of service, worship or
thanks. R4077:5, 5938:6
Aught against thee -- It should be noted that the one addressed is not the
brother trespassed against, but the trespassing brother. R1694:6
That someone has been wronged by
you in thought, word or deed. R4077:5, 5939:1
Matthew 5:24
Leave there thy gift -- Do not think that it will be acceptable to God while in
your hearts, or outwardly, you are practicing injustice toward others. R5939:1,
5007:4, 4559:1, 4077:5, Be reconciled to -- Make amends to;
apologize in full. R1694:5, 5939:1
Every moment of delay endangers
your spiritual standing with the Lord. R5007:5
Thy brother -- Explanations in full of whatever wrong you have done him.
R4077:6
And offer thy gift -- Assured that in such an attitude of heart the Lord will be
pleased to accept your offering. R4077:6, 5939:1
Matthew 5:25
Agree with -- Appeal for mercy from. R1713:2
Admit that you have come short of
the righteous requirements of the divine law. R1713:3, 4559:2
Thine adversary -- Israel's Law Covenant was really their adversary and
condemned them all. R4559:1, 1713:1 Only the few agreed with the Law adversary.
(John 1:12) R4559:2
The divine Law, which condemns all
to death. R1713:3
Quickly -- Before final sentence is pronounced. R1713:2
Whiles thou -- The Jewish people. R1713:2
In the way with him -- While the offer of mercy is made to you as a nation,
through faith in Christ. R1713:3
To get free from that Law
obligation, a Jew would have to confess his shortcomings and accept the
sacrifice of Christ. R4559:2
Lest at any time -- Those who did plea for mercy received Christ as the sent of
God, the deliverer from the condemnation of their Law Covenant. R1713:2
The adversary -- The Law, the demands of which you fail to meet, though you
claim to meet them. R1713:4
To the officer -- To some power that will execute the penalty. R1713:4
Thou be cast into prison -- A position of disfavor. R1713:4
Nationally. Wrath came upon that
people to the uttermost. R4559:2
Matthew 5:26
Uttermost farthing -- The forfeiture of the chief blessing at first offered
exclusively to the Jew. R1713:4
They were blinded and cast off
from divine favor for a "double." R1713:2
By the end of the Millennium,
Israel will have paid. R4559:2
If we have wronged a brother and
not made it right, we will be obliged to suffer the full penalty of our
neglect. R5007:5
Matthew 5:28
To lust after her -- Reckoning the
intention for the act. R518:4*
To desire to do wrong and merely
be hindered by circumstances, is in God's sight as serious, as criminal, as to
have really done that wrong. R4020:4, 3254:1, 1726:5, 971:3
It is not only for the actual
transgression that men die, but it is for the disposition to transgress. The
inherited taint renders them unfit to live because with such a nature they
cannot keep God's law. R527:2*
Hath committed adultery -- And he who loves and serves money and spends time and
talent for it, more than in God's service, is an idolater. R971:3
Matthew 5:29
If thy right eye -- A depraved desire as dear as the right eye. R2602:1
Pluck it out -- Gladly part with a pleasure or habit contrary to God's law,
though it be as precious as a right eye or a right hand. HG304:5
Be cast into hell -- Greek, gehenna, utter destruction, the Second Death.
R2601:3, 2602:3
Matthew 5:30
If thy right hand -- A depraved desire as dear as a right hand. R2602:1
Be cast into hell -- Utter destruction, as brute beasts. (2 Pet. 2:12) R2602:2;
NS841:4
As the literal Gehenna was not a
place of torment or grief, but represented utter destruction and hopelessness
of those already dead who were cast into it, so must its antitype teach the
same lesson. HG304:5
Matthew 5:33
By them of old time -- The traditions of the ancients. The fact that a matter is
ancient is no positive proof of its correctness. R3737:2
Not forswear thyself -- The Law had something to say respecting the taking of God's
name in vain, and tradition had modified the law and limited it to false
swearing. R3737:3
Matthew 5:34
Swear not at all -- The use of oaths and expletives implies that the simple
statement of the user is not to be believed. Nothing in this would prohibit the
taking of an oath or affirmation in court. R3737:5, 5020:2
The fact that one swears what he
says is true implies that he does not expect his hearer to believe his simple
word, and this in turn presupposes that his word ordinarily is not worthy of
belief. R5020:3, 3737:5
Wherever oaths of secrecy are
demanded it is safe for God's people to touch not, taste not, handle
not--except as oaths are prescribed by public law. R1827:6
Matthew 5:35
Neither by Jerusalem -- Which will probably become the capital of the world. A295
Of the great king -- Jehovah. "His feet shall stand in that day upon the
Mount of Olives." (Zech. 14:4) D647
Matthew 5:37
Yea, yea; Nay, nay -- Tell the truth! Be so truthful in all that you say that it
will be unnecessary to swear to its truthfulness. R5020:3
Neither overstate nor understate
the truth. R5020:3
Cometh of evil -- Of the Evil One. R3737:6
Matthew 5:38
An eye for an eye -- Exacting justice of your imperfect fellows encourages an
improper spirit in your own heart. R4559:3
Tooth for a tooth -- This law of absolute justice prevailed amongst the Jews,
Romans and Greeks, and in some respects was more just than modern laws which
enable the wealthy to escape by payment of fines. R3738:1
The way Israel applied this
resulted in hardness of heart, a pitiless and merciless attitude. R4559:2
Strong characters to whom the
truth appeals are inclined to carry out the law of Moses, but we must remember
that it is not the time for us to judge and discipline the world. R5644:5
Matthew 5:39
But I say unto you -- Pointing to the more excellent way--love. (1 Cor. 12:31)
R4559:2
Resist not evil -- Do not retaliate. R3738:1, 5898:4
The Church is called out of the
world. They are to follow in the footsteps of Jesus. They are to suffer
injustice. Jesus gave himself up to suffer for the unjust. R5897:2
As followers of Jesus, we, like
him, resign our rights rather than try to get them. To a certain extent we are
to permit ourselves to be imposed upon. R5897:3,5
The other also -- In the indirect sense of not opposing the law; or, if
smitten illegally, as were Jesus and Paul, by kindly expostulating with the
evil-doer, for his own good. R2470:1, 3738:2, 4559:4
Our Lord, when unjustly sentenced,
inquired respecting the justice of the matter. Paul fled some places when
persecuted, and in other places appealed. R5897:6
Not literally, but in your heart,
mentally. R4559:4
A figurative expression;
willingness to have both cheeks smitten rather than to do injury to another.
OV357:3
Our Lord, when on trial, was
smitten, but did not ask to be smitten again. Figuratively he turned the other
cheek, but not literally. R4559:4, 3738:2
Matthew 5:40
Will sue thee -- Has made up his mind to bring suit. R3738:3 Not that it
would be improper to appeal for justice to the law; but, that when the law has
decided the matter against us, we should submit. R5897:5
At the law -- By legal process. R2518:2
Lawfully, even though it may be
unjustly. R1735:6; OV357:3
The follower of Jesus is to be
thoroughly responsive to all government. R5005:5
Christians are to be law-abiding,
whether they consider the laws just or unjust. OV357:3; R4559:4
If ever compelled by law to vote,
it would be the duty of each to vote according to his conscientious judgment.
R2052:6, 2053:1
If the coat were to be given freely
for the asking, the injunction respecting the law suit to obtain it would be
meaningless. R2518:3
Take away thy coat -- If no lawful redress can be obtained. R1735:5
Let him have -- We feel we should report a burglar to the authorities to
shield the public and to check the evil-doer in his wrong course. R5898:1
Thy cloak also -- The revisers translated this to mean that if any one is
disposed to go to law with you and take away your coat, that you should settle
with him, even though it deprive you of your coat and cloak. R3738:3
We are to render up willingly all
that the Court might decree, more rather than less. R2518:2, 4559:4; OV357:3
Matthew 5:41
And whosoever -- Whatever magistrate or governor authorized by law. R3738:4
Shall compel thee -- Command you legally. R3738:4; OV357:4
We are to show our good will be
doing a little more rather than shirk legal exactions or grumble. R4559:4
If compelled to enter the army,
the Christian might properly request service as a non-combatant; but if
required to kill, he is to obey God rather than men, and not kill. OV358:6
We have been wondering whether our
earlier suggested course [the one in the preceding citation] is the best one,
whether it would mean compromise. R5755:4
To go a mile -- Similar to the law under which Simon the Cyrenian was
compelled to bear the cross of Jesus. R3738:4
Go with him twain -- Do not show a narrow, stingy spirit in complying with the
law's requirements. R3738:5
Matthew 5:42
Give to him -- Not necessarily extravagant gifts, not all that the
petitioner would desire. Judgment and discretion are to be used. R4559:4
The Lord's people might not thus
amass as much money as others, but they would be laying up treasures in heaven.
R4559:5
We cannot think that he meant that
we should neglect the interests of our own homes and families in giving in to
others, or in loaning to them. R3738:5
If an enemy demand of us our
goods, we are to submit; but if so situated that we can resist legally, we are
to resist any unjust demands, and compel a suit at law, submitting gracefully
and heartily to its decision. R2518:3
That asketh thee -- Not that we should lend to anybody who asks for a loan of
money or goods, but that we should not turn away from those in need. R4971:1
That demands your valuables.
R2518:3
That would borrow -- Often the very best way is to lend him something, even if
sure that he would not return it, for thus his coming again would be barred to
some extent. Q135:3; R4971:1
Turn not thou away -- We should not turn away with a deaf ear from those in need.
Q135:3; R4971:1
Do good and lend, hoping for no
similar favor in return. R4559:5
Exercise a benevolent spirit,
using the proper discretion and judgment. R3738:5
Matthew 5:43
Ye have heard -- Tradition taught. R4559:5
Love thy neighbor -- The word "neighbor" signifies those who are near,
and the Scribes and Pharisees were in the habit of applying this to those who
were near in sympathy, in sentiment, in faith, in sectarian relationship.
R3804:4
Our Lord points out that in merely
reciprocating the love of others we would come far short of the standard he
sets us. R3739:1
Hate thine enemy -- Directly contrary to the Mosaic Law which enjoined
protection of an enemy's property. R3738:6
Matthew 5:44
Love your enemies -- Be large-hearted and generous toward them, illustrated by
David's forbearance toward Saul. R3239:6, 3738:6
As God loves the
world--sympathetically. OV357:5; R4766:4, 5275:2
God loves his enemies: he provided
a sacrifice for them and a reconciliation with himself. R5703:5 This love is
that which ignores antagonism and animosities, and considers only the
possibilities, the ways and means, for peace, reformation and salvation.
R4766:4, 1955:6
Our hearts must be so full of love
that not even an enemy could stir up in our hearts an evil or malicious
sentiment. F372
If we have not yet attained this
high standard, let us not be discouraged, but press onward that, as soon as
possible, we may reach this point, which is the mark of perfected character.
R2879:5
Not as you love the brethren, but
so as to be ready and willing to do good for them. This is the mark of perfect
love. F189, 371; R4470:2; OV357:5
If we have not reached the point
of loving our enemies, we are not at the mark of the prize, because none having
a lesser standard can be of the elect class at all. Q458:T; R3738:6
No one can win the prize unless he
loves his enemies. R5953:1
Your enemies, not the enemies of
another. Q260:5
In contrast with the spirit of the
Holy (?) Inquisition. PD84/97
But all should hate injustice and
be out of sympathy with those who oppress the weak and helpless. Q783:T
Bless them that curse you --
Greek, katara, kataraomai, signifies
condemnation--to speak against, to speak evil of, to injure. R2443:3
Not in the oldest Greek
manuscripts. R3738:6
Do good to them -- The best way to conquer an enemy is to convert him into a
friend by kindness. R139:3*
Pray for them -- That we might be used in breaking the superstition upon
them, that the eyes of their understanding might be opened. R5275:3; OV357:5
Manifest generosity of heart
toward them. To attain this sympathy and generosity is part of our instruction
in the school of Christ. R5125:4, 3739:1
"God forbid that I should sin
against the Lord in ceasing to pray for you." (1 Sam. 12:23) R4201:2
Despitefully use you -- Never mind what a supposed enemy said or did. We are not
living for ourselves but for the Lord. Q459:T
Matthew 5:45
Children of your Father -- If we are sons of God, we must have his Spirit, his
disposition. R3738:6
When we get before our mind's eye
the loving and true God as our ideal, we are more and more changed and
transformed day by day as we discern our Maker's gracious character. R5474:6
"Like unto your
Father"--tending to make the heart and mind more tender, more gentle and
more forgiving toward all with whom you have to do. NS674:5
During the Dark Ages, many
committed horrible atrocities in the name of religion, thinking that they were
copying God--but they had been following demon-drawn pictures. R5474:3
And on the unjust -- God has done much for them, even though they are sinners.
R5624:1
At great cost providing for their
redemption and restitution. R1821:6
God is gracious, loving, merciful,
kind, even to the unthankful, even to the unjust, even to sinners; so should we
be unto all men as we have opportunity. R5474:5, 2032:1
All that can be made out of the
present life and present unfavorable conditions, the world is welcome to.
NS225:2
Matthew 5:46
What reward have ye -- What merit is there in it? R1938:4
Matthew 5:47
And if ye salute -- Extend the civilities of life. R3739:2
Matthew 5:48
Therefore perfect -- Nothing short of purity of heart, intention, will, can be
acceptable to God. R5123:4, 5264:5, 5148:6, 5101:6, 4558:3, 3939:1; CR395:2;
Q51:2
These admonitions apply only to
those who are new creatures in Christ; it is a dark saying and needs to be
spiritually discerned. CR391:6,4
We first reach perfection of heart
intention; then we pass through experiences which crystallize our characters in
righteousness. R5172:2, 4974:3, 4559:6
God has set no lower standard than
absolute perfection, but he has provided for us grace, mercy and peace through
Christ if we walk in his footsteps. R2587:5
Good heart intention is not
sufficient. Our profession of pure heart and God-likeness must be tested. It
must be developed to the point of fixity of character. R4558:3, 2250:6
The mark of Christian character is
godliness, Christ-likeness, love. We must attain to the same character of love
that God possesses and that was manifested by our Lord Jesus. R2754:1
However, we are to remember that
we have the new creature in an earthen vessel. It is the new creature that must
have the likeness of Christ. Q51:2; R5264:5
We must have love, sympathy, and
not merely justice. There is nothing of grace in the giving of justice; less than
justice is wrong. But the Lord's people must be more than just. SM433:2
But God knows that we have this
treasure of the new will in a mortal body which is imperfect. Through Christ he
has made provision that every imperfection of our flesh may be forgiven.
R5101:6, 4974:3, 4558:3, 3987:1, 3739:3
"Walk thou before me and be
thou perfect." (Gen. 17:1) R3938:6
Even as your Father -- It was proper that our Lord should give us the perfect
pattern, on the same principle that the teacher of penmanship furnishes the
pupil with the best engraved specimens to copy. R3987:2, 3939:1, 3739:4; Q533:2
Poor results come from comparing
ourselves with ourselves, and neglecting to keep constantly before our minds
the perfect copy. R3739:5
God sets before us Himself as the
grand copy that we are to follow after. CR7:4,5; R5794:1, 5148:6; Q533:2;
SM434:T
Not that Christians can be all
that God's character expresses, but that this is to be their ideal or aim in
life. OV367:3; R5794:1, 5336:5, 5123:4; CR391:6; SM433:2
There is no lower standard than
that of perfection. It would not do for the Lord to say, Be ye slightly like
the Father, or, Be ye nearly like Him. He must present the perfect standard.
R5359:6; NS408:2
Are you like your Father? You are
in some respects--in your mind. Are you in all words, actions and thoughts? No,
but you are trying to get more and more of the character-likeness of God.
Q246:4
God is love. The more we grow up
into proper, spiritual love, the more we are growing up into the
character-likeness of our Father. R5265:6; SM281:T
We are in danger of taking some
brother or sister, and saying, I will be like him, or like her! Q533:2
It is a mistake to think that the
Apostle Paul's standards for elders are to be taken literally, for no one would
be found fully up to all the requirements. He has stated what the ideal elder
would be. Q255:7, 248:5, 246:4
The Lord would develop in his
consecrated people the spirit of the Father. R3353:3
Those who attain the
character-likeness of Christ will have the character-likeness of the Father, of
whom the Son is the express image. NS654:3
God could not set an imperfect
standard; for Him to do so would mean His agreement, in measure, with sin.
R3939:1, 3739:2
Is perfect -- God is the very personification of purity. R849:1
God's perfection is the standard.
He cannot have one standard of perfection for you, another for me, and another
for someone else. Q533:2
Matthew 6
Matthew 6:1
Your alms -- Charity. R5021:2
Your righteousness (Revised
Version). R5021:2, 4559:3
To be seen of men -- If we are actuated by a selfish motive, if we are seeking
show and applause or earthly gain, it cannot bring divine approval or blessing.
R5021:2
Lest, while we continue to
sacrifice or do any good work, we get to looking for human instead of divine
approval. R955:2*
If you do good deeds for the
approval of men, you will very soon get to doing only such deeds as are likely
to bring their approval. R955:2*
There may be times and places
where the giving of charity in the presence of others would be perfectly
proper; the point is the motive actuating us. R5021:2
Have no reward -- None from God; they may or may not get the reward they
seek, human praise. R4559:6
Matthew 6:2
Glory of men -- There are many enrolled in church membership who seek an
earthly reward of Mammon, the praise and approval of men. CR16:5,4
Have their reward -- The publicity, the praise of men, which they sought.
R5021:2, 5786:6
The subtilty of this temptation
lies in the fact that those drawn into it imagine that, while they seek and obtain
the praise of men, they also merit and obtain the favor of God. R955:2*
Matthew 6:3
Doest alms -- Done from principle, love for God and his righteousness,
love or sympathy for fellow man. R4560:1
Let not -- So quietly should this be done that those close to us in
life might only by accident discover our generosity. R4560:1
Matthew 6:5
When thou prayest -- He did not teach the world how to pray, but merely his
disciples. R5021:3
Not only in sorrows, but also in
joys; to give thanks, praise, worship and adoration. R5021:3
We need have no fear that he is
too busy with other matters of greater importance, or that he is weary of our
coming to him repeatedly with things of small importance. R1865:4
As the hypocrites -- Not meaning that all who dress peculiarly, who go to
church, who pray in public, etc., are hypocritical. R4560:1
Matthew 6:6
When thou prayest -- Before whom should we pray? In secret; before believers
(John 17); before believers and unbelievers (Luke 3:21); and in the public
assembly of the saints (Acts 12:12). R3698:5, 2251:6
Neglect of prayer is sure to lead
to leanness of soul and lukewarmness in respect to spiritual
things--unfaithfulness, coldness, death. R2692:1
We have no sympathy with the
custom of opening political conventions and legislative assemblies, schools or
lodges with prayers. R2023:6
Into thy closet -- Going to the Lord in a formal manner, upon the knees, and
in solitude at certain times. R5480:6
The secret place of prayer of the
individual family or Church. F687
Our Lord's usual method was to go
to the Father privately. R3351:3
This Scripture should not be taken
too literally, for Christ prayed audibly in the presence of his followers on
numerous occasions, and audible prayer in the Church was counseled by the
Apostle Paul. R2252:1
Private apartment. R2649:3,
2501:5, 2023:2
Where no earthly eye will see and
no earthly ear will hear. R2251:3
True prayer should be to the Lord,
never to the public. Individual prayer, family prayer, prayer in the Church, is
proper and is not considered public prayer in this sense of that term. R4560:2
Although fellowship in public
prayer in gatherings of the Lord's people is distinctly approved. R5022:1,
2251:6
"The Lord's Prayer" was
uttered in the presence of his disciples. It addresses "Our Father,"
requests forgiveness for "our sins" as "we forgive others."
It is a sample of collective prayer. R2023:3
"And when he had sent the
multitudes away, he went up into a mountain again to pray; and when the even
was come he was there alone." (Matt. 14:23) R5379:6*
Though Jesus sometimes prayed with
his disciples in their hearing, he was not content with merely these
opportunities, but frequently sought the Father alone. R2649:3
To thy Father -- Only believers who have accepted Christ may approach God in
prayer and call him "Father." R2252:3
"Whatsoever ye shall ask of
the Father in my name he will give it you" (John 15:16); "No man
cometh unto the Father but by me" (John 14:6). R2252:3
While Father Adam was created a
son of God, he then had access to his Father. R2024:1
Jehovah is the only Father or
giver of the Divine nature. God, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, is our
Father and hath begotten us. R297:1
Seeth in secret -- The discovery of X-rays makes this sound more plausible.
R1935:1
"All things are naked and
open unto the eyes of him with whom we have to do." (Heb. 4:13) R1935:2
Matthew 6:7
When ye pray -- Should be to the Lord, never to the public; should be
simple, earnest, and need not be long. R4560:1,2
Vain repetitions -- "Vain" because not based on the conditions
necessary to acceptable prayer. R5311:1
Improper prayer. R3351:6
Formal requests for what we do not
expect. R2005:4 Not only vain, unprofitable, but indicating a low degree of
spiritual development, imperfect ideas respecting God, and an imperfect
relationship with him. R2252:4
We are to recognize a distinct
difference between vain repetitions of the heathen and "continuing instant
in prayer," in "praying and not fainting." (Rom. 12:12; Luke
18:1) Q539:2
But we do right to pray, "Thy
Kingdom come" week after week, year after year, century after century. To
grow faint or weary in prayer would not be right. R5020:2; Q539:4
As the heathen -- With great supplications, as though their God was asleep or
indifferent. R5219:3
With their praying wheels, Roman
Catholics with their beads, and some Protestants with their long details of
instructions to the Almighty. R2252:4, 5020:4, 5022:4; Q540:2,3
All the heathen or Gentiles who
have not left the world and come into covenant-relationship with God through
Christ. R5021:6
Their much speaking -- Prayer in private may be as long as we please; but prayer
in public should be short and to the point. R5020:5
Evidencing ambition to be thought
pious, effort to make an impression upon men rather than to hold communion with
the Heavenly Father. R2252:3
His example of a prayer is brief.
Nevertheless, in proportion as we feel the importance of the great work in
which we are privileged to be co-laborers, our hearts should and will be drawn
to seasons of spiritual communion. R2650:1
We have no sympathy with the
custom of some of pretending to pray to God while really addressing the
congregation. R2023:6
Therefore let us endeavor to
present God's truth in all its native simplicity and beauty, and trust its
inherent power to win its way in due time into every heart. R651:4*
Matthew 6:8
Your Father -- "God dealeth with you as with sons." (Heb. 12:7)
The fact that we are called sons of God implies the beginning of a new life.
R5624:2, 5623:5
The multitudes were not to call
God "Father," only those who were followers of the Lord Jesus.
R5623:3
Neither a Jew, nor one of the
world today, has a right to call God his Father, nor to think of Him as his
Father. R5219:1
Jesus spoke in an anticipatory or
prophetic sense as to their relationship with God. R5623:2
Knoweth -- We are not to tell God what we wish, but to give up our
will, that His will be done. R5624:3
Our prayers are not to induce God
to give us things He desires to withhold from us, but to secure the things He
desires us to have and has promised to us. R2252:6
He has fullest knowledge of our
needs. R5745:4
We do not need to take up in
prayer all the affairs of the world and the affairs of the Church, to tell God
about them and how they ought to be regulated. R2252:5
What things -- Some might declare that we should ask God for something
definite, but God has said that we need not go into particulars. R5624:5
Whether you will be most profited
by abundance of wealth or absence of wealth, in the possession of health or
otherwise. R5624:3
Ye have need of -- The Lord does not say that his followers shall have as much
of these temporary good things as others have. SM370:2
Present supplies and rations may
be small; but oh, what riches of grace are in reservation for them that love
God. NS466:5
If proud, experiences that would
humble; if rude, experiences that would make more polite. R5219:6
If we need to be transplanted to
another place, he can arrange it. R5991:2
Before ye ask him -- But he desires us to ask in order that we may realize our
need of his aid and our dependence upon him and be brought into closer
fellowship with him. R2252:5, 5219:3
To bring us into that attitude of
mind and heart of readiness to receive his blessings. R5745:4, 5022:1, 5834:1
Therefore not asking for
resuscitation or special strength as our Lord did not, but accepting such
favors as the Father might grant to us unsolicited. R3718:2
As the Christian's experience
grows, he comes more to the condition of heart where his prayers will be
chiefly thanks for mercies and favors already received. R2252:5
Matthew 6:9
After this manner -- Not a form to repeat, but merely an example of how to
arrange our prayers. R4560:2, 5311:4, 5022:1, 4984:4, 3806:4, 3351:6
In a worshipful, reverent spirit.
R3806:3
But not necessarily in those
words. R4560:2
Note its brevity, its simplicity,
its directness, its orderliness. R5022:1
The order of the prayer is
beautiful--the chief thing is the glory of God and the outworking of the divine
plan, then physical needs. R4560:2,4, 3807:3, 3352:1
There are seven petitions in what
is commonly called the "Lord's prayer." R136:2*
Therefore pray ye -- Ye who are his sons, not "children of wrath"
(Eph. 2:3) or "of your father, the devil" (John 8:44). R2252:6
There is a great blessing that comes
from prayer; we are so constituted that reverence for God and desire for prayer
are among the highest qualities of our nature. R5311:6,5
Not only should we have special
seasons of prayer, but have the spirit of prayer in all of life's affairs.
R5312:1
Prayer is a privilege. Jesus did
not command his disciples to pray, nor did he even give them a form of prayer
until they requested it. R5021:3
Notice that our Lord never taught
the multitudes to pray, nor intimated that they should pray--even though the multitudes
with whom he was in contact were nominally the people of God. R3805:2
Our Lord did not tell about how
the world should pray. R5021:3
School children should not be
taught to repeat the "Lord's prayer." R2023:6
Our Father -- The affection of a true father for his child, one of the
most precious in the world, is used to illustrate the relationship of the
Lord's consecrated to the Creator. R3352:1
"To as many as received him,
to them gave he the privilege to become the sons of God." (John 1:12)
R3352:1
Only the consecrated
spirit-begotten can call God "Our Father." CR421:1, 499:5; R5022:1,
5833:5, 5834:4,5
We suppose that the children of
believers, and tentatively justified believers not yet consecrated, would have
the right of addressing the Redeemer in prayer. R3806:3; F681:3
The word "Our" implies a
recognition that there are other sons who also have been adopted into God's
family. R3805:5
While Jesus was here in the flesh,
the disciples were sons in the prospective sense. R5834:4
No Jew then ever made use of such
expressions; they were a house of servants. R5683:6, 3352:1
This prayer would assure the
apostles that, though they were Jews, God recognized them now, not as servants,
but as sons. R3352:1
The great Jehovah is the fountain
of life. All life emanates from him alone. CR498:1
We may consider ourselves, in
God's estimation, reinstated (through faith in Christ) to the original position
as sons of God. R1864:6
Implies: (1) faith in the divine
being; (2) realization of dependence on him; (3) faith in reconciliation
through a Redeemer; and (4) realiza- tion that the Creator now accepts one as a
son. R3805:3
Implies that the suppliant is on
terms of intimate acquaintance with the great Creator of the Universe, so that
he is welcomed into the divine presence and heart. R3805:3
Does not imply the fatherhood of
God to all mankind. R2252:6
The prayer of the publican,
approved by our Lord, did not address Jehovah as "Father," but as
"God"--"God be merciful to me a sinner." (Luke 18:13)
R2251:3
They were to manifest their faith
by calling themselves sons of God, though they did not really speak of
themselves as sons of God. R5219:2
Some people use the words
"Our Father" or "Our God" or "Heavenly Father"
more frequently than would seem to be good form. It would sound better if they
did not use these repetitions. R5020:4; Q539:6
Which art in heaven -- As the heavens are higher than the earth so are the Lord's
ways and provisions higher than our conceptions; and in every way to be
preferred. R3805:6
Hallowed be thy name -- Considering first the will and honor of God as superior to
their own and every other interest. R3352:3
Reverence for God should be first
in all our thoughts, but is losing ground everywhere in our day, even among the
Lord's true people. R3352:2, 4560:4, 5624:5
This expresses adoration,
appreciation of divine goodness and greatness, and a corresponding reverence.
R3352:2
The desire that the great name of
God be hallowed by all, and therefore by the petitioner also. R4560:4
Adored, honored. God's name
represents His character, His Kingdom, His personality. R5022:2
Profound reverence for the
glorious character and attributes of God. R1864:6
His name stands for everything
that is just, wise and loving. R3806:4
Matthew 6:10
Thy kingdom come -- Our Lord taught "the Kingdom of Heaven is at
hand." The Kingdom in its embryo condition was then at hand, but the
Kingdom is yet to come in glory and power. R1908:3, 2231:1, 4410:4; B14
The Kingdom of God's dear Son--the
Millennial Kingdom--the Mediatorial Kingdom. NS729:5, 744:1
With the establishment of that
Kingdom will come the blessing of the world through the Mediator and the New
Covenant. NS557:6
"My Kingdom is not of this
world (age)." (John 18:36) NS623:6
Messiah's Kingdom has various
stages of inauguration. First, in his parousia, the resurrection of the
sleeping saints; next, his dealing with the living members of his body and
their glorification; then the dominion of the world, revealed in a great time
of trouble. Thus, the Kingdom of Messiah will be born in a terrible travail,
after which "The desire of all nations shall come." (Hag. 2:7)
Ciii,iv
Christ has not yet come into this
Kingdom for which he taught us to pray. NS575:6
Very soon to be answered; very
soon they, the Christ, shall be associated in his Kingdom and sit upon his
throne. NS191:6
Implies: (1) that it is not
already here; (2) that it is a part of the divine provision; and (3) that it is
one of the chief desires for God's people and for humanity. HG438:2
The establishment of the
long-promised Kingdom of Messiah is just before us, and is now in progress.
B363
An acknowledgment that God's will
is not done on earth, that his Kingdom has not come to earth as yet. R2253:1,
5761:6, 5710:4, 4786:2; Div; NS691:2
An acknowledgment that he has
faith in the divine promise that a heavenly Kingdom shall, in God's due time,
be established in the earth. R2253:1
It cannot be established until the
gathering of the elect has been accomplished. CR21:5; Q523:5; NS664:3, 831:4;
HG234:6, 178:5, 145:3, 115:2
The complete overthrow of all
human government will open the way for the full establishment of the Kingdom.
Biii
It began to be established in 1878
AD. R1908:3
While continuing to pray, let us
continue to labor in character-preparation that we may be found worthy of a
place in that Kingdom. R5762:2, 3352:4
Meantime the great King is
selecting the Bride class to be joint-heirs with his Son in that Kingdom.
NS465:6, 803:2, 661:5
Longing for the Kingdom that will
bless the world, they also long for the promised privilege of being joint-heirs
with their Redeemer. R3806:5, 3352:4; NS451:2, 389:1, 235:1, 141:5
This thought will make all the
afflictions and trials of the present time seem to us light afflictions.
R3352:4; NS236:2
That it might come as quickly as
would be in harmony with the divine program; not implying impatience, nor a
desire to hasten matters before the divine time, but an interest in the
gracious things of the Father's plan. NS683:3
Not a demand; rather an
acknowledgment of faith in the divine promise that a heavenly Kingdom shall in
due time be established in the earth. R2253:1, 2005:1
All blessings are of the Father.
E45
Realizing that his Kingdom is the
very thing the whole world needs, and that he has promised that it shall come.
R5624:5
When the regeneration of the world
will be the great matter in hand. NS102:3, 184:5
As God, his glory and honor, are
to be first in the minds of his children, so their next thought should be for
the glorious Kingdom which he has promised shall bless the world. R3352:3
Next in order we acknowledge the
divine rule, authority. This means that our hearts are submissive to the will
of God. R5022:2
Not merely saying, "Thy
Kingdom come," but waiting for it and expecting it. R5624:6
Nearly all of the Lord's parables
and teachings related to this Kingdom. NS606:3, 627:1
Present troubles are the
harbingers of this Millennium. NS187:6, 672:5
Its worldwide dominion is
signified by the stone which struck Nebuchadnezzar's image. NS27:6, 57:5
The panacea for every ill and
trouble, not only for ourselves, but for all men. R3352:3, 5602:1; SM103:1;
Ciii Both Jews and saintly Christians still recognize that Messiah's Kingdom is
the need and hope of the world. OV156:2
The coming of a great earthly king
to a city is the signal for a general cleaning up everywhere. NS852:6
If Christendom had heard the
message of the antitypical Elijah, they would be ready to welcome his Kingdom;
they would have been praying from the heart what some of them have been praying
from the lips. NS143:5
Divine love now permits human
pride and selfishness to wreck present civilization because divine wisdom and
love, in "due time," will take advantage of the wreck and the lessons
it will teach by establishing upon the ruins of present institutions the Kingdom
of God's dear Son. NS13:5
The object of which will be that
the world may have a trial to determine whether, with the knowledge and
experience then granted, they will choose righteousness and the reward of
eternal life, or sin and its penalty, Second Death. NS860:2
Not such a reign which papacy
recognized as the millennial past, nor the moderate Protestant view that Christ
established his Kingdom at Pentecost. HG271:1-3
While appreciating our glorious
land and its wonderful blessings, let us rejoice that a still better government
and still more favorable conditions are parts of the heavenly promise to the
world of mankind. NS665:6
Thy will -- In respect to all of life's affairs. SM371:T
Not now being exerted or
manifested in earth's affairs. R1781:2,5
Implies that we have given up our
own will. R5833:5, 3352:4
It is not for us to seek to have
our wills done in heaven and earth, but rather to learn the imperfection of our
judgment and pray, "Thy will be done." NS648:2
Messiah's reign will be a
Monarchy, a very exclusive and aristocratic Monarchy. It will be the most
autocratic--theocratic; the will of its subjects will not be consulted in the
slightest particular. OV191:2
Men sometimes mean, "Approve
my will on earth as I approve your will in heaven"--deceiving themselves.
NS673:5
Be done -- In respect to all of life's affairs. SM371:T; CR51:1
Right and truth must and shall
prevail when our Kingdom has been established, however feeble now may be the
voices lifted in their defense. R3068:4
Confessing appreciation of the fact
that present evil is not of his will, nor of his government. R1781:6, 1273:4
Wishing that this will rule in his
heart to the best of his ability in his earthly condition, even as he hopes to
have it perfected in the Kingdom. R3352:5
If we pray this, we should live
accordingly. C22
We should have in mind God's
promise that eventually, through Messiah's Kingdom, sin and death would be
overthrown and "every knee would bow and every tongue confess to the glory
of God." R5049:3
The declaration is that Messiah
shall reign until he shall have put down all insubordination. (1 Cor. 15:25,26)
OV192:2
It will take the whole thousand
years of Christ's reign to have the will of God done on earth as it is in
heaven. CR291:5; R5768:5; SM502:1; Q6:T; OV192:3
In earth -- The new earth will be the new social order which will come
into being at that time under the direction and guidance of the new heavens.
PD94/108
We are not to feel careless
respecting the interests of the world in general. NS644:2
Many Christians seem to have
forgotten the import of these words. B13
As it is in heaven -- The new spiritual heavens of the future will be Christ and
the Church in heavenly glory and power. PD94/108
Is God's will in Christendom done
"on earth as it is in heaven"? Surely not. HG272:2
None will claim that conversion of
the whole world to the present standard of Christendom would answer this
petition. C178
Messiah's Kingdom will insure
that, to all eternity, God's will shall be done as perfectly in this earth as
it is now done in heaven. OV341:8, 247:1; Civ Matthew 6:11
Give us -- There are occasional scriptural dyspeptics who eat and work
not; but the difficulty with most professing Christians is that they eat not at
all, or else eat so sparingly that they are dying of starvation. R23:5*
God knows what we have need of; it
is not for us to specify, spiritual or temporal food. R5624:5, 4560:4, 5022:4
Showing our reliance upon him for
that which he has promised us. R4984:4
Should divine providence fail to
make provision, the believing soul is to recognize that it is not from
oversight or lack of power, but because divine wisdom sees best thus to deal
with us. R5022:4
This day -- Not for a superabundance laid up for many days ahead.
R2253:2
We cannot understand how any
Christian dare neglect to render thanks for daily food. Those who do neglect
this propriety are great losers thereby. R2643:6
Our daily bread -- "Our needful bread." (American Revision) R3806:5
The necessities of life, temporal
and spiritual. R3806:5; CR468:3
It is the new creature that is
offering this petition; implying that it is the nourishment of the new creature
that is chiefly under consideration. R3806:5
The thought seems to be that of
continual dependence upon the Lord, day by day, for the things needed--food,
raiment, all things necessary. R3352:5
We are to ask especially for the
spiritual bread, praying only incidentally for the earthly things, because we
have consecrated our bodies to God. R5745:5, 3806:5, 2253:3
It is certain that we need
spiritual bread, the truth, constantly, in order that our spiritual life be
sustained, as that we need natural bread daily to sustain our physical life.
R136:3*
We are not to ask for delicacies.
R5311:4, 5833:5, 3806:5, 3352:6, 2253:2, 2005:2
Not specifying what would be most
pleasing to our palate. We are to leave that part to him, merely acknowledging
that we are dependent on him for the necessities of life. R5991:5, 5745:5
The most that we should do is to
make mention to him of those promises for temporal provision and of our trust
in them. R5205:5
We are to eat with thankfulness,
even if only bread and water. R5311:3, 4913:5, 5202:4
And not murmuring, as the
Israelites of the Exodus, stipulating that they wanted something as good as the
flesh-pots of Egypt. R4012:2
It is improper for saints to ask
alms. R4101:5*
Matthew 6:12
Forgive us our debts -- Our trespasses. F403
Not Adamic sins, but personal
transgressions. R3806:5, 5006:1, 5089:3, 5022:4, 3353:1; Q649:2
God did not forgive original sin,
but provided a Redeemer. R4428:4, 4560:5, 3806:6
Those which are ours after we have
become new creatures in Christ. R3806:6
Shortcomings, imperfections, etc.,
through failure to do the Lord's will the best we know how, the culpability
being proportionate to the amount of knowledge enjoyed. R5962:3, 4560:5,
5311:4; Q649:2
To petition the Lord for
forgiveness of sins implies that we are, at heart, opposed to the sins. R3353:1
This petition signifies that we
recognize that the robe of Christ's righteousness granted to us has become
spotted or sullied, and that we desire it to be cleansed. R3353:2
In so doing we learn: (1) to keep
track of our blemishes; (2) to be reminded of our dependence on the merit of
our Savior; and (3) to be merciful, compassionate and generous toward our
debtors. R3807:1
Seeking meanwhile to minimize
these trespasses, to be so faithful that these will become daily less and less.
R4684:1
Divine mercy is pleased to remit
the guilt of all unintentional sins. R4560:5
As we forgive -- The very essence of Christian principle is love, sympathy,
and the forgiveness of the faults of others. We may not express forgiveness
until forgiveness is asked, but should always be in a forgiving attitude.
R2253:3,4
Let every Christian, in
approaching the throne of grace, daily inquire of his own heart, whether or not
he has forgiven those who are indebted to him. R2253:4
Only the merciful shall obtain
mercy; only the forgiving shall be forgiven. R5022:4, 5004:1, 4585:3, 4560:5,
4428:4, 3803:1
Tending to make our hearts and
minds more tender, more gentle, more forgiving toward all with whom we have to
do. NS674:6
As we are imperfect and cannot
keep the divine law, so likewise others are imperfect. R3353:3
If fully appreciated, it would
influence God's sons to be kind and generous in thought as well as in word and
deed. R2005:2
Does not imply that we should pay
no attention to the transgressions of others against ourselves, that we should
not recognize offenses. R2253:4
If, at heart, we treasure up
resentment against others, we shall not be forgiven ourselves. R5123:3, 5624:5
The amount of one's likeness to
the Lord, in love, will be shown by his mercy and generosity of thought, word
and deed toward his fellows. F404
Our debtors -- Those who trespass against us. R3353:3
Not the forgiveness of financial
indebtedness and destruction of our bank account books, except for the debtor
willing, but unable, to pay. R2253:4
Matthew 6:13
Lead us not into -- Abandon us not in (Diaglott). R2005:3, 3716:1
To abandon us there, to leave us
in our own strength. R5022:5, 3939:5
Not signifying that we fear God
will tempt us, but that we entreat him to guide us so that no temptation come
upon us too severe for us. R3353:4
(Merely), but (also) deliver us
from the evil one. It is a part of the divine arrangement to bring us, or
permit us, to be put into positions of trial or testing. R2253:5
God is permitting the adversary to
bring strong delusions upon the world and nominal church because it is time to
completely separate wheat from tares. R3353:5
"God tempteth no man."
(Jas. 1:13) R2253:5
Temptation -- How foolish to pray thus, and not watch! R3939:5
While we must be brought into
positions of trial and testing, we may well pray not to be abandoned there, not
to be left to our own strength. R5022:4, 4907:5
Deliver us from evil -- From the Evil One, who is ever ready to attack us to the
extent that the Lord grants the opportunity. R3807:2, 5022:5, 5311:4; NS94:6
The Evil One and his helpers are
more than a match for humanity. NS127:1
Temptations from those with whom
we have contact, the powers of evil, of the air, of our own flesh. R5833:5
There was never a time when there
was greater need of this petition than at present. R3353:5
As we thus pray, we surely will
labor in the same direction. R3353:5
If the Lord shall not see best to
grant a prompt response, we may be sure it is not from lack of interest in our
welfare. Let faith hold her anchorage that the time will not be long until the
Millennial Kingdom, when the great adversary will be bound and deliverance
granted, not only to ourselves, but also to all. R2653:4
For thine is the kingdom -- These words, to the end of the verse, are not in the oldest
Greek manuscripts, the Sinaitic and the Vatican. R2253:6, 5022:5, 1865:3,
710:6, 278:2
The Kingdom or rule of the present
time is not of God. Properly omitted by the Revised Version as being no part of
the Scriptures. R5022:5
Added at a time when an earthly
exaltation of the Church had led some to believe that the Papal glory was the
glory of God's Kingdom. R2005:3
Matthew 6:14
If ye forgive -- Like the father of the prodigal, to see the repentant one
coming in the attitude of humility will touch our hearts and prompt us to go
out part way to meet him, to forgive him, to greet him kindly and put on the
robe of fullest fellowship and brotherhood. R4978:4, 2296:4
God will be no more generous to us
and our imperfections than we are generous toward our brethren in their
imperfections. R4651:4
In order to give us an education
in forgiveness and sympathy toward the world. R5275:2
We are too inclined to look only
at the justice of God's character, copy it and deal severely with our debtors;
he would make it clear that the grandest elements of his character are love,
sympathy, kindness and forbearance. R4651:4
Also forgive you -- God is ready to forgive the loving and generous who are
seeking to copy his character. R4651:4, 2586:6, 2587:1
Only the merciful shall obtain
mercy; and if we have not mercy at the hands of the Lord, all is lost. R2587:1
What an incentive to sympathy and
generosity and forgiveness is here! R4560:5
Matthew 6:15
If ye forgive not -- We should not insist upon having from others abject
acknowledgment of everything that is wrong. R5275:1, 4978:4
We should always exercise
forgiveness and good will toward all, no matter how serious the trespass
against us. R4978:4
Forgiveness "in your
hearts" is the condition which should always obtain there. We should never
harbor any other feeling no matter how seriously they have trespassed against
us. R2296:4
Neither will -- None will gain a place in the Kingdom class, in the Bride
Class, except they have this forgiving quality of love. R3353:4
Your Father forgive -- Forgive now, but blot out in the First Resurrection.
R3729:6, 2970:5
The Lord declines to forgive our
trespasses unless we exercise the spirit of mercy toward our fellowmen.
"Blessed are the merciful, for they shall obtain mercy." (Matt. 5:7)
R4558:2
Matthew 6:16
When ye fast -- Fasting, under the Jewish dispensation, was a symbol of
self-denial, and sacrificing under the Christian dispensation. R955:3*
We have good New Testament
precedent for the observance of literal fasts. R2022:5
Not a disapprobation to fasting.
To the contrary, he is endorsing it as a propriety. R4858:1
Fasting is specially commendable
to the Lord's people when they find themselves lacking in spirituality. R4858:5
To be seen of the Lord and not of
man. R4858:2
Subordinating the flesh that one
might be spiritually strengthened. R4858:1
It would be a very good thing for
all of the Lord's people to follow the Lenten custom of fasting, doing so with
as little outward demonstration as possible. R4858:5
A very plain diet, if not total
abstinence, for a season. R4858:6
But not as -- There is a danger along this line in the observance of the
Lenten season by some, but it may not be hypocritical with all. R4858:5
The hypocrites -- Drawing near to the Lord with their lips, while their
hearts are far from him. R4858:4
Sad countenance -- Not with long faces to show piety, but cheerfully. R4858:1
If their fasting had brought them
nearer to their Heavenly Father, it should have had a happifying effect, which
would have shown itself in the countenance. R4858:2
Disfigure their faces -- Giving them a drawn appearance. NS154:3
That they may appear -- Do not go about with a sad countenance telling everyone
that you are carrying a very heavy cross. That is not presenting your sacrifice
to the Lord, but before men. R955:4*
Have their reward -- The praise of men. R5786:6
They are getting the approval of
the ignorant and easily deceived. NS154:3
Let us take heed that we do not
barter away the heavenly approval, crown and glory for the mean rewards of this
present life. R955:6*
Matthew 6:17
Wash thy face -- Bear the cross cheerfully, with a hearty good will. R955:5*
Matthew 6:19
Lay not up -- It requires considerable determination to draw the line and
say to business and the various responsibilities pressing upon us, Thus far
shalt thou go and no farther. R732:4*
Trust in the Lord and don't put
all your confidence in banks, insurance companies or stock exchanges. Q344:4
Treasure upon earth -- Pleasure, delight, joy, comfort are all suggested by the
word treasure. Our thoughts, hopes and plans center there. Our treasure is the
inspiration of our lives, the incentive to energy, perseverance and endurance
for the hope which it enkindles. R5862:1
Earthly things are to be merely
servants always ready for use, for any emergency. R4567:2
Only by making wealth a treasure
and setting upon it inordinate desire can one become miserly or very rich. R4567:2
None of these earthly possessions
can any longer be their treasures or in any sense stand in competition with the
Lord. F574
Christians have renounced the
earth. OV357:6
Doth corrupt -- Death and corruption touch everything earthly, under
present conditions. R4567:1
Wealth may vanish in an hour; fame
may change to censure at the caprice of fickle, public sentiment; friends may
prove untrue or even treacherous; even the love that glowed on the home-altar
may flicker and become uncertain or extinct. R1820:2
The treasures of wealth, fame,
social distinction, houses, lands, friends, home, family, power and influence
are all subject to change and decay. R5862:1
Matthew 6:20
But lay up -- Signifying so loose a handling of worldly riches as would
hinder the accumulation or preservation of great wealth. R4567:2
Our heavenly treasures may be
augmented by special zeal and faithfulness under the peculiar trials of the
present time. R5863:2
By buying back moments and hours
from worldly matters, social frivolities and various time-killing devices, we
are getting an excellent bargain. NS468:6
Treasures in heaven -- A future reward. OV357:T
The chiefest of all treasures is
the personal love and friendship of God and Christ. R5862:4, 1820:3
The honor and privilege of our calling
to be "the Bride" should make that the supreme treasure, in
comparison with which every other treasure is insignificant. R874:3, 2628:2
Treasures of friendship, of love,
of esteem for the sake of our works, of experience that will serve us eternally,
of wisdom that will enrich us forever, of divine approval. R1514:1*
Including the marks of just
approval and distinction, treasures of mind and character and all the true and
noble friendships which have been founded in truth and righteousness. R5863:2,
1821:2
Treasures of mind and character;
for nothing that is good, true and worthy of preservation shall be lost.
R1821:5
Doth corrupt -- Neither the lapse of time nor the exigencies of
circumstance will be permitted to wrest these from us. R1821:5
Matthew 6:21
Where your treasure is -- A treasure is something in which we take special pleasure
and delight. It is in our thoughts, plans and hopes, an inspiration to our
lives and an incentive to energy. R1820:1, 874:2
That which costs us most and which
we give most for, we love most; and thus it is proved to be our treasure.
R874:6
Will your heart be -- Those who set their affections chiefly upon earthly things
can with difficulty avoid the snares that go with them. R5323:1
Not that a man may not love his
wife or children, or appreciate the beauties of nature, but these can no longer
be his treasure in competition with the Lord. F574
"Each heart will seek and
love its own; my goal is Christ, and Christ alone." F573
Matthew 6:22
Thine eye be single -- To the Lord's glory. R1849:4
Signifying singleness of purpose,
of heart intention toward God; clearness of spiritual vision depends upon this.
R4445:1, 4567:4
Adjusting your vision to see the
great value of the future life in comparison with the present one, and setting
your affection there. R4567:2
We have two eyes of our
understanding--one a present and one a future outlook, an earthly and a
heavenly view. It is important that we get these rightly adjusted to see
matters in their true light. R4567:2
Some are cross-eyed, endeavoring
to serve two masters, and to walk according to two standards. R4445:4
Full of light -- We have clearness of spiritual vision in proportion as we
have loyalty to the Lord and the enlightening influence of his spirit of
holiness, the spirit of love. R4445:2
Matthew 6:23
The light -- The holy Spirit, the way of truth. R5099:6, 4399:1
We should let it shine upon men;
some who once hated the message have thus been convinced. R4746:3
In thee -- Refers only to the Church class. R5099:6
Originally man had a clear eye,
mental as well as physical. R5797:5
Be in darkness -- If the light of the holy Spirit of our begetting becomes
extinguished. R5099:6, 4445:1, 371:6; E264, 294
Implying unfaithfulness. R3437:4
Showing the importance of proper
spiritual sight in order to discern truth clearly. R5797:5
Calling darkness light and light
darkness. (Isa. 5:20) R1800:4
Blessings, misused, may be turned
into a curse. R1850:6
By reason of sin, man's
discernment of right and wrong have been more or less blurred. R5797:5
The darkness not only affects
people intellectually, but morally, blunting their sense of right and wrong.
R4586:4
In certain instances, God will
force people out of the light into the "outer darkness" common to the
world in general. Disloyalty to the Lord tends in this direction. R4445:2
How great -- Both to yourself and to the world, from whom the light is
thus obscured. E294
There are different shades of
darkness. R5099:5
It would be better not to have
known the way of truth than to have departed from the holy command. R4399:1,
3786:1
Is that darkness -- The influence for evil of such an enlightened one,
sanctified by the truth and then seduced by Satan, is more than doubled. E294
Such a mind will be in a worse
condition than that of a worldly mind. Having lost the fear of man, if they
lose also the mind of the Lord, they have no fixed principle to govern their
course. R5100:4,2, 5797:5,6, 4567:3,4, 4446:1, 4445:3, 4399:1
If any fail to go on in the
development of the spirit of love, they will surely retrograde. R4445:6
Comparable to re-entering a
dimly-lit room from one that is brilliantly lighted; the room seems darker than
when we left it. R5100:2
A darkness that will only become
the more intense as one slips and slides along the backward track. R3103:5
He loses all knowledge of the
"mystery"--the peculiar relationship existing between Christ and the
Church. (Eph. 3:3-6) R5100:2
Matthew 6:24
Serve two masters -- Dividing the interests between God's affairs and the
affairs of self--half-hearted service. R5666:3
"A double-minded man is
unstable in all his ways." (Jas. 1:8) C221
No one can possibly render full
service to two opposing masters. R5666:2, 5344:2
"This one thing I do."
(Phil. 3:13) He concentrated his time, his thought, his energy, upon this one
object or goal. HG453:2
Whoever divides his heart, whoever
attempts to serve the interests of several equally, will surely fail. HG453:3;
NS617:2
"His servants ye are to whom
ye render service." (Rom. 6:16) If our lives are in harmony with sin and
unrighteousness, we are not on the Lord's side but on the devil's side. NS368:2
No two interests are so completely
one that the service of either would not more or less detract from the service
of the other. R5344:2
Folly consists in supposing that
one can win the world's prizes of honor and wealth, and at the same time run
faithfully for the great prize of glory, honor and immortality. C221
While we are not to do anything
contrary to the divine law, yet we are to serve our earthly masters faithfully.
They have purchased our time, or a large measure of it. R5666:6
Despise the other -- Such a half-way course fails to meet the world's approval
and to gain the advantages of this present life. If we believe it would pay
best to serve mammon, then we should serve mammon with all our hearts. HG453:3;
NS617:2
Ye cannot serve God -- Man was originally God's servant, naturally so. R5666:2
Only a few now are properly
fearing and serving the Lord. NS396:6; CR9:3
But merely use mammon and the
advantages of life as special assistances leading on to God. HG453:4; NS617:3
And mammon -- The mammon principle, the selfish principle, is of Satan.
R5344:5
There are two kinds of love in the
world--love for the world versus love for God. The two are opposites to such a
degree that they cannot be blended. We must be on one side or on the other.
HG551:1
Mammon was the name of an ancient
Syrian god--the god of riches, of cupidity, the impersonation of worldliness.
R5896:5
Mammon's empire is the world: it
is Confucian, Mohammedan, Greek Catholic, Roman Catholic, Episcopal,
Presbyterian, Methodist, according to the locality and influence. It is the
ideas of the majority, and too wise and crafty to be irreligious. CR9:3;
NS397:1
The spirit of the world,
selfishness, avarice, and love of wealth. R5896:5
Sectarianism, the fear of man that
bringeth a snare. CR9:5
Earthly advantages and comforts,
the attainment of which appears to be the main object in life; in Christendom.
R2259:1
Those who serve mammon get the
best in the political, ecclesiastical, social and financial spheres. R5344:3
The majority are serving mammon,
seeking to have its approval and emoluments. CR9:3
Worldly wealth. T93
The Balaam spirit; to be a servant
of God and seek the rewards of an opposite course. R5323:1
Typified by the golden calf made
by Aaron. R3047:4, 1836:1
Wherever the love of money or
honors or luxuries becomes the ruling passion in those who are professedly
God's people, it has usurped God's place. Such are idolaters. R2459:5, 1836:1
Matthew 6:25
Take no thought -- This does not mean that the Lord's followers are to be
negligent about their appearance, or the provision of food; but, realizing that
luxuries may not be the best for them, they are to be content with such things
as they have. R5220:1,2, 873:3
Fear and anxiety are amongst the
most serious foes of our human family; they produce nervous exhaustion and are
very injurious to health. R5874:3
We should recognize a wide
difference between carelessness and anxious care. Joseph in Egypt laid up wheat
in plentiful years to make provision for the seven years of famine. F573
There is a carefulness which is
entirely proper, yea, necessary, on our part, but not this extreme worry, the
inability to enjoy today because of fears respecting tomorrow. R5874:6, 4567:5,
2488:2, 873:2,3
Not that they should live from
"hand to mouth" and be utterly regardless of the future. F572
Having brought children into the
world, it becomes the duty of the parents to see to their reasonable and proper
establishment in it. F578; R874:1
For your life -- Greek, psuche, soul, being. E335
What ye shall eat -- He spoke generally to the poor, and the poor in Palestine
and other Eastern countries find it very difficult to obtain food and clothing.
R5990:5, 5220:1
Eating, drinking and dressing seem
to be the most engrossing thoughts of both rich and poor. R5220:2
We should be ready to share our
last loaf or last dollar with any more needy than we. R873:6
Is not the life -- Our eternal life. If wise, we will seek the future life at
any cost, at any sacrifice of the present one. R4567:4
More than meat -- He would have us absorbed in heavenly things; and to do
this he sees that we must be freed from distress of mind with reference to
earthly things. R873:3
Matthew 6:26
They sow not -- They know not how to sow or reap, or the lilies how to
spin. They get their food and the lilies their glory in God's appointed way for
them. So man must get his food in God's appointed way for him. R2804:6*, 2488:2
Feedeth them -- We should consider our Heavenly Father's provision for the
fowl of the air and realize that he provides for our best interests also.
R4567:5
Better than they -- Will not God much more care for us who have become his
children through faith in Christ? R4567:5
Matthew 6:27
Can add one cubit -- Let us realize our own littleness and look rather to the
Lord for the things of the present as well as the future life. R4567:5
Matthew 6:28
Consider the lilies -- Learn of the Creator by the things created. R3313:1
A common reddish flower, not the
kind generally termed lilies, but very beautiful. R5875:1, 5991:1
Our Lord, as was his custom, drew
an illustration of something familiar to all his hearers. R5990:2
Their beauty teaches us that the
Lord has a deep appreciation of the beautiful, and that God is abundantly able
to produce the beautiful without our aid. R3313:2
The bulb is continually sending up
nourishment to its stalks; not idle, but merely exercising its functions by the
laws of its nature. R5220:4
Not a hot-house plant, dependent
upon some horticulturist; but a flower from the field, growing because the
great Protector has provided for its interests. R5220:4
The lily would always have a
humble place; it would never be great like a tree. So it is with us here in the
flesh. R5875:4
God's care over a simple flower is
a reminder of his greater care over his own people. R5990:2
The heart that fails to consider
the little things is hindered from a proper appreciation of God and his plan.
R5220:5
How they grow -- In a very reasonable way, without unnatural, unusual
stress. It does the best it can wherever it happens to be and develops grace
and beauty. R5990:6, 5875:1
The lily has a right to use
everything within its power for its own nourishment. So it is our right and
duty to use the means within our power for beautifying our characters, and for
spiritual nourishment. R5220:5
The lily is not idle, else it
would die, but it does not worry. R5220:4
We are not to be anxious about the
things of the present life, nor are we to be over-anxious regarding our
spiritual growth. R5991:1
They toil not -- Does not mean that he would not have us labor with our
hands and our brains in order to care for our family, home, etc. R5991:1
Similarly we believe that in the
heavens the angels are free from toil. Divine power exercised in their interest
makes toil unnecessary. CR65:1
But a state of lethargy,
indolence, respecting the duties of life and opportunities for presenting truth
to others is a sure indication of spiritual poverty. R2488:4
Matthew 6:29
Like one of these -- The finest clothing cannot approximate the delicate
structure of the flower, created by an infinite hand. R5875:1
Matthew 6:31
Take no thought -- Not worried; as free from anxious care as the lilies.
R5991:1; F679
Be content with such things as you
have. (Heb. 13:5) R5220:1,2
Give all of the surplus of your
time and energy, over and above that spent in providing things needful in the
accumulation of the heavenly riches. R874:5
Matthew 6:32
After all these things -- Food, raiment, health, etc. R3718:2
The emoluments paid by mammon.
CR9:3; NS396:6
Spiritual Israelites are exhorted
by the Lord to appreciate the spiritual clothing, the spiritual food, the
heavenly riches, which moth and rust cannot corrupt. R3665:1
Do the Gentiles seek -- The procuring of food and raiment is the most important
consideration with most people. R5990:5; SM370:1
It would be unsafe for any of the
New Creation to request temporal blessings. R3665:1
They could not pray for spiritual
things for they had no appreciation of such gifts. Be not like them. R5202:4,
3665:1
Father knoweth -- We should accept what he gives us as being for our best
interests. R4567:5
To be without worry does not mean
to be without proper concern and due diligence to find work and do it. R4567:5
It is for them to rejoice that
their affairs are being more wisely and more favorably ordered than if under
their own control. SM371:T
How happy and free from anxious
cares are the hours of childhood. Perfect trust in parental wisdom and love
casts out all fear. R732:1*
It is improper for the Lord's
people to ask alms. R4101:5*
Ye have need of -- Our prayers should be more in the nature of
thank-offerings, worship and adoration, recounting the blessings and favors we
already enjoy rather than in asking those things which the Gentiles seek.
R1999:5
Many, however, who know nothing of
real, actual want of life's necessities, are much more exercised by the loss of
luxuries when adversity comes. R873:6, 832:5
All these things -- In their case, sickness could not come without the Lord's
special permission; hence it should be regarded as from him, and not directly
from Satan. R2007:2
Every event and affair of life
will be overruled for the highest good. R2468:5
Matthew 6:33
Seek ye -- It means to seek a place with the Redeemer in the true glory
and power of his coming Kingdom. R4730:6
Not merely seek them in prayer; we
are to seek them by setting our affections on those things and by lifting our
affections from earthly things. R2479:5
It will not be thrust upon
anybody. SM369:1
First -- Primarily; as of the first or primary importance. SM370:1;
F679; R5990:6, 4567:5, 2765:5; NS680:6
First interest; earnestness and
singleness of heart are necessary. R5917:6
God will look out for the earthly
interests of those who pursue this course. R4567:5
Do that which is in harmony with
our Kingdom aspiration. R5171:1, 4913:5
These may lose in temporal
advantage, but by faith they recognize it is to their spiritual advantage.
R4730:6
All who will be counted worthy to
be kings and priests must demonstrate now their willingness to sacrifice their
own personal interests and rights in favor of the Kingdom. SM374:1
If the interests of the Kingdom
need money, we would feel guilty if we should use the Lord's consecrated money
in self-gratification. R5220:2
The Kingdom of God -- The invitation to joint-heirship in the Kingdom of God.
SM370:1; NS680:6
Giving to it all the time,
attention, thought, energy, influence and means not needed for the present
life. R2765:5, 5918:5
The Jewish nation was first
invited to become the Kingdom of God. R5917:2
To which spiritual Israelites are
now invited. R4730:6
Messiah's Kingdom is sometimes
styled the Kingdom of God. Civ If seeking the Kingdom seems to hinder some of
our earthly prospects, so much the better. The Master said it must cost us our
all. R5048:5
His righteousness -- The standard of perfect love toward God and toward men.
SM371:1
The heirs of the Kingdom are to be
governed strictly by the laws of the Kingdom. SM372:1 That is to say, the
righteousness necessary to attain a place in the Kingdom. R5219:6; NS680:6
God has provided a righteousness
in Christ. R5918:4
We shall not only seek the
Kingdom, but seek its righteousness: the righteousness which the Kingdom will
bring, the righteousness which God will approve. SM371:1
If we seek and find his
righteousness we shall also find his Kingdom. (2
Pet. 1:5-15) R2804:6*
Our first thought should be for
the glory of God; our second, for our own profit; our third for the benefit of
others. Here we owe it to ourselves to put ourselves first, for if we fit
ourselves for service, we have the larger opportunity of helping others.
R5130:1,4
All these things -- Food, raiment, etc. SM370:1
Not wanting for temporal
necessities, for light, for necessary cares and disciplines, for consolations of
divine grace, for friendship and sympathy. R1745:2,4
Be added unto you -- He will not let you starve in his service. B119
All things necessary are promised.
R5219:6, 5990:6, 5991:1
According to His wisdom. F679;
SM371:T; NS680:6
In fact they shall be our
servants, instead of we in bondage to them. R2804:6*
Matthew 6:34
No thought -- Take no anxious burdensome care for the morrow. F572;
R4871:3
Be neither careless nor anxious.
F573
Sufficient unto -- Sufficient also is the guidance of the Lord and we are to
wait and watch for it. Q634:1
The evil thereof -- The difficulty thereof. R5470:5
If our hopes be not realized so
soon as we expected, we are not to worry; we are blessed with the truth and
there is work to be done. R5374:4
Matthew 7
Matthew 7:1
Judge not -- Harshly, uncharitably, unmercifully, ungenerously. R2329:3,
2589:2
Declaring against evil thoughts,
evil suspicions, evil surmisings. R2444:5
Because we do not fully comprehend
the divine law of love and cannot discern the thoughts of our own heart. F403
We may at times judge the outward
action as wrong, but we are not to attempt to judge the heart, where there is a
possibility of misjudgment. R5430:3, 1712:5
It is forbidden us to judge the
heart. R4568:5
Judging is a clear token that one
has not developed the spirit of Christ, the spirit of love, which is full of
kindness and consideration. R2589:2, 1713:6; F403 Our Lord refers to the abuse
of judgment and not to the legitimate use of that noble faculty. R1712:2
The Lord discountenances
criticisms and accusations and sentences of one another as individuals. R2431:5
But when conduct is in manifest
opposition and in defiance of God's law, as that of "wolves,"
"swine" and "dogs," the condemnation should be recognized
as God's judgment, not ours. R1712:5
Some people must be held at arm's
length, but at the same time we should be careful to give them credit for good
motives they claim to have. NS164:4
The first occurrence of the word
in the New Testament and would clearly bear the rendering, "Test not, that
ye be not tested." R48:6*
Be not judged -- Harshly, unmercifully. R2329:3
Matthew 7:2
With what judgment -- How we deal with others fixes the gauge of how God deals
with us. R5414:5, 5884:5, 5324:4, 5135:5; F403
The Law of Love says: For shame
that the weaknesses and shortcomings of brethren should be exposed before the
world. F405
See comments on Matt. 6:12
Ye judge -- How many find it easy to excuse their own weaknesses while
they are very captious and critical as respects the shortcomings of others.
R5324:4
Ye shall be judged -- If at heart we treasure up resentment against others, the
Heavenly Father will not forgive us. R5123:3 With what measure -- The fallen or
carnal mind is selfish; and proportionately as it is for self it is against
others--disposed to approve or excuse self and to disapprove and condemn
others. F404
The continual fault-finder, who
sees great blemishes in others and none in himself, is blind to his own
defects, or hypocritical. R4567:6
Ye mete -- Measure others. R2253:4
Measured to you -- If our words are generous and kind, loving and benevolent,
we shall receive similarly kind treatment of the Lord; but if harsh, critical,
unkind, we may expect reproof. OV209:4, 210:T; R3453:5
Matthew 7:3
And why -- Busybodying in other men's affairs. F583
The mote -- The little difficulties and weaknesses with which all the
Lord's people are more or less troubled. R2589:3
Not the beam -- The great fault of lovelessness. R2589:3
Satan possesses this fault; he is
called the "Accuser of the brethren." (Rev. 12:10) R2589:4
Matthew 7:4
Let me -- Fancying that it is "his duty" to advise, to
pick, to investigate, to chide, to reprove. F584
Pull out the mote -- The continual fault-finder who sees great blemishes in
others and none in himself is blind to his own defects, or hypocritical.
R4567:6
Matthew 7:5
Thou hypocrite -- Wishing to give the inference that you are not yourself
inflicted with the same malady of sin. R2589:4
It is deceptive and hypocritical
when we claim that fault-finding is prompted by love for the erring and a
hatred of sin. R2589:4
Matthew 7:6
Give not -- We are to tell the heavenly things, but not to the natural
man. R5065:6
Use the spirit of a sound mind to
discriminate between those who are good subjects for the truth and those who
are not. R5376:4
This does not mean that we should
never bring holy things to the attention of those who are not the Lord's
consecrated people. R2589:6
Unto the dogs -- Idlers, breeders of spiritual contagion, self-seekers,
biters and devourers, treacherously lying in wait to deceive. R1671:1
We would not expect that dogs
would appreciate the difference between meat from the butcher shop and the
holy, consecrated meat eaten only by the priesthood. R2589:6
The selfish, the sensual, who mind
earthly things and who have never been begotten of the spirit of God. R2589:6
The only preaching proper for such
is "Repent and be converted that your sins may be blotted out" and
"Flee from the wrath to come." R1671:2
The "brethren" have been
neglectful in the endeavor to feed the "dog" class. R2590:1
Cast your pearls -- The deep and precious things that belong to the New
Creation and which none others can understand and appreciate. R3265:2, 5699:1,
5214:6, 5065:6, 4568:1; OV5:2; SM242:T
We are not authorized to parade
our ambassadorship before the world. NS466:1
Before swine -- The groveling, who think only of money and the things of
this life. R2589:6
The brutish and swinish. R2589:2
Those who have not the hearing ear
and the seeing eye. R5376:3, 327:5*
Those who would not be able to
understand nor appreciate our position. R5825:5, 4568:1
They would resent our precious
truths and do us injury. R4568:1, 4984:3; SM7:T
Those who mind earthly things, the
selfish, the sensual. R2589:5,6
Trample them -- Recognizing no value in pearls, nor appreciating anything
that would not give earthly satisfaction. SM7:T
And rend you -- "Reprove not a scorner, lest he hate thee."
(Prov. 9:8) R2589:2
Injure you. SM7:T
Matthew 7:7
Ask -- Some of the chiefest of his favors he withholds from us
until we make requests, because he thus prepares us more for the blessings he
is willing to bestow. R4568:1
All the consecrated are free to
make request for the things promised in the Word of God. R4568:1
If you wish to know how to
overcome the spirit of fault-finding and harsh criticism of the Lord's
brethren. R2590:1
Seek -- Those who approach the Bible with earnest desire to find
God's message, will be guided of the Lord. Q643:1; R4983:6, 4971:1
And ye shall find -- The knowledge of the holy Spirit shall be revealed. E167
We find what we seek! Those who
desire to find God's message will be guided by the Lord. Those who approach the
Bible from the standpoint of unbelief are equally sure to find what they
seek--flaws, contradictions, etc. Q643:2
Knock -- Upon the Lord's storehouse of grace and blessing by
continued efforts, as well as prayer. R2590:2, 1150:4
Opened unto you -- The door of privilege, of opportunity. R4983:6
The door of knowledge. E167
Matthew 7:8
Every one that asketh -- Anyone, therefore, who seeks God will find him; for the
Scriptures promise, "Draw nigh to God and he will draw nigh to you."
(Jas. 4:8) R5201:3
He that seeketh -- In the "Law and Testimony." (Isa. 8:20) E167
Seeks the proper blessings:
forgiveness of past sins, divine love and care, both temporal and eternal.
OV181:2
Findeth -- Those who pray for opportunities to serve the Lord and
watch for the fulfillment of their prayers will surely have them. R4913:4
The believer, assuming that there
is a superhuman wisdom in the divine word, investigates from that standpoint.
NS63:2
It shall be opened -- The door of knowledge shall be opened. E167; R5201:6
God will reveal his true character
to them. OV2:2
Matthew 7:9
A stone -- Traditions as indigestible as a stone. HG692:3
Matthew 7:11
Give good things -- The holy Spirit, the true antidote for a faultfinding
disposition. R2590:2, 4568:4
The Lord will also give whatever
temporal blessings are to the best interests of the new creature. R5835:1
If he gives us a gift at all, we
may be sure it will be a blessing. NS229:5
That ask him -- God is particularly willing to give us the holy Spirit, and
is especially pleased that we ask for it. R5310:6, 5835:2
We are not to ask for all manner
of earthly things. R5835:1
Matthew 7:12
Therefore -- Connecting this with the preceding; signifying that this
will be a test by which we may discern when and to what extent we are
misjudging the motives of others. R2590:3
By way of concluding this subject
of finding fault, picking flaws, condemning and criticizing. R2590:3
Whatsoever ye would -- Our Lord's words were addressed to his disciples. OV231:1;
SM431:2
This is not the rule of love, but
of justice. R4827:3
To do justice to your neighbor as
you wish that neighbor to do justice to you is the essence of the Law of God given
to the Jews for their treatment of others. SM352:2
Under this golden measurement, how
few bitter, angry or slanderous words would be used, for how few would like to
have others use such to or of them. R2688:6
As we would not wish to have
others think ungenerously or meanly of us, so we in turn would find our
thoughts of others becoming more generous and less suspicious. R2688:6
To reason, If we were in the slums
we would wish that some of God's children would help us and hence we should do
so to others, is a mistaken application of this rule. R2689:6
It does not say that we should do
to our neighbor as he might wish us to do to him, for he might wish a very
unreasonable thing. R2688:4
If Jesus had loved us just
according to the Golden Rule, he would not have died for us; but he did more,
and he requires that his followers should do more for each other. Q286:6
That men -- Particularly the Lord's brethren and those dependent upon
you. R2689:1, 2690:5
It will be applicable to all the
heathen world and the substratum of society in the Millennial age, but now it
is applicable chiefly to the household of faith. R2690:5
Should do -- Charging only a reasonable profit on goods sold, expecting
to pay a reasonable profit to him who sells. R2688:5; OV231:3
To you -- Putting off anger, malice, hatred, strife, envy, slanders,
etc. R2688:6
Do ye -- This is a positive rule, to do good; and not a negative
rule, to abstain from doing evil. R2688:2, 4567:3
This rule does not express all of
the Christian's duty, but marks the very lowest standard which must measure our
dealings with others, justice. OV231:2
To the full extent of their
ability, the new creatures must render justice. SM431:2, 352:2; R4567:3
We must also be just in our words
and thoughts. SM432:1
This law the Apostle calls the
"law of liberty," the perfect law. R2688:2
With applications to husbands,
wives, children, parents, brothers and sisters. OV232:1
Applications to the Church.
OV232:3
The Christian businessman's ideal
is the Golden Rule. OV369:2
The Golden Rule is despised and
rejected as impracticable. R5723:5
Nothing short of full devotion to
the Lord will enable one to live consistently along the lines of the Golden
Rule. R4568:4
He who practices the Golden Rule
during the six days of his contact with business will surely be faithful on the
seventh; but faithfulness to the Golden Rule on the one day only will never win
Divine approval. OV232:2
This Golden Rule is necessary in
formation of character, not only to develop equity and justice, but also the
spirit of love, of unselfishly doing good to others. R2689:3
Only as we exercise benevolence
toward others need we expect God's benevolence in respect to our weaknesses and
shortcomings. R4567:3,6
The Christian has an additional
requirement--the Lord's "New Commandment." We must "love one
another" as our Redeemer loved us, to the degree of self-sacrifice, even
unto death. R4568:4
To tell uncomplimentary truth is
to violate the Law of Love, the Golden Rule. F406
Even so to them -- By acting kindly, speaking gently, being patient toward
weaknesses, not expecting too much. F376
Doing for them now the kind of
work which God desires to have done; leaving for the future the things which
God has planned to have done in the future (the salvation of the world).
R2690:2
This is the Golden Rule and, by
comparison, the rule of Confucius, "Do not to others what you would not
wish them to do to you" might be considered the brazen rule. R2688:1,
4567:3
This is the law -- Not a Gospel standard, not a love standard, but justice. OV231:2
The Law of God is briefly summed
up in this Golden Rule. R4568:4
"The righteousness of the
law." (Rom. 8:4) R2689:3
Matthew 7:13
Wide is the gate -- First entered by Father Adam. A205
Broad is the way -- The downward path, in which all of Adam's posterity were
born. A205
Opened up in Eden at the time of
the loss of the homestead. R4245:6*
Becoming broad of necessity in
order to include every member of Adam's family. R4245:6*
On which the human race is
hurrying to the tomb. R5245:2; A205
Of self-gratification, pride,
lust, sin, selfishness. R4838:1, 4568:2
The easy, selfish, worldly way.
R2590:5
The present evil world. Q829:2
That leadeth -- As years and centuries roll on, becoming more and more
smoothly worn, daily more glazed and slimed and slippery with sin. A205
To destruction -- The way that seemeth right to the world will end in death.
(Prov. 14:12) CR497:2
Death, not eternal torture.
R4568:2; A205
Many there be -- Our race, now thronging the broad road to death, are to be
restored because their guilt and sin are atoned for and will be remitted.
R281:4
Mankind daily loses the power of
resistance so that now the average length of human life is about 35 years, 900
years less than the first man. A206
Even the Jews were in that Broad
Way. CR497:2
Which go in there at -- All mankind are born under more or less adverse conditions
and unfavorable environments; and the majority follow on in the way in which
they are born. CR496:4
The world's choice is between
hastening down the broad road, giving loose rein to their passion, or seeking
to restrain these and go down more slowly. NS81:4
Matthew 7:14
Strait is the gate -- Applicable only in the Gospel age. R860:2
Difficult is the gate. A207;
R5045:3, 5320:2
Full consecration, even unto
death; but within are ministering spirits, all conspiring for our ultimate
membership in the New Creation. F152; R4568:3; OV177:4
The love and loyalty of the
disciples is tested by their call to walk contrary to the world. R4568:3
The Lord permits the Christian to
have adverse experiences so that his character may be developed. Q821:3
Our too-low standards have
admitted to membership in all denominations millions who are far below the
Master's standards. NS778:5
Narrow is the way -- The way of death by sacrifice with Christ. A212; R5871:5,
5245:2, 2773:2
He opened for us "a new and
living way through the veil, that is to say, his flesh." (Heb. 10:20)
R279:5
So that only those willing to
suffer with Christ may be his joint-heirs. F125; R4964:6, 5005:4
The vows of consecration make the
way to glory narrow. NS654:5
So narrow that it admits only the
Lord's plan and those willing to conform to it. R5045:3
It is only as "new
creatures" that the saints of this age are on the way to life; and only as
human beings are we consecrated to destruction, as sacrifices. A213
Were it not that strength is
furnished for each successive step of the journey, we could never reach the
goal. A214
Those who walk in the narrow way
are scripturally called "new creatures in Christ Jesus." (2 Cor.
5:17) NS19:3
We should not be surprised that
the way that leads to life is narrow when we realize the grandeur of the life
to which it leads. R281:4
Because the successful enduring of
these tests is indispensable to those whom he would thus honor. F125
Separate from the world; steep,
rugged and beset with snares of the Adversary. CR414:1; OV130:T
Contrary to the general tendencies
of the world--upward. R4568:3
Because this Gospel age is a part
of "the present evil world" during which Satan is the prince or
ruler. NS17:6
Opened up, not to convert the
world, but to choose a peculiar people to be associated with the Lord in his
spiritual Kingdom. R4246:1*
Its difficulties will act as a
separating principle to separate and refine a "peculiar people."
A214; R281:5; NS345:5
It means more than negative
opposition to the world; it means to make a positive stand for the Lord, for
the truth of His Word, for righteousness in general. NS19:1
The law given to Israel was a
narrow way and they thought it to be a way of life, but they found it to be a
way of death. (Rom. 7:10) NS18:3
It did not exist in the Jewish age
and previous ages. NS18:1
We are not to expect that this
narrow way will continue in the future indefinitely--during the Millennial age.
NS17:6
The divine arrangement for our first
parents in Eden was not a narrow way of sacrifice, but quite to the contrary.
NS20:2
The little flock will run it with
voluntary devotion, but the great company will have experiences which will
force them, not to take one special way, but to decide for themselves which
course they will pursue. R5245:2; Q331:3,6
Leadeth unto life -- Life inherent, life in the superlative degree, immortality.
A210; R5045:3; SM10:1
Glory, honor and
immortality--association with the Redeemer in the great work of the Millennial
Kingdom. R4568:3
This life is immortality. They
were living, justified, before, but the strait gate and narrow way lead to
another, a different life. R779:3*, 659:5*
The spirit in us is the germ of
immortality. Thus we even now are partakers of the divine nature, but the
fullness is to be reached when we enter into life. R279:4
There is no other way of life open
at the present time. NS19:2
Few there be -- In comparison with the population as a whole. NS808:3
Because the Lord seeks only a very
choice class at the present time. NS19:2, 749:2
Not many great, not many rich or
learned, but chiefly the poor of this world, rich in faith. OV123:3
"A little flock." (Luke
12:32) R2122:5; HG186:3
"Many are called and few are
chosen." (Matt. 22:14) Paul estimates that many run, though few so run as
to obtain the prize of the high calling. (1
Cor. 9:24) R281:1
Our Lord himself was the first to
walk in it as the captain or leader of all who would walk in his steps. NS83:4
These few are the bride class who,
with Christ, are to bless all the families of the earth. R5691:1
That find it -- The narrow way is a privilege. NS344:4
Matthew 7:15
Of false prophets -- Public expounders. A55
Some will speak perverse things
and draw away disciples unto themselves. R5388:6
A class who pervert the truth,
stirring up arguments that confuse the flock, manifesting a wolfish
disposition. R5388:6
It is not evil-surmising to be on
the lookout for false teachers, nor evil speaking to call the attention of the
sheep to such. R3746:6
In sheep's clothing -- Those who studiously cover up a wolf-like character with
the outward professions of godliness, in order to deceive and lead astray the
unwary. R1712:2
Professing to be of the Lord's
flock; but really not such, because they do not trust in the great sacrifice
offered once for all for their sins. R3142:3
While sheep can never become
wolves, some, who at one time were sheep, after a while manifest a wolfish
disposition and take pleasure in doing all they can to injure the flock.
R5388:6
Implies the thought of deception,
walking like sheep, wearing sheep's clothing, but never being real sheep.
R5388:6
However smooth, polished,
educated, gentle they may be on the surface, we must get to know them better
than by surface indications before we may dare trust them as leaders of the
flock. R3747:1
Ravening wolves -- A class who pervert the truth, injure the flock, stir up
arguments that confuse the flock, destroy the new creature, dragging them down
to death. R5388:6
Greedy, selfish: "Through
covetousness shall they with feigned words make merchandise of you." (2
Pet. 2:3) R3747:1
Ready to destroy your faith in the
ransom and thus destroy you as sheep. R3142:3
Hungry with ambition for fame and
prominence and honor of men, and willing to barter the interests of the flock
for their personal aggrandizement. R3748:2
The wolf is not to be tolerated.
He has no rightful place in the assemblies of the true sheep until his
character is changed by repentance and submission to the will of God. R1712:2
We should neither reprove as
wolves, or disown as brethren, those whose hearts, characters, give evidence
that they belong to the Lord, even though they follow not with us in respect to
his service. R3747:1
Matthew 7:16
By their fruits -- Sharp, thorny, injurious, poisonous--or, helpful,
strengthening, uplifting. R4568:5
Of character, conduct or teaching.
R1712:2
Signs that their characters are
being transformed in a wrong direction. R5957:1
As James claims, if the right kind
of faith be developed in the heart it will surely bear fruit and make an
outward manifestation, according to circumstances. R4377:3, 3318:1
The same must be true of the
Almighty--by His fruits, His workmanship, fully completed, He may be known to
be either good or bad, just or unjust, loving or vicious. SM449:4
Of thorns -- Some, like thorns, reach out to impede, irritate, annoy and
injure those with whom they come in contact. R3747:2
Little of this injury is done
physically; nevertheless, the thorny and briery people find abundant
opportunity for injuring others with their lips and tongues. R3318:2
The thorn and brier classes,
however closely affiliated with religious things, are not vine branches.
R5148:1
There is a thorn-bush in Palestine
which grows a fruit somewhat resembling grapes, and a kind of thistle with
heads shaped like figs. R3747:2
Of thistles -- Some, like thistles, are always scattering seeds that cause
trouble: false doctrines, evil-surmisings, errors. R3747:2
The thorns and thistles are bad
fruits, belonging to the evil nature, and not fruits of the spirit of the Lord.
R5224:3
Matthew 7:17
Every good tree -- Contrasting a healthy fruit tree with a diseased or evil
one; contrasting a healthy Christian with a perverted and misguided one.
R3747:3 A corrupt tree -- The Lord supplies the good soil of truth, the
refreshing showers of grace and the nourishment of precious promises; but it is
for each of his people to use these and thereby grow. R3747:4
Illustrating that those who are
his disciples, sound and proper enough to begin with, might lose their
spiritual strength and forcefulness, their carefulness. R3747:3
A Christian who has failed to use
the chastisements, trials, and difficulties to correct the weaknesses,
shortcomings and wrong development of his nature; a Christian who has set his affections
on houses, lands or worldly aims, objects or individuals. R3747:4
A Christian who has failed to grow
in grace, knowledge and love has not appropriated the nourishment provided, has
not submitted to pruning. His heart has become decayed. R3747:3
So surely as a corrupt tree brings
forth bad fruit, so false doctrines will develop bad characters in those who
receive them. SM382:2
Evil fruit -- Knotty, wormy, unsatisfactory. R3747:3
Matthew 7:19
Is hewn down -- In Palestine, to this day, fruit trees are taxed, and trees
which do not bear are promptly cut down. R3747:5
"Every branch in me that
beareth not fruit he taketh away." (John 15:2) R3747:5
Cast into the fire -- Symbolizing the time of trouble in the end of the Jewish
age, and that to come at the end of the Gospel age and beginning of the
Millennial age. R3747:5,6
Matthew 7:20
By their fruits -- Lives. HG693:1
What they do with their spare time
and money. R2259:3 Outward manifestations. R5000:2
We are to judge the outward
conduct, but we cannot go beyond and say what is of the heart. R5000:3
Only in regard to that of which we
have positive knowledge should we render a decision in our own minds. R5519:6,
5000:2
Sharp, thorny, injurious,
poisonous--or, helpful, strengthening, uplifting. R4568:5, 5224:3, 4592:2
A wicked spirit, a malicious
tongue, and pleasure in doing unrighteousness betoken a change of heart, that
they have not the holy Spirit governing them as they once had. Q648:T
The holy Spirit or the spirit of
the Adversary. R4592:2; Q648:T
The fruits of the people of God
are holiness, meekness, gentleness, long-suffering, brotherly-kindness,
self-sacrifice for others and for God and His truth. R5504:5; OV401:4; NS205:6,
403:3
Aside from any fruits that would
be injurious, we are to accept the profession of all who claim to be
consecrated. R4653:6
Ye shall know them -- We know the Almighty by His fruits--His good, just and
loving workmanship finally completed. SM449:4
Be able to discern which are
brethren and which are "dogs" or "swine." R2589:5
Know that those bearing the fruits
of the spirit are no longer children of wrath, but have passed from death unto
life. NS403:3
Specially applicable to those who
would be leaders of His flock. R3747:5
Know that those having the spirit
of anger, etc., are yet in the "gall of bitterness," however
outwardly respectable they may be. NS403:4
Matthew 7:21
Not every one -- Who are professing to be his disciples. R3317:6
Not all who have their names upon
earthly church rolls, but only those whose "names are written in
heaven" and whose names will not be blotted out because of unfaithfulness.
(Heb. 12:23; Rev. 3:5) HG315:6
Only those who, after repentance,
renunciation of sin, and acceptance of Christ as their Redeemer, make a full
consecration of themselves to the Lord, to know and to do His will. NS391:2
Shall enter into -- Can be accepted as a joint-heir with Christ. R4470:1,
5938:3, 2235:3
Kingdom of heaven -- The actual Kingdom, not the Church in her present
condition. R3317:6
Doeth the will -- God's will is to select such as believe His promises for
the future so fully that they will give up the present to obtain it. R581:2
The heart, the will, must be
right, sincere, true, pure, loyal to God and the principles of his government.
R4568:5
By our deeds, and not merely by
our professions. R5938:3
Matthew 7:22
Many will say -- In contrast with the "few there be that find it."
(Verse 14) R814:5*
Not only a few, but
"many," who in their outward course of life have in some measure
acknowledged the Lord publicly. R3318:2
Many sadly misinformed
partial-believers in Christ. D632
Many who have done philanthropic
and reform work. R5404:6
The Great Company. R5383:5
Professed church of
Christ--"false brethren." SM222:1
Ostensibly they serve the Lord, in
reality they serve mammon. SM760:1
In that day -- In the close of the Gospel age. R3747:6, 5404:6, 4568:5
Lord, Lord -- They had a form of godliness. R5407:4
Have we not -- As Laodicea, "I am rich, increased in goods, and have
need of nothing." (Rev. 3:17) R4314:4
But these boastings avail little
to the interests of Babylon because the lack of the spirit of God's law of love
is too painfully manifest to be concealed. D170
The harvest truth is only for the
holy and meek. R1348:5
Prophesied -- Preached. D632
He will not guarantee that anybody
who has power to work miracles and preach publicly will be granted a place in
the Kingdom. R4668:2
In thy name -- The Revised Version gives "by thy name,"
intimating that the name of Christ is used rather as a charm, to conjure by.
R3748:1
Much of this conjuring in the name
of Jesus has been merely a cloak. R3748:1
Claiming divine authorship for
their own erroneous theories. R3647:6
Many take the Lord's name in vain,
associating it with their enterprises, which are often in direct conflict with
the Master's Word and Spirit. R3748:1
Cast out devils -- Opposing sin and multitudinous forms of evil. R3747:6
Wonderful works -- Good works: mission work, slum work. Q112:5
Miracles are not necessary today
amongst the Lord's people, and hence they have passed away. R3301:5
Not that the Lord does not approve
of hospitals, asylums and charities, but they are not the fruits of the spirit.
NS376:6
The Lord's followers are not to be
known by their great works--"by their fruits ye shall know them."
(Verse 20) Q783:2
Many there are who are consecrated
to a system or to a work who are not fully consecrated to God. R1802:3*
Benevolent institutions, colleges,
seminaries, etc. R3747:6
Not acceptable to God because they
have not submitted themselves to His plans and methods. R3647:6
The Lord makes use of various
characters as agents in these healings, even as Judas was one of the twelve who
worked miracles. R749:4
So satisfied with their present
world-converting machinery that they would rather dislike to have the second advent
occur now and spoil their plans. R1439:3
Ecclesiasticism is constantly
boasting of her great achievements, as here prophesied. D170
Including miraculous physical
healings. F639
Some are urged to make money as
honestly as possible and contribute liberally to the church, and told they will
be granted a free pass to eternal happiness in the future. SM760:T
Some may be found building up
Babylon in some of its denominations, but neglecting the divine Word and their
own character building. NS319:6
There is so much reckoning,
figuring and apologizing for the meager missionary results now, because we are
living in the "harvest" or reckoning time. R1078:3
The various persons and systems
performing the "many wonderful works" of today, almost without
exception, directly or indirectly antagonize the truth. R3158:4
We are not to object to the works
if they are good works. R4668:2, 3120:3; Q112:5
Implying that Satan will have not
only false teachers, but false miracle-workers, deceiving themselves and others
respecting the source of their power and teachings. R2837:3
Matthew 7:23
I never knew you -- "Never approved you." (Diaglott) R2837:3
Never recognized or authorized
your sects. R3748:2
I do not recognize you. R5383:5,
5404:6, 5389:6
You are not fit for the Kingdom
class. Q112:5; R5407:4, 4668:2, 4568:6; SM222:2
You did not come in by the door of
the sheep-fold (John 10:1). R5404:6
Your work is out of harmony with
the principles of my teaching. Such will pass through tribulation and lose the
great prize. R4568:6
Only those will be recognized who
have done the will of the Lord and who have no theories or works of their own
whereof to boast. R3252:4
Because of not having developed
characters in harmony with the Father's law--the Golden Rule. R4568:6, 3318:2
Depart from me -- Left to have a part in the great time of trouble, they will
doubtless become God's people instead of sectarians, and will be "willing
in the day of his power." (Psa. 110:3) D632
Obliged to pass through
tribulation with the world, losing their share of the great prize of this
Gospel age. R4568:6
It is the duty of every true
disciple to rebuke them, for the outward opponents do far less harm than those
who wear the Master's name while denying his doctrine. R1418:6
Not into eternal torment. He does
not say, "Depart, ye cursed." R5383:5
That work iniquity -- Neglecting the privileges of the high calling when they
knew of it. R5407:4
Workers of unrighteousness, in my
name. R5389:6, 3748:3
Through misrepresentation of God's
character and plan. R3748:3
The 1000 years of Christ's reign
will accomplish the real reform work. R5404:6
Matthew 7:24
These sayings -- Jesus' message and teachings. R5407:3
The words or message of the Sermon
on the Mount, showing what things are blessed of God in contradistinction to the
things which would not have his approval. R3748:4
Doeth them -- Render obedience thereto. R5407:3
Not merely to be doctrinally
informed, but he is looking for such character development as will bring us
into full harmony with his teachings. R3748:5
I will liken him -- The parable refers not to the Church and the world, but to
two parties in the Church. R3748:3, 3318:4
A wise man -- The true people of God who will be able to stand the test
of this great day, now upon us. R5443:4
Built his house -- Jesus showed that it was important to be founded upon a
rock; and Paul shows that is important also to build with good material. (1
Cor. 3:12) R358:5*
A rock -- Christ. R4568:6, 5443:4
"Other foundation can no man
lay than that which is laid, Jesus Christ." (1 Cor. 3:11) R5407:6
Matthew 7:25
The winds blew -- The storms of life are sure to come. R5407:3, 4568:6
Founded upon a rock -- The foundation, God's promises, brings calmness, confidence
and security. R5407:3
The twelve apostles, the
foundations of the New Jerusalem, were not laid in the sand, but upon the sure
and steadfast rock, Christ Jesus. R1522:1
No man can build a proper life
unless he have some foundation, some doctrine, some faith. A man with no faith,
no hope, is sure to be correspondingly lacking in character. R3318:4
Matthew 7:26
His house -- Faith structure. R5407:6
Upon the sand -- Foundations of human tradition, man-made theories,
ignorance, doctrines of demons. (1 Tim. 4:1) R4568:6, 5407:5
The quicksand foundation upon
which nominal Christianity is built. R5443:4
Of selfishness. R1190:5*
Those so building will suffer the
loss of everything, and at the beginning of the Millennium will be no better
off than the world in general. R4569:4
Perhaps some built upon the law,
thinking they could commend themselves to God by their own endeavors, without
the imputation of the merit of Christ. R5407:5
Matthew 7:27
Rain descended -- A mighty downpour of truth. R3748:5, 5443:4
The floods came -- "The hail shall sweep away the refuge of lies, and the
waters shall overflow the hiding place." (Isa. 28:17) R3748:5
The winds blew -- The strong winds of war. R3414:3, 5443:4
And beat -- The shaking will be the means of God for the liberation of
some now chained by superstition. R1308:4
Upon that house -- Nominal Christendom. R3748:5
It fell -- The "great company" will have a faith structure
largely composed of error, which will be consumed. R3748:6
Truth will wash out the quicksand
foundation of nominal Christianity. Utter wreck will follow. R5443:4, 5407:6
Great was the fall -- Suffering the loss of all their hopes. R5407:6
At the beginning of the
Millennium; they will be no better off than the world in general. R4569:4
Matthew 7:28
Were astonished -- Even though they but imperfectly understood because the
holy Spirit was not yet given. R5408:2
Matthew 7:29
Having authority -- Knowing the truth by implicit faith in God and personal
experience with its power upon his own heart. R1917:2
As one who understood his subject
thoroughly. R3803:2
As one knowing what he was talking
about. OV159:1
With a positiveness. R5408:2,
3318:5
Not as the scribes -- Who taught various speculations and wonderings. R5408:2
Doubtfully. R3803:2
Wherever there is confusion and
mysticism, we may be sure there is error and ignorance. R5408:2
Matthew 8
Matthew 8:2
A leper -- Leprosy symbolically represents sin. R4576:3
If thou wilt -- He was inspired with faith as far as his knowledge went,
and Jesus graciously supplied the missing link by saying, I will. R436:6*
Matthew 8:3
Put forth his hand -- It is a mistake to suppose that healing constituted Jesus'
mission as a whole or one of its most important features. R4576:2
Touched him -- His healings were performed to: (1) draw attention to his
message; (2) illustrate his great future work; or (3) test his own
faithfulness. R4576:2
Be thou clean -- No suggestion here of the error of the leper's moral mind
as claimed by Christian Science. All is real, both the leprosy and the
miraculous cure. R4472:2*
Was cleansed -- Represents purification from sin. R4576:3
Matthew 8:4
Tell no man -- The testimony of his Messiahship was to be hidden from the
common people until the rulers of the Jewish Church had the opportunity to
decide for or against Christ. C168
Telling it forth would tend to
make him too popular. R4576:3
To the priest -- This was the demand of the Law. R4576:3
Representative of the Jewish
system. C168
Testimony unto them -- To those who would ultimately pass sentence upon him.
R4576:5
Matthew 8:5
A centurion -- Captain of a garrison of Roman soldiers; a Gentile. R5101:4
Probably Cornelius. R1922:6,
2620:6
Matthew 8:6
My servant -- An interest in his employee which we, as Christians, do
well to imitate. R2620:6
Matthew 8:8
I am not worthy -- Being a Gentile, it would be an impropriety for a Jew to
enter his house. R3755:5
A lesson of humility of mind in
approaching the Lord on any subject; that we have nothing of right or merit to
demand, only grace and mercy. R3755:5
Speak the word only -- He had this faith because his servants obeyed their
authority, and he recognized that Jesus had still higher authority and could so
command his messengers. R5101:4
Matthew 8:10
He marveled -- The only other instance where Jesus marveled was at the
unbelief of the people of Nazareth. (Mark 6:6) R3755:6
No, not in Israel -- Nowhere among the whole twelve tribes. C293
Matthew 8:11
That many -- Faithful ones from among the Gentiles, called to be the
bride and joint-heir of the true and only heir of all things, Christ Jesus.
R1095:2
The world of mankind in the
Millennium. R3457:1
Shall come -- By a narrow, thorny path of trial. R1095:5
East and the west -- Gentiles. R4576:6
Shall sit down -- Or, be at rest and peace with God, with Abraham, Isaac and
Jacob and all the faithful of the earthly class. R3457:1
With Abraham -- The visible representatives of the Kingdom. D619; Q421:3;
R4796:1
The Kingdom itself will be
spiritual, invisible to men, but its earthly agents will be visible and they
will be Jewish. R4796:1
Who will have an honored place for
the blessing of regathered Israel, and through them, all the families of the
earth. R4577:1
Who died before the ransom was
paid and were not therefore called to a place in the spiritual Kingdom. D625
But not the saints. A290
And Isaac and Jacob -- And all the ancient worthies. R3457:1, 1634:6; D619
Kingdom of heaven -- The earthly phase of the Kingdom. A290
Matthew 8:12
Children of the kingdom -- Israelites, children of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, to whom
the Kingdom was first offered. R5101:5
The Lord is here not speaking
about the world at all; he is speaking about the Church. Q199:4
The Lord was discussing the
earthly Kingdom with the earthly children. Q421:4
Some who, in the end of the age,
not being faithful, will be rejected from the light. Q199:4
Cast out -- Out of divine favor. R4576:6
Divine grace or favor was to
continue with the Jew until three and a half years after the cross. R5100:6
They should not think that God
would take them for his elect regardless of their character, faith, obedience,
etc. R5101:5 All the unworthy of the Jewish age shall be excluded from the
visible, earthly phase of the Kingdom. R1580:1
Outer darkness -- God's disfavor, which has been upon Jews, especially since
the destruction of Jerusalem. R4576:6, 4577:1, 3105:6; Q421:3
As outcasts from God's favor and
from the special light of prophecy which for 1800 years had enlightened them.
R1095:2
That which is common to the world
in general. R4445:2, 4577:1
If any of us do not walk
carefully, we will not continue to be children of light. Q199:4
Not like purgatory or hell-fire,
because the normal view of these is very light, bright and hot. Q199:4
There shall be -- Those that rejected the Lord found a great time of trouble
at the end of the Jewish age. Q421:3; R3105:6
Weeping -- The Jewish nation has suffered for 18 centuries and will
continue to suffer until God will forgive them and save them. R4577:1, 1095:5
Grief is indeed implied, but not
one word about an eternity of grief and pain. HG303:2
Gnashing of teeth -- Signifying chagrin, disappointment, savage animosity; as in
the case of Stephen, "They gnashed on him with their teeth." (Acts
7:54) R4329:1; Q732:2
Darkness respecting transpiring
events and, ultimately, the severity of the trouble, figuratively called
"weeping and gnashing of teeth." R3105:6
A metaphor describing trouble,
distress, perplexity and persecution. R1095:5
Matthew 8:13
As thou hast believed -- Those who cannot exercise faith cannot have a share in the
blessings offered under the Gospel call, but must wait for the demonstration of
the Millennial Kingdom. R4576:6
Some were healed in answer to
their own faith (Mark 5:34); and some, as here, in answer to the faith of
another. R759:3
Was healed -- No miracle of healing was ever wrought by the Savior upon
any of his disciples. R4577:4
Matthew 8:15
The fever left her -- Some, as here, were healed instantly; some gradually. (Mark
8:24,25) R759:3
Ministered unto them -- Demonstrating that her cure was miraculous, since the
operation of the mind could not have restored at once the strength lost by the
fever. R3311:1
Matthew 8:16
And healed -- The miracles of healing which our Lord performed were
incidental to his preaching. R4137:2
The healings had three ends in
view: (1) to draw attention to his message; (2) to illustrate his great future
work; and (3) to test his consecration vows. R4576:3
All that were sick -- "Virtue (vitality) went out of him and healed them
all." (Luke 6:19) R5096:4, 4576:3; A230; E124; F645
Matthew 8:17
Himself -- The gift which costs nothing cannot be so highly esteemed
as that which costs much. R4138:2
Took our infirmities -- At his own expense, his own sacrifice. R4576:3, 4138:1,
574:4; E106,124
"Touched with the feeling of
our infirmities." (Heb. 4:15) E106; F632
Perfection is the opposite of
infirmity. E122
Greek, asthenioas; used in the
singular when the sickness of Lazarus is spoken of (John 11:4); proof from the
Scriptures that Jesus was sick and so able to sympathize with us in our
sicknesses. R2767:4*
Greek, astheneo, meaning without
strength. R4099:6,2*
Our Lord, who had none of the
imperfections of the fallen race, needed to take from men their sicknesses in
order that he might be touched with a feeling of our infirmities. R2029:6
Not because pain, sickness and
death had hold of him, but that they had hold of our race, and he, full of love
and sympathy, was bearing the burdens of others. R574:5
The weaknesses going to him as
"there went virtue out of him and healed" the multitude. (Luke 6:19)
F632
Experiencing, instead of vitality,
a sense of the weakness and suffering of those whom he relieved. F645
Since he himself was not the
sinner, all the penalties of sin which could rest upon him must be result of
his taking the sinner's place and bearing for us the stroke of justice. E127
Thus our Lord fulfilled his
consecration and began to lay down his life for others. R3727:5
He who spake "as never man
spake" also sympathized as none of the fallen race could sympathize with
the fallen conditions, troubles and afflictions of humanity. E126
"That he might be a merciful
and faithful high priest in things pertaining to God," "in all points
tempted like as we are." (Heb. 2:17,18; 4:15,16) E128
It is expedient also that all who
would be acceptable to God as members of the Bride should be similarly touched
with a feeling of the world's infirmities and have sufficient sympathy to
voluntarily bear some of the sorrows and griefs of those about them. R4138:4;
F645
Bare our sicknesses -- Not the sicknesses of the Church, but those healed at the
first advent, to illustrate greater works and grander healings in which we may
participate, now and in the Kingdom. F632; R4138:3
A comparison of Isa. 53 with Heb.
4:15 and Mark 5:30 and Luke 6:19 shows us clearly that this prophecy was
completely fulfilled at the first advent. R2028:6
It was necessary for Christ to do
this that he might be touched with a feeling of our infirmities. F645
Being free from sin, he was free
also from pain. Since he could not suffer pain and sickness because of sin, he
was placed for a time among sinners, where their weaknesses and pains bore down
upon him. R2000:1, 809:2
We do not know that our Lord was
sick with any of the ordinary maladies. It would appear that his healing merely
exhausted his vitality, and thus left upon him the weight of our sicknesses.
R4138:3
It is the most refined and perfect
organisms which can suffer most. R454:3
The healing of the new creature
and the healing of the flesh are different things. The new creature's
soul-sickness is cured by the Good Physician, even though his flesh may suffer
pain and go into death. R4979:6
For God's consecrated people to
ask for physical healing would be to attempt to take back what they have
consecrated to the Lord "even unto death." R4980:1
Matthew 8:19
I will follow thee -- Evidently with the thought that one so gifted must be
wealthy. R5370:6
Matthew 8:20
Hath not where -- No home of his own. Only the very sincere would be
attracted to follow a leader in such a condition. R5370:6
It seems that persecution from his
earthly kindred was not lacking and that he was unwelcome in the home of his
childhood. R1069:3
Matthew 8:21
Bury my father -- Leave your service and serve my father until he dies.
R1987:1; Q217:1
Matthew 8:22
Follow me -- Jesus did not mean that the young man should not attend his
father's funeral, but that if he left the Lord's service too long he might
never return. R1987:1
Let the dead -- The legally dead. Q760:4
Here unbelievers are referred to
as still dead because of having no union with the life-giver. F697
He was referring to the mass of
mankind, all dead under condemnation, and the one who believed in him was the
only one that was even reckonedly alive. HG195:3; Q717:4
We are all walking in the valley
of the shadow of death and are now far down below the mountain tops of life and
perfection. R360:3
From God's standpoint all who are
under the sentence of death are considered as though already dead. A150,289;
Q717:4, 760:4; CR131:2; R5371:1, 3378:4, 2153:5, 1231:3, 1077:1; NS253:5
Especially those who are
unbelievers and hence have no union with the life-giver. F697
"The hour is coming and now
is when the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of God." (John 5:25)
R2435:1
Bury their dead -- The actually dead. Q760:4
Let the dead, the condemned and
legally dead world, look out for its own affairs. CR131:2
There are plenty in the world who
can attend to the earthly things. R5371:1
Matthew 8:23
Entered into a ship -- The Master launched out with them occasionally to obtain
rest and quiet. R4577:1
Matthew 8:24
A great tempest -- Its violence may be judged from the fact that even the
Apostles, who were experienced on the sea, were alarmed. R4577:2
Probably the Adversary was
permitted to develop the storm on Lake Galilee for the very promise of the
lesson it gave to the apostles. R4577:3
All are subject to the storms of
life in which mighty billows threaten our destruction. R4577:2
Picturing the experiences of the
Church during the long night of 18
centuries in which she has been
tempest-tossed. R3325:2
Picturing the great time of
trouble. R5239:5
In the sea -- The Sea of Galilee is quite subject to such windstorms.
R3324:2
But he was asleep -- Evidently thoroughly exhausted with the labors of his
journey and ministry. R3324:3; HG459:2
Evidently the Lord's providence
had something to do with his prolonged sleep under such circumstances, to test
the faith of his disciples. R3324:3, 5239:3
Matthew 8:25
Lord, save us -- If we have trials and difficulties, or inner storms or
passion, anger, resentment, we should cry unto the Lord for help. R5239:4
Matthew 8:26
A great calm -- Waters, thus lashed to a fury, cannot be quickly calmed
except by a miracle. R3324:4
Typifying the great rest from the
Evil One for a thousand years, now near at hand. R3325:4
Rebuked the winds -- Illustrating the manner in which the time of trouble will
come to an end. A171
What the Lord is doing for the
Church now, and what he will do in the future for the world. R5239:5
Jesus would not have rebuked the
storm if it had been caused by the Father. Satan probably thought he could
destroy Jesus by this storm. R5239:3
Matthew 8:27
What manner of man -- In general his wonderful personality seemed really
incongruous with his general demeanor. SM749:3
During the Messianic Kingdom, all
will know Jesus as having been a man, The Sent of God, and as the now Highly
Exalted One, far above men and angels. SM754:2
Not until the disciples learned
this lesson were they prepared to trust him with all their trials, difficulties
and interests. R4577:2
Similarly we, realizing that our
Lord now has "all power in heaven and in earth" (Matt. 28:18), can
fully trust him and rest in his loving care. R4577:2
The sea obey him -- The power to deliver from literal waves gives confidence
that he is able to deliver from every trouble. R4577:2; SM749:1
Matthew 8:28
Two possessed -- Using the human body as their medium, their body. R4577:5
Intelligent physicians recognize
that probably more than half of the inmates of insane asylums are
demon-possessed. R4577:5, 5044:2; SM197:T
Matthew 8:29
They cried out -- Knowing their final destiny, they tremble as the time draws
near. (Jas. 2:19) R606:5
Thou Son of God -- The devils acknowledged Christ when they had an object in
so doing. R2014:1
Admitting his lordship and power
over them. F626
To do with thee -- In common with thee. R3772:2
To torment us -- To destroy us; the fear of destruction being doubtless
inculcated by witnessing man's death on account of sin. R254:5, 3772:1
These imprisoned spirits had in
mind destruction as their final doom; but their suppositions were incorrect,
for Satan had misrepresented Jehovah's plan to them. R697:1,4; HG729:6
The word "torment" here
does not have the same thought as our word torment. It would mean "do us
distress," as a landlord is said to put a tenant in distress for his rent;
that is, he will put him out of the premises for failure to pay his rent.
Q222:4
This was the language of the
demons. Whatever the fallen spirits might say would not be good theology with
any good Christian. Q222:4
We shall consider it an
interference with our rights if deprived of the privilege of tormenting this
man. R3772:1
Before the time -- The demons evidently understood that the time for the
overthrow of the powers of evil was still future. R3727:2, 1722:4
Showing their expectation of some
future termination of their present restraint or imprisonment, a culmination of
judgment in their case. F626
A plea for extension of time in
which to come out of the man. R3772:1
Matthew 8:30
An herd -- Probably hundreds. It would appear that there were enough
demons to supply one for every hog, because, unlike sheep, a hog is independent
in its action. R4577:5
Many swine feeding -- The chief industry of that place. R4587:1
Contrary to the Jewish Law and
therefore contraband. R3772:4
Matthew 8:31
So the devils -- Not attempting to deny their own identity, but admitting
his lordship and power over them. F626
These evil spirits were surely
beings and not merely a disease of the man's mind; else, how could they enter
the swine? R3772:5
Besought him -- Evidently fallen angels cannot impose themselves upon even
the dumb animals until given some sort of permission. R2173:3
Matthew 8:32
And perished -- The destruction of everything obnoxious to the divine will,
even as swine were contraband to the Jewish law. R4577:6
Matthew 8:34
He would depart -- So today, the multitudes are moved specially by temporal
interests; the great blessings of the Lord go unnoticed. R4577:6
Out of the coasts -- Wherever the true gospel goes its effect is to cause
division and uproar in the kingdom of darkness. R1633:3
Matthew 9
Matthew 9:2
Brought to him a man -- The chief business of every Christian, besides that of his
own development, is to help others to the Redeemer. R3315:4
Seeing their faith -- The faith of the sick man and those who brought him.
R1921:2
Said -- Acting as the special agent, the representative of the
Father. R3729:2
Be of good cheer -- Possibly the palsied man and his friends felt disappointed,
not appreciating his work as Sin-Bearer. R4587:1 Thy sins be forgiven -- The
Lord placed the most important matter first. R3729:1
The Lord was teaching a lesson of
the relationship between sin and sickness, and his power to deliver from both.
R4587:1
The ransom-price for the sins of
the whole world was already on the altar. R1921:3
Similar declarations of
forgiveness of sins may be made by members of the body of Christ to all who
come unto God by Christ. R3315:2
Matthew 9:5
Thy sins be forgiven -- Transgression of the divine law could not be forgiven
except by the satisfaction of that law. R4587:2
The forgiveness of sins with the
Jews would imply proportionate release from sin's infirmities. R4587:4
Arise and walk -- If sickness is a judgment or discipline for sin, we should
expect that when sin has been confessed and repented of, the Lord would remove
the chastisement and raise up the penitent from his affliction, either
partially or wholly. R2008:4
Matthew 9:6
That ye may know -- That he could heal diseases he urged as proof that he had
power to forgive sins. R144:5
Matthew 9:9
Named Matthew -- Elsewhere styled "Levi." R4587:4
Meaning "the gift of
God"; the name given to Levi by our Lord. R2260:3
He had undoubtedly been acquainted
with the Lord and his work and the Lord acquainted with him prior to his call.
R2260:1
Receipt of custom -- A collector of taxes for the Roman government. R4587:4,
2260:2
An occupation despised by the
average Jew as being unpatriotic. R2591:1
Despised because it was considered
disreputable to assist a foreign government and because many of the publicans
took advantage of their position to make themselves wealthy through bribes and
over-collections. R4587:4, 2260:2
Matthew 9:10
Sat at meat -- Matthew at once made a supper for his friends, that these
might have the opportunity for acquaintance with the Lord, who was also a
guest. R4587:5
In the house -- In the home of those who have consecrated themselves to the
Lord, the first consideration should be the service of the Master. R2591:3
Matthew 9:11
Why eateth -- Thereby implying social equality. R2591:5
He was not descending to sin in
any form, but seeking to lift up sinners. R4587:5
It was the loving kindness of
Jesus that disturbed their pharisaical nature and called forth their
opposition. R539:1*
With publicans -- Tax collectors. R2591:1
Despised for two reasons: (1) it
was considered disreputable to assist a foreign government from one's friends;
and (2) many publicans made themselves wealthy by bribes and over-collections.
R4587:4
And sinners -- Those not professing holiness. R2591:3
The Master did not hold himself
aloof from people, but was warm, glowing, sympathetic, helpful, intensive,
whole-souled. R4967:3
He was fellowshipping with sinners
that he might do them good. R4587:5
Matthew 9:12
They that be whole -- He had come as a physician to the sin-sick, and they did
not realize themselves as sin-sick, and hence had little interest in the
physician. Our Lord's words were uttered in sarcasm. NS410:4
A physician -- A physician has a right to mingle with those whom he seeks
to relieve. R2591:6
Physicians and medicine were not
condemned by the Lord. He and his disciples spent considerable money for bread,
which is the medicine needed when hungry. R2009:4
Matthew 9:13
I will have mercy -- They should have had the yearning compassion which would
have delighted to have lifted them out of sin and brought them nearer to the
Lord and to righteous influences. R2592:1
Quoted from Hosea 6:6.
R4587:5, 2591:6 And not sacrifice -- God's
work in Christ was not to sacrifice the world, but to save it. R539:1*
The righteous -- Those who think of themselves as righteous. R2260:5
The sinners -- Those who realized themselves to be imperfect. R2260:5
To repentance -- But we are to recognize a great difference between calling
men to repentance and calling them to the high calling. F87
He was not descending to sin in
any form, but seeking to lift up sinners. R4587:5
Matthew 9:14
Why do we -- Fasts were intended for one of two purposes: a
manifestation of repentance, or with a view to bringing the heart into closer
communion with the Lord. NS153:1
From earliest times fasting has
been recognized as a valuable adjunct to piety. NS453:1
Fast oft -- Does not signify total abstinence from food, but a measure
of abstinence and self-restraint as respects the condiments and delicacies.
NS454:6
The more intelligent people of the
world practice a kind of fasting or self-denial every day they live. They have
an aim in life and eat and drink in harmony therewith. NS453:4
We recognize that the Lenten
custom, while not instituted by the Lord, has probably been a beneficial one
physically, sometimes spiritually. NS453:5
Fasting, like baptism, may be
either a mere form, injurious rather than beneficial, or it may be observed
with spiritual profit. NS153:4
But thy disciples -- Expressing surprise that fasting was not enjoined by our
Master's teachings as a law. NS453:1
The highest form of fasting,
self-denial, is represented in our Lord; but, since he was perfect, it is
perhaps better illustrated by the Apostle Paul. NS454:2
Fast not -- Showing that our Lord did not impose literal fasting upon
his disciples. R2260:5, 4987:2; NS154:4
Matthew 9:15
Can the children -- Why should they fast? Their sins had been forgiven, they
had been accepted of the Lord and taught to call the Almighty "our Father
in heaven." NS154:5
Bridegroom -- Jesus, personally, is the Bridegroom, and not Jesus and the
overcomers. R398:4
Jesus is pictured as a Bridegroom,
and his followers as a bride company. R5178:2
Shall be taken -- Implying that, with his return, the fasting will cease and
a great feast of joy ushered in. NS155:1
And then -- When the Bridegroom would be away, there would be abundance
of perplexity and sorrow, and then fasting would be in order, throughout the
Gospel age. R2592:2, 4987:4
Shall they fast -- Waiting for his return. NS155:1
All through the Gospel age it has
been appropriate that the Lord's followers fast with the true fasting of
self-denial, hungering and thirsting after righteousness. NS155:1
We may safely conclude that all
"abstaining from fleshly lusts" or desires is real fasting, the kind
most approved in the Lord's sight. NS153:5
"If any man will come after
me, let him deny himself [fast in the true sense]." (Matt. 16:24) NS154:1
In the Dark Ages the food supply
was made more and more unnutritious, forcing a fast, which ultimately amounted
almost to a "famine for the hearing of the words of the Lord." (Amos
8:11) NS155:2
We have good New Testament
precedent for the observance of literal fasts. R2022:5; NS153:3
Discipline the body by abstaining
from delicacies and relishes. R3659:5
Very plain diet or total
abstinence from food is occasionally desirable to many of the Lord's people who
are full-blooded and impulsive. R2260:5
Fasting is proper when done from a
right motive, but worse than useless when done as a formality, to be seen of
men, that they might think us holy. R2260:5
Typically means self-denial.
R2592:2
None will be admitted to Kingdom
glories except those who practice fasting, self-denial. Without self-denial no
one will ever attain to eternal life, neither in the present age nor in the age
to come. NS455:4-6
Let us continue the fasting of
self-denial, but let us seek more and more to appreciate and to digest the
spiritual food he now is supplying through his faithful ones. NS156:1
A concomitant of mourning and
sorrow. R2260:5
Matthew 9:16
Piece of new cloth -- The fuller light of truth due at the first and second
advents of our Lord; the Gospel message. C160; R4987:5
Unto an old garment -- Old sects and organizations. C160
It is of no use to patch the sects
with the doctrines of the new dispensation. R1084:4*
Perhaps the first intimation our
Lord had given of the fact that Israel as a nation would not be found worthy of
the Kingdom and would be rejected. R2260:6
The Gospel teaching is not a patch
upon the Jewish law, but a new proposition. R4987:5
From the garment -- Would tear it to shreds. C160; R4987:5
Matthew 9:17
Neither do -- These two parables were given to emphasize that before the
blessing could come to natural Israel, Spiritual Israel must be selected.
R4987:5
Men put new wine -- New doctrines, truths; the Gospel message. C160; R4987:5
New principles of justice and
equality among men, now stretching the old system of things, which ultimately
will burst and destroy the present social order. R1143:3
Into old bottles -- Literally, old wineskins, out of which all the elasticity
has gone; symbolically, old systems. C160; R4987:5
The bottles break -- Rent asunder by the new truths which are out of harmony
with the sectarian pride, errors, superstitions and traditions of these
systems. C160
And the wine -- The new doctrines. C160
The Gospel message, committed to a
special class. R4987:5
Runneth out -- Are left stranded, hampered by all the old errors of the
sect and held responsible for its past record by the world. C160
Into new bottles -- New wineskins, "new creatures in Christ," who
will be able to stand the stress of the fermentation of trials, disciplines and
testings. R4987:5
Matthew 9:18
While he spake -- While Jesus was at the house of Matthew, probably at the
conclusion of the banquet, Jairus arrived. R2617:1
A certain ruler -- Jairus, the ruler of the synagogue in Capernaum, our Lord's
home city. R4588:3
He knew Jesus well. He sometimes
called upon him to read the Sabbath lesson (Luke 4:16). Once he entreated the
Lord on behalf of the centurion's servant (Luke 7:4). R4588:3
Properly given audience first
because of his prominence as a representative man. R4588:5
The four miracles of verses 18 to
34 illustrate faith from four different standpoints: (1) the faith of Jairus on
behalf of his daughter; (2) the faith of the woman on her own account; (3) the
faith of the two blind men encouraging each other; and (4) the faith of the
friends of the deaf and dumb man possessed with a demon. R4588:3
Worshipped him -- Manifested his faith by his conduct, expressing his homage,
obedience and faith. R4588:5
My daughter -- His only daughter, twelve years old. R4588:3
Is even now dead -- Was at the point of death when I left home, and is no doubt
dead by now. R2617:2
If, according to some theories,
having died she paid her own penalty, she should be free from death after Jesus
restored life to her. But she died again. R392:1
Matthew 9:20
Touched the hem -- The strength immediately came into her body, just as the
touching of a storage battery with a wire would draw the electric current.
R4588:6
Matthew 9:22
Jesus turned -- Imagine the feelings of Jairus in consequence of this
delay; while it added to his faith in the power of Jesus, it at the same time
tested his faith in respect to the recovery of his child. R2617:2
Thy faith -- Faith does not spurn reason, but uses it with certain
prescribed and rational lines. R4588:2
Matthew 9:23
The minstrels -- The hired mourners, some playing doleful tunes on flutes.
R2617:4, 4588:5
The people -- Neighbors had gathered, in harmony with Jewish custom.
R4588:5
Making a noise -- Shrieking and murmuring. R4588:5
Matthew 9:24
But sleepeth -- A synonym for death, but only in view of the
hoped-for-awakening, the resurrection. R2959:2
It is not extinct, has a hope of a
resurrection. R2959:2; PD61/72
Death is a condition of rest, of
quiet, of peaceful unconsciousness. E329; R5059:6, 4794:2, 4588:5
She was dead, according to the
usual human expression, but asleep from the divine standpoint. R4588:5
Because of Christ's redemptive work,
death no longer should be regarded as a perished condition, but as a
"sleep." R1126:2; HG293:5
If they sleep, it can not also be
true that they enjoy immediate communion with God and the visions of his glory.
R3028:1
The Second Death is never referred
to as a sleep. R1939:4
Matthew 9:25
And the maid arose -- Did not come back from heaven or hell, and was not
resurrected, but was merely awakened out of the sleep of death because Christ
was "The first-fruits of them that slept" (1 Cor. 15:20), "The
first that should rise from the dead" (Acts 26:23). R2618:2,4
Matthew 9:26
And the fame -- As the fame of Jesus increased, because of his miracles and
teaching, the opposition became more pronounced, especially from the Chief
Priests, as they were brought into competition and unfavorable comparison with
him. R1735:3
Went abroad -- Threatening the immediate advancement of Jesus to the
kingly office. R1754:3
Matthew 9:27
Two blind men -- Encouraged one another and both got the desired blessings.
This illustrates the advantage of Church fellowship in respect to
faith-stimulation. R4589:1
Thou son of David -- The long-promised king of David's line, the Messiah.
SM210:2; C257; E133; PD65/77
"The Lord shall give him the
throne of his father David." (Luke 1:32) C257
The Righteous Branch from the
Davidic root. E134
Matthew 9:29
According to your faith -- Now God's rule for dealing with the Church. R5129:1
Because now good and perfect works
are impossible. CR324:5
Faith should triumph, or the light
of joy and blessing will die. R5148:4
God will reward us according to
our faith, confidence, honesty and sincerity. R5594:1
Much faith, much rest; little
faith, little rest. R5433:4, 3841:6
Faith which has a true foundation
is very precious in the Lord's sight. R5095:6
Faith is a matter of steps and
development; and only the developed faith could possibly bring to us the
blessing of the Abrahamic covenant. R4377:2
Our faith must be corroborated by
our works, but these cannot be perfect because of weakness. Only our faith and
intention can be perfect now, and according to these the Lord deals with us.
NS70:5
Faith brings advancement towards
holiness. PT391:1*
Every exercise of faith is based
on something real and tangible to faith. R5717:5 Not works, as will be the case
during the Millennial age. F113
Matthew 9:31
Spread abroad his fame -- Their joy was so great that the Lord's humility in the
matter served to draw forth their praises the louder. NS70:5; R4589:1
Those healed of blindness loudly
praised the Lord. So with us when the eyes of our understanding are opened: we
cannot refrain from telling the good tidings. R4589:1
Matthew 9:34
Casteth out devils -- Greek, daimonion, demons, unclean spirits, familiar
spirits, the fallen angels. R5183:3; SM548:3
Through -- That would be suicidal. It would be equivalent to a king
stirring up strife in his own kingdom and working against his own cause.
R1736:2
Prince of the devils -- Greek, diabolos, the devil, Satan, Beelzebub. R5183:3,
3310:4
No doubt, as a superior order of
being, Satan exercises some degree of control over the others. HG725:3
Until the saints of God have been
sealed in their foreheads. (Rev. 7:1-3) R4880:6
To Jesus, a "contradiction of
sinners against himself." (Heb. 12:3) An example of "when he was
reviled, he reviled not again." (1 Pet. 2:23) R4802:5,6
Matthew 9:35
In their synagogues -- The fact that Jesus could and did preach in the synagogues
shows that the Jews possessed greater liberty than now prevails among God's
professed people. R2635:2
Every sickness -- To illustrate the healing and restoring work which his
Kingdom will do in its appointed time. R5075:3
Matthew 9:36
With compassion -- Not only upon his people, but, in due time, upon all the
families of the earth. R2635:3
Compassion will be an element of
the Lord's character as long as there are any who need help and desire it,
until the close of the Millennial age. R2635:5
Matthew 9:37
The harvest -- Of the Jewish age. B15, 160; R5018:2
The end of the Gospel age, like
the end of the Jewish age, is called a harvest. B15, 160
The harvest work consists of
various parts. These are more or less important. We might misunderstand the
value of these different parts of the work. CR339:3
The Great Teacher tells us
distinctly that while his work was that of reaping, he blended it with a
sowing. R5018:3, 4891:3
He was then manifested in the
double character of Bridegroom and Reaper (see verse 15) R115:1*
Is plenteous -- The way to accomplish large results is not to hope that
someone else may do and hear and get a blessing in the service, but for each to
resolve to do what he can. R3296:4
Private conversation has had the
largest influence as far as reaching people is concerned. CR342:5
The details of the Gospel age
harvest work in detail. CR341-344
The laborers are few -- His disciples, two by two; and later, he sent "seventy
also." R5018:3, 4891:3
It was their privilege to be all
the more energetic because of the "great field" and the few to reap
it. R5075:6
The labors of Jesus and the
Apostles found about 500 brethren worthy of garnering during his ministry.
R4968:6
Matthew 9:38
Pray ye -- He wished them to feel a measure of responsibility in the
work, even though he himself was the Lord of that harvest, even though he was
the responsible one. R5075:6
The Master would have every one of
us feel a deep interest in the harvest work now in progress in the end of this
age. R5075:6
Whoever is praying for the Lord to
send a laborer knows the laborer that is nearest him--that is, himself.
CR339:1; R5144:3, 3296:1
Let us labor while we pray. R5146:1
If our work is of him, he is able
to sustain it, and he will do so until it shall be finished. If it is not of
the Lord, the sooner it stops the better we should be pleased. R4892:1
Prayers not accompanied by efforts
are not sincere. R4913:1
Send forth laborers -- Jesus is the Chief Reaper, but he is not doing the work
directly himself, but is supervising it. His disciples are engaged in that
work. CR340:2
All have the opportunity of
harvest work. CR343:6
And ask the Lord to help you be a
reaper. R3296:1,5, 2635:6, 225:5
Sometimes the Lord's people put
too much value on money and not enough on service. No place are we told to pray
for money, but we are told the harvest is great and the laborers are few.
R3513:6*
If we were all conscientious, it
would mean, What are you doing yourself? CR339:2
Matthew 10
Matthew 10:1
His twelve disciples -- Not until they had received considerable instruction from
him were they recognized in their office as apostles and fully empowered for
their special work. R2261:1
Gave them power -- Authority. R2635:6
The power for the healing of the
sick was Jesus' power. The disciples did not use their own ability, but merely
his, which he communicated to them and authorized them to use. R2636:1
They had not the Father's
appointment. They had not yet received the holy Spirit. But, by virtue of the
holy Spirit given without measure to Jesus, he conferred upon them his own
special powers. R4593:2
Unclean spirits -- Greek, daimonion, demons, familiar spirits, the fallen
angels. R5183:3, 2173:2
To cast them out -- A power used by St. Paul in Philippi. (Acts 16:16-18)
R5908:1
And to heal -- The same power Jesus had because he gave them the same
message of the Kingdom to proclaim. R5075:3
At the expense of Jesus' own
vitality. R2636:1
Merely as foregleams of the
blessings which in fuller measure would result from the inauguration of
Messiah's Kingdom. R2261:5
The truth now needs no such
endorsement as the miracle-working power given at first. R1742:6
Manner of disease -- Typifying our present privilege of opening deaf ears and
blind eyes to the knowledge of the Lord's great plan. R2636:4
Matthew 10:2
The twelve -- No more and no less. F210; CR415:4
Only twelve, St. Paul taking
Judas' place. CR415:4
Apostles -- Greek, apostolos, sent forth ones. F210
Typified by the twelve springs, or
fountains, at Elim. R4011:2
Only the males were to be the
special public servants. F265
Are these -- Mentioned apparently in the order of their sending forth,
two by two. R2261:1
Peter -- Bold and impetuous. R2261:1*
And -- Grouping the apostles, whose imperfections were perhaps
like our own, of the nature of halfness. We, too, frequently see one side of a
truth and not the other. R2261:1*
It seems now also to be his
general method to send the messengers who bear to the household the present
truth in couples. R2262:1
Andrew -- Far-seeing, careful, cautious. R2261:1*
James -- Elderly. R2261:1*
John -- Youthful. R2261:1*
Matthew 10:3
Philip -- The slow-witted. R2261:1*
Bartholomew -- Nathaniel, the quick-witted. R2261:1*
Thomas -- The doubting, skeptical intellect. R2261:1*
Tradition has it that St. Thomas
visited Ceylon and Madras. R5012:4
Matthew -- One of the heroes of faith. R2261:1*
The publican -- Our Lord's choice of a publican indicates the impartiality
of his selections and implies that Matthew could not have been one of the
dishonest publicans. R2260:2
They were classed with sinners and
harlots in New Testament usage, and the Hebrew Talmud classes them with
murderers and thieves and regards their repentance as impossible. R2260:2
Matthew is the only one of the
evangelists who mentions that he was a publican; this shows his humility.
R2260:2
James -- The advocate of works. R2261:2*
Labbaeus -- Jude, a man of doctrine. R2261:2*, 3044:2
Matthew 10:4
Simon -- The zealot, enthusiastic and independent. R2261:2*
Judas Iscariot -- The conservative economist. R2261:2*
In each of the six pairs the Lord
made one good man out of two half-men. R2261:2*
Matthew 10:5
Way of the Gentiles -- Until the 70th week of Israel's favor had come to an end.
C170; R1784:1, 1451:2; HG354:4
True Israelites only were to be
sought. R2601:2
Because all of God's covenants and
promises were still confined to the nation of Israel. R2635:6, 2512:2
No favor could go to the Gentiles
until after natural Israel had received the opportunity and used it as far as
they would. R5076:1
In due time, when led of the
spirit, the disciples did go to all nations. C170; Q547:T
Jesus did not day by day lay down
his life in serving the world, but only Israel. R4492:3
It was appropriate that the
harvest, which belonged to the Jews, should be confined to them. R5076:1
Of the Samaritans -- Gentiles with an admixture of Jewish blood. R4556:3,
4130:3, 2960:3
The mixed people settled in parts
of Palestine by the Babylonian government at the time the Jews were permitted
to return from their captivity. R3649:4, 4130:2
Not of pure Israelitish stock, nor
fully conformed to all the laws and customs of the Jews. R2069:3 Although they
claimed Jacob as their father also. R2261:2
A semi-religious people. NS207:5
Our Lord thus marking the
Samaritans as being separate and distinct from the Israelites. R2960:3
Matthew 10:6
But go rather -- Even when the apostles were finally sent to preach the
gospel to all the world they were told to begin at Jerusalem. (Acts 1:8)
R1783:6
To the lost sheep -- Not because they had wandered out of the land of Israel,
nor because they had lost their identity as Israelites, but because they had
wandered from the Lord and their covenant. R2261:2
Jesus' ministry was confined to
the Jewish nation. OV224:T; HG539:6
True Jews, and these only, were
called upon to make ready their hearts to be participants in the Kingdom.
R4593:3
Similarly today, the harvest
message is only to the household of faith, spiritual Israel. R5076:2, 1742:4
The house of Israel -- "I am not sent but unto the lost sheep of the house of
Israel." (Matt. 15:24) "You only have I known of all the families of
the earth." (Amos 3:2) A72, 97
The whole twelve tribes, all of
whom therefore were represented in Palestine. B207; C252, 293; R2084:6, 1341:1;
Q354:1
Our Lord said not a word about
"the house of Judah," which he manifestly considered was merely a
part of the whole nation of Israel. C300
It was to be a harvesting work and
neither plowing, harrowing or sowing had been done with the Gentiles, but only
with the Jews. R5076:2
Matthew 10:7
As ye go, preach -- The commission of the apostles was one of service, not
lordship. F212
This commission of the apostles
was, in the main, the same as the commission of the Lord and the whole Church.
R1521:5
Then orally; while in this harvest
the preaching is done largely by the printed page. R1742:5
Saying -- Not, "You will go to hell fire and eternal torment
unless you repent." R2261:4
Kingdom of heaven -- Promised to Abraham and his Seed. R2261:3
The hope of every Israelite. A273
It was the main topic of all
Jesus' preaching, other subjects being mentioned in connection with, or in
explanation of, this one subject. A273
The entire work of this Gospel age
was to be the preaching of the Kingdom. R2139:1, 1579:3
Is at hand -- In the sense that Jesus was present to make a formal tender
of the Kingdom to Abraham's natural seed. R4557:2
The 69 weeks of Daniel's prophecy
have expired. R3630:2
The Deliverer has come. B236; C136
Signifying that God's time had
come to fulfill all of his promises made to the Jewish nation if they were
ready for them. R4593:5
It is this message which was the
test of natural Israel and is now the test of Spiritual Israel. C136
Our message is similar now, except
that we announce the Kingdom is at hand in great power and glory. R1742:3
The offering of the Kingdom now is
much more tangible and can be demonstrated much more clearly than was possible
then, for it is nigh, even at the doors. R2636:4
Peter's suggestion to return to
fishing after Jesus' crucifixion was because he did not then see how he could
continue to preach this message. B117
Matthew 10:8
Freely ye have received -- This referred to the gift of healing which had been
imparted freely to them and which they were to freely use for the good of their
fellowmen. R449:4
They were giving what cost them
nothing, but which was costing Jesus much daily and hourly. R2636:1
Freely give -- The apostles had something to give, but not to sell.
R2261:5
Let us give to others the glorious
light of Present Truth. R5063:1
Matthew 10:9
Provide neither gold -- Showing that they were expected to be so thoroughly engaged
in the work that they would not have time to "labor for the meat that
perishes" and would be provided with their physical needs by those to whom
they ministered. R449:4
Subsequently the apostles acted
very differently--the Apostle Paul, for instance, making tents. The change was
under the Lord's direction. (Luke 22:35,36) R2500:2
Matthew 10:10
Nor scrip -- Valise, satchel. They were not to take up any collections
or even have with them anything wherein to carry a surplus. R2261:6
They were to make no provision for
their journey. They were to learn a lesson of absolute dependence upon the
Master who sent them forth. R4593:3
Worthy of his meat -- They were to expect to find a home and the necessities of
life wherever they went, giving back in exchange for these temporal blessings
the blessings they had been empowered to bestow. R2261:5
They assumed therefore that they
were merely to accept what might be voluntarily tendered. R5076:2 These
instructions, afterward changed by the Lord, are not applicable to the present
time. R2500:2, 1743:2
The messengers of present truth
are not money-gatherers; but they merely exchange, for the blessings which they
confer, enough financial support to meet their expenses economically. R2262:1
Matthew 10:11
Who in it is worthy -- Those who hunger after righteousness, truth. R957:1
The most holy people, the ones who
would be specially interested in their message, whether rich or poor. R4593:3
It was our Lord's mission, as it
is ours as his followers, to preach the good tidings to the meek. (Isa. 61:1)
R956:3
Matthew 10:12
Salute it -- Salute the householder in a dignified manner, advising him
of the object of your call. R4593:3
Matthew 10:13
Let your peace -- The divine blessing upon all the affairs of the household.
R2261:6, 5076:2, 4593:3
The family would be blessed of the
Lord because of the presence of his representatives. R2261:6
If it be not worthy -- They were not to stay in any place where the Lord's
blessing would not be appreciated. R2261:6
Your peace return -- Those rejecting them and their message would lose a great
privilege. R4593:3
Matthew 10:14
Not receive you -- It was the duty of the covenant people to receive and
entertain the messengers of the Lord; their receiving or rejecting would be a
test of their fidelity to God. R1988:2, 1742:6
Shake off the dust -- For a testimony against them, because in their rejection
they were violating their most solemn covenant with God. R1743:1
To symbolize renunciation of all
responsibility for the consequences of rejecting the message. R2262:4
Out of order in this harvest, for
no city or community as such is now in covenant relationship with God, as was
Israel. R1743:3
Matthew 10:15
More tolerable -- In proportion as anyone comes to a knowledge of Christ, he
has become responsible. R4594:4, 1986:4, 569:6; HG647:6; NS311:4:: The
chastisement and discipline necessary to their restoration to righteousness
will be less severe for them than for some who are of the natural lineage of
Abraham. R1374:2
This implies that the treatment
will be tolerable in any event. R5076:4, 1618:4
Those who have been favored with
the message of truth and have turned a deaf ear, while professing to be
followers of Christ, will find conditions of the incoming age less favorable to
them than to heathen people. R5980:4
The land of Sodom -- Who sinned against the dimmed and waning light of nature.
R1618:4
Those Sodomites were condemned to
death before they were born, as are all of Adam's children. The only thing that
came upon the Sodomites specially was that they died violent deaths. R5076:5
The Sodomites were wickedly
immoral; yet they were less wicked than those who, after hearing the Gospel,
reject it. R4594:1, 5076:4; PD24/35
Day of judgment -- The whole world will be on trial for everlasting life or
everlasting death in the Millennial age. R4594:4
Than for that city -- The condemnation was not an individual one, either then or
at the full end of their age. R1743:2
The condemnation was not to
eternal death, but to the deprivation of the privileges and blessings of the
new dispensation then about to be offered to them. R1743:1
The people of Jerusalem suffered
more in their time of trouble (AD 69-70) than did the people of Sodom and
Gomorrha in their calamity. R2262:4
The sin of carelessness in respect
to the message of the Kingdom is, in God's sight, an indication of a still
meaner condition of heart, of a still more wicked person. R5076:4
Either fleshly or spiritual: upon
fleshly Israel a terrible overthrow accompanied with desolation and famine;
upon nominal spiritual Israel a period of unparalleled trouble. R1743:4
Matthew 10:16
Behold -- The remainder of the chapter shows that the work of the
apostles then sent forth typifies the entire work of this Gospel age. R2262:4
In the midst of wolves -- "For grievous wolves shall enter in among you, not
sparing the flock." (Acts 20:29) R3331:3
Be ye therefore wise -- Neat in appearance; kind, interested and dignified in
language and manner; taking advantage of all circumstances to stir up interest.
R825:3
We are to do nothing foolish nor
go out on the streets to stir up trouble, but use the spirit of a sound mind--gentleness,
meekness, patience, brotherly-kindness and love. R5846:4
Just as Peter was patient in his
explanation of the Lord's providence and leadings in respect to the greater
lengths and breadths of divine favor. (Acts 11) R2996:5
On every occasion use wisdom, and
pray to God in regard to any important step in your life or home. Q543:T
Wisdom is to be exercised in the
presentation of the Lord's Word. CR156:4; R5146:3, 5151:6
With our burning love and zeal for
God and righteousness, we should also have moderation. R4712:2
There is a mild way of doing
things that will avoid much of the bitterness and reproach, and that is the
better way. Q740:4
Do not attempt to tell all about
the plan of God. The reading will do that better. Tell just enough to make them
desire to know more. R825:4
We are not to choke Christian
brethren who are merest babes in the knowledge of God's Word. R5151:3, 868:4
Not giving strong meat to those
who are babes in Christ, but first the sincere milk of the word, and afterward
stronger truth as they are able to bear it. R657:5* If you have opportunity to
help one out of wrong views into right views, it should be done with sympathy.
R5604:4
In training children, follow the
directions of the Lord's Word. Q545:1
Many of the Lord's people need to
learn tactfulness; some mistakenly believe that they must use no tact--that to
do so would be dishonest. R4130:6
A spirit boasting or glorying over
others, because our views are more consistent than theirs, will always drive
them away. We might use the truth as a club to show our strength, but it will
not bring men to God. R746:1*
As serpents -- The serpent does not, in approaching his victim, rush out
in a manner to frighten, intimidate and repulse. His approaches are very
careful, and yet effectual. R745:3*
If necessary, he can wait long and
patiently, while the victim runs or flees, still holding himself in that
position which will most favorably influence. R745:6*
The cat usually conceals itself,
but the serpent often presents itself to full view and, by the attraction which
it presents, secures its object. R745:6*
Harmless as doves -- In talking to friends, we should not give any hint that
they do not belong to the family of God; it is better to class ourselves in
with all as true neighbors. R5146:3
Matthew 10:17
Beware of men -- Evil men. R1670:6
In their synagogues -- The Lord and apostles could teach the people there for a
time; but as they shunned not to declare the whole counsel of God, they soon
found little, and finally, no opportunity to teach the people there. R986:5
Matthew 10:18
Brought before governors -- Strikingly fulfilled by Paul before King Agrippa. R1569:4
Matthew 10:19
Take no thought -- Beforehand; relying on God's power. R5330:4
The Greek here seems to give the
thought: Do not be worried when you shall be brought before kings and judges.
R5330:4
Applied with special force to the
early Church when our Lord's followers were ignorant and unlearned, uneducated.
R5330:5
It shall be given you -- Perhaps by suggestions from another, perhaps through the
testimony of someone else, or it may be a text of Scripture that would come to
mind. R5330:4
Supernatural assistance,
illustrated in the first Christian persecution: Peter, as spokesman, was
"filled with the holy Spirit." (Acts 4:8) R2939:5
Matthew 10:20
Spirit of your Father -- The right thought of ordination. R5363:1
The apostles had not yet received
the spirit of the Father directly. It had been imparted to the Son, and he
shared it with them. R5363:1
Whoever heard them and despised
them also despised the Master and the Father. R5363:6
Speaketh in you -- Not that we are to expect to have miraculous powers of
speech granted us, but that we will be filled with the truth. Then it will be
true that it will not be our own wisdom, nor our own plan, that we shall
declare. R2636:5
Matthew 10:22
Be hated of all men -- Our Lord's faithfulness made him of "no
reputation." Paul and the early Church were "counted fools" for
Christ's sake. Whoever shall live godly in the present time shall "suffer
persecution" of some sort. R1109:6
The world does not realize that
the body of Christ, now in humiliation, is a body of kings and priests, who
shall by and by bear rule over angels and men. R1102:2
If you faithfully exercise your
ambassadorship. E490; R2852:6
Endureth to the end -- A diamond is tested by being put under pressure; so God
allows us to come under the constant pressure of years of toil, care and
self-sacrifice to see how well we will endure. R3104:1
Matthew 10:23
They persecute you -- Whosoever is faithful will suffer persecution. To be
without opposition is proof that God is not dealing with us as sons. R5223:4
Flee ye into another -- From troubles too great to be borne. F508
Illustrated by Paul's flight from
Iconium to Lystra (Acts 14:6) and from Lystra to Derbe (Acts 14:20). R4368:6,
1472:4
Illustrated by Paul's flight from
Damascus: "Through a window in a basket was I let down by the wall, and
escaped his hands." (2 Cor. 11:33) R3738:3
At the first great persecution in
Jerusalem, "They that were scattered abroad went everywhere, preaching the
Word." (Acts 8:4) R2959:2
We should not always flee
persecutions, but sometimes it might be an indication from the Lord that he has
service for us in some other field of labor. R4409:4
But we are not authorized to
retaliate. R3738:3
The cities of Israel -- The time is short but we shall have time, and no more, to
go over all the cities of spiritual Israel before the grand consummation.
R2645:3
Son of man be come -- Be presented as king, and the testing of the nation reach
its climax, reached when our Lord declared their house henceforth left
desolate. (Luke 13:35) R2645:2; HG161:2
Signified that the mission of the
Church, witnessing to all nations, will not be more than accomplished before
the coming of the Lord in the power and glory of his Kingdom. R4011:2
Matthew 10:24
Not above his master -- As our Lord suffered violence from the Prince of this
world, so will his followers. OV343:2
Nor the servant -- These words forewarn us to expect similarly false
accusations and cruel treatment. R4473:4
Above his lord -- He taught in various synagogues carrying the same message,
which always had the effect to draw the few and repel the many. R356:5
Matthew 10:25
Be as his master -- It will probably be the privilege of the last members of
the body of Christ to suffer violence, as did the Head. C231
As his lord -- If the majority heard his words, you might expect them to
hear yours; but if as a mass they rejected his words, they will reject yours
also. R571:5
If they have called -- The chief religionists of his day. E236; R374:3
If they say all manner of
evil against him, what must you expect? CR163:3
Beelzebub -- A prince of devils. E236; R374:4
Because he pointed out their false
doctrines. E236
How much more -- Particularly in the case of a faithful and capable elder.
F293
Them of his household -- In these, as representatives of the Heavenly Kingdom, the
Kingdom of Heaven has suffered violence through- out the Gospel age. CR492:5
They crucified him; do you expect
they would receive you very favorably? Q688:1
Matthew 10:26
Is nothing covered -- This prophecy is as true in the judgment of nations as of
individuals. D541
The greater portion of divine
truth has been expressed under cover so that its full import is not always
discernible. R801:2*
Serving several objects: (1) the
successful development of God's plan; (2) the saving from discouragement
because of the length of time involved; and (3) the trial of the faith of those
who believe. R801:2*
Not be revealed -- A testimony dreaded but disbelieved by unjust stewards of
wealth and power. C20
The masks will all be taken off
and every man will be estimated, by both God and man, according to the real
merit of his motives. R801:5*
At the present time, things
social, political and financial are being brought to light, more and more
shaking the confidence of the people in their teachers, representatives and
rulers. NS144:6, 275:3
The secrets of nations are being
exposed. Injustice in its every form is being brought to light. Inequity in financial
institutions and in politics and in private affairs is being muckraked. NS853:2
If justice were meted out, many of
earth's rulers would change places with their subjects or be put into prison;
many of the great and lordly would be stripped of glory and seen in their true
light as ignoble. C20
God's due time has come to turn on
the light; in religion, it is revealing the true and exposing the false.
R801:6*
Remember that, by powers yet more
subtle than X-rays, "God our inmost thoughts doth read." R1954:3
Truth in every sense must be made
manifest. The truths of nature, science and God's written revelation will be
seen to be in perfect agreement. R801:6*
That shall not be known -- During the Millennial age. A303
The murderer will be faced by his
victim, the debtor by his creditor, the thief by his dupe, the defamer by the
one he defamed. R1655:1
Quite probably the restored man of
the Millennial period will have considerable of the power of mind-reading, and
intuitive discernment, over the imperfect. R1954:3
Matthew 10:27
Speak ye -- With the blessed knowledge always comes the responsibility
of making it known. R801:3*
Matthew 10:28
Fear not -- The child of God is to be very courageous, knowing that God
will not permit anything to come to him that will not be for his good. R5977:3
Which kill the body -- No man could do more than take away our present earthly
life, already under sentence of death; no man can take away our future life.
R5977:3, 2602:5; E332; CR9:1; NS396:3
Man is not annihilated at the
first death. R1449:5
Are not able -- A future life is a possibility which no man can rob you of.
God has provided it through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus. E332
However great a power, "the
power of death" (Heb. 2:14), Satan may exercise over the world, we know
that his power does not extend to the Church. R1779:6, 1271:3
Our revived souls will have new
bodies (spiritual or natural); and these [bodies], none will have liberty to
kill. R2602:4
To kill the soul -- The future life. OV169:3
The being which God has promised
shall be revived or restored by his power in the resurrection day, the
Millennial age, because of Christ's redemption. E332; R5977:3, 5612:1, 2602:4
The right of life that God has
given you through your relationship to Christ, the life-giver. HG205:6
But rather fear him -- Have respect and deference to Jehovah, with whom are the
issues of life everlasting. E332; R2602:5
Reverence him. We should have a
great appreciation of his highness and our own littleness. R4746:6
Fear lest we should lose our
fellowship with him. R5977:6
Which is able -- In spite of misbeliefs to the contrary, the soul can be put
out of existence. E332; R5611:6
God would bring no being into
existence whom he could not destroy if found unworthy of life. CR498:4
To destroy -- It is less difficult to destroy than to create a being. He
who created all things must be "able to destroy" both soul and body.
R1641:3; HG334:5; OV34:1
Both soul and body -- Both the present dying existence and all hope of future
life. SM179:T; R2953:1, 2602:5
Not only the body of the willful
sinner perishes; but his soul, being, is forever blotted out of existence,
having no hope of a resurrection. R876:4*
In hell -- Gehenna, the valley of Hinnom, defined here by Jesus as a
place of destruction and not a place of torment. HG511:3
Gehenna, the second death, utter
destruction. R2602:5, 5612:1, 4956:1, 4746:6, 3083:5, 1882:1, 1449:5; CR498:4;
HG654:1
Matthew 10:29
Fall on the ground -- He whose mind and heart grasp the personality of the
Heavenly Father catches the significance of these words. OV2:5; SM623:2
Matthew 10:30
Hairs of your head -- Our smallest interest is not overlooked. R1906:5
Are all numbered -- May not suffer injury without his knowledge and consent.
HG294:6
No accident ever
"happens" to God's elect. F646; R2007:2
Matthew 10:31
Ye are of more value -- The true Christian has, in his own personal experiences,
abundant proof of our Father's love and care. R5717:6 There is a mental
tangibility for faith; but also a physical, or outward, tangibility. R5717:5
He who has begun the good work in
you is able to care for all your interests, both temporal and spiritual.
NS659:5
Matthew 10:33
Whosoever shall deny -- Every one in the Lord's company will have been a faithful
soldier; not a deserter, not ashamed of the Lord, nor ashamed of his truth.
R5942:4
Matthew 10:34
Not to send peace -- The harvest is not a time for peace, but, on the contrary,
it will surely produce separation and alienation between true wheat and all
else. R969:6
While our Lord was courteous and
kind, he expressed his righteous indignation against evil-doers, and
particularly against hypocrites. R1103:1
Zion is at ease and
self-satisfied; and, when we cry aloud and show God's people their sins, they
become enraged and complain that we are troubling Israel. R235:4
As surely as we let the world
alone to do their own will without warning, we will escape persecution and live
at peace with the world. But as surely as the Lord did not do it, we must not
do it. R1069:2*
But a sword -- Division. R536:3
The truth is a sword in the
present harvest, as it was in the Jewish harvest. R1843:4, 235:4
Trouble between those who love the
truth supremely and others of the family; this division cannot be avoided. B236
Because the children of darkness
wage a continual warfare against the light. F533
The Gospel of Christ did create
differences in the Jewish system then, as the Gospel truth is doing now in
Christendom. R4408:5
"The sword of the Spirit
which is the Word of God" (Eph. 6:17) separates in congregations and
homes. R2183:2
Matthew 10:35
For I am come -- In the harvests of the Jewish and Gospel ages. B236
At variance -- In the harvest the sickle of truth is doing its work of
separation; not only wheat from tares, true from false, but the ripe wheat is also
separated from the unripe. R1069:3*
Against his father -- The harvest will mean, in many instances, the uprooting of
earthly friendships and the sundering of many tender ties, and the truth will
do the separating. B236
Matthew 10:36
His own household -- Because of the truth. B236
And it is true now that many of
the Lord's most faithful children live in a matrimonial furnace of affliction.
F507
Matthew 10:37
Loveth -- Greek, phileo, as filial or "duty love" toward.
R2807:2
Father or mother -- Duty love to our family relatives is right, but it must not
equal our duty love to the Lord. R2807:2
Or self, or popularity, or worldly
prosperity, or honor of men, or human theories and systems. D268; R942:1
More than me -- And my truth. C210
Not preventing love for others, in
proportion as they are good and pure; but if a clash of interest should come,
we should be ready to decide for the Lord at once. R874:3
Signifies a cutting off of every
other love that would conflict with our love for the Lord. Our earthly loves
are to be counted as nothing in comparison. R5426:2 "Lovest thou me more
than these?" (John 21:15) R2808:6
Matthew 10:38
Not his cross -- Not sharing the Lord's reproaches and self-denials. R901:6
Not worthy of me -- Not of the class he wishes to make his bride. R901:6
If we turn aside from the path of
humiliation and daily cross-bearing and strife for present exaltation and
preferment, we are forgetting the very conditions upon which the future
exaltation depends. R1988:2
Matthew 10:39
Findeth his life -- Greek, psuche, soul, being. E335; R248:6
To lay hold on what remains of our
earthly life and begin again to live after the flesh is to lose all claim upon
the spiritual life. R936:5
Shall lose it -- He who keeps hold of the life already consecrated to sacrifice,
thereby loses all life. R936:5
Loseth his life -- Surrenders his earthly life. R5476:1
Self-denial, even unto death.
R4920:3, 936:2
The life to which we are justified
by our faith in Jesus' ransom must be laid down, even as he laid down his life.
(John 10:18) R814:2*
We cannot fully possess the new
divine nature until the human nature is entirely dissolved, dead. R936:5
Shall find it -- Life much more abundant than now possessed. R936:5
Shall gain glory, honor,
immortality; the divine nature. R5436:1
Matthew 10:40
Receiveth me -- The Lord is represented by every saint who is a member of
his body. R547:6
Receiveth him -- They represented God as his mouthpieces whom he authorized
to speak in his name. R3764:1
As the Queen is the Empress of
India, she rules it through the agents of her government. Millions of her
subjects, who have never seen her, respect and recognize her authority. R453:4
Matthew 10:41
A prophet's reward -- In the Millennial age. R1469:6
Receiveth a righteous man --
It is toward the brethren of Christ
that we should be particularly careful to exercise hospitality, even though
they be strangers to us, if we recognize in them the Master's likeness, his
spirit. R3432:1
In the name of -- Because he is a disciple. R1655:3, 1469:6
Matthew 10:42
And whosoever -- Including even a worldly man. T93
Including even the poor thief who
spoke kindly to the dying Savior. F669
Shall give to drink -- But whosoever would harm one of the "little ones"
who believed in him would have punishment. (Matt. 18:6) R5463:5
These little ones -- Of the little flock. R412:1
These were the "little
ones" in malice and pride, and in the world's estimate. R2063:4
A cup of cold water -- Money for the Lord's work need not be refused if
voluntarily offered by outsiders. F347
Some word or look or act of
encouragement. R2073:1*
Not lose his reward -- In the Millennial age. R1469:6, 2612:6, 722:1, 259:1; T93
Rewarded for having ministered to
the members of the Lord's body. R412:1
One highly exalted on the
spiritual plane will not forget or ignore such loving loyalty of some earthly
friends, and will surely manifest some special favor to such. R1821:2
Not a reward of glory, honor,
immortality, but a good reward, more than compensating for the kindness they
performed. R2701:4
If not in this life, in the life
to come. R2847:3, 1655:3
Matthew 11
Matthew 11:1
In their cities -- In "Galilee of the nations," amongst those who
made less religious profession, and amongst whom were few scribes, Pharisees or
Doctors of the Law. R4594:6
Matthew 11:2
In the prison -- Jesus had not made any attempt to deliver his forerunner
from prison, although he continually manifested great power in the healing of
diseases and casting out of devils. R4594:6
Matthew 11:3
Art thou he -- Or are you also merely a forerunner, as I was. R748:2
Doubtless the principal cause of
John's doubts was the disappointment of his Jewish expectations as to the
manner of Christ's coming. The same is true today. R629:5
Perhaps supposing that, when
appointed, Jesus would publicly announce himself with power and authority and
bring honor and dignity to all associated with him. R748:2
Look for another -- For a still greater Messiah, of whom you are but a
forerunner. R4594:6, 2621:1
Matthew 11:4
Go and shew John -- He expected John to be able to discern the time by the
events. R748:2
When God would make known to us
any great truth, he does not confine himself to any one method of proving it,
but gives evidence in various ways. R629:3
These things -- It was by these that the Israelites were to recognize him
as the Messiah, in fulfillment of the predictions of the prophets. R1314:6
Hear and see -- And now what do we see? The aims and threats of the
discontent are against the wealthy, the Jew once more finding a home in the
land of promise--evidences that Messiah is present again. R748:3-5
Jesus did not say, Go and tell
John that we are now living in the beginning of the 70th week of Daniel's
prophecy (Dan. 9:24-27), though that was true. R629:2
Matthew 11:5
Receive their sight -- It was the fulfillment of Isa. 61:1, the prophecy of his
mission, to which Jesus called John's attention. R629:4 But we should not
forget that Jesus' miracles were performed with a great deal of secrecy and
over a large area of the country. The majority of Jews probably never saw one
of the healed persons. R748:3
In due time the eyes and ears of
understanding of all mankind will be opened. PD64/74
The dead are raised -- Jesus proclaimed liberty to the captives of death,
illustrating the power to liberate by loosing a few from the bands of death.
R629:4
And the poor -- Now, as then, it is the poor, the meek, who receive him
gladly and to whom his special attention is directed. R629:5
Matthew 11:6
Not be offended -- Not allow John's faith to stumble in respect to me. R4595:1
Matthew 11:7
A reed -- A weak, pliable character, easily shaken. R4595:1, 2622:1
Shaken with the wind -- No! They found John a rugged character, strong, independent
in the advocacy of truth. R4595:1
With every wind of doctrine and
fancy. R2622:1
Was it because God spoke to him as
the wind makes music through the reeds? R5031:1
Matthew 11:8
In soft raiment -- Giving evidence of being related to the great, the wealthy,
the noble of that time? No! He was simply clad and lived in seclusion. R4595:1
Matthew 11:9
A prophet -- Declaring the message of repentance, but also foretelling
future events: that Jesus was the Lamb of God and that the Lord would baptize
people with the holy Spirit and with fire. R4112:3
More than a prophet -- This noble character was God's chosen servant for heralding
the Messiah to Israel. R4594:3
Matthew 11:10
Prepare thy way -- It was John's honor to herald the Lord in the flesh; it is
our distinction to proclaim the parousia of the Son of Man and his glorious
reign. R4113:1
Preparation for Jesus. His message
was that the Kingdom of Heaven was about to be offered to them. R5031:1
Matthew 11:11
Not risen a greater -- The most highly honored of all the prophets. R1916:4
Therefore he will share among the
highest honors that will come to the ancient worthy class. NS444:3
Great in the sense that he that
ruleth his own spirit according to the principles of the divine Word is greater
than he that taketh a city. (Prov. 16:32) R1916:1
But he was not great in the eyes
of man: never a guest at the palace of Herod, but a prisoner; not an esteemed
orator, but "a voice crying in the wilderness"; not arrayed in
purple, but in camel's hair. R1916:1
John the Baptist -- The last of the prophets and the last of the "house of
servants." To him was committed the honorable service of directly
announcing the Savior; he discharged his duty with dignity. R4543:1
The forerunner of Jesus. R4543:5;
OV199:1
None of the prophets was his
superior. R4958:1; OV199:1
Baptism is valid even if the
baptizer is not of the Kingdom class, though an elder or consecrated person
would be preferable. R1541:4; F454, 655
He that is least -- The humblest one. R3868:1
There will be some least and some greater
in the Kingdom. R1973:5
In the kingdom -- The spiritual phase of the Kingdom. R4958:2, 637:6
The election of the Gospel age.
NS369:6
The spirit-begotten Church,
joint-heirs with Christ in the Kingdom. R2788:2
Of heaven -- God's callings and elections are definite, positive,
separate and distinct, as the various wheels in a great machine are separate
and distinct from each other, while they all cooperate together in the work for
which the machine is constructed. NS444:2
Is greater than he -- John was the last of the faithful under the Jewish
dispensation. R4595:4
John tells us that his joy and
privilege was not to be of the Bride, but to be a friend of the Bridegroom and
to introduce him. R219:1; HG132:2
Reckoned as members of the house
of sons, while the prophets belong to the preceding house of servants. R4958:2,
2562:3, 1872:3, 435:3; E28
Does not imply that John was
disappointed. His cup of blessing being full, and never having been begotten of
the holy Spirit, he will not be able to appreciate blessings higher than his
own. R5030:6
The operation of God's spirit on
the prophets was so different than on the Church that the humblest Christian
may know more of God's plan than the greatest prophet. R435:3
God had promised him earthly
perfection while he had promised the bride of Christ heavenly perfection. John
will come forth as a perfect human being, the reward of his faithfulness.
R5030:5, 3868:1; NS784:3
The least one in the heavenly
phase shall be greater than the greatest in the visible, earthly phase of the
Kingdom. R637:6*; HG731:6; NS663:2
Only the blood-justified could be
invited to the High Calling, and John died before the sacrifice was completed.
D625; F112
"God having provided some
better thing for us." (Heb. 11:40) R4595:4, 2035:2
Because from the time of Christ,
but not previously, the prize of joint-heirship with the Lord is open to his
followers. T108; R2279:3; NS802:5
As Christ was to have the
pre-eminence in the Kingdom it was necessary that he should be the first member
of it. F86
Matthew 11:12
From the days of -- The Kingdom of Heaven began to have an existence when Jesus
was anointed to be the King, at the time of his baptism by John. R703:1*
Kingdom of heaven -- The Church, the embryo Kingdom. A284; R1687:6, 1598:3,
1358:6, 1351:6; Q797:4, 423:1; PD59/70; HG164:6
Suffereth violence -- Violence crucified our king, stoned Stephen, beheaded Paul,
crucified Peter, roasted others by fire, tossing them upon piercing forks.
R702:6*
As our Lord suffereth violence
from the Prince of this world, so will his followers. OV343:2
As with the Master, so with his
followers, the violence comes more from the worldly-spirited ones in the
nominal church than from the open rejectors of God. R1372:3
As a part of the preparation for
the Kingdom glories. PD59/70
For righteousness' sake. OV194:4,
343:2; R5573:6
Teaching us lessons of faith, fortitude,
courage, endurance, meekness, patience, sympathy and loving-kindness. R2130:2*
Trodden under foot during the
Gentile times. (Luke 21:24) R1979:2
Despised and rejected of men,
insignificant and ignored in the sight of men. Historians saw it not, only
writing of human organizations, called "Christ's kingdoms," but not
the true one. R2128:1
The submission to the violence of
dominant evil has not been for lack of power by our Lord, but because it is not
yet the "due time." D621
The Kingdom, when set up, cannot
suffer, but must reign triumphantly. R702:5*
The violent take it -- The Ishmael and Esau classes, and Satan and his servants.
D620; R2777:5; Q797:4
They caused the Lord's death and
the scattering of the Church, etc. Q423:1
And have despitefully used the
Head and the body members. R2935:2
Similar characters and conditions
today, in the tares. R2778:3
They have outwardly been posing as
the true Church of Christ, and have usurped the place of the true by force.
OV345:6,7
The violent prince of this world
lays them all low in death, but divine power will bring them forth to victory.
R703:1*
By force -- The violent have dominated it by force for centuries.
PD59/70
With overwhelming force of numbers
and wealth, they subdue the little handful of saints, trample and crush their
influence, and hinder the progress and spread of the heavenly Kingdom. R702:6*
Matthew 11:13
The prophets and the law -- But, though showing forth truth and foretelling the coming
Kingdom, they could never be clearly understood until the gospel unraveled
their mysteries. R702:3*
Until John -- John was the last of the prophets. R5030:6, 4958:1
Matthew 11:14
And if -- Intimating that John did not do all that is to be done by
Elijah, and hence that a greater Elijah is to be expected. R2838:6, 1687:6
Ye will receive it -- By believing his message. B253
To as many of the Jews as were
"Israelites indeed." OV323:1
But Israel did not receive John
the Baptist as Elias, nor did they receive the Messiah. Therefore, again his
presence must be heralded by another, who shall come in the spirit and power of
Elias. R1379:2
John's work as Elijah did not fail
because of his own lack of faith, but because of the Jews' unreadiness of heart
to be influenced by him. R2838:6
To those who recognized his
message and obeyed it and became the Lord's disciples, John fulfilled the work
of Elijah. R3293:1
Likewise today we announce as at
hand the reign of the Christ glorified, and point out the foretold antitypical
Elijah to those "who can receive it." B254
This is Elias -- John the Baptist did a reformatory work which was in full
accord with the prophecy regarding Elijah. R5030:6
The forerunner of Messiah. B253
Conditionally; in the same
limited, shadowy sense in which the Kingdom was offered to the children of
Israel after the flesh. HG68:5
Thus, whatever we find in either
the life of Elijah or John which fits well the experience of the Church or her
future course, we are justified in recognizing as typical. R968:4
In every particular there was some
measure of likeness between John and the antitypical Elijah. OV323:1
His relationship to the future
Elijah, the greater Elijah, was very similar to the relationship of our Lord
Jesus to the greater Christ. OV322:2
John the Baptist stood for, or
represented, a multitudinous Elijah, as Jesus stood for, or represented, a
multitudinous Christ. R557:1
As John did an Elijah work to
Israel, so the Church does the predicted Elijah work to the world, announcing
the Lord's second advent. B253; OV322:3
Matthew 11:15
Hath ears to hear -- Jesus and the Apostles attempted, not to teach everybody,
but merely those who hungered and thirsted after righteousness. R5244:1; B16;
SM51:2, 52:T, 343:3
Sometimes this hearing ear comes
through sorrow and tribulation. NS823:5
He must expect meekly to cast away
many preconceived opinions as fast as he comes to see their lack of harmony
with God's Word. B16
Not bandying the gospel in the
streets, giving a reason for our hope to to him that asketh, but neither the
Bible nor sound judgment dictates quarreling for truth's sake. R1468:4
Let him hear -- "He that hath an ear, let him hear what the Spirit
saith unto the churches." (Rev. 2:7) B16
God is not trying to attract the
world now; they are blind and deaf. SM343:3
These will have a special
blessing, while those who do not give ear will have their portion with the
hypocrites. NS435:3,5
Matthew 11:16
This generation -- Greek, genea, meaning people living contemporaneously, as
in "This generation shall not pass." D603
Matthew 11:18
He hath a devil -- Because John, as a prophet, was abstemious to the extreme.
R5031:4
Matthew 11:19
And they say -- Similarly we may be charged with pride and ambition for
making use of business methods to promulgate the "good tidings."
R4824:1
A man gluttonous -- There is nothing that either God or his people can do that
the Adversary, and those who have his spirit, cannot use as an occasion for
faultfinding. R4824:1
Because Jesus presented himself
less peculiarly than John. R5031:4
But wisdom -- The divine wisdom, divine truth. R1737:1
Expressed in the Scriptures and in
the laws of nature. R2060:2
Neither slander, nor opposition
from our enemies, shall swerve us from the path which we believe is marked out
for us by the Lord. R4824:5
Is justified -- Proved right, accepted. R1737:1 Of her children -- They
show their parentage, reflect their mother's likeness. The children of the
light should walk in the light in reference to health, food, cleanliness and
clothing, as well as spiritual matters. R20650:2
Matthew 11:20
To upbraid -- Not in the form of a tirade of scolding and abuse, but a
simple statement of the facts. R2267:1
They repented not -- The majority rejected his Messiahship. R4599:1
Not for rejecting the favor of the
Kingdom, but for the sinful condition which hindered their acceptance of it.
They were so sinful, so alienated from God, that very evidently they would be
worthy of serious punishment. R2267:1
Because the "god of this
world hath blinded the minds of them that believe not." (2 Cor. 4:4)
R2267:5
Matthew 11:21
Woe unto thee -- You have had more knowledge and opportunity, and you have a
responsibility therefore; it means more disadvantage. CR501:4; R2613:1
Every sin and evil propensity
cultivated now will require punishment and discipline in the age to come.
R2613:2
His rejection of them incidentally
permitted the sending of the gracious call to the Kingdom honors to believers
among the Gentiles. R2623:3
In Tyre and Sidon -- Notoriously unholy, licentious, unclean cities. R2623:3
Would have repented -- Yet the worldly-wise and prudent tell us that these poor
sinners passed into eternal torment without a chance. R2624:4
Matthew 11:22
More tolerable -- Because their sin had been against less light and
privilege. R5363:6, 5083:5, 4599:4
The greater the light rejected,
the more will be the stripes received. R569:6, 412:1
God takes a different standpoint
from the majority of people. He does not merely say, "Is this moral or
immoral?" Rather, "What is the heart attitude?" R2623:3
For Tyre and Sidon -- Two flourishing Gentile cities, very full of wickedness and
immorality, so that their names were synonymous for that which was unholy,
licentious, unclean. R2623:3
With their gross immoralities but
better condition of heart. R2623:3
Tyre and Sidon had suffered a
terrible overthrow in the midst of carnage, pestilence and blood. R1618:5
These heathen cities would have
repented with far less preaching. R5075:1
Day of judgment -- The thousand years of his Messianic reign. R5179:6
Than for you -- With superior morality, but an evil condition of heart.
R2623:6
Those who heard Jesus, unmoved,
had hardened their hearts and would be correspondingly disadvantaged in the
judgment day. R5363:5
Matthew 11:23
Thou Capernaum -- Who thought themselves quite respectable, church-going
people. HG236:2, 647:6
Capernaum was favored above all
other cities of Palestine because there our Lord did most of his miracles and
preaching. R5075:1
Exalted unto heaven -- Highly lifted up in privileges of knowledge, opportunity
and divine favor and blessing. R5075:1, 4599:2, 4557:1, 3726:2, 2623:2, 2600:4
Highly exalted by having Christ as
a resident. E376; PD62/73
Brought down to hell -- Greek: hades, the grave, oblivion; because they received
not the message. R5075:2, 4557:1, 4599:2; E375
Even the site where Capernaum stood
is a matter of dispute. R2600:4, 3726:3
Fulfilled in the trouble which
came upon the Jews and which destroyed their nationality. R2623:3
Not only the Sodomites, but the
city in which they lived, is spoken of as going down to hell, and there are
other cities there. HG556:2; R734:5*
Been done in Sodom -- The Sodomites were not so great sinners as were the Jews
who had more knowledge. A110; OV227:T
Whose wickedness was so great that
it brought upon her a fierce destruction from the Lord. R2623:6
It was for want of light that
these people were destroyed. R659:3*, 447:3*
They did not, therefore, have a
full opportunity. A110; R545:5; OV227:1; HG345:4
Matthew 11:24
More tolerable -- Less severe, less of an ordeal. OV43:1
That time will be tolerable for
all in proportion as their sins had been sins of ignorance. HG336:3
The punishment of that age will be
in proportion to past guilt. R2613:1, 722:3
There will be rewards and
"stripes" according to the deeds of the present life, as well as
according to their conduct under that trial. R2611:5
It will be a tolerable time for
Capernaum, and yet more tolerable for Sodom. OV227:1; A110; R5179:6, 2267:4;
HG149:6, 345:4; NS704:1
Capernaum had sinned against
greater light. OV227:1; R5083:5, 4599:2; PD62/73
Sodom and Gomorrah will rise up as
superior to some of the Jews. NS704:1
The people of Capernaum were
evidently harder-hearted than the people of Sodom and, from the Lord's
standpoint, were more blameworthy. R4599:2
Inasmuch as they had superior
advantages to others which they neglected, they would be correspondingly less
benefited by the Millennial blessings and mercies of God. NS311:4
Their rejection of him much more
resembled the condition of wicked rebellion against God that would lead to the
second death than did the conduct of the Sodomites. R2267:4
Land of Sodom -- The eternal fate of the Sodomites is not sealed:
"Sodom and her daughters shall return to their former estate." (Ezek.
16:55) R5179:6
Our Lord guarantees them a full
opportunity. OV227:1
Showing conclusively that all that
are in their graves shall hear the voice of the Son of Man and come forth--to
be judged and tried. R2267:5
The death of the Sodomites,
therefore, was merely the Adamic death hastened; not the Second Death. OV43:2
Day of judgment -- The 1000 year day of Messiah's reign in which judgment, or
trial, will be granted to the world. PD62/73; R5179:6, 4599:1, 2624:1, 2267:4
Showing that no judgment had as
yet been reached in any of these cases. R2624:1
Many of the heathen, who have
enjoyed little or nothing of God's grace, will be in a more favorable condition
than some neglectful ones who are now richly favored. R4599:4
Than for thee -- Because they will then receive and be blessed by the light
which you have rejected. A110
Matthew 11:25
And said -- Offered audible prayer in the presence of fellow-believers.
R2251:6
I thank thee Lord -- He appreciated the Father's wisdom in not allowing any but
those of proper heart condition to see and clearly understand the present call
of the Church. R4599:2
We, with the Master, may be glad
of the wisdom displayed in the divine arrangement of hiding certain features of
the plan of the ages from all except the "very elect." R4599:2
Had those rich and great seen
fully the true situation it would have increased their responsibility. R5075:5,
4599:2
It is utterly impossible to
harmonize such a statement with the common, but unscriptural, view that they
had gone or were going to a place of eternal torment. R2267:6
Hid these things -- This gracious plan which provides such wonderful future
opportunities for the poor Sodomites. R2624:4, 236:4*
For the world to have known in
advance would doubtless have been injurious. R4644:5, 4444:6
It would not have been wise for
him to have revealed all the secrets of his plan because the Adversary and his
associates would have done all in their power to upset his plans. CR90:4
The unconsecrated mind cannot
understand the Mystery of God. SM12:2
The mass of mankind are blind to
the spiritual things, the calling and election of the Church. R4599:1
From the wise -- The worldly-wise, by permitting contempt and ridicule to be
attached thereto. B29
Particularly the wise residents of
Capernaum and Bethsaida. R2267:5
The Pharisees were too
self-satisfied, the scribes too learned, and the Doctors of the Law too proud
and pretentious, because they were under the influence of mammon. CR10:2;
NS398:2
Whom the God of this world hath
blinded with the brilliancy of their own earthly learning and with their love
of honor of men. R1418:3
"The wisdom of their wise men
shall perish and the understanding of their prudent men shall be hid."
(Isa. 29:14) R589:3
Who regard it as a fancy, a fairy
story, which none but the simple-minded and children would take seriously.
R3585:2 Passing by some of the most learned, the Lord is using channels,
agencies and messengers that are not acceptable to many. R5258:4
And prudent -- Prudent according to the world's standards--preferring
numbers, popularity and honor among men and the financial emoluments of these
rather than the truth. R2639:5
Too prudent. R972:4
The keen and the shrewd, the
learned and the great. R3585:2
Those who do not believe in the
doctrine of restitution are the ones who think it imprudent to teach it.
R236:4*
Revealed them -- Not working some miracle upon the mind to open their
understanding; rather, he used natural means, reasoned with them until they
were able to grasp the divine purpose. R3910:5
Unto babes -- So far as human craft and policy are concerned; the
honest-hearted, the unsophisticated, the meek and poor in spirit. R2267:6,5;
SM13:2
In simplicity and meekness. R589:3
Having less to lose of an earthly
kind. CR10:2; NS398:3
"Unlearned and ignorant
men." (Acts 4:13) R5258:4
The Lord's "little
ones"--meek, humble, teachable. HG518:3
Those who are of humble mind,
ready to be taught of the Lord, instead of wishing to teach the Lord. R2624:6
Those who make no boast of wisdom
according to the course of the world. R2492:6
The babes in worldly wisdom have
more advantage in every way as respects faith and obedience in this Gospel age.
NS727:6
It is not possible to deceive the
child--the faithful, who ignore all prejudice, pride and ambition, and simply
follow the divine word, testing all things by it. R957:5
While the present Gospel message
is for the highest type of men, it appeals specially to the middle class of
these--the humble but intelligent, rather than the rich or great. R2692:4
From the worldly standpoint,
foolish babes to place so much reliance upon the things unseen as yet and to
ignore the prospects held out by mammon in the present life. CR10:2
Strong characters may be
developed, and high ideals attained in the heart and in deed, amongst the lowly
and obscure. R3952:3
Who will babble forth the truth
unceremoniously. R942:2, 236:4*
Matthew 11:26
Good in thy sight -- "As the heavens are higher than the earth, so are my
ways higher than your ways and my thoughts higher than your thoughts."
(Isa. 55:9) CR90:5
There is a wisdom in God's course
in this matter which is not apparent on the surface. R5075:4
Jesus appreciated the Father's
wisdom in this matter. R4599:2
It has pleased the Father to let
"the wise be taken in their own craftiness." (1 Cor. 3:19) R2624:6
God was (is) hiding from mankind
truths which are necessary for their salvation; hiding these for good,
sufficient, wise and loving reasons--reasons which our Lord understood and also
approved. NS555:5
If the hiding of divine counsel
from mankind meant eternal torture for the blinded ones, Jesus could not have
thanked the Father for that. R4644:5
Matthew 11:27
All things -- To him the Father has given all power in earth and heaven.
(Matt. 28:19) "He is Lord of all"--next to the Father, for "the
head of Christ is God." (1 Cor. 11:3) R296:3
No man knoweth -- Recognizeth. R2268:1
The disciples knew him as a man,
but they did not understand the secret of his wonderful being--his prehuman
glory. R1059:5
Neither knoweth -- To know the Father and the Son in the intimate sense as one
knows the mind, the heart, of an intimate friend. R2625:1
Save the Son -- Whose prehuman fellowship with the Father, lasting for
centuries, was impressed with sufficient clearness upon our Lord, after he was
made flesh, to enable him to say "What he hath seen and heard, that he
testifies." (John 3:32) E91
Son will reveal him -- All we can know is what is revealed. R106:1*
The Great Teacher reveals the
Father to all who are pupils in his school. R4599:5, 5075:5
If it pleased the Lord to make
known to us some things of his glorious purposes, it would be disrespectful on
our part not to feel a deep interest in them and seek to know more. NS683:4
Matthew 11:28
Come unto me -- Not unto some sect. C186; HG694:2
This is an appeal to reason.
R5422:3
This call is to the poor, the
broken-hearted, the heavy-laden, the unsatisfied. R5075:6
The Call to follow Christ. OV429:3
A call or invitation to exercise
faith in the Lord, to come out on his side, to accept his deliverance from the
yoke of sin and death. NS379:6
"No man can come unto the
Father but by me." (John 14:6) R469:1*
Those invited to be the Lord's
followers are not smitten with symbolic arrow and sword, as are his enemies.
SM53:1
All ye that labor -- The Lord does not invite the listless and idle. R1764:3
May have a measure of application
to farm labor, etc., but its special significance is to labor of the heart.
HG746:5
The Bible addresses itself,
primarily, not to the ambitious and hopeful, but to the laboring and
heavy-laden and despairing. CR15:4; NS488:1
The poor, the broken-hearted.
R5075:6
The world in general is laboring
for the things of the present life, and has almost no faith in respect to the
things of the world to come. CR16:2
Not all the poor--but the poor in
purse, in influence, in education, in character, with all their disadvantages,
have the great advantage that their condition is favorable to humility. HG746:4
Trying to do an impossible thing
as members of a fallen race--keep the perfect Law of God. R315:2
There are two classes of laborers:
the world, laboring for things of the present life; and the followers of the
Lord who "labor not for the meat that perisheth" (John 6:27) but for
that which endureth unto life eternal. CR16:2; NS482:5
You who are burdened in the Lord's
service. R245:4
And are heavy laden -- Who feel the yoke of the Law Covenant. R1728:5; R5885:3,6,
2625:2, 1540:2
Either from the yoke of the Law,
as the believing Jews, or from the yoke of Satan, as the believing Gentiles.
R2625:3
The only direct invitations given
by our Savior were to the earth-weary, toil-burdened and desolate hearts.
R108:2*
Despised and grief-stricken.
CR15:5
Who feel the burden of sin,
imperfection and death. R2625:2, 5886:2, 5737:3
With an appreciation of sin and
degradation. HG746:6
Unsatisfied. R5075:6
Weary and almost discouraged with
their failure. R1733:5, 975:2
Not only with our own
imperfections, but the weaknesses and frailties of our friends and neighbors
all have their influence upon us. NS380:3
It is when earthly hopes become
blighted that one gets the ear to hear the Lord's message. CR15:5; NS488:2
The Jews were under the yoke of
the nation of Rome, but the yoke here referred to is a religious yoke, the yoke
of the Law. R5885:2
There is a class today in
Christendom, not under the Jewish Law, but nevertheless realizing laws, rules
and standards of divine justice, and desiring to conform their lives thereto.
NS381:2
Will give you rest -- Justification. R5105:5, 4579:6, 2625:2; Q66:1
The blessing of justification by
faith is merely to fit and prepare us to take the yoke and become a co-laborer
with the Lord in the Father's service. R2625:5
There is no rest for the weary at
heart except in union with Christ. PD14/23; SM53:1
There is no rest of heart in the
restless striving of selfishness and sin; yet these experiences sometimes lead
the weary to the great Sin-Bearer. R4932:4
Mourning and sorrow are necessary
before we can appreciate the comfort which God has provided. R5003:6
Only those who feel the need of
rest can appreciate the invitation. R108:2*
The Lord's people have a peace and
rest of mind through knowledge of God's plan and character. R5403:2
I have the will and the way to
help you to come to the Father. R5422:3
In the full assurance that he has
"paid it all" for both Jew and Gentile--for all. R975:2
This rest is not of general
temporal prosperity and freedom from care, toil and all restraint. R1961:5
A new set of laborers in the
world, the followers of Jesus, with new hopes, ambitions, peace, joy, which far
transcend any that they had previously had. CR16:2
The blessed rest of freedom from
the galling yoke of the oppressor. R902:2
It will mean to us the wiping away
of our tears, the cancellation of a large degree of our troubles. NS693:6
The present rest of faith will by
and by be superseded by the actual rest of the Kingdom. HG747:1
For your souls, now; and thus you
will be prepared to enter into the heavenly rest as "joint heirs"
with Christ in his Heavenly Kingdom. R4599:6
Even though he himself was without
a place to lay his own head. (Matt. 8:20) R1063:2*
Of all the books of the world, the
Bible offers cheer and comfort to hopeless classes. CR15:4
This will be fulfilled in an
especial sense during the Millennial Age. B40
Matthew 11:29
Take my yoke -- A yoke signifies servitude. R5885:2, 4599:5, 2625:2,
1276:2*
Not any sectarian yoke. C187;
R902:5; NS381:4
The figure being that of an ox
yoked to a cart with a load. NS380:4
Jesus was inviting as many of the
Jews as were in the proper attitude of heart to join with him. R5886:1
Bind yourself, time, influence,
means, opportunities, all, to the Lord's service. This is an invitation, not a
command. R2625:5,6, 2268:4
Of obedience to the divine will.
R4599:6
He invites us to come and make a
full consecration of ourselves to him and his service. R2625:6
All in the world are under yokes
of some kind--political yokes, social yokes, financial or business yokes, yokes
of sin, of selfishness, of pride, etc. R1961:2
The new yoke would not be upon the
old creature. We not only fulfill the requirements of the law, but we do more.
But it is the new creature that does this. R5885:5 It is one thing to fight
against sin and quite another thing to join with the Lord as co-laborers, and
thus to have our puny powers supplemented by his grace and strength. NS381:1
A yoke is generally arranged for
two, and our Lord speaks of it as his yoke, by which we are to understand that
he is also a servant. R2625:3
The Lord was burdened, not with
his own weaknesses, but with the burden of the contradiction of sinners against
himself and with the burdens of his disciples. NS380:3
The Lord imposes burdens and yokes
upon those now being called, whereas he intends to completely break the yokes
and do away with all burdens during the Millennial age. NS379:6
Upon you -- Instead of the yoke of the Law covenant or the yoke of
Satan, with which you have previously been bound. R2625:3, 5885:2
And learn of me -- I will be your partner, will take the other side of the
yoke with you. R2625:3
Become learners, disciples, pupils
in the school of Christ. R5737:3
How to bear the yoke. R955:5*
Not only in an intellectual way,
but also through the medium of the heart. R1789:2
Learn the good lessons, whereby he
prepares them for future glories, honors, immortality. CR16:3
Do not attempt to guide yourself.
R1961:3
From him we learn the way; in
company with him we catch his blessed spirit; we learn of that meekness which
despises no humiliation. R1276:5*
Not until we have taken the Lord
into our daily life as our personal companion, confidential friend, counselor,
comforter and guide, as well as Redeemer and Lord, can we fully learn those
lessons which give joy. R1789:2
I am meek -- The secret of rest is in a meek and quiet spirit. R1962:1
This humility of mind and heart
was, in many respects, the secret of his success. R5186:2
Teachable. Even in his perfection,
these were things to be learned. R5370:2
Only those who have meekness and
lowliness of heart are prepared to humble themselves, acknowledge their own
unworthiness and need of help, and accept the Lord's proffered assistance and
take his yoke. NS382:6
The Lord with unerring precision
has always chosen the meek for every great work--Moses, the prophets, the
ancient worthies, the Lord Jesus, the twelve apostles--and so also the whole
Gospel Church. R1921:1
Lowly in heart -- Because he was meek and lowly in heart, Jesus could ignore
his own will, cease to do it, and take upon him the yoke of the Father's will.
R955:6*
The quiet spirit will humbly
submit to the easy yoke of the divine will and cease the strife to gratify the
perverted human will. R902:2
Rest unto your souls -- Typified by the seventh day of rest of the Jews. "We
which have believed do enter into rest." (Heb. 4:3) R2534:4
Rest from the vain ambitions and
fruitless works and plans which other taskmasters would force upon us. R1276:6*
Rest in him, our true Yoke-Fellow.
R5886:2
The second rest, the "second
blessing," the growing and abiding peace and joy of the holy Spirit.
R2625:4
And not merely rest to the
flesh--mind-rest, nor merely bodily rest. He who believes fully, rests fully;
he who believes only partially, rests but partially. R2534:3, 2268:1
Soul satisfaction: the peace of
God which passeth all understanding will rule in our hearts. R2625:4
Matthew 11:30
For my yoke -- The Master's yoke was his hearty, glad submission to the
Heavenly Father's will. NS380:6
We have bound ourselves unto the
Lord with a covenant of faithfulness unto sacrifice, sacrifice unto death.
NS381:6
As compared with the yoke of
politics, society, business, sin, selfishness or pride. R1961:2
Is easy -- Comfortable and enjoyable, an elastic yoke, meeting varied
conditions. R5886:4
To the world, consecration looks
like a terrible yoke, but to the true child of God it seems a most reasonable
service. R2625:5
Easy for those whom it fits.
R2268:4, 5886:4
Because of his love to us and our
love to him. R1893:4
Because we love righteousness and
hate iniquity, and because we love the Lord and the Heavenly Father. NS382:5
Because our yoke is appreciated
and because the Lord is with us in the yoke. Our burdens are his burdens, our
trials his trials, and our interests his interests. R2625:6
When we let it rest naturally upon
us. R902:2
In the sense that it is possible
to bear and that it is not galling. R5886:2
Because all things work together
for good--the heavier the burden, the greater the blessing and reward. R2625:5
A yoke that does not fit an animal
will chafe him and cause restlessness; whereas a yoke that is properly fitted
will be comfortable and make the load more easily drawn. R5886:4, 2268:4
That which makes the yoke set
lightly upon us is the fixedness of purpose which does not chafe under it nor
try to get away from it. R1276:3*
Few would say the Apostle Paul's
was an easy yoke, but evidently he thought so, counting it a privilege to
endure hardness as a good soldier of Christ. R1961:5
However hard or difficult it may
seem to others, the Lord's supplied grace enables those who are his to triumph
in all things. NS170:6
We may well count all our losses,
all our crosses, our burdens, as light afflictions, because of the excellency
of the knowledge of divine favors and blessings which we have received through
Christ Jesus our Lord. R2268:4
My burden is light -- Much lighter than the yoke and burden of sin. R4599:6
The secret of the light load lay
in the easy yoke. NS380:5
No one is required to do more than
he is able to perform. R5886:5
The Lord himself is the great
burden-bearer of those who are yoked with him. He will not suffer them to be
burdened with more than is for their good. R2625:6, 5886:4
As compared with the yoke of sin
and the burden of death. Nevertheless, they have some burdens which decrease as
they become acquainted with their heavenly Father. NS223:2
His will is not burdensome, but a
delight to us. R245:4
Matthew 12
Matthew 12:1
Jesus went -- Probably on the way to the synagogue. R3316:6
Through the corn -- The wheat. R3754:1
To pluck the ears -- The Pharisees claimed that rubbing the grain in the hands
and blowing away the chaff constituted winnowing and threshing, thus violating
the Sabbath. R3316:3, 4600:4, 3754:2, 2268:1
Some today who would not ride a
street car on the Sabbath would think nothing of allowing their minds to dwell
on worldly or evil subjects. This is hypocrisy. R3754:2
And to eat -- The Pharisees had a rule that no food should be eaten until
after worship in the synagogue. R3316:6
Matthew 12:2
The Pharisees -- Pharisaism had become formalism in many respects. R2268:6
There is considerable similarity
between the scribes and Pharisees of our Lord's day and so-called orthodox
Christians of our day. In some denominations particularly, there is evidenced
the same spirit of despising others outside their favored cult. R3315:3
They said -- Those who today make an attack upon the truth only cause
its beauties and harmonies to be the more clearly discerned by those whose eyes
of understanding are opened. R3316:2
Is not lawful -- Those who have little of the truth are sometimes great
sticklers for formalities. R2268:2
Upon the Sabbath -- The Great Teacher, as a Jew, was as much under the
obligation of every feature of the Law Covenant as any other Jew. We may be
sure he violated no feature of it. R4600:2, 2268:6
Christians are free to follow the
spirit of the law rather than its letter. This is true of the entire Ten
Commandments, as well as of the fourth. R4599:6
Spiritual Israel keeps Sabbath
every day: resting in the finished work of Christ, resting from our own works,
from all endeavor to justify ourselves through the law. R3753:4, 2269:5
Typical. The true Christian enjoys
the antitype. The seventh day represents a rest of a higher character, a rest
of faith instead of a physical rest. R4600:1, 2269:4
As seven is a type of perfection
or completeness, so the seventh day rest was a type of the complete or perfect
rest which we have in Christ. R2269:4
We can rest the most when we work
the hardest. Q608:1
Let our homes be the most quiet of
all on the appointed day of rest, let no sound of labor or worldly pleasure be
heard, but let our joy of hope, love and faith abound. R3753:6
The early Church began to meet on
the first day of the week because it was on that day that Christ arose from the
dead, and on that day were all of his post-resurrection appearances. No wonder
it became known to them as the Lord's day. R4600:2
It wouldn't surprise me if mankind
kept the seventh day during the Millennial age. Q608:1
Matthew 12:4
And did eat -- The emergencies of the case justified the deviation from
the rule. It was a case of necessity, to preserve life. R3316:3, 3754:2, 2268:3
The shewbread -- Type of the truth. T22, 115
Matthew 12:5
In the temple -- Proving that labor done sacrificially for the assistance of
others, as well as for their own necessities, could be no violation of the
fourth commandment. R2268:3
And are blameless -- The Law specifically provided for the labor which they
would perform, and hence such labor could not be considered a profanation of
the Sabbath. R3316:3
Matthew 12:6
Greater than the temple -- These disciples were doing still more consecrated work than
the priests and the Levites in the temple because he, the representative of the
Father, was greater than the temple. R3316:3
Matthew 12:7
If ye had known -- Equivalent to saying that they did not know its meaning.
R539:1*
Mercy and not sacrifice -- God is desirous of seeing in his creatures the quality of
mercy toward one another, rather than merely the sacrificing of their comforts.
R4600:4
It was the loving kindness of
Jesus that disturbed their pharisaical natures and called forth their
opposition. R539:1*
Consequently any deeds of mercy,
sympathy, pity done on the Sabbath are more pleasing in God's sight than
sacrifices performed in the typical temple. R2268:3
This mercy would have hindered
them from condemning the disciples. Similarly today, the great failing of many
critics and fault-finders is their lack of mercy, of love. R3754:4
Not have condemned -- The fault-finding disposition that is ready to accuse and
condemn everybody indicates a wrong condition of heart. R3316:4
Matthew 12:8
Is Lord even of -- Is the proper teacher to set forth the real significance
of. R3754:4, 3316:4
The sabbath day -- Type of the Seventh Thousand Year day. B40
Matthew 12:9
Into the synagogue -- Where they wished to find ground for an accusation against
the Lord before the congregation. R3316:6
Matthew 12:11
Shall have one sheep -- He knew their tender spots of selfishness. R2269:1
Fall into a pit -- The poor cripple had been trapped into sin and sickness by
the Adversary. R2269:1
On the sabbath -- Although labor was prohibited under the Law, it was to
bring rest, comfort, refreshment and blessing, and not to bring hunger,
inconvenience and distress to either man or beast. R2268:3
Lift it out -- Because of their love of gain, to avoid its death and,
hence, a financial loss. R2268:5
Even though it might require
considerable exercise for several persons. How foolish, then, to find fault
with our Lord who, by one word, could rebuke the disease. R3317:1
Matthew 12:12
Than a sheep -- This is something the world does not seem to have learned.
R3754:5
On the sabbath days -- Jesus did many of his miracles on the Sabbath as a
prophetic picture of the antitypical Sabbath day being the Millennium. R4600:5
Matthew 12:13
Was restored whole -- Manifesting the predominance of love above any law along
the lines of the prophecy he had just quoted, that mercy was higher in God's
estimation than sacrifice. R3754:5
Demonstrating that he had the
divine favor, and that his teaching on the subject had this evidence of its
truthfulness. R4600:4
Matthew 12:14
Then the Pharisees -- Manifesting a rabid spirit of sectarianism and
self-importance, imitated by some in our day who lack the spirit of the truth.
R3754:5
Council against him -- Less popular in Galilee than in Judea anyway, they felt
that their influence before the people had been lessened by their conflict with
the Lord. R3754:4
Might destroy him -- The Lord's superior teachings excited the Pharisees to
envy, malice, hatred and the very spirit of murder. R4600:5
They felt fully justified in
murdering anyone whose words and conduct so overmatched them as to hinder their
influence from spreading. R3754:6
Matthew 12:15
He withdrew -- Setting the example to be on the lookout for divine
deliverance and the opening of a way of escape from things too difficult to
endure. F508; R1735:1
Matthew 12:19
In the streets -- Not bandying the gospel in the streets, giving a reason for
our hope to him that asketh. Neither the Bible nor sound judgment dictates
quarreling for the truth's sake. R1468:4
Matthew 12:20
A bruised reed -- A Christian not wholly consecrated. F684
A humble, contrite, faithful
heart. God takes cognizance of it and confers his blessing. R1945:5
Shall he not break -- God kindly condescends to human ignorance and weakness.
R1675:1
If there be even a slight
disposition to penitence, he fosters and cherishes it. R1614:5
And smoking flax -- Smouldering faith. F684
Shall he not quench -- If there is even a smouldering spark of love toward God, he
will fan the spark, if perchance it might become a blaze. R1772:5, 2073:1*
Send forth judgment -- Justice, righteousness, truth. D18
When Christ shall assume his
kingly office at his second advent. NS640:5
Unto victory -- Thus making Jehovah's footstool glorious. E47
Life and immortality were brought
to light by Jesus' own successful probation. HG40:3
When all evil and all willful evil-doers
shall have been cut off. His victory will consist in the establishment of
righteousness and peace, no matter how many or how few fall in the conflict.
R1443:5
Matthew 12:23
The son of David -- "The Lord shall give him the throne of his father David."
(Luke 1:32) C257
The long-promised king of David's
line, the Messiah. E130, 133; C257; PD65/77; SM210:2
Matthew 12:24
Pharisees -- As we see how blindly the scribes and Pharisees hated
Jesus, and said all manner of evil against him, we see that really they were on
Satan's side. R4608:3
But by Beelzebub -- Satan: the first and, for a long time, the only enemy of
the divine government. R2171:5
Refuted by Jesus' refusal to
accept the testimony of any demon. R3310:4
The deluded Pharisees had even
charged the Master with being Satan himself. (Matt. 10:25) R4608:5
Such a manifestation of hatred,
malice and opposition to light came not through the "fall" and cannot
be forgiven as such. R723:5
The prince -- The chief, doubtless because of being by nature a superior
order of being. R2171:5, 4608:5
Of the devils -- Of the angels which fell at the time of the flood. R2171:5
His influence or spirit is
exercised in his servants much the same way that the spirit of God works in his
children. R370:6
Matthew 12:25
Said unto them -- The Master took the time to philosophize with them on this
subject. R4608:5
"When he was reviled, he
reviled not again." (1 Pet. 2:23) R4802:6
Kingdom divided -- Satan's struggles to retain control of mankind will be
specially desperate at its close--before he is "bound" for the
thousand years. R2189:2
Against itself -- In its continued subdivision into sects the Protestant
church has had its strength so decimated that, as the Master long ago
predicted, it is doomed to fall. R1294:6*
Matthew 12:26
And if Satan -- Whose very existence is now denied by many. F609
Spirit demonstrations are made by
spirits who hate God and have no fellowship with that which is good. They
universally reject the Bible as the Word of God, denouncing it as a fable and unworthy
of belief. HG327:3*
Cast out Satan -- By aiding the miraculous cure of the sick. F641
We advocate no general rejection
of healings and miracles as being Satanic, but a careful study of every person
or system seeking to establish itself by miracles. F638
As he is now doing through
"Christian Science." R2189:1,2, 3784:3
Now, as Satan's kingdom is about
to be overthrown, it is his effort to support it with many wonderful works.
R5802:1, 3275:1, 1644:4
Satan's power of death makes quite
possible his relief from sickness through agencies of his choice for the
purpose of enforcing their false doctrines. R1685:6, 1644:3
The demons must sham to be
"angels of light," teachers of advanced truths and good physicians,
both of souls and bodies, in order to re-ensnare those who are feeling after
God. R2189:2
He has long palmed himself off as
a teacher; but Satan in the role of faith-healer is a novelty belonging chiefly
to our day, though undoubtedly he has had to do with the relic-miracles of
Papacy for centuries. R3120:2
His kingdom stand -- When Satan would work against his own associates, it would
imply the speedy fall of his empire. R3784:2, 4608:5
The necessity for his playing
reformer and good physician today is an evidence that his fall is near. F641
Matthew 12:27
Beelzebub -- Satan, because created on a higher plane, is styled the
Prince of demons in his relationship to the fallen angels. R4608:5, 1686:1
Do your children -- He pointed out that demons had been cast out by some whom
they acknowledged and honored. R4608:5
Matthew 12:28
The spirit of God -- Influence or power of God. R372:5
Which I do not claim as my own
power. E271
If he, by God's power, cast out
demons, it was an evidence that God's Kingdom was nigh, just as he had
proclaimed. R4608:5
Matthew 12:29
One enter into -- This would be in the second presence of our Lord. From the
time of our Lord's parousia, disorder began in Satan's household. R4609:6
Strong man's house -- His household, which would include the fallen angels.
R4609:3
Spoil his goods -- All the present institutions of the world are Satan's goods
and arrangements. Q626:1; SM103:1; R1626:6
In his Reign of Righteousness, our
Lord will destroy the works of evil, sin, superstition, ignorance, etc. SM243:1
First bind -- Seems to imply that it will begin in a sudden manner.
R4609:3
The first work of the new king is
the binding of Satan. Truth will be the chain which will bind evil. When the
knowledge of the Lord fills the whole earth, Satan will be completely bound.
R430:3,6*
Before anarchy comes, Satan must
be bound. The collapse of Babylon, ecclesiastical systems and false doctrines,
will indicate that Satan has been quite fully bound. Q626:1
The prince of this world, being
slow to move out though his lease has expired, will be put out, bound hand and
foot, causing a great deal of trouble. R5328:6
Every advance step of light and
knowledge is that much restraint upon darkness and evil superstition. R4609:6
How will Satan be bound? Not with
handcuffs. Q627:2
The strong man -- Satan. SM103:1; R4609:3
"And he laid hold on the
dragon, that old serpent, which is the Devil, and bound him a thousand
years." (Rev. 20:2) C341; R4609:3
Gentile supremacy. R5526:2
That system of things of which
Satan has stood as the head. R4609:3
And then -- If the house is being spoiled already, must we not conclude
that the personal devil has been bound for some time. R4695:3*
Spoil his house -- Our Lord will spoil Satan's goods, overthrow his
arrangements and institutions that are so deceptive. SM103:1
These will be spoiled in the great
time of anarchy which will make ready for the establishment of the Kingdom of
Messiah. Q626:1
Christ shall not only bind the
strong man, but then he shall spoil his house, and during his reign he shall
distribute the spoil to mankind, the dominion of earth. R575:1
Overturn his arrangements in order
to establish a better. R668:5
Drive his household out of power.
C341
"He shall divide the spoils
of the strong." (Isa. 53:12) R575:1
When Satan's power begins to fail
because the stronger than he begins to spoil his house, then this system will
begin to be seen, revealed, and recognized in its true character, as "The
Mystery of Iniquity." R711:1
Hence we cannot pray our Father to
grant abundant harvests, send rains, prevent famines, droughts, wars and
pestilences. R798:4
Matthew 12:30
Not with me -- The side of God, truth, righteousness. R4608:3
If we believe that there is a
Chief Reaper, we ought to recognize him and look for his guidance over the
harvest field. We see different things going on, all under the supervision of
the Great Reaper. CR63:4
Are we now to have a different
Reaper? Will the same Reaper change his plans? Or shall we expect the great
Chief Reaper to continue his work just as he began in an orderly procedure to
its full culmination? CR62:6
Whoever thinks he may do a
separate harvest work, and that each should do a separate work according to the
bent of his own mind, has misunderstood the divine program. R3885:4
Is against me -- Having thus answered their objection, he showed that they
were against him and thus opposing God. R4608:5
The side of error, falsehood,
Satan. R4608:3
The entire human family is either
on one side or the other of a great battle between right and wrong, truth and
error. R4608:2
The Sadducees, Pharisees and Herodians
made common cause in opposition to the Master and the harvest work in the end
of the Jewish age. R3883:5
In our day, devotees of every sect
can meet together in harmony; but all, with one accord, are violently opposed
to present truth. R3883:3
In this day of the Lord's
presence, it becomes our duty, as well as our privilege, to judge who is on the
Lord's side; and who is against him is against us. R1362:3
So far as the Lord is concerned,
nobody can upset the work, but you can do that which is the work of the
Adversary in the way of interrupting the Lord's work. CR64:5
Gathereth not with me -- Their zeal is not according to a knowledge of God's plans;
they are not working with God. R634:4*
Scattereth abroad -- If others want to work outside and scratch around, let them
do so. Let the Chief Reaper do the interrupting if it is necessary. CR64:5
They hinder the harvest work, they
attempt to sow discord amongst the under-reapers by saying all manner of evil
falsely against some of them. R3884:5
Matthew 12:31
I say unto you -- Whether or not the scribes and Pharisees came to a
sufficiently clear appreciation of God's holy power to constitute them amenable
to the Second Death, we cannot judge. E272
All manner of sin -- Ordinary sins resulting from the fall, ignorance,
superstition, etc. R4608:6; E273
To have misunderstood and
misrepresented the invisible God would have been a much lighter offense. E271
And blasphemy -- Malicious words of opposition (see verse 36). R723:5
Shall be forgiven -- Would all, in God's providence, be ultimately forgivable,
if not willful. R4608:6; E273
Not may, but shall; but not
without repentance. God, by his goodness, will lead men to repentance. R78:1*
In some respects it is a mercy
that the world is, in a large measure, blind and deaf, and therefore in the
same proportion irresponsible as respects the message now being delivered to
the meek. NS208:3
During this age, for lack of
light; during the next age, as knowledge and strength will be acquired
gradually, all imperfection and shortcomings will still be forgiven because of
Christ's redemption, until men reach perfection. R569:6
If there is more or less of
ignorance, then the punishment is in proportion to the amount of willfulness.
Q281:5
The sins and blasphemies which may
be forgiven are such as are committed in ignorance. The sins which cannot be
pardoned are the willful sins. R1984:4
But the blasphemy -- Evil speaking, evil acting, contrary to the spirit of the
truth, the spirit of righteousness, the Spirit of the Lord, as they had learned
and understood the same. NS244:1
"He that committeth sin is of
the devil." (1 John 3:8). Those who sin willfully, deliberately, are of
the devil, and are not guided by the holy Spirit of God. NS243:6
The holy ghost -- Every sin against the holy Spirit, against clear light and
knowledge of divine power, is unforgivable. E273; R4608:6, 2612:2
The holy Spirit here denotes a
light, an intelligence, respecting God's purposes. R5105:6
Whoever willfully and
intelligently would sin against Jesus would be guilty of blasphemy against the
holy Spirit. R5106:1; Q280:7
Attributing God's spirit or power
to Satan's power. R4608:5
There may be various degrees of
heinousness in God's sight, small or great sins. R5452:6
When a demonstration of the power,
spirit, of God in doing a good work was manifested, though they might not have
received it as a proof of Jesus' claims, they were inexcusable for attributing
it to Satanic power. R723:5, 260:2
The Pharisees had not
intentionally blasphemed Jehovah, nor particularly blasphemed Jesus; they had
blasphemed against the holy Spirit which was operating in him. E271; R5453:1
Not be forgiven -- Some sins against the holy Spirit might be punished with
stripes, others with death. R5452:6
Must be expiated by punishment.
E273
The Pharisees, to whom these words
were addressed, could not commit this sin, because they had not the fullness of
knowledge. R5293:4, 5452:6
Where any measure of willfulness
is associated with sin it takes it to that degree out of the list of forgivable
sins and places it in the list of the unforgivable. NS244:3
Adam's sin was an unforgivable one
because it was the sin of a perfect being, a willful sin against the Spirit,
not unintentional, but deliberate. NS243:2
If we were perfect, as Adam was
perfect, any transgression of the law would be as unforgivable as was Father
Adam's transgression. NS243:4
Matthew 12:32
Speaketh a word -- Ignorantly. E271; R5390:6
Against the Son -- If one blaspheme the name of Jesus, being deceived in some
way, then the sin is not blasphemy against the holy Spirit and may be forgiven.
Q281:T
To have misinterpreted Jesus'
motives, claiming he was merely trying to usurp a throne and exalt himself in
power, would have been a comparatively light offense. E271; R732:5, 260:2
Shall be forgiven -- To the proportion of its ignorance and weakness, any sin is
forgivable; to the proportion that any sin was willful, intentional, it is
unforgivable and must be expiated by punishment. E273; R5453:1, 5390:6, 5106:4,
4608:6
The Holy Ghost -- Denotes a light, an intelligence, respecting God's purpose.
R5105:6
Maliciously attributing to an evil
source what could not be denied as a good work, free from sin, selfishness or
ambition. E271; R5390:6
All sins against light and ability
are unpardonable, cannot be forgiven at any time, and hence they must be
punished. R260:5
Sins against clear manifestations
of divine grace cannot be attributed to weakness of the flesh and heredity, but
must be properly charged as willful viciousness of the heart, which is unforgivable.
E272
Not be forgiven -- This does not mean that the individual will be punished for
it forever. It simply means that such sin cannot be forgiven and could only be
expiated. R5690:2, 723:5, 372:5, 260:3 If punishment does not bring
reformation, it would mean the second death. R5390:6
All who receive
"stripes" receive them for unpardoned sins, for if the sins were
pardoned they would not be punished for them. R260:3
The Lord will accept a judging of
ourselves as being the stripes due such a sin and probably give no further
stripes, because of the self-correction. NS245:6
Those who do not accept when once
they have a full opportunity, die the second death, from which we are told of
no recovery, no ransom. R44:2
Neither in this world -- During this Gospel age. R4608:6
Jesus' miracles and preachings
were the commencement of the Gospel age, as he is the head of the Gospel
Church. R723:5
There is such thing as forgiveness
of sins, both in the present Gospel age and in the coming Millennial age.
R260:2
The world to come -- The Millennial age. R4608:6
Future. The word "age"
occurs but once in the text. R723:5
Those who have utterly apostatized
here cannot be forgiven there; but the honest, though weak, who have failed of
the crown now, through weakness of the flesh, may be forgiven there. R779:5*
Matthew 12:34
Generation -- Greek, gennema, race. D603
Of vipers -- So set on the traditions of their church that their eyes
were blinded against the simplest kind of reasoning. E271; R372:5
The abundance -- Whatever one has stored up in the mind will be topmost and
sure to be spoken. R5518:6
A man's treasure shows in which
way his mind is bent. His preferences demonstrate his character. The things
which we cultivate are an index to our character. R5519:1
Heart -- Used with the force of the word "mind." R5518:4
The heart is representative of the
character, and the mouth is the index of the character. R5518:4, 5122:6, 1937:1
If we get the heart right, the
effect will be a proportionate cleansing and purifying of the flesh. SM335:1
A right condition of heart is
necessary to right words. R1937:1
Heart attitude. R5470:6
A heart filled and overflowing
with the spirit of love and truth will bestow it upon others. R4770:6, 2444:1
The Scriptures everywhere exhort
the Lord's people to be pure in heart. SM336:T
Our first concern, then, should be
for the heart, that the affections and dispostions may be fully under the
control of divine grace. R1937:2
The mouth speaketh -- If the principles of truth, righteousness, reverence for God
and love for the beauties of holiness are established in the heart, we shall
have no difficulty in controlling our tongue. R5519:4, 5247:3
He who watches his tongue is
putting a detective on his deceitful heart, and can better know and master it.
R2445:1
If it speaks slander, it shows the
real heart condition. F408; NS590:5
Our words continually bearing
testimony of the condition of our hearts. R5122:6
An evil mouth, a mouth which does
injury to others, indicates an evil heart. R2444:1
What a fearful responsibility
attaches to the tongue that wags in an evil or even in a flippant way, which is
also dishonoring to God. R1938:2
The Lord judges the heart
according to our words. R5122:5
By this we may judge or test
ourselves. OV208:4
Today, opponents of the truth use
slanderous charges rather than personal violence. R5545:2
Matthew 12:35
The good treasure -- We must reach the place where not only we do not will to do
harm to our neighbors, but where we sincerely wish to do them good. OV209:1
Forth good things -- The fruitage of kindness, mercy and love--good works.
SM335:2; OV208:4
Our lives should be so that all of
our friends and acquaintances would be ready to say of us, He is a good man;
his message will have something of consolation in it. R4277:6
Evil things -- Bitter things, poisoned arrows, injurious to all with whom
they come in contact. OV208:4
Matthew 12:36
But I say unto you -- The Scribes and Pharisees, who were trying to catch him in
his words, using technicalities of language. R5517:2; OV208:3
Every idle word -- Unprofitable, pernicious, injurious, disloyal, frivolous,
flippant, unkind, unthankful, unholy, impure. R1938:1, 5517:2, 2613:1, 722:2
Whether written or spoken. OV208:3
Our Lord referred to the thoughts
behind the words. R5518:2
The safe attitude of the soul
under afflictions and severe testings is silence before God, waiting and
watching to see his leading before presuming to touch things that involve so
much. R1937:5
Perfect mastery of our words and
ways is to be sought by vigilant and faithful effort. R4805:2
Every evil act and every
pernicious word will be recorded in the individual's own character. OV209:2
In the context, referring to words
of willful and malicious opposition spoken against manifest light (see verses
24, 31, 32). R2613:1, 722:3
Oh, the power of a slanderous
word! the power of an insinuation! Yea, even of a shrug of the shoulder!
OV208:3
Shall give account -- Be dealt with, corrected and disciplined in righteousness,
to bring to true reformation and final perfection. R1469:5, 5517:3
The wrong-doer specially injures
and marks himself by the wrong he has practiced in evil-speaking and
evil-doing. OV209:2; R5517:6
The Christian should daily render
his accounts at the throne of grace. R4805:2, 5517:6
Let us remember daily to settle
our accounts with the Lord, to make sure that no record of idle words,
unrepented of, and consequently unforgiven, stands against us. R1938:6
Day of judgment -- Day of trial, of testing, of reckoning. OV207:1; R5517:6
Not a day of doom. OV207:1
With the Church, this Gospel age.
R5517:6, 1938:1; HG40:6; OV208:2
The Church is now standing before
the bar of divine judgment. Both the heart and mouth are under special
scrutiny. R5518:3, 4805:5
The Millennial day, granting to
Adam and each member of his race an individual, personal trial. OV207:2
In the Millennial age "day of
judgment," there will be a reckoning, even for every pernicious word.
R1654:1
Matthew 12:37
By thy words -- The Lord's consecrated people have a responsibility for
what effect their words and influences have upon others. OV208:3
The Lord has agreed that he will
not judge the Church according to their words and their deeds entirely, but
according to their spirit, intention and will. OV208:4
Be justified -- Nothing but the merit of Christ's sacrifice can justify any
from the Adamic condemnation. OV209:3
The word is used here in a limited
sense. R5470:3
The good words spoken being an
indication of the converted state of the heart. PT391:T*
By our words of repentance,
supplemented by the merits of Christ applied by faith. R1938:3
Acquitted. R1937:4
Not that every man will be
justified from the Adamic condemnation by any words that he could utter.
OV209:3
By thy words -- Words are an index of the heart. R5470:5
Be condemned -- Suffer the consequences. The first will be self-injury, and
the second, a bad example for others. R1938:3
"Blessed is the man who is
not condemned by that which he alloweth." (Rom. 14:22) OV209:4
By their words the Pharisees
proved themselves dishonest; no longer worthy of God's special favor. R5470:5
The Pharisees were in their trial
time. R5470:2
Idle words will stand against us
if not repented of. R4805:5
Matthew 12:38
See a sign from thee -- A proof of his Messiahship; not recognizing his teachings
and his miracles as proof sufficient. R4608:6
Matthew 12:39
The prophet Jonas -- He then told them of one sign which would come to them too
late. R4608:6
Matthew 12:40
For as Jonas -- The various parts of the entire Bible are bound together by
their mutual endorsement of the various writers, so that to reject one is to
mar the completeness of the whole. R1145:5; A61
Contrary to the belief of many
modern theologians. A61; HG317:5
Three days and three nights
-- Indicating that his resurrection
would be on the third day. Q586:T; R4608:6, 4603:2
Typifying the last part of the
fifth, all of the sixth, and the first part of the seventh thousand-year day,
in which the body of Christ was to be in the prison-house of death. R2888:3,
3568:5*
This statement of Jesus was
idiomatic and implied that he would be in the heart of the earth "till the
third day." (Matt. 16:21; 20:19) For proof see Gen. 42:17,18; 2 Chron.
10:5,12; Esther 4:16; 5:1. R3574:5*
In the whale's belly -- If these be false, Jesus must have been a fraud and not the
Son of God. It would also imply that he was much less inspired and wise than
were the modern wise men who dispute these facts. R4151:6
Matthew 12:41
Rise in judgment -- In the Millennial age the people of Nineveh will rank
higher than they. R4608:6
This generation -- Greek, genea, people living contemporaneously. D603
Shall condemn it -- Just as heathendom will condemn Christendom for its misuse
of divine favor. D72
Matthew 12:42
Queen of the south -- The Queen of Sheba had journeyed afar to hear Solomon's
wisdom. R4608:6
Shall condemn it -- A reproof for his own nation, indicating that they were
careless, indifferent respecting the truth. R3284:6
Uttermost parts of the earth
-- Sheba, the queen's home, was in
southern Arabia, a land noted at that time for its immense wealth and
particularly for its perfumes. R2067:5
To hear the wisdom -- Her zeal for wisdom is evidenced by the fact that she
brought so valuable a treasure so long a distance through a wilderness where
she was liable to the attacks of Bedouin robbers. R2067:5
Indicating the Lord's approval of
this desire for wisdom evinced by the queen. R3284:6
Greater than Solomon -- The antitype being greater than the type. R2068:1, 1517:2
A still wiser man, heir to the
world, seeking a bride for joint-heirship. R5722:5
Our Lord Jesus Christ, the
embodiment of wisdom, justice, righteousness, with riches of grace, glory,
honor, dominion. R2068:1, 3284:6
Those who were in his presence
realized it not and heeded not his message. R4608:6, 5722:4
Matthew 12:44
Swept and garnished -- Sins forgiven and grace of God received. R5378:5
Matthew 12:45
Then goeth he -- If Christ has not been enthroned in the mind already
weakened by previous obsession. R2173:3, 4291:5
Satan will seek to regain control
through the spirit of the world--pride, anger, malice, hatred, strife. R5378:5
Seven other spirits -- The number seven representing perfection or completeness.
These seven are contrasted with the seven spirits of God. (Rev. 1:4; 3:1)
R370:6
Worse than the first -- Worse than before he came into relationship with Christ.
R5378:5
"For it had been better for
them not to have known the way of righteousness, than, after they had known it
[been begotten by the Word of God] to turn from the holy commandment delivered
unto them." (2 Pet. 2:21) R1698:3
They enter in -- Even if justified from all sins, we need an occupant for
our hearts--the Divine One, to guard our hearts. R4291:5
Matthew 12:48
Who is my mother? -- When our new condition is fully entered upon, we shall no
longer be husbands, wives, parents, children, brothers and sisters with those
on the earthly plane. R943:6
Our love to our former dear ones
will be no less than now. Our love will be greatly intensified, though not
bounded by the former limits of blood relationship. R943:6
Does not imply that the
unbelieving husband or wife is to be neglected so that time and fellowship can
be given to those of the new mind; but the obligation of each is to his mate.
F590
Who are my brethren? -- Not all who name the name of Christ. R5938:4
The word implies fellowship and
being children of one father. R2798:4
Matthew 12:49
Behold my mother -- Our most intimate relationships are no longer those of
earthly origin. R943:3
And my brethren -- How beautiful the lesson of the Great Teacher's breadth of
spirit. R5037:6
Matthew 12:50
Whosoever -- Regardless of caste or class. R5037:6
Shall do the will -- It is by our deeds and not merely by our professions that
we are accepted of the Lord. R5938:3
We are to anticipate true
fellowship only with those who earnestly seek to do the Father's will, serve
his cause, and exemplify the instruction of His word, in deeds as well as in
professions. R5938:4, 2235:3
Same is my brother -- Those who earnestly seek to do the Father's will. R5938:4
In my new family, "the
household of faith." F590
A very emphatic statement of our
dear and close relationship to him and to the Father. R297:1
And yet the hour came when even
these were scattered and he was left alone. The persecution became so severe
that they all fled. R1069:4*
Matthew 13
Matthew 13:2
Went into a ship -- From a boat our Lord taught a lesson respecting the method
of selecting the Little Flock. R4634:3
On the shore -- Which at this point is said to rise rapidly, therefore
giving the general effect of an amphitheater. R2627:2
Matthew 13:3
In parables -- Really word-pictures of the Kingdom. No one of these
parables represents the complete view of the subject, but merely one phase of
it. R2633:3
Giving prophetically the Church's
experiences from various standpoints--from the time the work of selection began
until the time when that work will be completed. R2276:3
Parables which illustrate truths
can only be seen as illustrations as the truths they illustrate become
manifest. R1742:4
These parables, seven in all,
refer not to the non-professing world, but to two classes in the Church.
R580:3, 263:6
About nine of them. Their object
was to depict the processes of development by which the Kingdom class would be
selected. R2633:6, 2634:1
Behold -- It is never said, "The kingdom of heaven is likened to
a sower"--there was no Church of Christ, no Kingdom of heaven, until the
day of Pentecost. R97:3*
A sower -- Our Lord was the great sower, then the Apostles and his
faithful followers. R4634:3
To sow -- Various classes of hearers are shown here. R4635:1
Designed to show that it is not
the eloquence, force or truthfulness of the message that determines the result,
but chiefly the attitude of the heart that hears. R2627:2
This parable refers only to those
who are no longer willing sinners, but are outwardly righteous. R4635:1
Matthew 13:4
Seeds -- The Kingdom message, or invitation. R4634:3
The Word of God that liveth and
abideth forever. R1698:4
By the wayside -- The fields of Palestine are not fenced and the paths of
travel frequently cross them. R3763:2
Representing merely formalists.
R4635:1
And the fowls -- Birds are very numerous in Palestine; a farmer's chief
pest. R3763:2
Typifying Satan and his agents.
R5406:5, 4634:6, 2634:6
Devoured them up -- Ever ready to take away the seed of truth. R5406:5
Matthew 13:5
Upon stony places -- Palestine abounds with limestone which renders the soil
very rich, but when shallow, very hot. R3763:2
Represents a class of hearers who
lack depth of character; they flourish for a time, but when trials and testings
come, they stumble. R4635:1
Matthew 13:7
Among thorns -- There are 50 varieties of thorny plants in Palestine, some
growing to a height of 15 feet. R3763:2
Not briar bushes or brambles, but
an aftergrowth of a variety of thistles which come up quickly in every wheat
field of Palestine. R2627:6*
The spirit of the world, its
ambitions, wealth and influence, its love of the good things of life. R4635:2
These thorns are not sensual vices
and criminal appetites, but the cares of this life and the deceitfulness of
riches. R4635:1
The ground which will produce
thorns is rich and very suitable for the production of proper Christian
character. R4635:1
Matthew 13:8
Good ground -- In the heart. R4634:6
Brought forth fruit -- Fruitfulness of heart, life and character depend on the
individual and how he receives the message. R4635:4
Some an hundredfold -- Those who come up to the very highest standard in the
fruits of the spirit. Q426:3; CR276:4
The larger the returns, the
greater the Father's pleasure and the Savior's glory. R4635:4
Indicates the degree and intensity
of our earnestness. The rewards in the Kingdom will also be proportionate.
R4635:5
A single grain of barley has been
known to produce a fruitage of 276
grains. R3763:2, 4635:4
Some sixtyfold -- The same class, but not to shine quite as highly in the
Kingdom. R426:3; CR276:4
The Apostle John speaks of the
variety among Christians--little children, young men and fathers. (1 John 2:12,
13) R97:5*
The same means of grace do not
profit all to exactly the same extent. Some, for instance, are by nature more
studious, thoughtful, generous or grateful. R1973:2
Some thirtyfold -- This might mean those who will be of the Great Company.
Q426:3; CR276:4
Matthew 13:9
Who hath ears -- "Take head how ye hear"--see that your heart is
in a right attitude to receive the truth. R2627:2
To hear -- "Preach the Gospel to the meek." (Isa. 61:1)
R2965:6
Let him hear -- Those who had an inclination to be his disciples. R5003:5
"Let him hear what the Spirit
saith unto the churches." (Rev. 2:7) B16
The Gospel was not to the Jews
only, but to every people with hearts to appreciate it. R2995:6
Do not expect all to hear and obey
and enlist with us. NS61:6
Matthew 13:10
Said unto him -- Earnest desire to understand every word of God is an
evidence that we belong to the Kingdom class. R3763:5
In parables -- Dark sayings. Q748:2; D614
There is considerable truth in the
claim that the doctrines of Christianity can be better gleaned from the
writings of the Apostles than from the sayings of Jesus as reported in the
Gospels. R5088:2
Matthew 13:11
Is given unto you -- The Church. E333
The meek, honest and faithful of
God's people. D614; C214
The Apostles, the elect, the
sanctified in Christ Jesus. OV230:4; R5462:4, 4909:2, 4334:3 Not only to the
disciples of that day, but to the disciples all through the ages. R1742:1
Even "as many as the Lord
your God shall call." (Acts 2:39) SM242:T
As the Israelites indeed in whom
there is no guile got the message, so a similar class will get the message now.
SM302:T
Not to inspire thankfulness and
consecration, but only to the thankful and consecrated who already have
presented themselves living sacrifices to God. R2723:1,4
"If any man shall do my
Father's will, he shall know of my doctrine." (John 7:17) R2817:1
Know the mysteries -- The Divine Plan of the Ages, the Messianic Kingdom, the
times and seasons. Q748:2; C215; R5244:6
"The deep things of
God." (1 Cor. 2:10) R5402:2, 1506:1
"Ye, brethren, are not in
darkness that that day should overtake you as a thief." (1 Thess. 5:4)
C215
Being "taught of God"
and guided by his holy Spirit to an understanding of his Word. R2627:3
The Lord's people in the present
truth are the only ones who understand the great mystery of why evil was
permitted. R1506:1
To be so led by the Spirit and
Word of the Father is to understand his purposes and be enabled always to be
workers together with God. R1948:1
A distinction should be observed
in knowing about God and knowing God himself. NS809:5
So that the Lord's consecrated
people might know of the time in which we are living, be more quickened and
more separated from the world and its spirit, and ripened as wheat. HG399:2
His secret counsels which others
cannot know. R3161:4
The mystery which was kept secret
since the world began, to know and realize their relationship to Christ as his
prospective bride and joint-heir. R1957:6
That a certain class is permitted
to join with their Redeemer in his sacrifice and sufferings in order to be
granted a share in the glorious work of his Kingdom. R4515:3
Kingdom of heaven -- An interchangeable expression with "Kingdom of
God." R396:6
But to them -- Those outside of the twelve and other special disciples.
R4909:2
The multitudes who went to hear
him; outsiders, not specially interested. R5462:4, 4398:6, 3803:2; CR35:1
Not Israelites indeed. B28;
HG399:1
Those without--strangers to God
and unconsecrated. R2276:4
Outsiders, in what the Scriptures
term "outer darkness," the darkness which belongs to this present
time of ignorance and superstition. (Matt. 25:30) R4398:6
It is not given -- The Lord never meant anybody to understand all these things
except the brethren. CR476:3
Not understood by those who heard
them, and little better comprehended today. A128
Not God's intention that many will
understand the divine philosophy of the ransom. R4352:3
The world knows nothing about the
deep things of God. R4398:6
The special light in both harvests
is for the Israelites indeed. B27, 28
In mercy, God has hidden his plan
from the world. NS731:6
The majority are blinded by the
God of this world, Satan, through various traditions, heathen and Christian.
R3140:5
Either because they never came
into the right attitude of heart to receive them, or because they subsequently
left that proper condition of devotion, humility and teachableness. R4352:4
An understanding of spiritual
things would do harm rather than good to those not spiritually begotten.
R5008:1
Even his devoted followers,
including the apostles, were natural men who did not receive the begetting of
the holy Spirit until Pentecost. R5941:2
The mystery has been in operation
from the beginning of the world and is still a mystery so far as the world is
concerned, and will continue to be a mystery until the end of the present
dispensation and the opening of the Millennial age. NS399:1
Not until the elect shall be
glorified and the Millennial Kingdom established will the "mystery"
be made fully known to the world and every knee bow and every tongue confess.
OV230:4; NS588:2
Matthew 13:12
Whosoever hath -- Hath used. R2496:6
Shall be given -- Shall be given more. CR309:3
More abundance -- The Logos, who had always proved faithful in all things,
was offered the headship of the New Creation. F64
Whosoever hath not -- Hath not used. R2496:6; CR309:3
Even that he hath -- The privileges that he had; so don't overlook the little
things. CR309:3
Matthew 13:13
Therefore -- The purpose was that those in the right condition of heart
might receive the instruction while others, indifferent, careless, would be
left in ignorance. NS605:6
In parables -- The misconceptions of our forefathers on the subject of
punishment for sin were built upon mistranslations or statements meant to be
understood symbolically. HG653:6
They see not -- There are many who lack spiritual sight, who cannot exercise
faith in what they cannot see; and, according to the Scriptures, they are not
responsible for their failure. SM680:T
God is not blaming them. We do not
smite a blind man because he does not see. On the contrary, we sympathize with
him. SM679:4
They hear not -- When our Lord was preaching, comparatively few had an ear
to hear. The majority were too full of their own ideas and projects, and thus
it has been all down the Gospel age. SM679:3
Many of the Lord's saints have had
the ears of their understanding so perverted by false teachings respecting
predestination that they do not know the song of Zion when they hear it.
NS634:3
The majority of professing
Christians are careless, indifferent to what the Lord has caused to be written
for their admonition and encouragement and assistance in this "evil
day." SM288:1
Matthew 13:15
They have closed -- Because of ignorance and blindness. R5338:6
Be converted -- Turned to a proper course. R3763:3
Heal -- Greek, Iaomai, to heal; also signifying "saved."
R4099:3*
Matthew 13:16
But -- God's work in the present time is not the conversion of the
world, which certainly is not being accomplished; but the taking out of the
world a people for his name, to bear the name of Christ as his bride. NS859:6
Blessed -- Especially anointed, specially blessed. R5418:4, 5372:6
For these alone is the message.
OV230:5; SM109:2, 679:3
It is a great privilege to hear
and see. SM343:3; NS859:6
With a present opportunity; and,
if we respond, we are now on trial. Q590:2
A blessing in the life that now is
and also in that which is to come, and a peace and joy which they never knew
before, which the world can neither give nor take away. NS412:1
Blessed indeed in advance of the
world; but blessed also will be the world when God's due time shall come.
NS569:4
Are your eyes -- Of faith, of understanding. R4677:2, 4967:6, 177:5, 175:6;
OV57:4; CR126:4
The eyes of our understanding must
be opened before we can appreciate spiritual things. PD44/53
The opening of our eyes is a
gradual work. CR334:1
God is not trying to attract the
world now; they are blind and deaf. SM343:3
Only a "remnant" of
Israelites indeed, who accepted the Messiah, were received into the higher
dispensation. R2371:6; NS631:2
The time is coming when all the
blind eyes shall be opened and all the deaf ears shall be unstopped. Q416:2;
SM729:1; NS386:3
For they see -- Intimating that some could see and others could not.
R5338:6; Q590:2
The blessing of present truth.
CR13:6
See His Word, showing us the way
in which we should go. CR13:5
At the first advent, the humble
Israelites indeed were not confused, but enlightened, and the same is true now.
D599
We may now rejoice in things too
hard for the Jew to understand and equally impossible for the natural man of
the Gentiles to comprehend. R3590:6
We are to expect a wide difference
of understanding of God, his mightiness and character, as viewed by the saints
and by the world. R2712:2
These alone see that the
"hell" of the Bible is the tomb, that there is provision for the
salvation of all--two classes of mankind--and many other truths. NS588:2
The eye of faith is directed by
God's Word. Q416:2
We can see more clearly because we
are spirit-begotten. R5418:4
He only wished to have those see
it who would accept the blessed truth. R327:5*
The opening up of the divine word,
the discernment of the divine plan with its times and seasons, and the
confusion upon Babylon are satisfactory proofs of the presence of the King.
D599
The manifestation of God's love.
The world in general has seen only the display of divine justice in permitting
the wages of sin to bring calamities and troubles. NS462:5
And your ears -- Ears of faith. R4677:2, 4967:6, 4557:2; CR126:4
While spirit-anointed members of
Christ tell the good tidings unto all people, they understand that only such as
have ears to hear will be able to comprehend and appreciate the message until
the new dispensation. NS222:2
For they hear -- The message of the Lord. CR13:3,5; SM369:1
You who have heard must have been
called. CR13:2
Thus far, Jesus has not been
dealing with the world, but merely with those having the eye and ear of faith.
R4967:6
Before your study can be effective
you must make your consecration to the Lord. These are the ones the Lord has
promised shall see and hear. CR14:1; Q186:1
An opportunity to return to
harmony with God cannot come except through knowledge; hence, it comes first to
those who have the "hearing ear." R4154:6
Matthew 13:17
Have desired -- Before the due time. R1307:5
Have not seen them -- Though much had been foretold by the prophets, they
confessed their ignorance of the import of their prophecies. B23
"They say of me, Doth he not
speak in parables" (Ezek. 20:49); "I heard, but I understood
not" (Dan. 12:8). B23
The operation of God's spirit upon
the prophets was so different from the operation of the same spirit upon the
Gospel Church that the humblest Christian may know more of God's plan than
would the greatest prophet. R435:3
Matthew 13:18
Hear ye therefore -- Understand ye. NS605:3
One of the few parables which our
Lord himself interpreted. R4634:6
Matthew 13:19
Word -- Message of the Kingdom. R5039:2
"The Gospel of the
kingdom"--the information that God has appointed Christ to be King and he
is now seeking a little flock to be his associates in the work of blessing and
restoring the world. NS606:3,6
Of the kingdom -- The message respecting the Kingdom, which, germinating,
constitutes his Church. R2276:5
The message of the Kingdom may be
said to be the only message God has yet given to mankind as a message of hope.
R2628:4
At the time of utterance, the
message of the Kingdom took on a special form--an invitation to become
joint-heirs with the Messiah, the heir of the Kingdom. R2628:5
Understandeth it not -- On such ears, the message is lost. R4634:6
Then cometh -- On the alert, to take it away. R4634:6
The wicked one -- Satan. R3764:3, 5039:2, 4634:6
Catcheth away -- Devouring the exposed seed of truth. R4635:1, 5406:5
In his heart -- In the first parable, the field is the heart; in the
second, "the field is the world." (Verse 38) R97:2*
If all hearts were right, the seed
would bring forth much fruit. R4634:6
This is he -- We blame not. The Lord blames him not. It was not his fault
that his mind was so down-trodden with ignorance that the message of the
Kingdom could find no lodgment in his heart. NS607:1
Seed -- The Kingdom message or invitation; many do not understand
it. R4634:3,6
By the way-side -- The heart being solid and compact with selfishness that
comes with prosperity, needing the plowshare of trouble. R2627:3, 3754:3
Wayside hearers constitute the
most numerous class in every nominal church congregation. R4635:1
Matthew 13:20
Into stony places -- Having a veneer of outward grace, but at heart a character
of selfishness. R2627:5 The influences of the Kingdom will give them strength
of character and take away the unfavorable, stony condition which now hinders
fruitage. NS607:4
Matthew 13:21
Not root in himself -- They lack depth of character. R4635:1, 1711:4
The selfishness which is the
sub-stratum of their character will not permit them to endure hardness for the
truth's sake. R2627:5
Persecution ariseth -- Persecution withers them. NS607:3
As soon as they find that with the
truth goes something of persecution and tribulation, their interest speedily
dies out. R2627:6
He is offended -- The purpose of permitting offenses and divisions is
"that they which are approved [by God, because they endure the tests and
stand fast in the truth] may be made manifest among you." (1 Cor. 11:18,
19) R1711:5
Matthew 13:22
Among the thorns -- Pride, ambition for self and for family, love of money and
the pursuit of it, and the award which this pursuit brings, are the thorns.
NS608:1
Earthly projects and ambitions
whose interests conflict with the interests of the Kingdom. R3764:5
Thorns are uprooted by drawing
time and attention away from the earthly things in a compulsory manner. R2628:2
In Palestine, the thorns and
thistles grow in the very best kind of soil. R2627:6
Is he -- There are many noble people represented by this portion of
the parable. R4635:2
Care of this world -- Involved with the spirit of the world. R4635:2, 5055:5
Being swallowed up by ambition or
business. R5625:5
Home duties, family duties,
business cares, etc. R2628:1
Deceitfulness of riches -- Greediness. R5307:2
Few of the Lord's people can be
trusted with riches. R2520:2
If a Christian grows rich, it
should be with fear and trembling. The power in money is more dangerous than
dynamite. R1045:5*
Choke the word -- Swamped by the ordinary duties of life, proper enough in
themselves, to a limited degree. NS607:6
Becometh unfruitful -- Fruitage is a necessary qualification. R4635:2
"Ye cannot serve God and
mammon." (Matt. 6:24) R3764:5
Matthew 13:23
Into good ground -- We, as new creatures, have the determining of the condition
of the soil in our own hearts. NS608:3
Understandeth it -- We should understand the Kingdom message. Hence the need of
Bible study. R4635:4
As study is wisely devoted to
prepare for the short earthly life, how much more is it proper for our preparation
for eternal life? R4635:5
Beareth fruit -- Of character-development; the manifestation of God's grace
in our hearts. R4634:3, 5284:2
Varying amounts according to
circumstances, conditions and ability; but always their very best. R5736:5
And bringeth forth -- The harvest of thirty, sixty or a hundredfold illustrates
degree and intensity of our earnestness. R4635:5
Some an hundredfold -- Those who love the Lord, his truth and his people most
fervently. R2628:4
The rewards of the Kingdom will
also be proportionate. R4635:5
Some sixty -- "As star differeth from star in glory, so also will be
the resurrection" of the Church. (1 Cor. 15:41, 42) NS608:5
Some thirty -- He does not speak slightingly of those which bring forth
but the thirty-fold. R2628:3
Matthew 13:24
Another parable -- He had something more to communicate, some additional
truths were to be illustrated. R97:1*
These parables are related to each
other, but should not be confounded. The first prepares the way for the other.
The first deals with the individual; the second with the church collectively.
R97:1,4*; NS626:2
To show some of the difficulties
which interfere with the best hearers, the best hearts, some with the best
seed. R3769:3
Kingdom of heaven -- Practically every parable which our Lord uttered was given
to teach something respecting the character of the Kingdom. NS627:2
The embryo Kingdom during the
entire Gospel age. R5048:3, 3769:3
Is likened unto -- It is the invisible world which is the fact; it is the
visible world which is the metaphor. R29:5*
A man -- The Lord Jesus. R3769:3, 5048:6
Sowed good seed -- The Gospel of the Kingdom from the Word of God, "He
brought life and immortality to light through the Gospel." (2 Tim. 1:10)
R3769:3, 5048:6 Seeds of truth, the promises, which, springing up in the hearts
of his disciples, transformed them to newness of life. R2634:1
"Which at the first began to
be spoken by the Lord." (Heb. 2:3) R3769:3
Christ and the Apostles sowed the
good seed, meanwhile gathering the ripe wheat of the Jewish nation. R5018:3
It was impossible for the
Adversary to corrupt the seed of truth which Jesus and the Apostles sowed.
R4635:3
Christ's saintly followers.
OV395:2
His personal seed-sowing of the
Gospel message was accomplished more than 18 centuries ago, but since then he
has been represented by his followers. NS626:2
An illustration of slow, gradual,
methodical development covering the entire period of this Gospel age. R5049:6
This parable ignores all except
the "good ground" hearers of the preceding parable. R4635:2
In his field -- The entire world. R5048:6
The civilized world. C137, 140
Especially throughout Europe and
America. R2634:2
Matthew 13:25
But while men slept -- After the apostles fell asleep. F60, 201; R4635:2, 3769:6,
2634:2, 2276:6; OV395:2; NS633:5
In the night, the dark ages, while
a general spirit of slumber regarding the truth prevailed among the Lord's
people. R3769:6, 5018:5, 4891:4
Even yet the same thing is true.
"Therefore, let us not sleep as do others." (1 Thess. 5:6) R3769:6
The Church was kept free from
tares before the apostles fell asleep by God arranging that truth be put forth
for acceptance or rejection by the Jews in its most unfavorable light, so that
only Israelites indeed would be inclined to become followers of Jesus. R2925:1
During the Apostles' days such
special gifts as "discernment of spirits" enabled them to prevent
tares from getting in among the wheat, hypocrites from getting into the Church.
R580:3, 20:1
"After my departing grievous
wolves shall enter in among you, not sparing the flock." (Acts 20:29, 30)
NS633:6
Many of the Lord's followers have
been dreaming about the conversion of the world while the great enemy, Satan,
has been sowing tares with liberal hand in their very midst. R3769:6
His enemy came -- The great adversary, Satan. R4635:2; OV395:2
He had a comparatively free hand.
R2943:2
Satan and his associates, fallen
angels, have been plotting against the divine plan and operating with a view to
thwarting the same all through this age. R3770:3
Using human instrumentalities.
NS94:3
Sowed tares -- Sham wheat, imitation wheat, professors who draw nigh with
their lips while their hearts are far from the Lord. NS94:3
Hypocrites, Nominal Christians,
resembling or counterfeiting the true, to choke the wheat, if possible.
R4653:3, 5823:5, 5018:5, 4635:3, 3770:2
The offspring of error, children
of the wicked one. R4644:2, 5864:3
Errors, more or less twisting and
distorting every truth of the divine revelation. F60; C137; OV395:2
It may be a message of morality or
purity of life, but it will not produce the Kingdom class. R5736:6
Nullifying the virtues of the
death of Christ by a method of imitation. R5848:4*
The tare seed is false teaching,
human philosophies and doctrines of devils. R2627:3; NS93:5
Bearded darnel, which cannot be
discerned from wheat until the harvest. The wheat, weighted with golden grains,
humbly bows its head; while the tares stand straight, the head having little
weight and the seed being black. R3770:1, 5848:3*, 4635:3
The darnel seed is poisonous. R3770:2,
2276:6
Poisonous, and acts as an emetic,
causing vomiting. R2276:6
Such spite-work is not uncommon in
the Orient, or in Palestine. R4635:3; CR250:6
These have run the church
organizations, and the Lord has permitted it to be so and is allowing the truly
consecrated ones to be developed under these different conditions. NS292:5
Deceived persons, misnaming
themselves Christians, because mistaught by churchianity. R2943:1
The spirit of rivalry, under the
guidance of the Adversary, led step by step to the ultimate organization of the
great Antichrist system--Papacy. F201
The tares are begotten of
error--false doctrine. NS94:3
With the error respecting the
nature of man, that he is alive when dead and needs no resurrection; and
respecting the Kingdom of God, that it came in Papacy. HG272:4
The heathen, converted by Papacy,
were not benefited, for they were still heathen in God's sight, but deluded
into aping what they did not understand or do from the heart. R2598:3
Since the death of the apostles,
any number of hypocrites have come into the church, indeed have been dragged
and coaxed in to swell the numbers. R2943:5
There are many fine, noble people
among the tares who have neither part nor lot with the wheat because they are
not of the same nature, not begotten of the truth. NS94:2
Doubtless in the same manner as
the wheat; the wheat growing from seeds of truth, while the tares are offspring
of errors. C146; NS627:3
False doctrines, false teachings.
R5048:6
Because it was impossible for the
Adversary to corrupt the seed of truth. R4635:3
A certain amount of tares spring
up with the wheat anyway, and these the servants gather out as soon as
discerned. But our Lord wished to show an abnormal condition. R3770:3
The Greek implies over-sown;
intentionally, maliciously sown in the midst of the wheat, for the very purpose
of damaging or totally spoiling the entire crop. R2276:6
More liberally than the wheat was
sown. R2634:2
Among the wheat -- The true saints, the children of the Kingdom. C137;
R4635:3, 4644:2, 2943:1, 283:6
For the very purpose of choking
it, "We wrestle not with flesh and blood, but with wicked spirits in high
positions." (Eph. 6:12) R3770:3
Wheat is the standard food of the
world and is said to contain the elements of nutrition in the best propositions
for man's use. R2276:6
Matthew 13:26
The tares also -- Nominal Christians, much more numerous than the wheat. C137
The children of the devil. R283:6
Imitation New Creatures,
respectable, moral, good people. F200; R5736:6, 2277:3
The tares, as well as the wheat,
were above the level of the field in general, indicating superior morals.
R2277:3
Begotten not of truth, begotten of
excitement, of fear of hell, of hopes of worldly advantage, of pride, of social
and financial ambition. R2634:2
Matthew 13:27
From whence then -- But God knew all the time. CR250:6
Matthew 13:29
But he said, Nay -- We cannot follow the usual custom in this case, because of
the greatly excessive proportion of tares. R3770:4
While it was out of place for any
to attempt harvest work before harvest time, it is likewise a mistake to
neglect harvest work in harvest time and give attention to seed-sowing. R885:1*
Gather up the tares -- Because the true and false are too intimately associated,
their roots intertwining in society, home, etc. R4635:5
Ye root up also -- Unsettle, disturb. C137; R4635:5, 3770:4
So closely intertwined are the
roots of the two classes that to disturb such close relationship in life would
cause great commotion. NS627:4
"Therefore judge nothing
before the time, until the Lord come, who both will bring to light the hidden
things of darkness, and will manifest the counsels of the hearts." (1 Cor.
4:5) R98:1*
The wheat with them -- So intimately were the true and false associated. R4635:5
To have cleansed the wheat field
in the past would have meant a commotion which would not have served the best
interests of the wheat. R2634:4
Only the Lord, who could read the
hearts, could distinguish between them with unerring precision. R1362:1
Matthew 13:30
Let both grow -- Christ did not seek to prevent or hinder tare development.
F200
The nominal church has neglected
these instructions, yet has not kept all the wheat in, or shut out all the
tares; hence they are without any excuse. C138
They have set up false,
unscriptural standards and doctrines, which have really developed many tares
and choked and separated the wheat. C138
For the wheat's sake, God's favor
extended even to these mixed bunches of Babylonish systems until 1878, when
they were completely and forever cut off from all favor. C155
Together -- Throughout the age. R4635:6; PD59/70
Christians and imitation
Christians have lived side by side in the same city, house, family. R5049:1
Only the expert can discern the
wheat from the tares while growing. R4635:3
During the Gospel age the wheat
and tares together represent the Kingdom of God. R4653:3
In the general nominal church
system, elsewhere called Babylon or confusion, because of its mixture of truth
and error, wheat and tares. NS93:6
The nominal church has included
wheat and tares; many of the latter have found their way into the pulpits. D61
The Lord has not hindered them
from associating with his saints or using his name and claiming that they are
members of his Church. NS94:4
The tare class has had a general
control for some time, and has divided the wheat-field with various
creed-fences. NS389:1
The tares received a certain
advantage from their attempt to imitate wheat. It has made them more
respectable than they would otherwise have been. NS94:4
There were separations of
politico-doctrinal storms before the harvest time, but among these the tares,
still predominating, formed other though less objectionable, Babylonish
systems. C154
We cannot admit that the wheat was
all brought under Baptist fencing, and that the tares were all outside. NS49:3
Until -- The command "Come out of her" was not given until
after the announcement "Babylon is fallen." (Rev. 18:4, 2) R457:5*
The harvest -- The end, or close, of the Gospel age. A237; B15; R4635:6;
OV297:3
The harvesting of the Jewish age
began with our Lord's first advent, and ended 40 years later at the destruction
of Jerusalem. NS626:3
Parallel to the Jewish age
harvest; many believe it began in 1874 and will end in 1915. R5363:4
Forty years long--1878 to 1918.
SM287:1; R5049:2, 5018:6, 4891:5; NS627:2
The time in which the tares will
be gathered into bundles, and the wheat into the heavenly garner. R5049:2
And in the time -- The close of the summer time of favor. D578
Signifying that it will not be
instantaneous, but require time. R5049:2, 580:4, 236:3*, 223:1*
Which chronologically precedes the
world's troubles. R593:3
Discussing such matters as when
the harvest will end merely takes away opportunities for usefulness. We would
be better not to talk about such things and be busily engaged in the harvest
work. Q320:3,5
Of harvest -- In which we are now living. D31
Beginning October 1874. R5950:5
Parallel in time and work to the
harvest of the Jewish age. B233; HG52:2, 55:1, 70:6
The harvest of the Jewish age
gives us clear conceptions of what may be expected in the harvest time of the
Gospel age. NS21:3
During the harvest of the Jewish
age a two-fold work progressed--the harvest of the Jewish age and the
preparation for the Gospel age. NS626:5
A time of reaping rather than
sowing, a time of testing, of reckoning, of settlement and rewarding. The
harvest of the Jewish age being a type of this age. C135
Three great periods of separation
are revealed in God's Word: chaff from wheat (Matt. 3:10, 12); tares from wheat
(Matt. 13:37, 43) and sheep from goats (Matt. 25:31). R34:2*
The time of executing the command,
"Gather my saints together unto me, those who have made a covenant with me
by [self-] sacrifice." (Psa. 50:5) R375:5
When the truth makes manifest the
true character of these systems. R767:5
The harvest is not a time for
peace; but, on the contrary, it will surely produce separation and alienation
between true wheat and all else. R969:6
Harvest work is reaping rather
than sowing. We, therefore, dispense stronger truths, not to the world but to
the professed church. These truths, as harvest sunshine, are warm and strong
and tend to ripen the wheat. R1073:5
The Jewish harvest is spoken of as
being a separation of wheat from chaff, while the harvest of this age is
designated a separation of wheat from tares. R2237:6; B234
Harvest time is the busiest time
of all the year and a very brief period compared with the time for sowing.
R885:2*
It has three elements: separation,
gathering and burning. R198:5*
The harvest is not ended; our
expectations must not be allowed to weigh anything against the facts. R5950:1
I will say -- The recognition of the harvest work in actual progress is
proof of the Lord's presence. B150
"He that sat on the cloud
thrust in his sickle on the earth and the earth was reaped." (Rev. 14:16)
B150
The Lord will be the chief reaper
and director of the work, and this would be his first work. B150
He directs them through the Word
by opening their understanding to discern the times and seasons there indicated
and the work to be accomplished therein. R600:3
It is not we, but Christ, who
calls his people out of Babylon. We merely call their attention to this words
and show that they are reasonable. R986:4
To the reapers -- Angels, messengers. C137
Such as he has used in plowing, sowing
and watering throughout the age; those begotten of his holy Spirit. D601
Gather ye together -- Into Labor Unions, Trusts, denominations and protective
associations of every kind. C140; Q317:4; R4636:1
The true wheat are to avoid
membership in lodges, societies, churches, sects, parties. R4636:1
The special trials appropriate to
the complete separation of the wheat from the tares are upon Christendom now.
SM287:1
First the tares -- Which largely predominate, as did the chaff in the harvest
of the Jewish age. B234; R3770:4
Who think themselves to be the
true Church. R4636:4
There are two parts to the
harvest, the gathering of wheat followed by the burning of tares. R5761:2
There is order in this harvest.
R580:4
Very elect, with the appearance of
being the masters of the field; illustrating the proud boastfulness of those
who are Christians in association and appearance only. R2277:1
And bind them -- Restrain all individual thought and study on religious
subjects, as is done by the International Sunday School system, with its
carefully printed questions and answers and exercises, singing, entertainment,
picnics, etc. C142-144
As the Jews failed to recognize
the binding and blinding influences which came upon them, so nominal Christians
today fail to see the features of the "harvest" work now in progress.
R2237:6
They are bound by human traditions
and by a worldly spirit. R920:6
Bound rightly by their own
prejudices. R878:6
Pride will hold them together;
none will wish to appear disloyal or cowardly. Societies act en masse. R1828:1
They seek to bind all by the
impression that it is essential to salvation to be joined to some one of their
sects--it matters little to which one--thus combining the idea of individual
responsibility with sectarian bondage. C141
In bundles -- Necessary, because of their great preponderance. R3770:4
Human organizations. R3771:1
Not only church organizations, but
all the various organizations which tie men together today, as never before.
R1828:1; Q317:4
Labor Unions, Capitalistic Trusts
and protective associations of every sort. C140
Into lodges, societies, churches,
sects, parties. R4636:1
Into great denominational bundles,
labeled with various sectarian names. R1488:2
A unification of sects. R3497:4
If it were demanded that we must join
a union before we could work, we should join; but if that organization should
do anything we could not approve, we should feel free to withdraw at any time.
Q318:4
The spirit of the tares is toward
sectarian greatness and show, rather than toward individual obedience and
allegiance to God. C141
In most of these bundles, sects,
there are still some grains of wheat, some consecrated ones, in whom the spirit
of truth still has some residence. R375:4
Each denomination retaining its
own bondage or organization, and becoming more firmly bound by being wedged in
with others. C142
An evidence of the harvest work in
progress. R4636:1
Ready for the burning,
destruction. R5409:2
To burn them -- To destroy them, not as individuals, but as tares,
imitation wheat, in the great time of trouble. B105; C146, 148; F200; R5916:3,
4644:2 Return them to the ground, the world whence they came. C140; R3771:4
Not with literal fire. R4636:4
We cannot burn symbolic tares in
literal fire. CR251:3
They do not burn them at once, but
proceed to gather the wheat into the garner. Not until the wheat is garnered
does the fire consume the tares. R2634:4
The Christian's duty is to lift up
the standard and get the true wheat out of all the tare-bundles into liberty,
in union with Christ, the only Head. R3566:6
Apparently the consuming of the
tares will correspond very closely with the division of the Jordan. R5951:4
So that none of the bad seed might
affect the future crop. R4635:6
This is when the Great Company
will wake up. R5761:2
Professed Christians will be shown
in their true light. The true and false will be completely manifested.
R5761:5,6
But -- Without binding it into bundles. C140; Q318:1
Gather the wheat -- With the sickle of present truth. C139
The Church of Christ. R5256:4
Comparatively only a handful, a
"little flock." B205
"They shall gather together
his elect." (Matt. 24:31) B164; D601
"Gather my saints together
unto me." (Psa. 50:5) B164
"Make up my jewels."
(Mal. 3:17) B164; D600
"Come out of her, my
people." (Rev. 18:4) D601
Evidently in smaller proportionate
quantity, being taken directly to the barns unbundled--precious, scarce.
R3770:4
Separated from the tares--in
spirit, but not necessarily in person. NS390:3
The wheat heads, full of heavy
wheat, bend over with the weight; a beautiful illustration of the modesty and
meekness of the true and fruitful Christian. R2277:1
Many laborers seem not to know
whether they are to sow or to reap. They want to sow and reap at the same time.
R628:4*
The harvest is not of the living
only, but also of the "dead in Christ." The angels gather the living,
but our Lord, the Chief Reaper, gathers or raises, the dead. R20:2
If he is come to gather his saints
and is also to come "with all his saints" (1 Thess. 3:13; Jude 14;
Zech. 14:5), there must be two parts or stages of his coming. HG23:6,3
Those who are not spirit-begotten
have no right to class themselves with the wheat. R4635:6
Into my barn -- The barn condition of security, separateness from the
worldly. C212
Not into another denomination, but
gathered to Christ, into oneness with him, in fellowship of spirit through the
knowledge of his Word. R2751:4
The spiritual condition; the
glorified condition. R2693:2, 4644:2, 3686:2, 2277:6; F200; CR251:4; HG272:4,
438:5; NS21:4, 89:5, 810:2
The heavenly garner, the
resurrection change. R4635:6, 5049:2; CR251:4; PD59/70
We are not to understand that the
harvest is yet wholly finished. R5761:2
Matthew 13:31
Parable -- These different parable-pictures represent the same subject
from different standpoints. R4636:2, 5049:6
Kingdom of heaven -- The nominal church of this Gospel age. R2634:6, 5049:6
The class called out of the world
of mankind to be associated with him in his Millennial Kingdom. R4636:2
Matthew 13:32
The least -- The Church of Christ was so unimportant in the world at one
time that it was a shame to belong to it. R4636:2
When it is grown -- Ultimately the nominal church would become honorable and
great. R4636:3
Illustrates how the gospel of the
Kingdom would, from a small beginning, attain considerable size. R4636:2
Greatest among herbs -- Not great among the trees, but among bushes of herbage.
R4636:2
Yet this large development does
not signify advantage; on the contrary, a disadvantage, in that the fowls of
the air come, lodge in its branches, and defile it. R2634:6
Becometh a tree -- With its various branches and denominations, the nominal
church is Babylonish. R4636:3
Birds of the air -- Satan and his agents. R2634:6, 5049:6, 4636:2
In the branches -- So great that the adversary's servants would have pleasure
in its shade. R4636:3
"The hold of every foul
spirit and a cage of every unclean and hateful bird." (Rev. 18:2) R2634:6,
5050:1, 45:6
Satan and his agents have been
lodging in the branches of the Gospel Church for centuries, defiling it.
R2634:6
Matthew 13:33
Kingdom of heaven -- The Gospel age Church is the Kingdom in its embryo,
incipient or preparatory state. R1525:2, 5049:3, 2635:1
A parable of the Kingdom in the
sense that it shows one of the experiences which the Church would pass through
in its present preparation for Kingdom glories. HG272:5
Is like unto leaven -- Yeast, sin, error, corruption. F464; T98; R5050:1,4,
4636:3, 2635:1
Which a woman -- An ecclesiastical system organized and in power at an early
date. R5050:4
"That woman Jezebel,"
the Papacy. (Rev. 2:20) R2635:4
Three measures of meal -- The pure food provided by the Lord for the household of
faith. R5050:4
The entire testimony of God's
Word, the food for his family. HG272:5
Equivalent to one ephah, a good,
liberal household supply. R2635:1
The faith once delivered to the
saints; the hope set before us in the Gospel and love, the bond of perfectness.
R2635:4
Whole was leavened -- The food of the entire household became corrupted. R4636:3
The entire mass of theological doctrine
is putrid and offensive to all Christian people. R5050:4
Not a particle of it was left
uncontaminated. The result has been indigestion. R5050:4, 4363:3
Faith was distorted; hope was
changed to another hope; and the spirit of the Lord, love, was perverted to a
selfish love of creeds and human institutions. R2635:4
Matthew 13:34
In parables -- None was ready for the depth of his teaching until after
the holy Spirit of Pentecost began to give qualification. R5444:2
Unto the multitude -- Jesus, speaking to his disciples, used plain language; on
the contrary, when he spoke to the multitudes, he always employed a parable.
HG511:4
Without a parable -- Not a statement of literal facts. R5004:3
Symbolic language; this was the
customary way for Jesus to preach. CR250:2; R4679:1
Because the true invitation was
not for the ordinary multitude, but only for the consecrated. R5088:1
An understanding of spiritual
things would do harm rather than good to those not spiritually begotten, to
those not fully consecrated to the divine will. R5088:1
Part of our difficulty has been
taking the words of Jesus literally when their very form should have shown us
that they could not have been meant literally, but as the figures of speech we
use today. OV162:10
Spake he not -- None of the lessons of the Great teacher were given in
literal language; they were all symbolic. R4679:1
Matthew 13:35
In parables -- In figures and obscure sayings. R2602:6
An illustration of a truth by
something which is, in many respects, like it. A138
Not yet understood by the word,
neither appreciated by any except the few, his "little flock," the
consecrated. CR10:6
I will utter things -- Expound the hidden truths of divine prophecy. F233
Jesus not only expounded the
prophets, but he did so in parables, prophecies and dark sayings. R667:6
Matthew 13:36
His disciples came -- Humble and truth-hungry, inquiring earnestly for the truth.
B28
Declare unto us -- The special light of both harvests is for the Israelites
indeed. B28
A special request for
interpretation. R4635:6
The parable -- In every parable explained by our Lord, the thing said is
never the thing meant. R1000:2, 283:6; HG385:3
Matthew 13:37
He that soweth -- Jesus and the Apostles, and all his true followers. R5048:6
The good seed -- The Gospel of the Kingdom. R4635:6, 5048:6
The Son of man -- His disciples have assisted under his direction. R576:1
Matthew 13:38
The field -- In which, during this present harvest time, the fruitage of
this Gospel age must be gathered; and the work of clearing, plowing and
preparing for the sowing and reaping of the Millennial age, must take place.
C121
Is the world -- The world of mankind, the civilized world, all nations.
C140; R5048:6
The kosmos, not the ge, the earth;
nor the aion, the age. R2227:1, 97:2*
The world of mankind; and the seed
is sown in their hearts. HG92:6
The world of mankind being counted
the ground out of which the wheat and also the tares grow and develop. C140
The world are neither wheat nor
tares; they are simply material, as ground, in which both good and bad seed may
be sown. HG93:1
He is not dealing with the field,
the world in general, but merely with the corner of it which he has planted
with the good seed. R3771:2
The good seed was planted in
Palestine, Asia Minor and Europe, and from thence has spread to America, and to
some slight extent elsewhere. Strictly speaking, Europe and North America are
the wheat field. R2277:2
Children of the kingdom -- The spiritual children; classes n and m on the Chart of the
Ages. R275:3
But the tares -- The imitation New Creatures, posing as Christians. F200;
R4636:1
The result of false doctrines,
false teachings. R5048:6
Not begotten of the holy Spirit.
CR251:3
The children of -- Because their presence in the church is the result of false
doctrines, false teachings, sown by the adversary, Satan. R5834:3
The wicked one -- Despite the fact that they are mainly respectable, moral,
good people. F200; R4636:1; CR251:3
All of class q and many (if not
all) of class p on the Chart of the Ages. R275:6
The whole world of mankind,
excepting the true Christians, born in sin and shapen in iniquity, aliens and
strangers from God, may be spoken of as "children of the wicked one."
R2277:4
Matthew 13:39
That sowed them -- Seeds of false doctrines, error, deception, using human lips
and pens in Satan's service through pride and ambition. R5137:3, 5769:3, 4635:6
And thus brought the worldly
masses into the church. R2598:3
Is the devil -- Whose personality is here recognized in unmistakable terms.
R3769:6*
The harvest -- We have entered into that period of time when the present
age is closing and the new age beginning. CR438:2, 308:1; R4891:4, 4635:6,
2277:6
There is a large crop of tares.
R5769:3
The time of trouble coming upon
the church should be recognized as the harvest, the threshing time, the time
for separating the real grain from the chaff and tares. R576:2, 82:5*
The sign of the presence is the
sign of the time of harvest. The worker and the work are related to each other.
R236:3*
There are many harvests as there
are kinds of seed (1 Cor. 15:38-44), but order governs all. R576:2
Many believe it began in 1874 and
will end in 1914. R5363:4
Is the end -- Is that which constitutes the end. C24, 214; D568
The Greek word suntelia,
translated "end," does not mean a "point," but a "period
of time." R236:3*
The last forty years of the Time
of the End. C24; 121
As the Chart of the Ages
illustrates, the harvest of this age and the end of the evil world or
dispensation terminate together. NS21:5
Just before the inauguration of
the new age of Christ's Millennial Kingdom. R4635:6
The regathering of Israel is a
sign of the end of this age, and therefore a sign that we are living in the
harvest time. R384:5
No millennium in between is shown.
HG272:4
Of the world -- Of this Gospel age. B15; C24, 121; D568; R5049:2, 2977:4
Of the age: Greek aion. CR251:2,
292:1; HG116:1
And the reapers -- Who have learned that it is harvest time and that their
work is gathering the wheat. F608
The Lord is sending forth more
laborers continually, yet only such as recognize the nighness of the Kingdom,
the parousia of the King, and have a zeal to tell the joyful tidings to others.
R2674:3
Are the angels -- The messengers, begotten of his spirit. D601; A237; R1279:2
Messengers, missionaries, saints
of God. R885:3*
His servants. R2604:1
The Lord's followers now, just as
a similar class were the reapers of the Jewish harvest. C139
The "harvest message" is
the Lord's sickle and all associated with the promulgation of this message are
reapers in this harvest, co-laborers with the great Chief Reaper. R2490:4
Every faithful disciple who now
follows in the Master's footsteps has the privilege now of being a co-worker
with him in reaping this harvest. R600:3
The Lord uses various human
instrumentalities as his servants, messengers or angels. R3771:1
Invisible, spiritual beings,
quietly separating wheat from tares. R189:4, 175:5, 124:2
Matthew 13:40
Tares are gathered -- Our Lord would be present at the end of the Gospel age and,
as the Chief Reaper, would gather tares in bundles to be burned. R5769:3
In the winter time: "Pray ye
that your flight be not in the winter." (Matt. 24:20) D578
Burned in the fire -- Destroyed as tares in a time of trouble; not literally
burned. R5737:1, 5049:4, 4636:4, 2277:5; CR251:3
Their delusions will be dissolved.
R4636:4
Manifested to all, to the intent
that all may thereafter profit by the lesson, to all eternity. NS94:5
To occur within the harvest
period. R1493:4
The fire already kindled,
"the fire of God's zeal." C148
It is not the field, the "world,"
that is to be burned, but the tares. NS21:5
Signifying the destruction of the
false pretensions of this class. C146
In the sense that none of them
thereafter will claim to be what they are not, none of them will claim to be
God's consecrated people. R2634:5; SM287:T
And thus returned to the ground,
the world, from whence they came. C140
That the entire field might be
cleansed and made ready for a new sowing of the pure seed. NS93:6
The end of this world -- End of this age. D568
Proving that the burning of the
tares is included in the gospel harvest, for "the harvest is the end of
the age." (Verse 39) R115:6*, 98:4*
Matthew 13:41
The Son of man -- A title of high honor, a reminder of his obedience, even to
the death of the cross, by which he secured title to the honor, dignity and
power of the divine nature. E151
Christ, who once became a son (in
law) of Adam. E150, 152
Shall send -- Christ is superintending the harvest; he sends forth the
reapers. R223:5*
The Lord not only sends the sickle
of truth to gather the wheat, but he also sends the strong delusions to gather
the tares. OV297:4; NS128:6
Forth his angels -- Servants or messengers, begotten of his spirit. D601; A237;
R1285:1*, 1279:2
Gather out of -- Or from. A239
Various errors gather out of God's
Kingdom all that offend. R1644:5
In one sense, the wheat is
gathered out from among the tares, because of the greater abundance of the
tares; in another sense, the tares are gathered from the wheat. The wheat has
the place by right; it is a wheat field, not a tare field. C139
They shall be swept out by the
incoming flood of infidelity, overthrown by the winds of false doctrine, and
finally burnt up by the scathing reproach of the world. R600:5
He has chosen to make the
separation publicly, to demonstrate his own justice in the matter. OV297:4
His kingdom -- The true Church. A239; R275:5
In the sense that the Church at
the present time is God's Kingdom in embryo. R4635:6, 1927:1
Harvest siftings are necessary,
that the Judas class may be entirely sifted out, and that the Peter class may
be thoroughly stirred up by trials and difficulties. R4908:4
It is one thing to gather his
people out of Babylon, and quite another to gather the offenders out of his
Kingdom. Really the "tares" leave the "wheat" by utterly abandoning
the faith once delivered to the saints. R2545:2
Things that offend -- Those who put off the wedding garment of Christ's imputed
righteousness. R2275:6
Those that cause others to
stumble, including many teachers and preachers, and many doers of wonderful
works. R5049:4
Not only "those that do
iniquity," the "tares," but also "those that offend,"
those who fail to come up to the requirements of their covenant in fullness of
consecration. R2541:6
That are blameworthy; because they
are in the nominal church and posing as Christians. R4636:1
Realizing that this is a present
activity, we cannot too carefully consider the principles upon which this
judgment and selection are made. R1937:1
All organizations having the
motive of hope of improvement deteriorate rapidly into machines of
aggrandizement of clique or class, owing to the cupidity and sordidness of men.
R1285:1*
Not that a man could not be a
member of a union, but the position of separateness from these human
institutions and bondages is a safe position for the saints. R1285:5
Which do iniquity -- Which practice sin, or which are not fully in sympathy with
the principles of righteousness. R2276:1, 5049:4
"Do lawlessness."
(Diaglott) R1285:1*
The tare class, the great mass.
R4635:6, 5802:1, 1644:5
The only things that shall remain
are the things that cannot be shaken, the true and faithful. R3053:1
Matthew 13:42
A furnace of fire -- A time of trouble destructive to the nominal systems and
false professions; occasioned in great measure by the growth of infidelity and
Spiritism of various kinds. A239; C146; R275:5
It would be thoroughly illogical
to burn symbolic tares in a literal furnace with literal fire. CR251:3;
R5049:4, 4636:4
The fire is as much a symbol as
are the tares, the wheat and the garner. R2634:4, 2277:5
There is no such furnace for the
wheat and tares all down through the Gospel age. R3771:2
So-called Christendom will be the
great furnace. R3771:4
Wailing -- There is such a commotion in connection with the separation
of the wheat and the tares because Christendom as a whole, though nominally a
wheat field, is practically a tare field. OV297:4; NS128:5
The saints won't have any of this
weeping, wailing and gnashing of teeth, because the plan of God will be so
closely before them that they will rejoice because the things occurring will
presage their deliverance. Q733:T
Gnashing of teeth -- Great disappointment, sorrow, pain, trouble and anguish
throughout Christendom. R3771:4; Q732:2
"Men's hearts failing them
for fear and for looking after those things which are coming on the
earth." (Luke 21:26) R3771:4 Signifying chagrin, disappointment, savage
animosity: "They gnashed on him with their teeth." (Acts 7:54)
R4329:1; Q732:2
The great time of trouble will
make general havoc of present arrangements--social, financial, political,
ecclesiastical. R5802:4, 5864:1, 2303:5, 1644:5
Matthew 13:43
Then -- In the end of this Gospel age. SM790:2; R5769:3
We are in the dawn of the glorious
day. It is not yet sunrise, the shining forth of the Church; but the "Day
Star," Jesus, has arisen in our hearts. R470:6
The Lord links the fire upon the
tare field with the speedy shining forth thereafter of the Sun of
Righteousness. R2760:6
After this age and after its
harvest. R857:3
After "the wheat" of
this age is gathered into the garner by the power of the first resurrection.
R5135:6, 6013:5, 5769:3, 5420:2, 4103:2, 2504:4; CR19:1; SM561:T, 790:2
Shall the righteous -- The Church, as a whole, in glory. F725; R5135:6, 4988:2,
4967:5; SM287:T; HG417:3
Jesus is the head of the Church.
SM791:T; R5097:3
When the division is accomplished,
the wheat alone will represent the Kingdom of the Church of Christ, while the
church nominal will fall and be broken. R593:4
Shine forth -- To refresh and bless the world by scattering the darkness
of sin, superstition and evil. R2425:5, 4849:6, 4636:4, 3770:6, 1012:4; SM246:T
To abolish darkness. R4988:1,
4849:6
The manifestation, or appearing in
glory; the descent of the new Jerusalem as the Bride of Christ and mother of
the nations. Light, deliverance and glory to the nations will be the result.
R82:5*; HG163:5, 234:6; NS252:3
Then shall the morning of the
Millennial age be manifested to the world. CR19:1
Be revealed, and be seen by men
with the eyes of their understanding. R2606:3
To heal earth's sorrows and
scatter earth's night. R5135:6
To bless, restore, purify and
disinfect from sin and error the whole world of mankind. C149
To bring order out of present
confusion, to scatter present darkness, ignorance and superstition, to cause
the knowledge of the glory of the Lord to fill the whole earth. R3770:6
The consummation of the Church's
hope in the end of this age. R4636:4
God gives light that it may shine
that others may see and be blessed. To shine can mean no less than to give
light. And if the Church give, the nations receive and "walk in the light
of it." (Rev. 21:24) R25:2*
That true light will shine first
upon the house of Jacob, returning to them divine favor. Then the call will
come to them, "Arise, shine, for thy light is come." (Isa. 60:1)
R2037:4
His Church is invited to become
associated with Him as light-bearers; and, if faithful in permitting their
light to shine now, they will by and by be parts of that great Sun of
Righteousness. SM560:3; NS89:5
If unfaithful in shining forth
under present conditions of prevalent darkness, they will not be esteemed
worthy to shine forth as the sun in the Kingdom. HG438:6
God's plan will not always be
shrouded in mystery. A86
"They that be wise shall
shine as the brightness of the firmament [as the sun]." (Dan. 12:3)
R1881:6, 722:6; C61; F666; HG334:4 "The earnest expectation of the
creation waiteth for the manifestation of the Sons of God." (Rom. 8:19)
R6:2
As the sun -- Jesus is the true great Center of the Sun of Righteousness;
and the bride will be with him in the morning, shining forth his glory.
R5135:6, 5769:3, 4107:6, 3686:1, 2409:1; OV205:5; PD59/70; Q822:1; SM244:1,
791:T
"The Sun of Righteousness
shall arise with healing in his wings." (Mal. 4:2) R3686:1, 2834:1,
1311:5, 369:1; A322, 86; CR126:4
The great Sun of Righteousness,
the great Messiah, the great Prophet, Priest, King and Mediator between God and
man. OV205:5
"The people that walked in
darkness have seen a great light." (Isa. 9:2) R3686:1
We are not now shining as the sun,
but as candles. CR62:2; R5769:3; HG438:6
In the future state of glory, in
contrast with its present role as a lampstand. R3560:6
Collectively; but individually
there will be differences in position and honor: "as star differeth from
star" in magnitude and brilliancy. (1 Cor. 15:41) F725
"The elect," burning and
shining lights," are all to come together by and by, all to be changed
from human to spirit beings and, with their Redeemer, constitute the great Sun
of Righteousness. R3026:6
To heal earth's sorrows and
scatter earth's night. R5135:6; NS173:3
Which shall scatter the darkness
of earth, binding the prince of darkness, Satan, and freeing mankind from the
bonds of ignorance, superstition and credulity. NS292:6, 810:2
For the scattering of the night,
the scattering of darkness, superstition and evil that now enshroud the world.
HG116:3, 651:5; NS555:2, 614:2
Of their Father -- Primarily, the Kingdom is God's but he has voluntarily, for
a thousand years, placed it under charge of a viceroy, the Christ. D642, 643
Ears to hear -- The attitude of heart to appreciate it. R4636:4, 2995:6;
CR126:5
The ability to understand
spiritual things. R4636:4
Not everyone has the hearing ear.
R4636:4
Let him hear -- We should not despise those who cannot hear, but rather
sympathize with them and be thankful for the hearing ear which permits us to
appreciate the various features of the divine plan. R3771:5
Matthew 13:44
The kingdom of heaven -- The Millennial Kingdom. R4535:3
Like unto treasure -- The Church and restored humanity. E441; D648; R5047:6,
288:4, 16:1
The share in the Messianic
Kingdom. R5048:1, 4635:5, 4535:3
Hid in a field -- "The field is the world." (Matt. 13:38) D648
Mankind and the earth itself.
E441; D648; R281:4
The hiding of the treasure is
necessary: "Cast not your pearls before swine." (Matt. 7:6)
"Hast thou faith? Have it to thyself before God." (Rom. 14:22) R463:5
When a man -- The man Christ Jesus. R729:3, 720:1, 611:3
Our thought is that the Great
Teacher referred not to himself, but to those whom he instructed. R5047:6
The buyer is the Lord and those
who accept his invitation to sacrifice earthly interests. D648; R4636:5
All that he hath -- When our Lord had paid man's ransom price, he had nothing
left. "He poured out his soul unto death." (Isa. 53:12) R2410:1
Our Lord laid down the earthly
kingdom, the earthly rights, all that he had, as man's ransom. OV251:1;
R4536:1, 1015:3
He took our human nature that he
might give it as a ransom for all--his human nature for our human nature.
R611:3
When Jesus died at Calvary all
existence was at an end. After three days he received life as a new creature,
but he took not again the human nature and never can do so. R482:3, 240:3
Jesus could not have given a part
of his being and retained part. R719:6
The Lord's followers are to reckon
that no sacrifice is too great to attain the blessing; indeed, the Kingdom can
be attained at no less cost than the surrender of all their earthly hopes and
aims. HG439:1
To gain this treasure, we must
give all--our time, our will, our property. CR252:2; R4636:5
The price is small, but it is all
that we each have to give--ourselves, our all. R1657:1
Buyeth that field -- Realizing its value. R4636:5
The field belongs to God. He has
put the treasure there. He offers it for sale to any willing to pay the
price--the Lord and those who accept his invitation to join with him. R4636:5
Our Lord's payment of the price of
justice. R4536:1
He did not buy the world, but the
Church. R4536:2
In order to re-produce the human
race lost in death through Adam. R729:3
The inference is that what we
possess naturally is not of lasting value, while that which we may obtain
instead is of priceless value and everlasting. R1656:2
Matthew 13:45
Again -- This parable illustrates the process by which his Kingdom
is obtainable. R4535:6
Seeking -- Seeking imperishable values of not frittering away life and
its opportunities; seeking for the best things, and most valuable things,
temporal or spiritual. NS514:2
Goodly pearls -- In ancient times the pearl occupied the chief place among
the jewels of personal adornment. NS511:1
Those qualities and rewards, even
of an earthly kind, which would be enduring. NS514:5
All the other pearls--of being a
great doctor, a great artist, a great musician, a model house-keeper, or
something else--are trifling and insignificant in comparison with this great
Pearl. Q428:4; SM681:2
We all seek something valuable for
which to exchange time and influence. Q429:2; SM681:2
Matthew 13:46
When he had found one -- Representing the Gospel offered as being superior to all
other propositions of the world. R4636:6
Pearl of great price -- Priceless, the finest he had ever seen. R4636:6; CR426:4
The riches of God's grace. Q161:3
The Kingdom offer of
joint-heirship with Jesus in the heavenly Kingdom, and association with him in
blessing all the families of the earth. R4636:6, 5594:3, 5005:5; CR426:4,
244:4; Q429:1; HG746:2; SM681:1
Our high calling of God in Christ.
OV24:5; CR365:5; R5198:6, 4969:4
The glorious Messianic Kingdom,
the Kingdom of God, of priceless value. CR426:4; R5484:4, 5270:3; Q427:5, 429:1
The prize first presented to our
Lord; now set before us. R4535:3, 6
Whoever possesses this pearl will
be in harmony with God. SM681:3
Sold all -- Jesus gave all he had, and he had far more than any of us.
Q429:2
Illustrating the feature of Jesus'
work in the laying down of his life. R4536:1
The price is self-sacrifice, even
unto death. R5048:2
All who would gain this pearl must
sell all that they have, all that they enjoy of earthly life or privileges. R5342:1,
5048:2, 4636:6; PD59/70
Let us count the things of this
earth as loss and dross that we may attain this. R5422:4
Consecrate yourself, all you have.
CR252:5; PD59/70
To buy we must consecrate and
give--time, energy, study. Each day will bring opportunities for giving up
something considered by the selfish, carnal nature to be precious. R1657:1
Whether a man be wealthy or poor,
learned or ignorant, influential or otherwise, the cost of this Kingdom pearl
will be his all; it cannot be had for less. R5048:2; SM683:1
If seeking the Kingdom seems to
hinder some of our earthly prospects, so much the better. The Master said it
would cost us our all. R5048:5
He that is not willing to have the
Kingdom at such a cost is not worthy of the Kingdom. R4637:1
Some of the earthly treasures can
be relinquished in the interest of the heavenly treasures. SM684:T
Bought it -- Our Lord's payment of the price of justice. R4536:1
The terms for us are:
Self-sacrifice, faithfulness to God at any cost, patient endurance under adverse
conditions. R5461:6
Only those who walk the
"narrow way" will gain the great prize. R5005:5
To purchase it, we must submit
ourselves fully to the Lord, henceforth to have no will of our own in
anything--to suffer reproach, scorn, persecution, loss of friends,
tribulations. SM683:1
The number who will obtain this
pearl is limited, only 144,000, and is now very nearly complete. SM684:1
We shall gain the Pearl of Great
price in the Kingdom. SM685:3
Matthew 13:47
Kingdom of heaven -- The nominal Christian church. C214
As it exists in its incipient and
imperfect stage in this age--which, in its widest sense, is the nominal
Christian church. R920:1
The embryo Kingdom during the
Gospel age. R5048:2, 5555:1
This parable is applicable to the
close of the Gospel age. C213
Is like unto -- Not like a net; but the embryo Kingdom resembles a fishing
experience with a net. R5048:2
A net -- The Gospel message. R4637:1
Representing the nominal church of
this present time. HG438:6
That was cast -- First cast at Pentecost, and from then to the present
harvest time it has been gathering in all sorts of fish, together constituting
the great nominal Gospel church. R1716:1, 920:1
Into the sea -- The world. C214
The world, where no distinction
was recognized between Jew and Gentile. R1716:1
And gathered -- "I will make you fishers of men." (Matt. 4:19)
C214; R5555:2
Of every kind -- Real Christians, half-deceived and deluded Christians, and
multitudes of hypocrites. C214
Some fish are in the Gospel net,
looking for worldly ambitions, matrimony, social standing, moral atmosphere, as
a cloak for business, etc. R5048:4
"So those servants went out
into the highways, and gathered together all, as many as they found, both bad
and good." (Matt. 22:10) R2301:4
Not every kind will inherit the
Kingdom as joint-heirs with Christ Jesus. R4637:1
Matthew 13:48
When it was full -- When in the fullness of God's time the full number of the
particular kind desired had entered the net. C214, 215
At the end of the Gospel age.
R5555:1
They -- The fishermen, the Lord's people. C214; R5555:1
Drew to shore -- Withdrew the invitation to a place in the Kingdom. C214
Sat down -- Not to dive again into the sea, either with net or hook and
line, to gather more fish. R920:2
And gathered -- Separated, divided. C214; D600
"Come out of her, my
people." (Rev. 18:4) D601
The catching and the sorting are
two parts of the one grand work of making ready a people prepared for the Lord,
corresponding to the works of the sower and the reaper. R1716:4
In the harvest, from 1874 to 1915,
a separating work is to be accomplished. R1716:1
Into vessels -- The special work of harvest is the gathering of the good
fish into safety, rather than to catch more fish. R1716:4
Cast the bad away -- As unsuitable for a place in the Kingdom. C214; R5555:1, 2,
4637:1
Corresponds with the tares of
Matt. 13:30. The unsuitable fish in the net are all church members. The
unprofessing world are not represented in the parable at all. R5048:5
They are not fit for the purpose
of the present selection, undeveloped, not overcomers of the world, but are
overcome by the world. R920:5
The Lord has not been fishing for
all kinds of fish; he has not been seeking all kinds of people; he has been
drawing especially only the elect, the saintly. R5048:4
The Great Fisherman has no special
use for any more or other than one kind of fish now; by and by the
"abundance of the sea shall be converted." (Isa. 60:5) R920:2
During Christ's Millennial reign,
these will be dealt with. R4637:1
Matthew 13:49
End of the world -- The end of this age, a sifting and separating time.
R4637:1; C214
"The harvest is the end of
the age." (Matt. 13:39) C214
When the Lord shall have gathered
the foreordained number of the elect Church. R5048:4
The wicked -- But some of the true children of God will also be rejected
and get into the wailing and gnashing of teeth condition because they have
assimilated with the worldly-minded. R920:5
Matthew 13:50
Furnace of fire -- The great time of trouble. R5048:5, 4637:1
Gnashing of teeth -- "Gnawing their tongues in pain." (Rev. 16:10)
R920:5
Symbolically expressing the
vexation and anger of those in whom the truth only awakens a spirit of
opposition and hatred. R920:4
See comments on Matt. 13:42
Matthew 13:52
Like unto a man -- Our Lord and Master has come to his waiting people and
spread out for them a bounteous table of truths, new and old, in order. R1867:5
Which bringeth forth -- Through his servants, who have the keys. R1150:5
Feeding the flock; not feeding
themselves upon the husks of science and man-made theology. R633:2
Out of his treasure -- Considering his parables as a householder would consider
his reserve of food supplies from which, time to time, truths "both new
and old" would be brought. R5048:5
Things new and old -- Some things old and good might be brought forth from the
sectarian creeds, but nothing new. A24
That which our Lord said he would
serve at his second coming. R5568:6
New things respecting the glory of
the Kingdom and the work of the thousand years. R5568:6
Clearer light on old things:
justification, sanctification, the types of Leviticus, baptism, etc. R5568:6,
5569:1
Respecting the covenants and the
atonement sacrifices. R4434:2
Features of God's plan unseen
since the days of the Apostles. R4434:2
Contained in the Studies in the Scriptures.
R4710:1
Not only expounding the hidden
truths of ancient prophecy, but also disclosing new revelations of truth. F233
Able to see the new features of
his work as well as the old whenever the new features become due; not rejecting
the new because they are new. R920:2
Old things that God's people have
recognized as true for centuries: note how appetizing they are to us now, how
strengthening to faith, how refreshing! R4043:4
The new truth must always be in
harmony with the old truths. R116:3*
A new point of interpretation must
have the assent of at least two of the best posted and most conversant with the
Scriptures before it appears in our journal. R312:3
The reason for the present
abundance of truth for the hungry ones is that we are again living in the
"days of the Son of Man." NS155:4
Matthew 13:54
He taught them -- As a public teacher he had no equal. What other teacher
ever had 5,000 people leave their employment and, negligent of food, follow him
for three days in the wilderness. R575:2
Whence hath -- His humble birth gave him none of the advantages of
education or social culture. R1682:1
True, also to some extent of those
who follow Jesus' footsteps. When the Lord sends you out, you will know it; you
will be so filled with the knowledge of the truth and so inspired by it that
you must speak. R646:6
This wisdom -- Due to his ages of prehuman existence. E91
Matthew 13:57
In his own country -- Human nature esteems that which is distant as grander.
R3494:2, 2424:6
Matthew 13:58
Because of their unbelief --
And hardness of heart; therefore, they
lost the benefit of his wisdom and teaching and many of his mighty works.
R1359:3
Matthew 14
Matthew 14:1
Herod -- Antipas. R3325:3
A type of the civil power.
R5569:5, 2280:4; B261
The fame of Jesus -- The popularity of Jesus did not evidently become so general
until after John's death. R3326:1
Matthew 14:2
This is John -- Wondering whether or not there might be some truth in the
Grecian theories that the dead were not dead, but had power to communicate
through living persons. R3326:1
Risen from the dead -- His mind was troubled, yet he was not penitent. R3326:1
Tradition has it that Herod was
taunted with fear. R4609:5
Matthew 14:3
Herod -- Representing the civil power. R5569:5, 1754:4; B261, 262
John -- Type of the true Church. B261
John was a semi-type, the
semi-antitype of Elijah, who was a type of the Church. R5569:5; B253
As there is a striking resemblance
between John and Elijah, his type, so there is a strong resemblance between the
experiences of John and those of the faithful Church--the great antitype of
Elijah. R3325:3, 2279:2, 968:4
And bound him -- After he had preached about a year. R3325:2
Typifying the coming restraint of
the church's liberties. B261; R2280:5
John's liberty was restrained soon
after the delivery of the message announcing the present One and the work
before him. B261; R968:6
Put him in prison -- Josephus supposes that he was confined in a dungeon
connected with the castle Macherus. R3325:2
There he remained about a year
before execution. R3325:2
For Herodias' sake -- Type of the Roman Catholic Church. R5569:5
The unfaithful nominal church.
B261, 262; R2280:4
Governed by boundless ambition,
she realized her position insecure so long as John lived. R4609:1,2
Type of the ecclesiastical power
of Christendom now seeking and longing for union with, and the co-operation of,
the civil powers. R1754:4
Representing the nominal church
which, throughout the symbolic Scriptures, is represented by a woman, Jezebel,
etc. R2280:4
The second Jezebel; the third
Jezebel is mentioned by name in Rev. 2:20. R3326:6
Two strong and two weak characters
meet here. John and Herodias were strong characters, the one for the right and
for God, the other for selfish ambition and sinful indulgence of it. R4609:5
Evidently she strove to incite her
husband to put John to death at the time he was imprisoned; but her influence
was offset by Herod's fear of the effect of such a course upon the people who
esteemed John to be a prophet. R3325:6
Women are naturally more sentimental
than men. If they become evil-minded and vicious, they are correspondingly
disposed to even greater extremes of wickedness than their brothers. R2279:6
Philip's wife -- She had married Philip, thinking he would be king. R4609:1,
3325:5
Matthew 14:4
For John said -- Perhaps acting imprudently and exceeding his duty. R3326:2,
4609:1, 2280:2
He was a thorn in the side of King
Herod and his courtiers. R4609:1
As a rule, we believe it to be the
wiser plan for Christian ministers to speak forth the word of God fearlessly
without attempting personal application. R4609:1, 2280:4
It is not the duty of the Lord's
people to go through the world rebuking sin, but preaching the Gospel. R3326:3
Paul, personally before Agrippa,
Felix and other disreputable men, made no personal attack upon them. R3326:2
Perhaps typical of the duty of the
true church to reprove the civil powers as well as the nominal church systems,
and to declare their union unlawful, contrary to the Word of God. R2280:4,
1754:4
The true church, like its
prototype, John the Baptist, will be unpopular and restrained of liberty
because of faithfulness in opposing and condemning the error of the union of
church with state. R969:1
Persecution should not lead us to
surrender when the kings of the earth stand up with the religious rulers of the
people against us and God's truth. R969:5
It is not lawful -- Declaring that Herod and his wife were living in adultery,
the king separated from his own wife and improperly associated with his brother
Philip's wife. R3325:5, 2279:5
For thee to have her -- For church and state to be united. B261
The nominal church adulterously
allied to the kingdoms of this world while nominally espoused to Christ.
R3325:3
Prophecy points out that a closer
union between church and state than at present [is possible]. B262; R969:1
Matthew 14:5
He feared -- But Herodias feared neither God nor man. R5069:1
The multitude -- The common people, who heard Jesus and John gladly. R4609:1
A prophet -- A public expounder. A55
Matthew 14:6
Birthday was kept -- On such occasions it was customary to have great hilarity
and to use intoxicating beverages with more than usual freedom. R3325:6
Wine was in plentiful supply. She
well knew that the wine would inflame the passions and relax the moral tone of the
company. R4609:2, 3325:6
Daughter of Herodias -- By her former marriage. R3325:6 Salome, a type of the
Protestant churches federated. R5569:5, 2280:5
Matthew 14:8
Being before instructed -- The plan succeeded to the letter. R4609:2, 3778:6
Of her mother -- Illustrating parental influence. Evil as she was, Herodias
had retained the affection of her daughter and her absolute confidence and
obedience. R3326:4
A true, pure, sensible mother has
an almost untellable influence, for good or for evil, with her husbands and
sons, as well as with her daughters. R2280:1
Said -- While the flush of excitement and liquor was upon him, and
while his counselors were present who had heard the oath, before whom any
indecision would stultify himself. R3326:5
Baptist's head -- They would cease to have his continual reminder of their
wrong course. R5569:6
Evidently thinking that, with the
prophet out of the way, all other advantages were accessible to herself and her
daughter. R3326:5
Without John's death, Herodias and
Salome might any day be hurled from conditions of affluence into the abyss of
degradation and poverty. R4609:4
So fully in sympathy with
Catholicism, United Protestantism will become her tool in the destruction of
the most loyal servants of God. R2280:5
In a charger -- On a platter. R4609:4
Matthew 14:9
King was sorry -- His conscience was not quite dead. R4609:4
We may be sure that his mind was
frequently disturbed with the thought of his injustice, and that against one of
the Lord's favorites, a prophet. R3326:1
We are not to infer from this any
heart-repentance, but merely that the matter was incongruous to his sentiments
and wishes. R2280:2
People do things which they
recognize to be wrong, violating their conscience, and feel sorry; yet this is
not a godly sorrow, for the sorrow God recognizes and appreciates leads to
repentance. R3326:2
The oath's sake -- "The fear of man bringeth a snare." (Prov. 29:25)
R4609:4
"Highly esteemed among men
but an abomination in the sight of God." (Luke 16:15) R3779:1
For pride's sake. R3779:1, 4609:4,
2280:2
He commanded it -- A course which led to his banishment, in which Herodias
shared. R4609:5, 3326:5
Matthew 14:10
Beheaded John -- The close of the earthly career of the true church is
represented in Elijah's whirlwind and John the Baptist's imprisonment and
beheading. R969:5
So when the coming night imprisons
the faithful elect, the only deliverance will be through the valley of the
shadow of death into the glorious kingdom of our Lord and Savior. R1754:5
Matthew 14:12
His disciples -- Doubtless at the present time the vengeance of the
antitypical Jezebel upon the antitypical Elijah will move the friends of the
Elijah class, including the Great Company, more closely to the Lord. R3327:4
And told Jesus -- They knew where to find sympathy and consolation. To whom
shall we go with trials, difficulties, sorrows, troubles, disappointments?.
R3327:1
Doubtless becoming his disciples.
Thus their trials in connection with their leader brought them into closer
knowledge and fellowship with the Great Teacher. R3327:1
Matthew 14:13
He departed thence -- For private meditation and conference with his disciples,
who would be greatly agitated by the news of John's death and needed his
calming influence and assurance that Herod could have no unpermitted power over
them. R2435:2
Possibly to avoid Herod's
interfering with his labors, possibly fearing that his teachings would incite a
rebellious spirit, possibly seeking privacy with his disciples to consider the
character of his work. R3332:3, 1754:2
Desert place apart -- Out of the dominion of Herod. R3332:2, 2435:3, 1754:3
Near Bethsaida. R2435:3
Matthew 14:14
A great multitude -- In some respects, picturing the world during the
Millennium. R3781:4
Evidence of his growing
popularity. R3332:3
The crowds continued to gather
wherever Jesus went, partly for hearing, partly from curiosity, and partly
because the message he gave was one of comfort, consolation, hope. R5095:2
The largeness of the company is
accounted for by the fact that it was near the time of the Feast of Passover
and large numbers of the religiously inclined were on their pilgrimage to
Jerusalem. R2435:3
Moved with compassion -- In season and out of season, so far as his convenience was
concerned, he must work the works of God, lay down his life, inch by inch, hour
by hour. R3332:3
He is today looking with
sympathetic compassion upon the multitudes of so-called
"Christendom." R2436:1
Such will be the spirit of all the
Lord's followers; not self-gratification, but "doing good to all men as
they have opportunity, especially to the household of faith." (Gal. 6:10)
R2435:4
Matthew 14:15
Evening -- After three o'clock in the afternoon, in the early evening.
R3332:6
A desert place -- Tell the good tidings, no matter in what form they must be
presented, no matter how intolerable the conditions. The important thing is
that some are hungry for the truth and the Lord will bless us in ministering it
to them. R3333:5
Buy themselves victuals -- The people seem to have been so entranced with the good tidings
that they entirely forgot their own necessities. R2435:5
Matthew 14:16
Give ye them to eat -- There was a seeming necessity for the miracle. R4617:2
Before sending them away he
instructs all his disciples to supply them with something to eat--spiritual
food, truths pertaining to the kingdom, affording strength and encouragement
for the dark hour of trouble ahead. R2436:1,4; NS123:5
We should be ready at any time to
distribute our store of truth; whenever anyone is hungering and thirsting after
righteousness. R3333:5
If they do not get spiritual food,
they will faint by the way as they go looking for other provisions. We have the
very thing which all the household of faith needs. R3334:1
Matthew 14:17
But five loaves -- It was Andrew who returned with word that a lad of the
company had five loaves and two small fishes which he put at their disposal.
R3333:1
A lesson also respecting the
spiritual food, that we should not despise the day of small things. R3333:5
We may feel that the multitude is
large and that the means at our disposal for reaching them with the bread of
life are limited. R3333:5
It requires faith to go forth and
to hope to accomplish the great harvest work under present limited conditions.
R3333:6
And two fishes -- The Lord takes our time and talents, little and unworthy as
these are, and blesses them and uses them in his service, and accomplishes
great things. R3780:5
Matthew 14:19
The five loaves -- About the size of our large buns and made of the entire
wheat, ground. R5104:5
And the two fishes -- We object to the claim of special sanctity and
acceptableness with God on account of a purely vegetable diet. R3098:3
He blessed -- The giving of thanks did indeed give a blessing upon the
food. R3780:6
It is incomprehensible how any
consecrated Christian dare neglect to render thanks for his daily food. Mere
outward formalistic acts of piety by others, however, are not pleasing to God.
R2643:6, 2644:2
To his disciples -- Possibly the increasing continued at the hands of the
apostles as they in turn distributed the food to the people. R3333:1
Those who now follow the Lord as
his special disciples will, in the Millennial age, be supplied abundantly with
the bread of life, and be privileged to distribute it to all the families of
the earth. R3781:4
He could have fed the multitude
without their help. R2644:4
We now have the privilege of being
co-workers in the dissemination of the harvest message. R2644:4
Matthew 14:20
They did all eat -- A lesson of divine power; also, that Jesus was the Son of
God, through whom that power was exercised. R4617:6
The Lord's miracles of feeding and
healing were performed not upon his consecrated disciples, but upon others, his
followers having covenanted to share with him in the work of sacrifice. R1754:6
Exemplifying the coming power and
glory of the great King of the world, who is to bless, feed and and uplift the
race of Adam. R3333:3
And were filled -- If we lived more on the plain substantials of life, we
would know when we had enough. R3781:4
Skeptics who deny this miracle
cannot deny that this grain and these fishes could, in due time, by natural
methods, have brought forth enough to feed this multitude. R3333:2
They took up -- Those who receive of the Lord's bounty should be none the
less appreciative of it, and careful of its use. R2435:5
We are not to waste spiritual
privileges because they are free gifts; rather we are to prize every spiritual
morsel and gather up in store for future needs of ourselves and others. R2435:6
Of the fragments -- Not the fragments left by the multitude, but those broken
by the Lord and not yet distributed. R3781:4
The Master displayed frugality and
encouraged economy on the part of his followers. R5104:5
Twelve baskets full -- Haversacks, in which the 12 apostles carried their provisions;
a good supply for further necessities. R2435:5
It was those who scattered to
others who had their own haversacks full in the end, those who are most intent
upon feeding others the bread of life are themselves most bountifully supplied.
R3504:2, 2436:4
So that none of God's provision
for his people might be wasted. R3333:3
The memory is our
"basket" in which we are to gather up in store for ourselves and
others every spiritual morsel. R2435:6
Matthew 14:21
About five thousand men -- Yet at the time of his temptation he refused to
miraculously appease his own hunger. F650; R1063:2*
Arranged in 100 groups of 50 in
the form of a three-sided square, after the shape of a Roman reclining table,
the disciples passing in at the open side were thus able to reach the entire
company. R3333:1
By reason of having received the
holy Spirit, Jesus had power to do anything that might be necessary in God's
service. Q495:2
Matthew 14:22
Get into a ship -- To expedite the dispersion of the multitude. R2649:3
To go before him -- To give them opportunity to think over the miracle, and
talk it over by themselves in his absence. R3333:5
Unto the other side -- Back to Galilee, Herod's territory, evidencing the fact
that our Lord's conference with his disciples had a pacifying and strengthening
effect on them. R2435:3
Matthew 14:23
A mountain apart -- Pray in secret. R5379:6*
To pray -- The Lord frequently spent whole nights in prayer. R1863:5
For the refreshment of his own
zeal, for the keeping warm of his own love and devotion, which was the basis of
his consecration. R2649:6
We cannot come too often. R1865:3
Nearly all the Great Teacher's
recorded prayers are simple and brief. Whenever he wished to make long prayers,
he went to the Father alone. R5095:3
He was there alone -- Even his beloved disciples, not having been begotten of the
Spirit, could not enter into fellowship with him in respect to spiritual
things, nor appreciate the trials which came to him as a perfect man. R2649:6
Though he sometimes prayed with
the disciples in their hearing, he was not content with these opportunities,
but frequently sought the Father alone. R2649:3
There are times when we love to
join our hearts and voices with others at the throne of grace, and there are
other times when we need individual, personal, private communion with God.
R3333:4
Matthew 14:24
But the ship -- Representing the experiences of the Lord's true church.
R2650:3
Was now -- Throughout the Gospel age. R2650:4
During the darkness of the
nighttime which precedes the Millennial dawn, there will be storms and
difficulties arising which would overwhelm us without the Lord's aid. R2650:3
Tossed with waves -- Representing the great storm of trouble and persecution,
against which the true church has been obliged to contend. R2650:4; SM748:T
"We wrestle not against flesh
and blood [merely], but against principalities, against powers." (Eph.
6:12) R2650:4
The wind was contrary -- The great adversary, through the anti-Christ and many less
anti-Christs, has aroused, all through the Gospel age, a great storm against
the Lord's faithful few. R2650:4
Matthew 14:25
In the fourth watch -- Between three and six in the morning. R2650:2
In the early dawn of the
Millennial day. B191; R2650:4
"God shall help her early in
the morning." (Psa. 46:5) R2650:4
Jesus went -- Typifying the second advent of the Lord. B191
Unto them -- Typifying the church in the flesh in this harvest time.
B191
Walking on the sea -- Typifying the stormy sea of the world's unparalleled
trouble. B191
The manner of his coming was different
from what had been expected. R2650:4
Storms and trials have beset the
church collectively all through the journey from Pentecost until now. In the
morning watches he has appeared. SM748:1
Individually we have such
experiences. The Lord for a time permits the storms of life to assault us. Then
he manifests himself, and the storms no longer cause us dread and fear. SM748:T
Matthew 14:26
It is a spirit -- They supposed it to be an apparition, a spirit
manifestation in human form, walking on the water. R5095:3
Thinking they had seen a
supernatural being and that it foreboded some calamity. R2650:2
Matthew 14:27
Be of good cheer -- It helped the disciples later to remember how the Master
came to them on the troubled sea and brought peace and quiet. R5095:5
It is the privilege of those who
are fully consecrated to the Lord to be cheerful, happy, even in the midst of
unsatisfactory and painful conditions. R4592:4, 2083:5, 1949:5
Cheerfulness is one of the
loveliest graces of the Christian character. R1123:2*
Be not afraid -- They were all affrighted until thus reassured. R4618:2
"All things work together for
good to them that love God." (Rom. 8:28) R1607:5, 5058:6
See also comments on John 6:20.
Matthew 14:28
And Peter -- Representing those who now believe the Lord is present.
R2650:4
Answered him -- Showing both the strength and weakness of Peter's natural
disposition: noble and courageous, but rather forward and boastful. R4618:1
Bid me come unto thee -- Peter had the wonderful courage to make the effort. R5095:6
Perhaps rashly. SM748:1
Matthew 14:29
And he said, Come -- "Come out of her, my people." (Rev. 18:4) C167
Walked on the water -- By the same power that enabled him and the other disciples
to heal the sick and cast out demons. R4618:2
Matthew 14:30
Afraid -- His faith failed. R5095:6
The same Peter who later drew his
sword and smote the servant of the High Priest in his Master's defense; yet,
only a few hours later, denied him with oaths and cursing. R4618:1
Beginning to sink -- While Peter's faith was stronger than that of the others,
and of ours today, it was not strong enough. R4618:2
As the Lord found no fault with
St. Peter for his efforts, we are bound to admire the degree of faith and
courage which he manifested. R5096:1
When conviction of unworthiness
becomes deep-seated, the heart is most likely to cry unto the Lord for
deliverance from darkness. R4618:4
Matthew 14:31
Stretched forth his hand -- Our Lord's help of Peter corresponds to that greater help
from death for the whole world; and of a helping hand to God's children now.
R4618:5
The same arm supports them well
who now come out of Babylon. C167
To all who cry unto the Savior for
deliverance from sin and death, he lends a helping hand. R4618:4
All God's people, like Peter,
would like to do some wonderful thing to show their faith; and often they would
utterly fail, did not the Lord interpose for their rescue. R5095:6
So all of the faithful now will
need the Master's hand stretched to their relief; otherwise they would sink in
discouragement because of lack of faith. R2650:5
He will not reproach for sins
repented of; rather, he will say, Why did you not come sooner? I was quite
willing to aid you as soon as you cried. R4618:4
O thou of little faith -- Had his faith continued, he would have been sustained.
R5095:6, 4618:2
The Lord's rule with his people
seems to be, "According to thy faith be it unto thee." R5095:6
Peter made a mirror of his
mistakes and thus, learning to know himself more particularly, he was
safeguarded through the many dangers natural to his temperament. R5096:1
Matthew 14:32
The wind ceased -- The lesson of the occasion being ended. R4618:2
All the storms and billows of
trouble and persecution which may impede and weary us are amenable to his
control. R2650:3
If the miracle of the loaves
illustrated his power to protect his people from want, this manifested that his
power is able to preserve his people in the storms, difficulties and trials of
life. R2650:3 When the Lord has joined himself to his church, the trials,
storms and difficulties will be at an end, and the desired haven of the
heavenly condition will have been reached. R2650:5
Matthew 14:33
Worshipped him -- Realizing afresh that he was the Son of God in power; that
even the winds and the waves obeyed him. R4618:2
The Son of God -- If the Son of God, he is true; and if he is true, then all
the exceeding great and precious promises which he left for us may be relied
upon, built upon, anchored into. R2650:6
Matthew 14:36
Touched the hem -- God's consecrated people have realized a spiritual blessing
as Jesus passed their way, and by faith they touched him. R5096:4
Realizing him to be the Son of the
highest. R5096:5
Matthew 15
Matthew 15:1
Scribes and Pharisees -- They would have been glad to have recognized him as a
Pharisee and do his mighty works in the name of Pharasaism, but his attitude
was that of an independent. R3786:2
Prophesying, in the ordinary sense
of teaching, afterward became popular with a certain class, and degenerated
into Pharisaism. A55
Matthew 15:3
Transgress the commandment
-- Make void the law of God. NS843:2
Matthew 15:6
He shall be free -- The commandment had been changed by the Talmud and any man
might be free from all obligations to his parents by consecrating himself and
substance to God. R5096:6
None effect -- Null and void, which they had no right to do. R5096:6
By your tradition -- Teaching as commandments of God what are really the
traditions of men. OV159:T; Q747:2
Similarly, both Catholics and
Protestants are teaching traditions of the "Dark Ages" instead of the
Word of God. OV159:T; NS762:5
Every creed tends to take the
place of the Bible, just as the Talmud does with the Jews. R5298:5
The theories and opinions that had
been formed and handed down from the past, that were not based upon the inspired
testimony of the Prophets. Q747:2
As found in the Systematic
Theology volumes of Christendom and in the Talmud of the Jews, teaching for
doctrine the precepts of men. D64; HG716:4
Handed down through all the creeds
of Christendom; the doctrine of Purgatory being a little less unreasonable than
the creeds of Protestants. NS763:1
The traditions of men are
unreliable, and from these come the errors which hinder the proper
understanding of the Scriptures. NS301:3
Satan could not get Israel to
forsake the law, so he took the opposite course and, by multiplying the forms
and ceremonies of religion, he satisfied their consciences, while he blinded
them to the true meaning of the Law. R525:5
The traditions of men speak fear
of the Almighty who, they say, has already sent to eternal torment the vast
majority of our relatives, friends and neighbors. NS762:4
There are true traditions (Gal.
1:14; 2 Thess. 2:15) and false traditions. Their harmony with the Divine Word
determines which are true and which are false. Q747:2,1
Matthew 15:7
Ye hypocrites -- Hypocritically pretending to make a covenant with the Lord,
pretending to be his people. Their punishment will be greater because of their
hypocrisy; nevertheless, it will be with a view to their recovery and not their
destruction. HG684:5
Matthew 15:8
Draweth nigh unto me -- There never was a time when Jewish laws and ordinances were
more faithfully observed than during that harvest--every form, ceremony and
tithe was scrupulously remembered; the Temple of Herod was their grandest, and
missionary enterprises were on foot for Judaizing the world. R235:1
The outward show and splendor of
civilization called Christendom is, in many respects, impressive. SM245:1
With their mouth -- It would be better not to approach the Lord at all than to
do so in an improper manner. R5480:1
A Christian should not say
prayers, but should pray. He should not think of saying even one word that he
does not mean and has not thought out. R5480:1 With what carefulness should we
take upon us his worthy name! R1527:6
"Thou shalt not take the name
of the Lord thy God in vain." (Ex. 20:7) R1527:2
"Let every one that nameth
the name of Christ depart from iniquity." (2
Tim. 2:19) R1527:3
Their heart is far -- Few indeed apply their hearts unto instruction; yet,
without the least hesitation, multitudes take the name of God and of Christ in
vain. R1528:5
The Lord regards anything short of
simple candor and honesty of heart with aversion. R1527:6
The command of chief love should
be in our hearts. If so, love for God will permeate everything. R4052:3
Matthew 15:9
In vain do they worship -- The difficulty is that these improper worshippers have such
a wrong fear of God that they cannot love him and hence cannot draw nigh to him
with their heart. NS762:3
Teaching for doctrines -- What gross and hideous doctrines have not shielded
themselves under the name Christian, vainly taken? R1528:5
The commandments of men -- Thereby opposing the truth and becoming false prophets or
false teachers. A55
Their own dreams, imaginings, or
the dreams of their forefathers, in neglect of the Word of God. OV158:6
The traditions of men, the
propagation of men's theories, the advancement of denominational interests.
R5631:1
Through sectarian creeds and
catechisms. The result of even mixing truth with error is confusion--Babylon.
R442:5 For their own erroneous doctrines they have claimed divine authorship;
their words are not acceptable to God because they have not submitted
themselves to his plans and methods. R3647:6
Matthew 15:13
Hath not planted -- The true Church, the New Creation, is of the Father's
planting. Our Lord says, "I am the Vine, ye are the branches." (John
15:1-6) F207
Shall be rooted up -- "And the angel thrust his sickle into the earth and
gathered the vine of the earth." (Rev. 14:19) F207
Matthew 15:14
Let them alone -- Special light in both harvests is for the Israelites
indeed. B28
Corresponds to the command,
"Come out of her my people, that ye be not partakers of her sins."
(Rev. 18:4) R718:3
Blind leaders -- Bewildered leaders of human thought. R5468:2
These words, though applied by
Jesus to the Jewish house, were also intended to apply to that of which it was
a shadow, the Gospel house. R718:3
Blinded by Satan who, by mixture
of dishonoring falsehoods with their little truth, conceals the grandest
elements of the divine nature. R525:5
Illustrated by the prophet in
likening them to "blind watchmen" (Isa. 56:10); not for lack of
natural vision so necessary to watchmen, but of mental perception--"they
are ignorant" of the character and purposes of God. R718:3
The Master denounced the religious
hypocrites of his time as greater sinners than murderers and thieves. OV390:1
The body of the ministry today has
sadly fallen. R5631:5
The end of the Gospel dispensation
would be characterized by general declension in religion, especially by the
falling of pastors or teachers from the truth. R718:3
Of the blind -- The blindness will continue upon fleshly Israel until the
Gospel church is completed. (Rom. 11:25) R2615:4
In the coming age, their blindness shall be taken away, their pride shall be humbled, and then shall they seek Him whom, with wicked hands, they had crucified and slain. R606:6
Lead the blind -- By the tendency to depart from God's Word. R1717:1
Both shall fall -- While the most influential, who betray their trust as
stewards, are the greatest sinners in Zion, those who blindly follow their
leading become partakers of their sin (Rev. 18:4) and share the same penalty.
R1875:1
Into the ditch -- Into the ditch of general doubt and unbelief here, as their
prototypes did in the trouble which closed the Jewish age. R2948:1, 2615:3,
2036:1, 1792:3
The pit (Diaglott). R718:3
Because Jesus was a "stone of
stumbling and a rock of offense to both the houses of Israel" (Isa.
8:14)--the fleshly and the spiritual house. R862:5
The Federated Protestant
"image" will fall into the ditch of anarchy. R4690:3
Matthew 15:21
Then Jesus went -- With the people discussing the wisdom of making him king,
with Herod's boldness manifested in the beheading of John, and with the
realization that his time had not yet come, he left the parts where he was so
well known. R3786:1
Into the coasts of -- Into parts of Galilee which bordered upon Tyre and Sidon.
R2280:3, 3786:2
Not into the countries themselves,
for they were Gentile countries. He was still in Israel, in Galilee, but over
toward the border of Tyre and Sidon. R2280:3
Tyre and Sidon -- Within the boundary of the land called Phoenicia. R3786:1
Populated largely by Carthaginians
and Syrians. R3786:6
Matthew 15:22
Woman of Canaan -- Not an Israelite, therefore "without God and having no
hope in the world." (Eph. 2:12) R2653:2, 4627:1
Of Syrian ancestry, by education
and language a Greek. In a word, she represented quite a mixture of
nationalities, a Gentile out and out. R3786:6
Cried unto him -- In a loud voice, and probably with weeping. R2653:2
Not only overcoming the prejudices
of her own heathen ideas, but also everything akin to pride and the fear of
being rejected as one unworthy of the favor she sought. R2653:2
As a poor and uneducated woman she
would naturally have great diffidence in approaching a learned man, especially
one so notable as this great Prophet of Israel. R2653:2
Have mercy on me -- Jesus ignored the petition. R4627:1
Thou son of David -- "The Lord shall give him the throne of his father
David." (Luke 1:32) C257
The long-promised king of David's
line, the Messiah. E130; C257; SM210:2
Grievously vexed -- In danger of entirely losing reason. R4627:5
A devil -- A fallen angel. It is a great and important truth that many
humans are more or less obsessed by evil spirits--demons. R4627:5
In a sense, all sin and sickness
are afflictions of the devil, the result of Satan's lie. R4627:5
Matthew 15:23
Not a word -- Perhaps the delay was in order to consider well the path of
duty, the work which the Father had given him to do. R2280:3
To test the woman's faith as well
as to manifest to others, then and since. R2280:3
We consider it not unreasonable to
suppose that he thoroughly understood the case from the beginning and adopted
the method he did to draw out her faith. R2653:3
To many, this would have been
sufficient to have discouraged faith and sent them away weeping. R2653:2
How apt the majority are to speak
and act without one moment's thought respecting the will of the Father. R2280:6
How different in our case! We, who
were once aliens, have, upon making a covenant, been adopted into the Lord's
family. We need not importune for favors; they are ours for the taking. R2653:6
If, in our case, the Lord see not
best to grant a prompt response, we may be sure it is not from lack of interest
in our welfare. At the very latest, by the Millennial kingdom, deliverance will
be granted, not only to us, but to all mankind. R2653:4
With us, too, we may see that it
will be better if he should for a time ignore our petitions, that thus we might
become more earnest and perhaps increase our faith. R3787:4
Besought him -- Whether from sympathy or from vexation because she was
interrupting their opportunity for study and communion with the Lord we cannot
judge. R2280:6
Send her away -- Grant her request, and let her go away. R2280:6, 2653:3
Crieth after us -- Her importuning
of the disciples would imply that Jesus had left the house. R3787:1, 2653:2
Matthew 15:24
I am not sent -- To manifest God's favor towards. R4627:2
When our Lord sent forth his
Apostles to preach and heal, he told them to pass by all who were not Jews.
R4627:1
Not because of narrowness on his
part, nor because of insufficiency of time on God's part, but because time and
order have to do with every feature of God's plan. R4344:2
The time had not yet come for
giving Gentiles a place in God's family as children of Abraham. OV365:T
Unto the lost sheep -- Those who have wandered from the Lord and were lost in the
wilderness of sin and darkness. R2084:3
Individuals, not tribes. R2085:1
The house of Israel -- Until the full end of Israel's 70th week of favor. C170
Gentiles and Samaritans were
passed by. With a few exceptions, our Lord's miracles were confined to the
Jews. R4627:1
They alone were God's covenanted
people. R4627:1, 2512:2
"Go not into the way of the
Gentiles, and into any city of the Samaritans enter ye not." (Matt. 10:5)
A72, 97; R2872:1, 1451:2, 257:2; HG343:2; OV224:5
"You only have I known of all
the families of the earth." (Amos 3:2) A97
Our Lord said not one word about
the "house of Judah," which he manifestly considered was merely a
part of the whole nation of Israel. C300
The whole twelve tribes, all of
whom were represented in Palestine. B207; C252, 293
No longer represented by our Lord
and the Apostles as the "ten tribes" merely, but, as it is expressed,
"all Israel." R1341:1; B206; C252
When the apostles were finally
sent out to preach the gospel to all the world, they were told to begin at
Jerusalem. (Luke 24:47) R1783:6
It was not until Israel had
stumbled through unbelief and been rejected of God (Matt. 23:37,38) that he
authorized the preaching of the gospel to the Gentiles. R2518:6
So, in this harvest, the message
is only to spiritual Israel. R1742:4
Matthew 15:25
Then came she -- The faith was there, hence the persistency of the request.
R3787:1
Lord help me -- Her importunity, when she recognized the Lord as the only
help. R4627:5
She left it entirely to the Lord's
wisdom how the help and mercy should be bestowed. R2281:1
Her daughter's cause was her
cause. R2280:6
However degraded and outcast from
God's favor, we may still know of the divine compassion. R4627:2
Matthew 15:26
It is not meet -- Because the appointed time had not yet come, according to
God's Plan, for favor to be shown to any people but Israel. R1451:2
The children's -- Israelites'. R2604:3, 1000:4
Bread -- Favor. R1451:2
The children of God will be first
fed from this table. R4627:4
Cast it to dogs -- Customary Jewish phraseology respecting Gentiles,
signifying their inferiority. R4627:2, 5444:4, 5004:6, 2604:3, 1451:2
This did not signify that the Lord
had no love for the remainder of mankind; their blessing would come in due
time. R4627:4
Our Lord used the form of word
which indicates the little pet dogs of the family. R3338:4
The word here used by our Lord,
and also by the woman, signifies house dogs or little dogs, pet dogs, and not
the objectionable wild dogs of Rev. 22:19. R2653:6
Not ferocious dogs, but house dogs--dogs
which were friends and companions of the children. R2281:1
A rebuff, calculated to dishearten
one of little faith, but correspondingly to strengthen a great faith; not of
disdain, contempt or indifference, but implying interest and sympathy, explaining
a reason for rejection. R2653:5
Had pride been in her heart, this
response would have been sufficient to put her on her dignity, so that she
would have ceased her importunity and tiraded against the Lord and the Jew as
ecclesiastical bigots. R3787:2
Are we humble enough to accept his
mercy on his conditions, acknowledging ourselves nothing, that we have no merit
to plead with him? R3787:4
Matthew 15:27
Truth, Lord -- Her faith, while persistent, was not intrusive nor
assertive; as a result, her prayer was granted. R2281:1
Note the difference between this
attitude and the curious and unbelieving desire for miracles of the people of
his home city, Nazareth. R2579:5
Yet the dogs -- She was willing to confess herself one of the Gentile dogs,
that she had no right to claim any of those blessings of healing for her
daughter because she was not of the Jewish nation. Q601:T
Eat of the crumbs -- What perseverance was manifested: she believed the Lord to
be the Messiah. R4627:2
Jesus granted the woman a crumb
from the divine table. R5004:6
"There was a certain beggar
named Lazarus, laid at his gate, full of sores and desiring to be fed with the
crumbs." (Luke 16:20,21) R2604:2
As he let some of the crumbs of
knowledge and blessing fall to the Samaritans in John 4; an illustration of the
Apostle's words, "Do good unto all men as you have opportunity."
(Gal. 6:10) R2574:5
Offering a clear explanation of
how the Gentiles, pictured by Lazarus in the parable of the Rich Man and
Lazarus, ate of the crumbs of divine favor which fell from Israel's table of
bounties. R1087:1, 1086:6, 1000:4, 802:3, 284:2; HG385:6; Q600:1
In God's due time not only crumbs
will fall for the remainder of the race, but rich and bountiful provision.
R4627:4
Master's table -- The table, or food, spread before fleshly Israel, God's
fleshly children, consisted of those special favors and promises of God to them
as his Chosen People. R4782:1
Matthew 15:28
Great is thy faith -- She had more faith than a majority of the Jews. R4627:2
God's chiefest blessings are for
the faithful. R4627:1
Matthew 15:30
Lame, blind, dumb -- All "afflicted of the devil" (verse 22), for all
afflictions are either directly or indirectly of Satan. R2281:2
To unstop the mental ears is more
wonderful than to open the physical ears; to cause the dumb to sing praises to
God is greater work than the giving of natural speech. R5104:5
He healed them -- If the laws of nature can be controlled to some extent by
man for his own convenience, how much more able is God to control the operation
of his own laws. R2281:5
His mission was not to heal the
sick and cast out devils, but to give his life a ransom. The miracles and cures
were merely incidentals, and not his real work; incidental in that they
illustrated his great kingdom work. R5104:2, 2281:4 It was not so important
that certain persons be physically healed, nor that the multitudes not go
hungry over night, but that the apostles should get the needed lessons and see
the Lord's power. R5920:5
It would have been still greater
to have opened the eyes of their understanding and their deaf ears; but this
work could not be accomplished at that time. R5104:4
Matthew 15:31
The God of Israel -- Of the whole twelve tribes. C252, 293, 300
Matthew 15:32
I have compassion -- The necessity prompted our Lord to use of the divine power
communicated to him by the holy Spirit; but he had refused to use this same
power selfishly. R4617:2, 2006:4
On the multitude -- He created food for the multitudes, but not for himself or
his disciples. They undoubtedly ate of the food, but its object was for the
relief of the multitude. R2006:5
Three days -- What other teacher ever had 5000 people leave their
employment and, negligent of food, follow him three days in the wilderness?.
R575:2
Matthew 15:36
Loaves -- Of ground whole wheat, about the size of our large buns.
R5104:5
Matthew 15:37
They did all eat -- Hungry and thirsty, yet feeding thousands. R1063:2*
Quite possibly some of us would
find ourselves equally healthy and strong on similarly plain food. R5104:5
And were filled -- From the Bible standpoint, these miracles are most
rational. The power of God, which produces as much as 250 grains from one
kernel, is surely sufficient to produce many times as much if the necessity
occurred. R4617:5
Jesus refused to use this same
power selfishly for his own comfort, even when he hungered after having spent
forty days in the wilderness at the outstart of his work. R4617:2
They took up -- The Master displayed frugality and encouraged economy on
the part of his followers. R5104:5
Matthew 16
Matthew 16:1
Pharisees -- A strong holiness party. OV71:T; R4986:3, 2939:5, 2485:6
Sadducees -- Higher Critics and politicians; or Reform Jews. OV70:3;
R2939:6
Practically unbelievers; of the
wealthier, more respectable class. R4986:3
The agnostics or rationalists of
that time. R2756:4
Matthew 16:3
Foul weather -- Our interest in the weather leads us to take notice of the
conditions of the sky which presage storms and fair weather. NS632:4
Can ye not discern -- Many see the signs of the new dispensation without knowing
how to read them or what they signify. NS632:5
Should we not be much more deeply
interested in the much more important things pertaining to the development of
the divine plan? NS632:4
It was then, as now, the nominal
church which discerned not. R384:3
Signs of the times -- Even those who have no knowledge of the divine plan are now
reading the signs of the times so clearly as to approximate the time of a new
order of things. R1619:3
Matthew 16:4
No sign be given -- The special light in both harvests is for the Israelites
indeed. B26, 27
While dismissing the
self-satisfied, fault-finding quibbles of the Pharisees with dark or evasive
answers, our Lord took time and care in making truth clear and plain to the
humble. B27
But the sign -- The one great sign given that nation was not given until
Calvary. R5111:3
The prophet Jonas -- As Jonas was (portions of) three days and three nights in
the belly of the fish, so the Son of Man would be a similar period in the
earth, and then come forth. R5111:3
That sign did have a great effect
upon thousands of Jews, as is evidenced in the account in Acts of the thousands
baptized upon hearing Peter's preaching of Jesus' death, three days in the
tomb, and resurrection on the third day. R5111:3
See also comments on Matt. 12:40.
Matthew 16:6
Beware -- Be cautious, careful and watchful. R1670:6
Be ever on the watch that we be
not caught in any snare of the Adversary. R1661:6*
Of the leaven -- Corruption, error, sin. F464; T98
Incipient putrefaction, hence a
symbol of impurity. R1800:2
Symbol of an evil influence.
R5390:2
Symbolizing not merely false
doctrine, but also a wicked disposition. R2283:4
Of the Pharisees -- Typifying the synods, conferences, councils, etc., of the
nominal church. C152
Matthew 16:9
How many baskets -- Doubtless our Lord and the disciples partook of the bread
and fish after they were made, but the object was the relief of the multitude,
and not their own refreshment. R2006:5, 1754:6
Matthew 16:12
Of the doctrine -- With special reference to the state of the dead. R433:1*
Of the Pharisees -- The Pharisees believed in the immortality of the soul and
the eternal suffering of the wicked. R432:6*
Of the Sadducees -- The Sadducees did not believe in the resurrection, nor in
angels or spirits. R432:6*
Matthew 16:13
When Jesus came -- Probably toward the close of the third year of our Lord's
ministry. R3339:2, 2287:3
Caesarea Philippi -- On our Lord's most northerly journey in Palestine, just at
the headwaters of the river Jordan. R3788:1
Whom do men say -- Not because of his own ignorance, but that he might draw
out the thoughts of his disciples. R4645:1
Drawing out the apostles, and
seeking to crystallize in their minds the thought which he knew was already
forming or had formed. R3339:6
The Son of man -- A title recognized among the Jews as appropriate to the
Messiah; a title applied to Messiah by Daniel the prophet. (Dan. 7:13,14)
R3788:1
Matthew 16:14
Thou art John -- Herod, who had beheaded John the Baptist, seems to have
started the suggestion that Jesus was John risen from the dead. R2656:2
The answer that some thought him
John the Baptist risen from the dead showed that the public mind was being
exercised, noting that he was not an impostor. R3339:6
Some, Elias -- The Elijah prophesied to precede Messiah's coming. R2656:2
Others, Jeremias -- The doctrine of reincarnation, wholly unscriptural, is
suggested in these answers. R4645:1
One of the prophets -- Very few seemed to have thought of him as the
Messiah--expecting Messiah, when he would come, to be very kingly. R2656:2
Matthew 16:15
Whom say ye that I am? -- This was a pointed question, calculated to bring out a full
expression of their faith. R1760:2
Jesus had been with his disciples
working miracles for nearly two years before he asked them. R5767:5
With the intimate acquaintance
that you have had, what is your opinion? R3339:6
This is the great question of
today. R5120:5
Matthew 16:16
Simon Peter -- Probably the oldest of the disciples, and their spokesman.
R3339:6
Answered and said -- Displaying not only the strength of his faith in the Lord,
but also his own strength of character and his zeal. R2656:3
Peter was the one who had the
courage of conviction to speak out. CR151:5
Special blessings come, not only
from believing in Christ, but also from confessing him to and before others.
R4645:2
The Christ -- God's Anointed One; Hebrew, the Messiah. R3339:6
"The man Christ Jesus, who
gave himself a ransom for all." (1 Tim. 2:5,6) R5120:5
The Messiah, the great deliverer
of Israel and the world of mankind. NS194:5
To be the Christ, he must have
been the "man Christ Jesus" who gave himself a ransom-price for all,
signifying an extraordinary birth; else, as Adam's son, he would have been
subject to the sentence of death. R5120:5
As the Anointed Lord, he shall be
the great King, Prophet and Priest. R5120:6
Who left the glory of the Father
and was made flesh to be the great Redeemer. R5120:5
This was the first public
declaration of Jesus' Messiahship. SM464:1; HG737:2
Our Lord hesitated to present it;
it would better come from the disciples themselves. R4645:1
There was no protest on the part
of any; their silence gave consent. R3788:2
Son of the living God -- The apostles did not contradict the Lord and say that he
was the Father, nor that he was equal with the Father. NS195:3
The Scriptures nowhere speak of
the Lord Jesus as his own father, the Almighty Jehovah. R3788:3
Not of ordinary birth, but the
Sent of God. R5120:5
Not only recognizing Jesus as the
Messiah, but also his divine authority and paternity. R2656:3
Possibly, the Son of God who is
the author of life; probably, the Son of God, the Living One--the one who has a
right to life according to the law; all others are under condemnation to death.
R5120:5, 2656:3,5
Peter thus declared his faith that
Jesus was the Son of God, not the son of Joseph. R5767:5; OV328:4
The belief that Jesus, the Son of
Man (verse 13) was also the Christ, the Son of the living God, lies at the very
foundation of Christianity. R944:4*
Matthew 16:17
Blessed art thou -- You have been greatly blessed of God to see this truth.
R2656:5
Jesus admitted the correctness of
Peter's answer. R5120:1
Not only was Jesus' heart cheered
by Peter's zeal, but Peter was also blessed. R785:2
Simon -- Peter, being the most prompt to confess Jesus' Messiahship,
received the first and warmest commendation and reward. R1760:2
Bar-jona -- Son of Jona. R2656:5
Flesh and blood -- Signifying human nature. R4793:6, 611:2
Mankind in general. R2656:5
Revealed it -- The eyes of your understanding have been opened. R2656:5
But my Father -- Here again our Lord disclaims being the Father. R3788:3
The natural man cannot see the
deep things of God, because they are spiritually discerned. (1 Cor. 2:14)
R5920:3
Not that St. Peter had experienced
a special vision or revelation, but that such a spiritual fact could be
appreciated only by one specially favored of the Father. R4645:1, 5563:2
Which is in heaven -- Jesus referred to the heavenly, and not to an earthly
father. R5767:5, 3788:3
Not on earth, except
representatively. R3788:3
Matthew 16:18
Thou art Peter -- A piece of rock. NS194:3
The word Peter signifies a stone
of moderate size. HG737:2; SM464:2
A stone, a strong-minded,
strong-willed character. R4645:2, 2658:5
Greek, petros, a rock or stone;
one of the "living stones" of the spiritual temple. (1 Pet. 2:5)
E375; F220; R4645:2, 3789:2, 2656:6, 1525:1; NS194:4; SM464:2
A stone ready for the spiritual
temple, the first to publicly acknowledge Jesus. HG737:2; SM464:1
Represented as one of the Twelve
Foundation stones in the New Jerusalem, the other apostles being equally
foundation stones. (Rev. 21:12) R2656:6
He was honored by the name Rock,
or Peter, as a memorial of his being the first to recognize the great
Rock--Christ Jesus. R813:1*
Upon this rock -- Greek, petra, mass of rock, fundamental rock, truth.
SM464:2; F220; R2656:6; NS194:3
This great truth that I am the
Christ. E375; SM464:1; R4645:2, 3789:2
Peter's confession of him was a
rock testimonial--a declaration of the foundation principles underlying the
divine plan. F220
The apostles, the twelve
foundations of the New Jerusalem, were not laid in the sand, but upon the sure
and steadfast rock, Christ Jesus. R1522:1
"Other foundation can no man
lay that that is laid, Jesus Christ." (1 Cor. 3:11) HG736:6; SM463:1
To think of St. Peter as the only
foundation for the Church would be to deny Christ's teaching and St. Peter's
own statement that the entire Church is symbolically represented as living
stones built together by the Lord through his holy Spirit. (1 Pet. 2:4-10)
HG736:3
I will -- Spoken of as future. The foundation was not even laid until
Christ was risen a spiritual being. The building is a spiritual house and is
built on a spiritual rock. R97:3*
Build my church -- The Kingdom of God in embryo, in preparation. R5616:4
Composed only of those who have
taken the steps of repentance from sin, restitution to the extent of ability,
acceptance of Christ's sacrifice, and consecration. F275
Probably the first intimation that
the Lord gave of his intention to build a Church. R2657:1
The Church which Christ organized
has existed through the centuries and is composed of all those individuals
inside and outside of man-made churches, sects and parties. NS193:6
The Church of Rome holds that
Peter was its founder, but it can produce no evidence to this effect. R2657:2,
812:3* Not the present-day, man-made, creed-bound and clergy-lorded systems.
R2657:2
The gates of hell -- Greek, hades, oblivion, death, not torment. E375; SM459:1;
NS195:5
Not gates to some place of
torture, nor to purgatory; it might well be translated "the gates of the
grave." R4645:2
We are not to suppose it is a
barred gateway to a fiery hell and the Church trying to break in; nor should we
imagine the Church on the fiery side, trying to get out. "O hades, where
is thy victory?" 1 Cor. 15:55) R3789:4
Shall not prevail -- As the heavenly Father raised up Jesus Christ from the
dead, so the gates of death shall not prevail against the Church. OV363:4;
SM463:3; R4693:2; NS196:1
The gates of hades did close over
our dear Redeemer himself for portions of three days, but they did not prevail.
R2657:2, 1760:3
Our Lord prevailed over hades on
the third day in his resurrection; the Church also shall prevail on the third
thousand-year day. R1760:3
An assurance of the resurrection
of the dead. HG737:1
Bursting the bonds of death,
bursting the restraints of sheol, of hades, by the Father's power. R3789:4
Persecution, even unto death,
would afflict the Gospel Church, but never prevail to her utter extermination.
R4645:2, 2600:2, 1760:3; E375, 376
Not that his followers should not
enter the portals of death, but that eventually these prison-doors of death
would open. R2657:2
Matthew 16:19
Unto thee the keys -- Representative of the opening power vested in the one who
has been duly authorized to act; as we sometimes say, "He holds the key to
the situation." Q783:4, 795:4
The opening power. F221; E214;
R4345:4
Symbol of power or an authority or
an initiative. HG737:4; SM465:3
A key implies a lock. The thought
here is that God's Kingdom was locked up so that none could enter it. R3789:5
Our Lord did not open the doors of
the Kingdom in the full sense of the word; they could not be opened until first
the great transaction of Calvary had been accomplished. R2657:4
The key which Peter used was
dispensational truth then due, and first made clear to the mind of Peter by the
holy Spirit. R1525:2
Keys represent power and
authority. He needed more than one because hitherto Jew and Gentile were
totally distinct and the Gentiles were not fellow-heirs, not of the same body.
R376:1
Keys, in the plural, implies that
more than one door was to be opened. As a matter of fact, there were just two
doors and just two keys, one for each door, Jewish and Gentile. E214; NS803:1
The first key, on the day of
Pentecost, to open the door for all Jews; three and one-half years later he
used the other key and threw open the door to the Gentiles. PD73/87; SM465:3,4;
R4645:4, 4345:4, 3789:6, 1760:5, 1525:2, 795:4; Q783:4
In 69 AD the door of Jewish favor
closed. Since then, they are privileged to enter the Kingdom of heaven class
only upon the same terms and conditions as the Gentiles. NS186:6
But, the door once opened, neither
Peter nor any other man can close it. Our Lord has the "key of
David." (Rev. 3:7) R1525:2
So powerfully was the Kingdom key
used by Peter that 3000 believers were found--six times as many as had accepted
our Lord during the three and one-half years of his ministry. NS185:5
The other apostles were associated
in the work, but Peter was the leader and chief spokesman in that opening work
of the Gospel dispensation. NS185:4
This door will be closed forever
when all the wise virgins shall have gone in to the wedding. R3789:6
Of the kingdom -- Which, when Christ spoke, was securely locked. R3789:5
A class being called out of the
world to become, with Christ, the ruling power of the world. SM465:2
The Lord used the words
"Church" and "Kingdom" interchangeably, showing that the
Church is the Kingdom in embryo. R32:3*
Whatsoever thou -- All of the apostles, including Peter. R3789:6, 1760:5,
1525:2
As Peter was only one of the
foundation stones of the Church, so he was only one of the twelve to whom this
declaration was made. (Matt. 18:18) HG736:4; SM462:2
Not that the Lord turned matters over
to St. Peter and made him Lord of heaven and earth; nor that any or all of the
apostles were so honored. R4645:4
Not applicable to all of the
Church, but chiefly to the apostles. (John 6:70; 15:16; Rev. 21:14) R2658:1
Shalt bind on earth -- Binding and loosing was a common form of expression in
those days to indicate forbidding and permitting. R3789:6
Respecting the apostles alone, we
have the assurance that whatever they forbade or allowed was under heavenly
guidance and sanction. R3789:6; CR415:4
If they bound certain doctrines
and teachings, we must know that those are bound and firmly established in
heaven. R4645:5
They would be enabled to
understand which things of the Jewish Law were binding upon the Church and
which were not binding. HG736:5; SM463:T
Informing us that certain sins,
willful sins, are not forgivable and may be indeed sins unto death, unto the
second death. R2658:2
Shall be bound -- We must recognize the apostles as God's inerrant
mouthpieces. R4645:5
Signifying that God would specially
control their utterances so that their decisions and writings might properly be
considered authoritative. R2658:1, 1760:5, 1525:2; HG736:5
Loose on earth -- Permit in the Apostolic writings. R3789:6; CR415:4
Whatever they loosed under the
Mosaic law, they were supernaturally directed to do so. R1760:6, 1525:2
If they declared that certain of
the Jewish commandments were not binding upon Christians, we know that the
statement is true and that, in heaven, the release or change is recognized.
R4645:5, 4122:2
Informing us that certain sins can
be remitted or forgiven: sins of weakness and of ignorance, traceable to our
fallen nature. R2658:2
Shall be loosed -- The Lord's overruling would make the twelve apostles safe
guides for his Church. SM462:4
Said to the apostles, and
respecting them; applies to none others of their day or since. R5002:2
Matthew 16:20
Tell no man -- Because the result of such a program would have been to
have aroused at least a party spirit amongst the people, and insurrection would
naturally have followed. R2658:2
Because it might hinder his
crucifixion; or else bring it before the due time. R3790:1
The people in general still needed
line upon line and precept upon precept in the way of evidence before they
would believe. R1760:6
In view of the Jews' expectation
of Kingdom glories, had Jesus announced himself the Messiah at the beginning of
his ministry, the effect would have been disappointment to the degree of
disgust. R3339:3
The time for the proclamation of
Jesus as the Messiah did not come until after his death and resurrection.
Indeed his Messiaship properly dates from his resurrection. R4645:5
He must purchase the world of
mankind before he could become its Lord and Life-giver, its Restorer, its
Messiah. R3340:2
That he was -- He did not need to proclaim his Messiahship, for he already
knew that whomsoever the Father would draw would come. R2658:3
Matthew 16:21
From that time -- After preaching the blessings of the Kingdom for three
years. R3340:2 About the Passover season. R3178:3, 1238:2
Implying that thereafter his
coming death was frequently a subject for discussion and consideration between
him and them. R3340:3
The former part of our Lord's
ministry was devoted apparently to the establishment of his disciples' faith
through cures, miracles and instructions. R2287:3
Truth should be told as the
hearers are able to bear it: milk for babes, meat for men. R2287:6
There is a lesson in this for us:
we should tell our hearers about the blessings of restitution before we preach
the sufferings of the narrow way. R3340:5
Suffer many things -- Testings of faith are as necessary to Jesus' followers as
they were to him; for the same reason: to develop and crystallize character.
PD76/90
And be killed -- He knew the cup was about to be poured for him, but the
disciples did not understand. R5421:2
They must be prepared in advance
for his shameful death, else it would prove such a shock to their faith that
they could not recover from it, nor believe in the resurrection. R3340:2
Matthew 16:22
Then Peter -- Perhaps unduly elated by our Lord's words of commendation
just uttered. R3790:1, 3340:3, 2287:6
Allowance must be made for Peter
in that he was not only the eldest of the apostles, but quite a good deal older
than our Lord and of a very ardent disposition, strong and impulsive. R3340:3
Moved, not merely by selfish
motives of prejudice, but doubtless also by his love for the Lord. R2658:3
Like all strong characters, he had
proportionate opportunities and liabilities to misuse his strength for evil. R2656:2
Took him -- Apart from the others for a private interview and
exhortation. R2658:4
And began -- Our Lord did not wait for him to finish. R2658:4
To rebuke him -- Peter undertook to be the teacher, "not holding the
head" in proper reverence. R3790:2
Let us each see to it that we be
not disposed, as Peter was, to be wiser than our Lord, and to attempt to tell
him how matters should be conducted. R3340:5
Be it far from thee -- Master, do not talk that way. R5585:2
Tempting our Lord to repudiate his
sacrifice. R3178:6
He urged that the Master should
not think of any steps which would lead to death, but should think rather of
prosperity and earthly favor. R4645:5
Trying to persuade the Lord not to
yield himself as the sin-offering. R1217:3
This shall not be -- This death, and the scattering of thy people, and the
triumph of evil generally. D564
The apostles could not understand
how the Messiah could be crucified. R5331:2, 5330:5, 4831:6
Matthew 16:23
But he turned -- Though tempted, he ignored his own will and all suggestions
from others contrary to God's plan. Therein lay the secret of his success.
R1125:5; HG292:6
And said -- Not privately, but in the presence of all his disciples.
R3340:4
Satan -- Adversary of God and of all in harmony with God. R5585:2, 5427:1,
2658:4
Adversary, opposing spirit--Young.
F611
Hinderer of the work. R5585:2,
4645:5, 3790:6
You are becoming my opponent.
R5585:2, 3340:4
In this course, St. Peter was
opposing the divine will and plan, of which the death of Jesus was the very
center or hub. R5120:2, 4756:2
"His servants ye are to whom
ye render service." (Rom. 6:16) R5427:1, 3340:4
Peter had come under the influence
of Satan and become the mouthpiece of error. The great enemy of God sought to
use Peter as a channel of temptation. R2288:1, 1217:3, 450:3
He had become the unintentional
servant of Satan, whose bad counsel, if followed, would have been a violation
of Jesus' covenant. R1217:3
As Peter was the Lord's adversary,
so the world often becomes adversaries of God's children. R5546:5
The followers of Jesus sometimes
need to resist their friends who offer counsel contrary to the divine will.
R5585:2, 4645:5, 2658:5
Informing compromising friends
that their influence is being exercised in the wrong direction, against the
truth, our best interests and the divine plan; hence they are not only our
adversaries, but also adversaries to the Lord. R2658:5
Beware that Satan does not get
possession of our talents and, under the guise of working for Jesus, really use
our powers against the truth. R451:1
Let us take heed that we be not
tools of the adversary in stumbling others and that we be not stumbled by
others who take such positions, no matter how kind and sympathetic their manner
and intentions. R2288:2
Even kindly-meant dissuasions from
duty on the part of our own friends, or the natural desires of our own flesh,
we should recognize as besetments of the Adversary. R1760:6
Jesus was full of love, but he
spoke most emphatically against evil-doers; yet, how differently the Lord's
rebukes affected his loving disciples and the proud Pharisees. R664:1*, 416:1*
An offense -- "A stumbling block" (Revised Version); a stone of
stumbling. The same Peter earlier designated a stone, indicative of strong
character, was now in danger of becoming a stumbling stone. R2658:5
Instead of helping, you are
hindering me. R5585:2
It was about the Passover season,
the time when the Lord's people seem to be be in the greatest danger of
stumbling. R3178:3
"Be not many of you teachers,
brethren" (Jas. 3:1), knowing that a man that is a teacher has severer
trials. R3790:2
Savourest -- Partakest. R2658:5
That be of God -- Divine wisdom. R3340:4, 3790:3
That be of men -- Human wisdom. R3790:3, 3340:4
The things of human judgment and
preference. R5120:2
You are viewing matters, not from
God's standpoint, but from the standpoint of fallible, fallen men. R2658:5
Your counsel is that common to the
world and not of God. R4645:5
Your suggestions are contrary to
the divine program; it is necessary that the Son of man suffer sacrificially.
R4756:2
Matthew 16:24
If any man -- Who is already a believer. R5003:5, 3235:6
The reference is exclusively to
those on the "narrow way" and does not at all refer to the world of
mankind. R2615:5
Many--all believers during the
Gospel age--are called, but all do not care to accept the conditions of
sacrifice which are attached to the call. R1310:4
His words imply that it is a
matter of choice with the individual, and not a matter of compulsion in any
sense of the word. R3235:3; Q282:1; NS344:5
Will come after me -- Will follow my example, be my disciple. R5654:1, 5596:6,
5588:3, 5553:1, 5223:1, 5003:5, 3790:3
Not merely believing that Jesus
died, and that he was holy, etc. R5833:2
Be a follower of mine, walk in my
steps of obedience to the Father's will, and share with me in the Father's
reward. R3236:4
Let him -- Take the steps which the Master indicated as necessary, not
optional, for membership in the household of faith. SM636:1
His followers should count the
cost of discipleship in the same cool, calculating, methodical manner in which
they would count the cost of erecting a building. R3235:6; NS344:5, 654:3
Any who decline these terms are
declining the only entrance conditions connected with the school of Christ.
NS671:5
Deny himself -- Sacrifice himself, his earthly interests and ambitions.
R5696:6, 5588:3,4, 5570:1, 3845:5; Q399:T
Set himself aside, ignore himself,
renounce his own self-will. R5691:1, 5596:6, 5588:3,4, 2616:1; Q399:T; CR409:4
Self-sacrifice unto death. R5006:3
Give over the doing of his own
will--his self- sufficiency. CR347:2
Let him deny all ability to wash
away his own sins; deny his own righteousness and accept of mine. R761:5
Die to himself. R5719:2
Humble himself. R5303:3
It is easier to deny everything
else than to deny yourself. CR149:1
In so doing we are sowing to the
Spirit and shall reap the great reward. R5665:6
The first step is
self-renunciation, full consecration. R5719:2, 5654:1, 5303:3
Set himself aside, ignore himself,
his talent, his will, his wealth, his everything--discipleship first. R5588:3
Self-negation, absolutely
necessary to discipleship. R2658:6
Self-renouncing and fasting, in
the highest sense of the word, is enjoined with fasting from fleshly desires
(both good and bad) in the interests of the new creature and for effective
service. NS154:2
Ignore self-will and
self-gratification, including all earthly ambitions and desires, the sinful,
and no less they that are laudable and proper. R2616:1
Whatever is sweet to nature must
be disowned; illustrated by honey being forbidden in sacrifices. R84:6*
Not merely the outward form
practiced by Christendom during Lent, but that of self-consecration and
immolation which our Lord's words signify. R2616:6
Kill his will outright, not merely
hack and mutilate it. This is not a cross. The desire to give up our will and
accept God's will must be a pleasure. "I delight to do thy will, O my
God." (Psa. 40:8) R3237:2
This first step in following the
Lord is properly designated a sacrifice, but it is not the taking up of the cross.
R3236:6
Self-denial relates more to
passive obedience, cross-bearing to activities in the Lord's service;
self-denial means courage and zeal, cross-bearing means victory; self-denials
may be victories in our own hearts; cross-bearings may be seen by others.
R2616:2
In order for the sacrifice of our
wills to be acceptable to the Lord at all, it must be no cross to us. R3237:1
All subsequent sacrifices which we
may make in the Lord's service are included in, and represented by, this
sacrifice of the will. R3236:6
We should not sacrifice others in
order to be his disciples. It is ourselves that we are to deny, ourselves that
we are to sacrifice. R3845:5
Take up -- Thoroughly imbued with a zeal for God and for
righteousness. R3236:1
Having counted the cost of
discipleship. R3235:6
It is not enough that we should
start out with a courageous intention, a bold acknowledgment of Jesus and a
bold profession of discipleship. R5426:4 It is to be not merely lifted, but
carried. R5223:2
The taking up of the cross is done
after we come to a knowledge of the truth. We cannot take up the cross until we
have seen what the cross is. R5223:2,4
Bearing the cross means enduring
it. R5223:4
The bearing of the cross is the
way of growth in character for the consecrated child of God. R5223:5
His cross -- The trials, difficulties, disappointments; the
"crossing" of the human will made necessary by doing God's will under
present unfavorable conditions. R5596:6, 5553:4, 3237:3, 3236:4, 2658:6
Suggestions of the world, the
flesh and the devil which conflict with the divine will. R5426:4 Self-denial,
cross-bearing is the sacrifice necessary to discipleship at the present time.
R5055:3; SM642:2
As soon as we take hold of the
cross and put forth our efforts, our Lord lifts the real weight of it. R3236:6
A symbol of self-denial,
self-sacrifice, suffering for righteousness' sake in opposition to the spirit
of the world, the flesh and the adversary. NS622:4 In the sense of being
sacrificed, even of earthly interests. Q399:T
A crossing of their own wills,
submission to the divine will. R3341:1
Our faithfulness in cross-bearing
consists in our willingness to stand up for the truth, no matter what the cost
of friendships broken or enmities enkindled. R3237:3
The shame of the Cross, the
ignominy of the Cross, the ordeal pictured by the Cross. NS622:3
Opposition of husband or wife
engendered by faithfulness to the Lord, endurance of opposition by business
competitors because of faithfulness to Christ are part of our cross-bearing.
R5223:3
Jesus' cross-bearing was practiced
continually throughout the three and a half years of his ministry. R2616:3
The Master's cross-bearing did not
consist in fighting the weaknesses of the flesh, for he had none; nor are the
weaknesses of the flesh our crosses. R3237:2
It is fortunate that in the
outstart we cannot appreciate the full meaning of cross-bearing, or few of us
would have the courage to make a consecration. R3536:5
If we were in heaven, in full
accord with the divine will, we could have no crosses from the time we fully
consecrated to the Lord. R3236:4
It is remarkable that the cross,
which symbolized the most ignominious form of capital punishment under the
Roman Empire, should be the symbol of Christianity. NS622:2
And follow me -- Walk as he walked; in the same way, the same direction.
R3237:5
Patiently continuing to bear the
cross. CR347:4
In the footsteps of Jesus, in the
sacrifice of human life and restitution rights. R5596:6, 3237:6; OV251:3, 123:3
"Walk not after the flesh but
after the Spirit." (Rom. 8:1,4) R3237:5
In direct opposition to the
world-current. R2616:5, 1790:5
It would be better not to take up
the cross unless we have the determination to go unto the end. R5223:2
Matthew 16:25
Whosoever -- Of Christ's disciples. R5806:6, 5425:6
Will save his life -- Greek, psuche, soul, being. E335
Many professing Christianity have
never become Christians according to these conditions. R5425:3
Save present social and
ecclesiastical life, including reputation. R591:6
Be solicitous of maintaining his
rights and holding on to the present life. R5120:3
Amounting to a question as to
whether we love the present or future life. R3341:1
Refusing to sacrifice it after
having made the consecration. R2615:5
If we, consecrated believers, turn
back again to live after the flesh, we shall die; for us to be carnally minded
is death, to be spiritually minded is life and peace. R5806:6, 1748:3
Shall lose it -- No question of torment, but of life or no life, of being or
not being, of existence or non-existence, of eternal life or destruction in the
second death. R2288:5
The disposition to preserve the
present life and its comforts at any cost is the disposition which will be
deprived of eternal life. R2288:2
Entirely--losing all hope of a
future life. R2615:5
One must either gain the spiritual
life they have started out for, or lose all life. R2615:5
Lose the great prize of the divine
nature. R5120:3
Discipleship meant the very
reverse of what the apostles had naturally expected. R3790:3
Will lose his life -- Greek, psuche, soul, being. E335
Sacrifice every earthly hope, aim,
object and to lay down life. R5426:2
It is a case of losing our earthly
lives and gaining the heavenly. R3790:4
Only through much tribulation
would they enter the Kingdom. R5426:1
Such devotion will necessarily
mean the severing of many earthly ties. R5426:2
Shall find it -- Only those willing to comply with such terms, demonstrating
their love and loyalty, could be entrusted with the great power, glory and
honor granted the Kingdom class. R5426:1
Will gain the reward of life on
the spirit plane. R5120:3
Matthew 16:26
Is a man profited -- Men labor for wealth, to gain as much as possible of the
whole world, only to find when they are rich that wealth has come at the
expense of health. R276:6, 205:2; E258
Gain the whole world -- If they selfishly seek for the whole world, the selfishness
thus developed will make them unfit for eternal life. R5120:3
Lose his own soul -- Utterly perish. R2288:4
Become a cast-away as respects the
eternal promises within his grasp through Christ. NS265:5
As a result of that selfish will
which is opposed to the divine will and its law of love. R3341:2
For his soul -- Being, existence, his most valuable possession. E258
The word "soul" in this
verse, psuche, is the same Greek word rendered "life" in the
preceding verse. R2658:6, 2288:2, 248:6; E335
His future existence. R2615:6
Matthew 16:27
The Son of man -- It is proper to think of our Lord as the seed of David, and
equally proper to think of him as the seed of Adam, through Eve. E152
Shall come -- At his second coming. R4645:6, 4142:5*, 2288:5
With his angels -- Messengers. R4645:6
And then -- During the Millennial age. R2304:2
The full reward is not given to
the Church until Christ comes. A103
Assuring them that they would not
get the Kingdom inheritance until some period in the future. R3790:5
The rewards of Christ's
discipleship were not to be expected in the present life. All that we may now
have in the way of compensation will be the peace and blessing of the Lord in
our hearts with glorious hopes for the future. NS602:4
Full recompenses, either rewards
or punishments, are not to be expected before the resurrection. R1881:4
Therefore those who have
"fallen asleep" have not already "gone to their reward."
HG347:4
Reward every man -- Including the unjust, for "the Lord knoweth how to
reserve the unjust unto the day of judgment to be punished." (2 Pet. 2:9)
A103
According to his works -- Whereas it is now, "according to thy faith be it unto
thee." (Matt. 9:29) R2304:2
Whosoever now gives even a cup of
cold water to one of the Lord's disciples, because he is such, shall have a
reward. R1469:6
Matthew 16:28
Verily I say -- This verse is separated from its connection by the starting
of a new chapter. The Revised Version corrects this difficulty. R2288:5
There be some -- Peter, James and John: the three apostles most advanced in
faith and zeal. R2659:1
Till they see -- On the mount of transfiguration. Q797:2
Son of man -- The three disciples had seen the Son of Man in his Kingdom
glory in vision. The reality has not yet come to pass. R4649:6
In his kingdom -- Properly rendered "Royal Majesty." Q797:2
As explained in the first nine
verses of chapter 17. R3790:5
Matthew 17
Matthew 17:1
And after six days -- Just about enough time to permit them to discuss and digest
the meaning of our Lord's words concerning his coming death. R3345:5
During the six days following the
announcement of the Master's coming suffering, ignominy and death, we may
assume that the apostles were sad-hearted and bewildered. R5121:2
Jesus taketh -- Seeking to draw their minds gradually to a realization that
his death would not mean a repudiation of the promises of the Kingdom and its
glory. R5121:1
Intending to assure the apostles
respecting the certainty of the Kingdom, notwithstanding the apparent failure
of all Kingdom hopes in our Lord's crucifixion. R2659:2
The object of the vision was
probably two-fold: the comfort and strengthening of the Lord and the
enlightenment of his chosen witnesses. R1761:4
Peter, James and John -- Those most advanced in faith and zeal. R2659:1, 3345:5,
2289:2
Three of his favorites. R4649:3
An high mountain -- Supposedly Mount Tabor. R4650:1
Presumed to be Mt. Hermon. R3345:2
Apart -- Luke tells us that he went there to pray, and we may reasonably
suppose that the three apostles joined with him in prayer. R3345:2, 2659:2,
2289:2
So all those who seek God in
prayer may, to a large extent, with the eye of faith realize this same blessed
vision of the Kingdom. R2660:1
Matthew 17:2
Transfigured before them -- That is to say, his appearance changed. R4649:3, 558:3
Not an actual change from human to
divine, but a vision or picture of it. R3793:6, 2659:5
An illustration of the Kingdom.
PD64/74; R2288:6, 3345:6, 1761:2
It was a vision of Christ's dignity
and glory in the Kingdom. The central figure was Jesus himself. Moses and Elias
were merely accessories to fill out the picture. R3793:5, 2659:2
As the sun -- Representing him as no longer the man Christ Jesus, but the
risen, glorified Son of the Highest, a spirit being. R2659:4, 2288:6
White as the light -- Representing the "glory to follow," when the
sufferings are all complete. B20
His garments put on a shining
appearance and became part of the vision. Q713:2
After the manner of angels.
R5121:2
Matthew 17:3
Appeared unto them -- It was only an appearance, because Christ was the firstborn
from the dead; and neither Moses nor Elias is as yet made perfect. F676;
Q761:3, 713:1; R2288:6
Radiant, but less so than Jesus.
R5121:2, 3345:2
There was glory and honor attached
to the Jewish dispensation and to the Gospel dispensation, but a still greater
glory was manifested in the presence of Jesus, who represented the Millennial
dispensation. R3345:6
The figure was glorious; the
reality excelleth in glory. R1323:2*
Moses -- A figure of Moses, representing the Mosaic or Law
dispensation; or the overcomers of the Jewish age. B255, 20; F677; R5772:4,
5121:4, 3794:3, 3790:6, 3345:5, 2659:4, 2289:1, 2288:6, 1761:2
Identified, either because Jesus
used their names in talking with them; or by Jesus informing the apostles on
the way down from the mountain. Q807:2
Moses spoke of the sufferings of
Christ in all the arrangements of the Law and its sacrifices. R2659:3
He was the mediator, or
representative of Israel, and would very properly represent them in this
tableau. Q260:1
And Elias -- A figure of Elijah, representing the Gospel or Christian
dispensation; or the overcomers of the Gospel age, the Church. B255, 20; F677;
R5772:4, 5121:4, 3345:5, 2289:1
Representing the prophets, who
declared not only the coming glories, but also the sufferings which must
precede them. R2659:3
Both Moses and Elijah had fasted
40 days, as had Jesus, showing that they were one with him in remarkable
devotion to the heavenly Father. R3794:3
Both Moses and Elijah passed from
earth's scene under peculiar circumstances; yet we are assured that both died.
(Deut. 34:5; Heb. 11:13) Q761:3
Neither Moses nor Elias went to
heaven. R5333:5
Moses and Elijah represented two
classes that will participate with Jesus in his Messianic glory in the Kingdom.
R5333:5
Talking with him -- Both dispensations speak of the sacrifices and sufferings
of Christ and the glory to follow. B255
The conversation of the vision
corroborated his statements that he would suffer a martyr's death at Jerusalem.
R3345:5, 2659:3, 2289:1
Probably while the disciples were
asleep (Luke 9:32); and doubtless, therefore, specially for his own comfort.
R1761:5
It was a vision of the heavenly
Kingdom, Moses representing one class, Elijah another, and Jesus himself
representing the other. HG205:4
Moses and Elijah represented the
two classes associated with the Lord in the glory of his Kingdom who will
constitute the earthly and heavenly phases of the Kingdom--Moses the earthly,
Elijah the heavenly. R1761:2, 559:4
The glorified Jesus stood between
the Moses class, called previously, and the Elijah class, which had just begun
to be called. R5121:5
Matthew 17:4
Three tabernacles -- How many, like Peter, want to rear earthly tabernacles,
failing to understand the real vision of the Kingdom. R3795:1
We cannot build tabernacles on the
mountain heights of faith and hope and expect to remain there in enraptured
vision, but must remember that present duties and conflicts are essential to
our development and part of our covenant. R2660:1,4
Matthew 17:5
A bright cloud -- Representing the cloud of trouble into which the apostles
were plunged by the death of the Redeemer. R3794:5
The cloud of trouble and
opposition is permitted to keep us humble, to listen to the voice from heaven.
R3794:5
A misty cloud of light saying to
the disciples and to us that his glory will be obscured for a time, observed
only with the eye of faith, but which, though more or less cloudy, will
nevertheless be bright to those who look unto him. R2659:6
Behold a voice -- "And this voice which came from heaven we heard when
we were with him in the holy mount." (2 Pet. 1:18) B255
Out of the cloud -- Similarly at his birth, heavenly angels announced him; and
at his baptism, the voice from heaven declared him the acceptable Son of God.
R1761:5
Hence God twice burst heaven open
to exclaim, "This is my beloved Son"; but this was the only time in
the history of our race that God's silence was thus broken. R84:2*
This is my beloved Son -- In the sense of being begotten by him, Christ called God
his Father, and God acknowledged him as his Son. R944:4*; HG297:1
Their faith was corroborated: what
they had previously believed, God here testified himself. R5121:3
Hear ye him -- All through the Gospel age, while the misty cloud surrounds
his glory, we shall have great need to continually hearken to the Word of the
Lord. R2659:6
"Let every man be swift to
hear, slow to speak." (Jas. 1:19) R2289:4
Seeming to say, Be still! Hearken
rather to the words of my beloved Son. Not a few need to learn this lesson of
quietness--to hear and learn, to be taught of God. R2289:3
"My sheep hear my
voice." (John 10:27) R3346:5
The essence of the entire vision
was to impress upon the minds of the apostles the fact that Jesus was the
Messiah. R3794:5
Matthew 17:6
Heard it -- Not many have heard, understood, appreciated or obeyed the
Gospel invitation; but in the Millennial age it will be the will of God that
all shall hear. R3345:6
Were sore afraid -- Received a needed lesson in reverence. R2289:4
Matthew 17:7
And touched them -- It required our Lord's kind words and touch to relieve the
apostles of their fright. R4649:3
Be not afraid -- With the fear engendered in the reproof of the voice from
heaven which said, "Hear ye him." R2289:4
As we realize our unworthiness,
fears are likely to grasp us and torture us. The more we learn of him, the more
does the love of God cast out fear from our hearts. R4650:1
He who created us is sympathetic
towards all who are striving for righteousness. He is a great God, not a little
one. R4650:1
Matthew 17:9
The vision -- Of the coming Millennial Kingdom. B255; R5333:5, 5121:6;
Q713:2
Not an actuality, but a vision,
such as seen by John the Revelator. R5772:3, 5121:4
Greek, horama, occurs twelve times
in the New Testament, and on every occasion the context shows that the thing is
not real, but is a vision. R4142:4*
Moses could have been resurrected
by God's power, but nothing in the narrative demands it. If Jesus called it a
vision, why should we call it a reality? R201:1
A vision was just as useful to the
purpose as a reality could have been. R2659:5
Visions are not realities, though
they symbolically represent them. R2826:1, 2288:3
Just as the trumpets, beasts,
etc., of Revelation are not realities, but visions. R5333:5, 5772:4, 5121:4,
3354:3, 2659:5, 2288:3, 559:1; Q259:7, 713:2, 761:3
Special visions and revelations of
the holy Spirit were granted to the apostles to instruct them concerning things
to come. R1525:6
A vivid and refreshing symbolic
view of the Kingdom; but without the "sure word of prophecy" (2 Pet.
1:19), it would have been unintelligible. R1761:4
Frequently the blessings received
are mental visions of the glorious things which the Lord hath in reservation
for them that love him. R3345:2
Matthew 17:11
Elias -- The glorified Christ. B20, 254; Q259:4
A woman is the figure used when
the Church alone is referred to; but here a man, Elijah, is used because the
work prefigured is not the work of the Church separate from her Lord, but the
one work of both. B255
Truly shall first come -- Oldest manuscripts omit the word "first." B254
To prepare the way of Messiah by
performing a reformation work in preaching repentance and baptism for the
remission of sins and declaring the Kingdom of heaven at hand. Q772:4
The coming of Elijah must precede
the day of the Lord (Mal. 4:4,5); but his work belongs to that day. HG68:3
Restore all things -- In the times of restitution of all things. (Acts 3:19-21)
B254 John did do a work of reformation amongst the Lord's people at the first
advent, the work of introducing Messiah. R3292:6
Christ here speaks of restitution,
and he is a prophet. (Acts 3:21) HG56:2
The restitution of all things does
not begin until the return of Christ. Hence the work of Elijah does not begin
until after the personal advent of Christ. HG68:3
Matthew 17:12
Elias is come -- Not reincarnation, for that theory is nowhere taught in the
Scripture. Q772:4, 817:2
Jesus was calling to mind the
prophecy of Mal. 4:5,6. Q772:4
We know positively that John was
not Elijah, for we have his own testimony, "And they asked him, What then?
Art thou Elijah? And he saith, I am not." (John 1:21) Q772:4, 817:2
John the Baptist, a type of the
Elijah class, forerunner of the Church in the flesh, as the Church is the forerunner
of the Christ in glory. B253, 252; R3346:4, 3292:6, 557:1
Elijah was a type of the Church,
and John a continuation of the same; while at the same time a shadowy
fulfillment of it. B254, 253, 257
However, John did not do all that
is to be done by Elijah, and hence a greater Elijah is to be expected. (Matt.
11:14) R2838:6
See also comments on Matt. 14:3. Knew
him not -- Though they for a short time recognized him as a sincere
man, a servant and a prophet of God. (John 5:35) R968:5; B260
Whatsoever they listed -- But to the antitypical Elijah they shall not do as they
list. HG69:2
Matthew 17:14
When they were come -- At the same time this vision was taking place, the other
disciples at the foot of the mountain were contending with the adversary, even
as are the Lord's people of the present time. R2659:4
Matthew 17:15
He is a lunatick -- The Revised Version speaks of the sufferer as an epileptic.
We prefer the narrative as it reads--that Jesus rebuked the "devil"
and cast him out of the boy. R4650:2
Matthew 17:16
Could not cure him -- Thus the Lord's people are still in the valley of conflict
with the will of the flesh and the devil, while with the eye of faith they
behold at the top of the mountain their glorious Lord, soon to share with them
the glories of his Kingdom. R2659:4
Matthew 17:20
Your unbelief -- Faith, to be successful, must be backed by spiritual power.
R4650:4
If ye have faith -- Not imagination or blind credulity. Q774:3; R1967:3
Say -- The request must be in harmony with the divine will.
Q774:2; R1967:3
Unto this mountain -- Regarding the mountain as difficulties and obstructions in
our Christian course, or in the course of God's work, we know that
"miracles" are wrought for those who exercise faith. R1967:5; Q774:3
Remove hence -- God gave no such command in respect to literal mountains.
R5446:4, 1967:5
It shall remove -- If they had proper faith in the power of God and should
receive a command from him. R5446:4, 4650:4
We are not to suppose that our
Lord meant that his followers should try to remove mountains as a diversion,
nor as a proof of their faith. R4650:4
Matthew 17:21
Prayer -- The lesson to the apostles was that their greatest power
would result from their living very near to God; living lives of self-denial
and prayer. R4650:4; NS153:2
Matthew 17:27
Give unto them -- This example of submission to the authority thus
represented that they were all respectful and law-abiding. R1555:6
For me and thee -- Yet Christ refused to miraculously provide for his own
needs at the time of his temptation. F650, 651
Matthew 18
Matthew 18:1
At the same time -- Apparently after the journey back to Capernaum from the
Mount of Transfiguration. R2660:3
Shortly after the vision on the
mount of transfiguration. Our highest views of heavenly things are quickly
followed by earthly trials and difficulties, which serve to test and prove us.
R3795:3
Came the disciples -- The colporteurs and all public representatives of the truth
also are fallible and subjects of special temptations. R1537:1
Who is the greatest -- Perhaps the fact that Peter, James and John had been
favored more led to this query. R5130:2
Who would be the most influential,
the Lord's prime minister. R5361:6, 5130:2
Probably the disciples who were
not with the Lord on the Mount of Transfiguration felt a little envious of
those who had seen the vision and who subsequently told them. R3796:1, 2660:3,
1766:3
The Master invariably encouraged
their hopes and ambitions. His reproofs were merely against their strifes as to
which would be greatest. R1415:3
Matthew 18:2
And Jesus -- Avoiding personalities, as it is always wise to do when
possible. R3796:2
A little child -- Unsophisiticated, guileless, asks questions, seeks
instruction, does not profess and boast of wisdom, is candid, truthful. R5130:2
With heart purity, simplicity,
trustfulness. Q787:2
What a charm there is in
childhood's simplicity. It confidently takes your hand to be led where you
please and you may write upon its blank pages whatever you will. R657:1*
Afterwards, says Luke, he took it
in his arms. R3796:3
Matthew 18:3
Verily, I say -- The manner is impressive and solemn; as though he would
say, I want you to take this lesson to heart and ponder it well. R1766:6
Except ye be converted -- "Except ye turn"--Revised Version. R2660:5
Turned about, changed from your
present attitude of mind in respect to ambition for place and honor in the
Kingdom. R5224:3, 5130:2, 3797:1, 2660:5, 1766:6
From the spirit of the world to
the spirit of Christ. R5557:5, 4767:4, 3647:4
Because the simplicity and meekness
of childhood have been displaced by the art (the selfishness and the proud,
haughty spirit) which despises instruction. R657:1*
As little children -- In meekness and teachableness. R5557:5, 4767:4, 3152:5
Simple of heart, meek, truthful,
free from ambition and rivalry, faithful, trusting, loving, obedient,
teachable, without guile, indifferent to social distinctions and popular
notions. R1766:6, 3796:4
Confessing their littleness and
ignorance, and going humbly to the Lord for the necessary instruction. R5130:3
Not that little children are
members of Christ's Kingdom class. The Lord is seeking mature men and women who
have a childlikeness of mind. R5130:3, 3796:3, 2660:2
The emphasis lies upon the word
"as," in the sense of "like." Only the child-like and
trustful disciples can experience God's highest favor--a share in the Kingdom.
Q787:2
As natural, unlearned men, the
disciples had no doubt been aiming as far as possible from childlike simplicity
to assume the dignity of mind they considered appropriate to their future high
positions. R2660:4
How beautiful the thought,
"children of God!" R521:3
"Brethren, be not children in
understanding; howbeit in malice be ye children, but in understanding be ye
men." (1 Cor. 14:20) R2660:2, 521:3
Shall not enter -- Much less be greatest in. R1766:6
The kingdom of heaven -- The Lord is not discussing the world. R3796:4
Matthew 18:4
Shall humble himself -- Those chosen to the place of eldership and prominence in
the Church should be amongst the most humble of mind and of conduct in the
whole company. R3796:5
As this little child -- Become a child of God and be taught of God. R5130:3
"As newborn babes, desire the
sincere milk of the word, that ye may grow thereby." (1 Pet. 2:2) R2660:3
Indicating that the person is not
overestimating himself and that he has a tender consideration and love for
others which cannot vaunt self. R1767:1
The effect which God designs is
that we should realize our own insignificance and unworthiness of such great
honors. R3797:1
While this meek and teachable
spirit is commended to all, it is not the will of God that they should always
remain babes. R3622:1, 1568:1
The same is greatest -- Will be most honored. Humility and child-likeness among the
Lord's people now should be esteemed a mark of true greatness from the Lord's
standpoint. R3796:5
Not by any arbitrary law of
retribution, but on the philosophical principle that humility leads to
greatness. R1767:2
Rank and honor in the Kingdom will
be proportionate to humility and service here. R309:4*
The maintenance of the child-like
spirit--after the world's hopes, ambitions, etc., have been brought within the
mental grasp of the man--is evidence of that self-control and self-discipline
which invariably bespeak a noble character. R1766:6
Matthew 18:5
Shall receive -- Recognize and show kindness to. R1767:4
One such little child -- One such disciple as has this child-like character. R3797:2
Privileged to be God's little
child, and thus Jesus' younger brother. R5130:5
In my name -- Because he is mine. R1767:4
Receiveth me -- They shall be considered and rewarded as though they had
received the Master himself. R3797:2
Matthew 18:6
Whoso shall offend -- Greek, skandalon, scandalize, stumble, entrap,
injure, hurt spiritually, thus perhaps subjecting himself to losses beyond the
present life. R3797:3, 5130:5, 2661:1
"Ensnare"--Diaglott.
R3622:1
Sowing seeds of discord and
planting roots of bitterness which are sure to bring forth evil fruitage.
R4502:2
It is not only a serious crime
against the law of love to cause one of the Lord's brethren to stumble, but
even to stumble others, hinder them from becoming brethren and members of the
household of faith. R3145:6
A sin in no way covered by
Christ's sacrifice, a sin against a measure of light and knowledge. The chiefest
of these are those against God's people. R5463:5
Ensnare, beguile, lead
astray--from the truth or holiness of life. R1767:4
These little ones -- Those that are little or humble-minded, meek and loyal of
heart. R3797:3
No matter how poor, weak, ignorant
they may be, the very least of the consecrated are supervised, and injury to
them is punishable. SM221:3
New creatures who have only
started in the new way of full consecration to God's will. R5445:2
"Like as a father pitieth his
children, so the Lord pitieth his little ones that love him." (Psa.
103:13) R657:1*
Believe in me -- Showing that Jesus did not refer to infants. R5445:2
Better for him -- Because such a calamity could not in any way affect his
future life. R3797:3, 5445:3; SM221:3
But one who injures the Lord's
little ones will be held responsible for his deeds, even in the next life, in
proportion as he realized what he was doing. R5130:5
Hanged about his neck -- A special reprobation for those who do injury to the
Church. R4502:2
He were drowned -- Some drastic punishment, but not eternal torment. SM222:T
Matthew 18:7
Woe unto the world -- Particularly in the time of trouble. R1767:4
Because of offences -- Greek, skandalon. Much of the world's troubles arises
because of these very snares, traps and injurious misrepresentations. R3797:4
Willful offenses against
sufficient light to avoid them. R1767:4, 5130:6
Including secular organizations.
The same word is that translated "things that offend" in Matt. 13:41.
R1285:1*
It must needs be -- Necessary because it is the divine will that all the elect
Church shall be thoroughly tested and developed in character. R2661:1
That the faithful overcomers may
be developed as well as separated from all others; and that, by their
exaltation, the new Millennial age may commence. R745:1
That offences come -- And divisions. R1279:5
Because men's hearts are not
right. R1767:4
Stumblings, ensnarements. R5445:2
That he should be crucified.
R4908:2
Woe to that man -- That willful sinner. R1767:4
Who would deliberately attempt to
deceive, ensnare, entrap, or discourage his followers. R5445:3
However necessary, this does not
lighten the responsibility of those who lend themselves to the adversary's
influence in placing these stumbling-blocks before the feet of the saints.
R2661:1
Many today do not realize that
they place stumbling-blocks before the Lord's "little ones" to lead
them from the narrow path of full consecration and self-sacrifice. R2661:2
As the spirit of selfishness
undermined the loyalty of Judas to his Master, so a similar spirit of
selfishness may today undermine loyalty to the Lord, his truth and his work.
R3885:1, 2468:1
Matthew 18:8
If thy hand -- Any comfort, pleasure or taste as dear as a hand. R2603:1,
5130:6, 3797:5, 2602:1
The offending hand would represent
the doing of things that would be contrary to our highest spiritual interests.
R2661:4
Or thy foot -- Anything serviceable as a foot. R2603:1
The offending foot would represent
the going into forbidden paths of sin or self-gratification. R2661:4
A quality of character that would
seem as close and precious to us as a right hand or a foot. R3797:4
Offend thee -- By their gratification would forfeit the life to come.
R2603:1
Cause you to stumble. R5130:6
Cause thee to maintain an
injurious character, a tendency to scandalize others. R3797:5
Cut them off -- Remember that Jesus spoke to the people in parables, and
never without a parable. R5130:6 Cast them from thee -- If we do not put away
such practices we cannot enter the Kingdom. R3797:5
It is better -- Would be far better than possessing these privileges, only
to be ultimately destroyed in Gehenna fire. R3797:5, 2602:1, 2603:1
Better than to retain your members
and lose all in Gehenna. R2603:1
To enter into life -- Everlasting life, which is the opposite of the destruction
symbolized by Gehenna. R2602:5
Everlasting fire -- Everlasting destruction, the second death, symbolized by
the continual fires kept burning in the Valley of Gehenna, where the garbage of
Jerusalem was destroyed. R2602:3,6, 2603:2, 2601:2, 3797:6
Equally symbolical with the other
parts of the figure. R2661:5
Matthew 18:9
If thine eye -- Anything in your make-up as dear as an eye. R5130:6,
2602:1, 2603:1
The offending eye represents
besetments which appeal as beautiful to our natural tastes and likely to charm
and attract us to earthly things. R2661:4
Offend thee -- Cause thee to stumble. R5130:6
Pluck it out -- Cut off that tendency, no matter what it costs. R5130:6
The Lord's commands against sin
and evil are to be executed, no matter if the sin is as dear as a right hand or
eye. R5648:5
Hell fire -- Greek, gehenna fire, everlasting destruction, second death.
R3797:6, 2602:3,6, 2603:2
Matthew 18:10
Ye despise not -- Do not hate, or in any way persecute. R1767:4
Or do anything demeaning toward
them. R3797:6
They may seem humble and
insignificant, but they are God's friends--yea, God's children, for whom he
cares, and whose every injury is an insult to him. R2661:5
Those yet in the nominal church
are despised and unnoticed by the proud professors of Christianity who occupy
the prominent positions in Babylon. R657:4*
These little ones -- These humble-minded children of God. R2661:5, 3797:3,6
God pays careful attention to all
the affairs of the weakest and most ignorant of his children. Q270:3
"Little" in malice,
pride and in the world's estimate. R2063:4
Their angels -- Each son of God has a special angel to care for his
interests. CR472:6; F76; R5606:1, 5387:5, 5257:3, 5131:4, 4926:6, 3798:1,
3441:2, 2661:5; Q270:4
"The angel of the Lord encampeth
round about them" (Psa. 34:7) that are his. "Are they not all
ministering spirits?" (Heb. 1:14) F76; R5606:1
As illustrated by the vision
granted to Elisha's servant. R3441:1
They are under a very special
divine supervision and protection. NS337:4
Perhaps one guardian angel to each
saint, perhaps more than one. R2350:4
In hours of danger and affliction,
their services are needed and freely tendered. Our Savior himself, in His
earthly life, needed and received the help of angels. R75:1*
Whether it is a living spirit
being that interposes for us and guards us, or whether influences or powers of
God, it makes no difference to you or me. Q270:4
The word angel might include all
the powers of God, both animate and inanimate, by which he could take knowledge
of and render assistance to those who are his. R3798:2
It is erroneous to presume that
every human being has a guardian angel. The Lord does not anywhere indicate
such special guardianship on the world's behalf. R3798:1
Do always -- These, and only these, may know that their prayers are
always heard. HG622:3; Q270:4
We are to get the thought that
there is no delay in the bringing of any and everything which pertains to their
welfare and interest before the attention of the great King. R2661:5, 2350:4
Behold the face -- Have access to the presence of. R5634:3, 5257:3, 4926:6,
3441:2; CR472:6
Have immediate communication with.
R5387:5
Spirit beings can and do see
God, "Whom no man hath seen nor can see." (1
Tim. 6:16) B132 Of my Father
-- He is always ready to give
attention to their messages. Q270:4; R5387:5
Matthew 18:11
For the Son -- This verse is omitted from the Revised Version and is not
found in the oldest manuscripts, good authority for omitting it. These words do
occur in Luke 19:10 and represent an eternal truth. R3798:2
To save -- Recover. R5427:4, 4398:2
During the Millennium. R4398:2
By restitution. (Acts 3:19-21)
E456, 457
That which was lost -- An earthly paradise and an earthly existence. A177; E457;
F669
Earthly perfection and dominion.
A177; E457; OV251:2; NS266:6
Eden, harmony and communion with
God, human perfection, and everlasting life, were lost and will be restored.
CR173:1
The spirit of the Lord, the
relationship of sons. R5623:5
Not spiritual or divine nature.
CR472:1
Men, by disobedience, had lost the
right to eternal life and all the privileges, blessings and opportunities
pertaining to that great boon. NS3:1
Man did not lose heaven, for he
never possessed it. He lost earthly life, an Eden home, human perfection.
R4941:6; HG131:2
All that our race lost through
Adam's disobedience. R4398:1, 3825:2, 1256:5; OV291:2
In contrast with evolution, which
tells us that nothing was lost. HG492:6
Matthew 18:12
An hundred sheep -- All the Little Flock. R3798:4
Applied in a different manner than
the parable of the lost sheep in Luke 15:3-7. R3798:4
And seeketh that -- He that recovers a sinner from the error of his ways saves
a soul from death and hides a multitude of sins. (Jas. 5:20) R3798:5
Matthew 18:14
Even so -- All who are in harmony with the Lord should have the same
interest in one another; they should be willing to spend and be spent in the
recovery of a brother from the snare of the adversary. R3798:4
These little ones -- All the Lord's true followers, subject to special divine
supervision. R5131:4
The babes in Christ, because of
their very feebleness and inexperience, have much special care bestowed upon
them. R1568:1
How careful the Lord's people
should be not to stumble one another. R5131:1
Matthew 18:15
Moreover -- There are no exceptions to the rule here laid down. R4984:2
We must not only scrutinize our
motives; but, after finding good motives, we must scrutinize our methods and
square them all with the Word of the Lord. R4218:4
If thy brother -- This instruction is given only to the brethren, the Church.
R5782:5, 5445:5, 5134:2, 4984:3
Those not brethren, not children
of light, but children of darkness associating with the brethren, must be dealt
with along the divine direction here laid down. R5229:6, 5782:5
In respect to dealings with those
who are without, the same spirit will apply. But if the unbelieving has
attempted a fraud willfully, he should be delivered to the world's courts.
R2666:5
These instructions given only to
the Church; but whoever learns to apply this rule to the brethren will find
that it commends itself as a wise course of conduct in all the affairs of life.
R4984:3
Shall trespass -- We should put on love (Col. 3:14) and overlook much of what
others do. R4984:2
Or have anything unpleasant to
say, or any criticism to offer concerning the private life of another. R5123:2
The true Christian will cultivate
the disposition to think charitably of the works and actions of others, and to
suppose that their intentions are good, until he has positive evidence to the
contrary. R5123:1
Against thee -- Not what he does against some one else, but against
"thee." R5529:4
If someone tells us a trouble
concerning another, we should ask that he state it in such a way that the name
is not given nor a description by which we might recognize the other party.
R5409:1
If a brother find another
discriminating against him and more appreciative of another than himself, he
should not take offense. R4984:3
Go -- This law should be understood in the smallest details and
followed without any modification. NS566:2
These principles are practically
illustrated in the following citations. R4282:4, 4283:1, 3594:5; F415
Tell him his fault -- Without judging or condemning him beforehand. F415
Not to make him ashamed or to
berate him, but to secure cessation of the wrong and, if possible, some
recompense for injuries received. F291
Have a clear understanding; to do
so would result favorably in nearly every case. R4984:3
Not the trivial matters, evil
surmisings, rumors, fancied insults, but positive wrongs done us. R5885:4,
4978:2
Not in a dictatorial way to show
him there is something wrong, but in a kindly way, to be reconciled. R4984:6
You have no authority to punish
him; that belongs to God. R5409:1, 3744:6
To help him; not to twit, anger,
tease or entrap him. R4985:1
If the matter is too small to
mention, it should be forgotten. R4984:2
So long as the outward conduct of
any brother or sister is reasonable and fair, both justice and love say that
you should not meddle with them. R5274:6
If one chooses to overlook the
brother's fault, it is not necessary to follow all these regulations. R3744:3
Thee and him alone -- Privately, without previous conference or talking with
anyone. F291
Thus did our Lord guard against
the insidious sin of slander, which stops growth in the truth and its spirit of
love. R4803:2
The probability is that
misunderstanding is all that there is of it. R5134:3, 4803:2
Even with positive evidence, go to
the offender alone. R5123:1
Meeting with candor as
"brethren" to discuss the matter. R4803:1, 3594:5
Disobedience to this command
results in roots of bitterness, misunderstandings, anger, malice, hatred,
strife. R5123:2
The one and only proper manner of
rebuke given by our Lord; the one and only way of adjusting a grievance.
R4978:2
It is a well-established principle
of government that wrong-doers can be treated to better advantage alone than in
the presence of an audience. R3801:2
If the matter is a trespass
against yourself; if it is something against the Church or outwardly immoral,
the elders would be the better able to judge, and know better how to approach
the matter. R4598:5, 4459:2
The adversary will use every means
to turn us aside from the plainly stated rule of love; he will endeavor to make
us think that it cannot be applicable to the difficulty which troubles us.
R4208:6
The usual sophistry by which the
"old man" sets aside this divine rule is to conclude that it is not
applicable in this instance, or to be persuaded that he does not know how to
apply it in this case and must ask counsel of others, the very thing here
forbidden. R4191:3
To have a desire to tell of the
weaknesses or faults of another is an intimation of lovelessness on our own
part. NS566:2
Not even to ask advice should the
matter be told. We have the Lord's advice, and we should follow it. F292
And not so much as mentioned to
others, unless offenders refuse to hear, refuse to correct the fault. R3035:5
In a family matter it might be
proper to go to the head of the family; in an institution where the offender is
merely a representative, it would be proper to go to the head of the society.
R4984:2
If he shall hear thee -- The Lord did not say anything about his apology. But if he
recognizes that he is wrong and fails to apologize, he is doing himself injury.
R4985:1
Gained thy brother -- Recovered him. R3744:6
The matter is settled, peace
prevails, the threatened break has been averted and no one is the wiser.
R4803:2, 3594:5
Seek to win thy brother and not
cast him off nor excommunicate him. R4209:1
Back to fellowship, righteousness,
harmony with the Lord. R2666:3
Gained him for righteousness, for
salvation, for a Christian life, and probably as a friend. R3801:2
Matthew 18:16
If he will not hear -- Unless the trouble is serious, the matter ought to stop
with the personal appeal to the erring one, whether he hears or forbears to
hear, to yield. F292
Alone, privately. F291
Then take with thee -- Make sure the matter is of sufficient importance. R4985:1
Only after deliberate thought and
prayer. R4985:1
If occasion require, take the
subsequent steps. R5123:1
One or two more -- Unprejudiced brethren, not necessarily elders. F289
Preferably one of the two being an
elder. They should go primarily to the elders, and an elder would be the proper
one to bring the matter before the Church. R5409:2
Those called in should be
"wise" (1 Cor. 6:5); such as both the accuser and the accused would
recognize, and whose judgment they would respect and follow. R2431:6
Without any explanation whatever
to them before they meet together with the accused. F292; R5134:3; Q704:2
Fair-minded, honorable people in
the Church; friends of the brother injuring us. R4985:1
Be established -- If the witnesses disagree with you, you should acknowledge
that you have erred. R5134:3
If we are in error, we should be
more anxious to be corrected ourselves than to have the other corrected.
R4985:1
If these give their verdict
against the accuser, that should settle the matter; the accuser should
recognize his error. Not do do so would imply that he was not seeking to
ascertain the truth, but that he had judged his brother personally. R2431:6
Matthew 18:17
If he shall neglect to hear
-- But not sooner. F289; Q104:2 The
advice of these brethren should be followed by both. R5134:3; F289
If the injurious actions continue.
R4985:2, 5134:3
In the event of the concurrence of
the brethren that the wrong is being done and of the refusal of the wrong-doer
to desist. R5782:5
Even if the witnesses agree with
us and the wrong-doer is not corrected, we are still not at liberty to make
mention of the case to others. R3030:3
Tell it -- The elders might constitute themselves into a Board or
Committee and get one of their number to look into the case and see if the
wrong could not be stopped or adjusted. Q479:4
Facts, evil deeds or evil
doctrines, and not evil surmisings nor rumors, are the basis of Scriptural
disfellowship. R3035:5
Unto the church -- The consecrated. R2666:3
To patiently hear definite,
positive charges of sufficient importance. R4985:4
Not to be punished but, as a last resort,
for reproof and correction. R3744:6
In the presence of the accused.
F415; R4985:4, 4281:5
If it is considered of sufficient
importance as concerns himself, or the Church, or the truth. F291, 292, 415 In
the case that the matter had gone beyond the individual, and had somehow
involved the whole congregation. Q479:4
There must be brought evidence to
show that there is really a matter to come before the Church, and that it is
not merely a case of busybodying. R4985:3
Up to this time, the case should
not be discussed outside of these witnesses. R5409:2
In proportion as they are saints
they will desire to say no more to anyone respecting the weaknesses or sins of
anybody. F292
First certifying the facts to the
elders. F289
The two witnesses should say to the
elders of the Church that they have a case to present for a hearing, but they
should not make charges. R4985:2
The elders should call a special
meeting to inform the Church of the case, and the Church should decide when to
call a meeting to consider it. R4985:2
For the one to state his trouble
and the other to answer. R4985:4
At no stage of the proceedings
should unkind words be permitted. R4985:4
It will be reasonable to expect
that the voice of the Church in such a matter will be supernaturally guided,
that truth and righteousness may triumph. R2666:4
The Church's decision of the
question is to be final, binding upon both. R5134:3, 4985:3
Neglect to hear the church
-- By not repenting and reforming.
F290
This is the highest tribunal.
Brother should not go to law with brother in the worldly courts, however much
he may feel himself aggrieved. R2666:4
If either still have doubts as to
the justice of the matter, he will surely obtain a blessing by giving full and
hearty consent to the Lord's arrangements. R2666:4
The vote of the Church should be
unanimous, if possible, ignoring all partisanship. R4985:4
The administration of discipline
is not the function of the elders only, but of the entire Church. F289; Q479:3
Their advice must not carry with
it any penalty whatever. R4985:4; F290
Let him be unto thee -- In carrying out the findings of the Church court, the
matter rests with each individual; each must discern the justice of the
decision for himself. F292
As an heathen -- In that we can no longer have Christian fellowship with
such. R1663:5*
We would treat a heathen with
justice and kindness and the love of pity, but not with the love of affection
due to a brother in Christ. R1255:4
Outside of your religious and
social company, but not outside of your love, care and desire to help. (Rom.
12:19,20) R3801:3
Not forbid attendance at meetings.
The most would be to withdraw fellowship, refuse to visit their homes or to
invite to our homes, and not appoint to any office in the class. R5954:3
Lest our continued fellowshipping
cause our influence to oppose the truth and favor the error, and thus make us
sharers in the evil being done. R1255:1
His punishment is not the object,
but to secure repentance and reform. F290
And a publican -- He is a brother still, but not in the best standing.
R4985:5
Deprived of any and all
manifestations of brotherhood. F290
Not appointing him to any position
or honor in the Church. R5782:5, 5134:3, 4985:5
Not to be asked to offer prayer.
R4985:5
To be debarred from participation
in the Lord's Supper. F474
Treated in the kindly, courteous
way in which we would treat any publican or Gentile, withholding the special
rights, greetings or voting opportunities that belong to the Church. R3745:4
Not to be harshly spoken of even
after the separation, just as we are not to berate or rail against heathen men
and publicans. F290
In that we could no longer respect
such as we would an honorable man of the world. R1663:5*
But not injured or treated
unkindly in any way. F303; R5134:3, 4985:5
Disfellowshipped until he
recognizes his wrong and makes amends to the extent of his ability. F293
Taking heed to "speak evil of
no man." (Titus 3:2) F290
We are to distinguish between
avoidance and appointment to honorable positions in the Church and the still
different matter of disfellowship and cutting off from the body of Christ, the
Church. R4318:4
A complete separation from the
Church. Until he has made a complete reform he should be thoroughly disowned by
the Church. R5275:1
Matthew 18:18
Whatsoever -- Showing the apostles' complete inspiration and
infallibility--not even wrong "only once." R1793:6
Ye shall bind -- The inspired Apostle bound the question of a purely
vegetarian diet, and settled it--see 1 Tim. 4:1-4. R3098:3
Ye shall loose -- They would declare not binding upon the followers of Jesus
only such things as in God's sight would not be binding. R5002:2
Loosed in heaven -- Thus guaranteeing divine supervision of the apostles'
decisions respecting what is obligatory or optional. F220; R5588:1, 4827:1,
3124:4; SM463:T
We are thus assured of the
infallibility of the teachings of Jesus and the apostles. OV160:1; R5002:2
This applies to the apostles, and
none others. R5002:2; OV395:6
Applies to all the apostles, and
not just Peter. R4645:4, 3789:6, 2658:1; HG736:4; SM462:2
Applies to the Apostle Paul as
well as the other apostles. R4826:6
See also comments on Matt. 16:19
Matthew 18:19
Two of you shall agree -- The Lord is pleased to reward the united efforts and
prayers of his people. R4306:5, 1866:2
Matthew 18:20
Two or three -- It is a mistake to feel that no meeting must be held except
as appointed by the ecclesia and conducted by one of the elected elders; but it
is unwise to entirely ignore the class in the matter of holding meetings.
R4010:2, 5122:2,1
Are gathered together -- "Then they that feared the Lord spake often one to
another, and the Lord hearkened and heard it." (Mal. 3:16) F309
For mutual advancement in
spiritual things. R309
For encouragement, mutual
fellowship, mutual helpfulness and regular association. R4854:5
This is our charter-right and we
must concede an equal right to all of God's people who may choose to meet in
his name at any place and at any time. R5501:3
Even two or three in fellowship
are a body of Christ. R4965:9, 4592:6
"Not forsaking the assembling
of ourselves together." (Heb. 10:25) F309; R4306:5
Not in elaborate church buildings,
but where two or three are met together, that is the house of God, and there
his glory is seen and felt. R2010:5
There am I -- The Lord will be specially present to grant a blessing.
R4854:5
The holy Spirit represented
Christ; comforting those who came seeking his blessing. R531:3
Those who realize the Lord's
presence among them when they meet will be very careful of their words, actions
and the very thoughts of their heart. R2543:3
In the midst -- Illustrated on the walk to Emmaus. R1823:2
Matthew 18:21
How oft -- Imperfect ourselves and surrounded by others who are
imperfect, we continually have need to exercise mercy, benevolence and
forgiveness. R4650:2
Shall my brother sin -- The Lord is not laying down any rule by which we may deal
with the world, but merely the rule which would govern amongst his followers.
R3801:3
It is the new creature and not the
old creature that is the brother of Christ. If a brother trespass, the wrong is
not by the brother, the new creature, but by his mortal flesh. R2666:3
In another account of the same
matter, it is implied that before forgiveness is granted, it be at least
desired, if not sought. (Luke 17:4) R4650:3
If he trespass seventy times seven
he should be rebuked as often, either by word, conduct, or both, and should
repent in words and turn in conduct just as often; and as soon as we believe
him sincere, we must be prompt and hearty in our forgiveness. R1694:2,5
Till seven times -- Peter no doubt had in mind the thought that seven was the
symbol of perfection, and that this might mark the reasonable limit of mercy
and forgiveness. R3801:4
Matthew 18:22
Jesus saith -- This is not merely advice, it is a command. R3801:5
Until seventy times seven --
No limit. R5134:3, 2666:1
How it tells us of the loving
mercy and forgiveness of him with whom we have to do. R4650:3
"If thy brother trespass
against thee seven times in a day, and seven times a day shall say, I repent,
thou shalt forgive him." (Luke 17:4) R4650:3
It is as much the Lord's command
that we do not forgive until he turns again and repents as it is his command
that we do forgive when he does turn and repent. R1694:2
Forgiveness is obligatory when
asked for. R5134:5
Even though fully forgiven, we may
not put such a one into the same place of responsibility previously held until
we see a stronger and truer character developed in him. R1694:5
This does not imply, however, that
there may be no penalties attached with the forgiveness. R2666:1
Evidently to imply that
forgiveness should be granted as often as it is sought with any manifestation
whatever of sincerity. R3801:5
We may not decide that any
transgression against us is unforgivable. Our imperfect knowledge, as well as
our imperfect judgment, forbids such a decision. R1694:2
To return evil for good is
devilish, to return good for good is human, to return good for evil is Godlike.
R3802:1*
Matthew 18:23
Therefore -- This parable does not refer to divine forgiveness of
original Adamic sin, but to subsequent sins. R5135:4, 528:3
Kingdom of heaven -- The Church in the present embryotic condition. R5134:6,
4650:6, 3802:2, 2666:6
Of his servants -- Tax-collectors: representing the justified and consecrated
children of God, entrusted with the stewardship of the Lord's goods. R3802:1,2,
5135:4
This parable does not relate to
dealings between God and the world of sinners; but between God and his
covenanted children, called here, as elsewhere, "bond-servants."
R528:3
The world, as sinners, are not
God's servants, but aliens. The only ones God recognizes as servants are such
as come back into relationship with him through Jesus. R5135:4, 4650:5, 3802:2,
2667:1, 2295:3
Matthew 18:24
Owed him -- This can be understood in two ways--either the debt resting
against the whole human family, the death penalty; or the obligations of the
covenant of a new creature. R2667:4
Ten thousand talents -- Representing in value about $20 million, fitly representing
our great obligations to God as a race and our utter inability to meet these
obligations. R2295:3
Estimated to represent $9 million.
R3802:1
Matthew 18:26
Worshipped him -- Asking, as members of the Body of Christ, in the name of
their Head. R528:6 Lord, have patience -- God does not forgive our sins until
we acknowledge them and ask his forgiveness. R2295:6
Matthew 18:27
Then -- As soon as the debtor asked for mercy. R2295:6
Moved with compassion -- Mercy is an element of love, and love is the fulfilling of
the whole law of God. R3802:5
Forgave him -- Not referring to divine forgiveness of original sin, but
entirely to subsequent sins. The sin of Adam is not forgiven simply because we
cry for mercy. R5135:4, 4650:6, 3802:2
Matthew 18:28
The same servant -- Representing the Great Company; or, possibly, those who sin
the sin unto death. R3802:6, 4079:5*, 2667:4
Fellowservants -- Other brethren. R5135:4
An hundred pence -- A small debt, probably representing not more than a hundred
dollars proportionately to our money and time. R3802:3
About $16. R3503:3, 2295:6
A very insignificant sum in
comparison to the one which he had owed his master. R5134:6
Took him by the throat -- Just as some professed followers of Christ apply the law to
their fellow disciples. R151:6*
The harsh and unsympathetic will
be likewise treated. R5135:1
Matthew 18:30
Pay the debt -- If our standard in dealing with others be one of exact
justice--requiring others to measure up to our standard by some sort of penance
before we forgive them--we may expect no mercy at the Lord's hands. R2667:5
Matthew 18:32
Wicked servant -- He who cannot render perfect justice cannot rightfully
require it of others. R5266:3
Matthew 18:33
Compassion -- The trespasses of others against us are trifling indeed in
comparison to our obligations to the Lord. R5135:1
I had pity on thee -- As we remember and appreciate our own weaknesses and
blemishes, it will make us sympathetic with the brethren and with all mankind.
R5135:2
Matthew 18:34
To the tormentors -- The jailers of Oriental countries were accustomed to
torment their prisoners. These doubtless represent Satan, to whom will be
turned over for the destruction of the flesh all true servants of the Lord who
fail to come willingly into accord with his spirit. R3802:5
Illustrating earthly disciplines. This
might mean financial difficulties or losses, or physical ailments, disease or
what-not. R2295:6
To trouble and distress in the
present life, sufficient to make them sympathetic with the weak and erring.
R528:6
The Great Company must wash in the
blood of the lamb, in the "great tribulation." These tribulations
correspond to the tormentors of the parable. (Rev. 7:14) R3802:6
Not that the Lord had sympathy
with those barbarous customs, but that he was speaking to the people from the
standpoint of customs which they would understand. R3802:5
All that was due -- The full consecration promised. R3802:4, 2667:4
It might represent the original
debt resting upon the human family--from which the Lord redeemed all; hence the
unmerciful servant's penalty would signify second death. R2667:4
Or if the debt represents the
obligations of his covenant as a new creature, he would be required to comply
to his vow by going into the great time of trouble. R2667:4
We are inclined to think that the
uttermost farthing signifies a hopeless case--second death--in the case of the
Lord's people who fail to exercise forgiveness toward the brethren. R2667:4
Matthew 18:35
So likewise -- What I am seeking in you, my servant, is perfection in my
character-likeness. R4651:4
My heavenly Father -- We are too inclined to look at the justice of his character
and copy it, and deal severely with our debtors. He wishes to make clear that
the grandest elements of his character are love, sympathy, kindness and
forbearance. R4651:4
Do also unto you -- Whatever our faith and works, they amount to nothing if we
do not have love which is merciful, generous, long- suffering, patient toward
those who injure us. R3802:5
Not that he wishes to retaliate,
but to prepare us for a special service; he desires that we learn the lesson of
forgiveness and mercy. R4651:1, 2667:6
If we are harsh, unsympathetic,
unforgiving toward our brethren, the heavenly Father will so deal with us and
not forgive us our trespasses. R5135:1, 3803:1
From your hearts -- Not merely from our lips. R2296:1, 3604:4, 2295:5
If at heart we treasure up
resentment against others, our heavenly Father will not forgive us. R5123:3,
5135:5, 2444:6
Not only forgive; but forgive
gladly, freely, heartily. R3604:4
Heart forgiveness leaves no sting,
no animosity, no grudge. R2296:1
We should harbor no other feeling
than that of forgiveness and good will toward all, no matter how seriously they
may have transgressed against us. R2296:4
Not a lip-forgiveness and a
heart-hatred. R1694:5
Forgive not -- God will be no more generous to you and your imperfections
than you are toward your brethren in their imperfections. R4651:4
Let every Christian, in
approaching the throne of grace daily, inquire of his own heart whether or not
he has forgiven those who are indebted to him. R2253:4
Matthew 19
Matthew 19:6
Joined together -- As a type of the lasting union of Christ and the Church.
R1554:5
Matthew 19:9
Put away his wife -- Secure a divorce. F505
Except it be -- Adultery, or the re-marriage of a divorced person, releases
the wronged one from the obligation to the marriage tie. R5954:3
Separations for other grounds,
while sometimes justifiable, do not give one liberty to remarry. R3089:4; F505
Marry another -- Marriage is not cancelled by any earthly court to such an
extent as to permit marriage to another, except upon the one case specified.
F516
Committeth adultery -- The new creature's marriage contract is similar to that of
Christ and the Church, perpetual. F516
Matthew 19:10
Be so -- If the marriage covenant is so binding and indissoluble.
R1554:5
Matthew 19:11
All men cannot receive this
-- The advice to remain unmarried is
not imperative upon the saints. R1554:3
Matthew 19:12
Made themselves eunuchs -- Figuratively, by determining not to marry, but to live celibate
lives. F509 A privilege, a sacrifice in order to render the better service to
the Lord; not a command, not an obligation. OV369:1
To both facilitate individual
progress and the progress of the work in general of the Lord. R1554:3, 901:4
It is for each one of the Church
to consider his consecration and to remember the example of Jesus who, by the
power of his consecrated will, became a eunuch for the Kingdom of heaven's
sake. R3922:5; OV369:1
Thus it is proper for an unmarried
man to be an elder. R1892:1
None should make the mistake,
however, of supposing that the responsibilities of a family already incurred
can be ignored or set aside. R901:4
After the marriage it is too late
for one to decide for himself whether or not he prefers to live a celibate life.
F512
Contrary to Mormon teaching that
man's future glory will depend upon marriage and offspring. HG732:1
He that is able -- Both from his own disposition and from his circumstances.
R1555:1
Matthew 19:13
Rebuked -- Feeling that the Lord's time was too valuable to be thus
used. R5362:1
Matthew 19:14
Suffer -- Permit, allow. R5362:1
Little children -- The Great Teacher was a lover of children, even though he
did not generally give his time to them. R5362:1
Of such is the kingdom -- Those who will be of the Kingdom of God must be like little
children: simple-hearted, true, teachable, obedient, honest and trustful of
their heavenly Father. R4658:1, 4853:4, 5362:2
The Kingdom of heaven will not be
literally composed of little children. R4658:1
Matthew 19:15
Laid his hands on them -- Merely signified his sympathy and love and appreciation of
the purity and innocence of childhood. R4658:1
Matthew 19:16
Behold, one -- It has been supposed by some to have been Lazarus, whom
Jesus later awoke from the dead. R3529:1
Came and said unto him -- Notwithstanding the persecuting spirit of the rulers and
teachers in Israel against the Lord and all who believed in the validity of his
claim, he came to him openly. R1774:3
That I may have -- He perceived that even the best men of his nation had
failed to gain eternal life under this covenant; that all had died. R2727:3,
1774:3
Eternal life -- He had the right idea, that eternal life is the grand hope
of all hopes before the human family. R4658:2
Matthew 19:17
Why callest thou me good -- Our Lord parried the question to draw out the young man.
R4658:2
Why do you acknowledge me as a
good teacher? I am either the Messiah, as I claim, or an impostor and far from
good. Do you accept my Messiahship? If you do not, how can you call me good?
R4658:2
Unless you believe from the heart
that I am the Son of God and not a falsifier, hypocrite and blasphemer.
R2727:6, 4658:2
If you really believe me to be
good, you must believe in me as a teacher sent of God, the All-Good. More than
this, that I proceeded forth from God, that I am the Son of God. R2727:6
One, that is, God -- And the "one sent of God." R2727:6
Everything that is really good is
of God and in accordance with God. R5465:2
Keep the commandments -- The only way to everlasting life then open. R2728:1, 823:1
The Law Covenant was still in
force. It had not yet been "nailed to the cross." (Col. 2:14) R3843:2
Matthew 19:18
Do no murder -- Ignoring the commandments relating to Jehovah, realizing
that the young man was seeking to know and do the will of the true God. R2727:1
Matthew 19:19
Love thy neighbor -- Delivered to Israel as a part of the Law (Lev. 19:18), the
teachings of which, however, were never understood until Jesus expounded them
by his example and teachings. R2419:3
Our interests justly balanced with
the interests of others. SM156:2
Who can love his neighbor as
himself and see that neighbor suffer while he has enough and to spare? R823:2
He loved self more than God or
neighbor. R1774:6, 823:2
The young ruler evidently
neglected to attach to these words their full import. He was thinking of the
more specific definitions of the law, neglecting this more comprehensive
statement. R3843:4
As thyself -- Which, in the present age, implies self-sacrifice and daily
cross-bearing in imitation of Christ. R1774:6
It does not say, "better than
thyself." Christ's course of self-sacrifice in our behalf went beyond this
requirement. R3804:6, 3805:1
Matthew 19:20
Have I kept -- He was keeping the Jewish law to the extent of his
knowledge and ability. He was merely doing his duty. No one has a right to live
a bad life. R4658:3, 5438:6, 5464:2
He thought that he was loving his
neighbor as himself. R4658:3
What lack I yet? -- He was anxious for a perfect conformity to the will of God;
and so anxious that he manifested his willingness to bear reproach for it in
thus coming to Jesus. R1774:6
Let this be the sincere inquiry of
every child of God. R1775:4
There is none so perfect that he
lacks nothing. R1775:4
Matthew 19:21
Wilt be perfect -- Reckoned of God as perfect and as having kept the
commandments. R823:3
You have been getting the outside
shell of the divine commandment but have entirely overlooked the kernel--love
to God supremely and love toward your fellow man as toward yourself. R2728:2
To keep the Law perfectly in this
age requires sacrifice. To keep the Law in the next age will not require
sacrifice because of changed conditions. R823:2
Sell that thou hast -- Use earthly things with great moderation and self-denial.
Q149:4
You must do more than merely avoid
sin; God is now calling for sacrificers. R5438:6
All thy possessions, all thy time,
all thy reputation, all that hitherto has been dear to thee. R1775:1
The poor man must give up the
idols of his imagination and ambition, his covetousness; the rich man must
sacrifice, not only what he possessed, but all for which he hoped. F575
He might have been kept busy for
many years disposing of his goods. The selling of that which he had would go on
proportionately as he could find use for the money. R855:4; F576
Dispose of your natural abilities
and talents, wisely of course, for the benefit of yourself, your family, and
all who have need of such services. R1656:3
Give to the poor -- Wisely, however, as becometh God's steward. F576; R1775:1
Reckon yourself God's steward,
commissioned by him to use all those goods, as well as your personal talents,
to his glory in serving those about you. R855:1
Not necessarily with the bread
that perisheth; but first, rather, to feed the spiritually hungry with the
bread of life. R1775:2
A consecration of our all to the
Lord does not mean that all of our possessions should be used exclusively in
religious work. We have family mortgages. F576
"Love is the fulfilling of
the Law." (Rom. 13:10) R2728:2
Had he waited for Jesus to ask him
for some of it he would have waited and have kept the money and never have
obtained the Kingdom. R855:4
Treasure in heaven -- Instead of on earth. R4658:3
Joint-heirship with Christ in the
Messianic Kingdom; glory, honor and immortality, the divine nature. R5438:6
More than the Law promised. R823:3
Reserved for all those who, like
Jesus, keep the law in this age, when its requirements amount to and imply a
sacrifice even unto death. R823:3
And follow me -- Sacrifice also your earthly reputation and become my
follower. R4658:3
Taking up the cross of self-denial
thus involved. R2728:2
Matthew 19:22
Went away sorrowful -- Evidently convinced that he yet fell short of the
requirement of the law. R823:2
He was content to be very rich
while some of his neighbors, whom he thought he loved as he loved himself, were
very poor. R4658:4
He saw himself as never before. It
became a new test with him. R4658:4
No doubt the heart of Jesus was
sad also, when he saw the blight of selfishness and self-will attacking that
promising half-blown rose of character. R1774:6
For centuries this has been called
"The Great Refusal." R2727:3
His loss of the Kingdom was a
sufficient penalty without suffering eternal torment in the future. Such as he
will doubtless make rapid progress to perfection in the Millennium. R4658:4
Matthew 19:23
That a rich man -- With any kind of riches: honor of men, political influence,
many and large talents or abilities, social standing, fine education, material
wealth, mental endowment. R2728:5, 2761:2,3
The rich have temptations in the
good things of this present life which tend to attract their hearts and become
their idols and treasures. F575
When one who is rich does present
himself to the Lord, it implies a greater sacrifice than if he were poorer, and
the exercise of greater opportunities in the Lord's service. R2729:1
Shall hardly -- With difficulty. R2761:2, 4658:5, 5465:6; D304
Because riches are less favorable
to the development of faith, are more likely to develop pride, bring with them
worldly friends and associates, and are proportionately more to sacrifice.
R2729:1
It was hard for the Scribes and
Pharisees, rich in titles and honors; for the Jewish nation, proud of being
Abraham's seed; for the Greeks, proud of their worldly wisdom; for the Romans,
proud of their prestige and power; hard today for religionists, proud of their
sects; for those who boast in human philosophy and science and those who
reverence the opinions of men. R1920:2
In a word, no rich man can get
into the Kingdom. He must give up everything to the Lord or else be barred from
a place in the Kingdom. The terms of acceptance are the same for the rich as
for the poor. R4658:5
Though difficult, it is not
impossible. R1775:2
Enter into -- Equally invited, but less likely than others who are poorer
to accept the Lord's invitation and present themselves according to the terms
of the Kingdom call. R2728:6
Kingdom of heaven -- Certainly not the nominal church, for rich men find little
difficulty getting into it. R2761:3
In verse 24, "kingdom of
God," proof that Matthew uses the expressions interchangeably. R397:1
Matthew 19:24
The eye of a needle -- A small gateway of ancient cities, used at night; camels
could pass through unloaded, and on their knees only. D304; F574; R4658:5, 5466:1;
PD66/78
Rich man to enter -- The needle's eye illustrated how the rich must unload their
wealth if they would share the Kingdom. PD66/78; R4658:5, 5004:2
A rich man could enter the Kingdom
of God only by renouncing his burdens, giving up all to the Lord. R5466:1
The rich are disadvantaged because
their wealth preserves them from many trials to which the poor are subjected.
R5004:2
Into the kingdom -- Become a joint-heir with Christ in his Messianic Kingdom.
R5004:2
Matthew 19:25
Exceedingly amazed -- Because they knew that the majority of the religionists
belonged to the wealthy class. R4658:5
Who then can be saved -- Since the rich seemingly had all the opportunities of time,
influence and money to serve the Lord. R5466:2
Matthew 19:26
With men -- Men would say that God would find no one for the Kingdom if
he rejected the rich. R4658:5
Are possible -- If the rich man's heart be pleasing to the Lord, the Lord
would know how to show him his will in respect to using his riches. R5466:2
God knows how to overrule all
things for good to those who love him with all their heart, mind, soul and
strength. R5466:4
God has made provision for the
trial of the wealthy, and for all, in the Millennial age. R3844:6
Matthew 19:27
Behold, we -- The twelve, especially. R1735:2
Forsaken all -- We need to watch that there is not a measure of selfishness
connected with our consecration. R4906:3,4
What shall we have -- If it had been wrong for them to have the promises of
Kingdom honors in mind, it would have been wrong for the Lord to have given
them these promises. R5376:1
Our thought of a share in the
Kingdom should be secondary. Our merit should be of a higher order than merely
a desire for reward for service. R4906:3
Matthew 19:28
That ye -- The Church, Head and Body, will be the judges. R2426:4
Which have followed me -- In the narrow way of self-sacrifice in the present life.
OV380:1
"To him that overcometh will
I give to sit with me in my throne." (Rev. 3:21) R531:6
In the regeneration -- Greek, palingenesia, restitution, restoration,
renovation. R2574:4
Literally translated: "a new
birth day." R1096:6*
The expression signifies to
"give life again," but in no way implies that it will be given in the
same way as now. R1388:2; NS102:4
When the world is born from the
dead. E142; CR472:2
The general regeneration of the
Millennial age. E138; R4556:3; Q208:T; OV380:1; PD9/16
A thousand years. OV380:5; NS844:5
That glorious moral, social,
political, religious and physical change which will be introduced by the
Messiah. Q822:3
The same time which St. Peter
styles the "times of restitution," the Millennium, the times of
"resurrection by judgment" (Acts 3:19-21; John 5:29, R.V.). R4556:3
The coming forth from the tomb
will be merely the beginning of the work of regeneration. OV381:7
The creating of man was a
momentary act; but the re-creating, the re-generation, the re-newing, the
re-storing of his heart, will be a gradual work. R1374:4
The regeneration of the world in
the Millennium is separate and distinct from that now possible to the Church.
OV378:2; Q822:3; E138
This is the age of generation, the
one to follow is the age of re-generation. R351:1*, 342:2*
After the Church has experienced
the new birth. Q822:3; NS102:3
He waits for his bride. The world
cannot be regenerated until the Redeemer first applies his merit, his
ransom-price "for all the people." R4556:4; E142
Son of man shall sit -- Rest securely. "His rest shall be glorious."
(Isa. 11:10) R1283:5*
Not in "masterly
inactivity," but the very opposite. He is very active, and his strength is
equal to his activity. R1283:6*
During his Millennial reign.
OV380:1
Figurative, indicating that the
position of the Son of Man, invested with all executive authority and power,
has been established; and not merely established, but permanently established.
R1283:5*
In the throne -- A throne is the seat of a priest or king, and it is often
used as the emblem or symbol of sacerdotal or regal authority. R1283:1*
Not merely first in executive
authority, but first in executive power also, in the accomplishment of the
divine purpose regarding the salvation of man. R1283:5*
Of his glory -- The glory of the divine nature. R1283:3*
The glory of our blessed Lord is
of the same kind as that of the Most High himself. R1283:4*
Ye also -- The Church glorified will be the judge. HG684:6
As Eve was associated with Adam in
sin and disobedience, so the elect Church, when completed, glorified, will be
Christ's associate in the regeneration. PD9/16
The glory which is peculiar to the
divine nature, as well as judicial, sacerdotal and regal authority, are to be
jointly participated in, not only by Jesus and his Apostles, but by all
overcomers. R1284:4*
Sit upon twelve thrones -- Participate in the rulership. R1283:6*
The apostles shall be associates
with him in judging and ruling the world. R4990:4; OV379:5
Implying that they which have
passed to that life would be in the condition of the enthroned. R5684:1
Only twelve apostolic thrones, no
more. OV410:1; SM670:1
This gives every apostle a throne.
Not that the number of thrones is restricted to twelve, or that he who is to
occupy a throne must be of necessity an apostle. Luke speaks of
"thrones" without restricting them to twelve or any definite number.
(Luke 22:28-30) R1283:6*
All the Lord's faithful followers
will have a share. "To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in
my throne." (Rev. 3:21) OV379:5
Judging -- Greek, krino, judgment or trial. R2430:1, 2426:4
Ruling. NS795:1
The whole world shall be judged,
not again representatively, but individually. R699:5
Matthew 19:29
Hath forsaken houses -- We are not to get the mistaken idea from this that the Lord
wishes us to sacrifice others. It would be wrong to deprive our families of
necessary comforts and temporal provisions; but having provided these, the remainder
is the Lord's. R3845:6
An hundredfold -- A reward a hundred times greater than that which we lose.
The greater our present losses, the greater our reward both now and hereafter.
Those who sacrifice nothing need expect no reward. Those who receive little of
the Lord in the present life and have small hope of a share in the Kingdom are
those who have sacrificed little for his sake. R3845:2,3
Matthew 19:30
First shall be last -- In order of development, it was first the natural or
earthly, afterward the heavenly rulers; but in order of grandeur of position
and time of installation, it will be first the spiritual, afterward the
natural. A293; B206
Last shall be first -- In point of time, God called fleshly Israel first; but in
point of favor, and in time of realization, spiritual Israel comes first. B206;
A293
And also first in grandeur of
position. A293; B206
The merit of Jesus' death was
utilized first on behalf of the spiritual elect. R5576:4
Some who have not been favored
during this Gospel age will be granted the chief favors during the coming age.
F118 When the Kingdom is ushered in, God's special favor will pass again to
natural Israel. F118, 119
Adam and Eve will probably be the
last to be awakened. The last to die will probably be the first to be awakened.
R4499:1, 5531:6; D641; SM441:T
Matthew 20
Matthew 20:1
The kingdom of heaven -- Hence we know that it applies to the experiences of the
Church during this Gospel age. R5473:2
We think it applies entirely to
the present-life experiences of the Kingdom class, especially to those living
at the close of this age. R5473:3; Q258:2
Is like unto -- This parable is difficult to interpret in such a way as to
make all of its facts find fulfillment. R5473:2; Q531:T, 258:3
We do not expect that every little
feature will find a correspondency. Some merely round out the story or call
attention to some particular feature. Q530:1
Early in the morning -- Some might say the call began in the days of Jesus and the
apostles, and that the various calls relate throughout the Gospel age. Q258:2
To hire laborers -- Earnest, consecrated children of God throughout this Gospel
age. C223
To tend the vine, look out for the
injurious pests, keep the soil in good condition, and assist every way in the
production of "much fruit" and of fine quality. R4666:2
Into his vineyard -- To faithfully spend their time and energy in his service.
C223
The Church is God's vineyard.
R214:2
Matthew 20:2
When he had agreed -- The promise of the Kingdom was clearly understood by the
early Church, but was afterward lost sight of. C223
A penny a day -- The Roman standard of the time; as the lira, mark, franc,
shilling and dollar are today's Italian, German, French, English and American
standards. R4666:4
In one of the old English
cathedrals, records show that the chisel work cost "a penny a day and a
bag of meal for each laborer." R4666:4
From the Greek denarius, a silver
coin of about 17 cents value. R4666:3, 3535:1
This giving of the penny seems to
be on this side the veil. Q531:T
This parable is evidently intended
to teach that God will give all that he has agreed to all who labor. and more
than he has stipulated. R4666:4
The Kingdom honors. C223
What the penny will be, I am not
sure. Q258:3
Might be understood to refer to
everlasting life, merely. Q530:1, 500:5
Would seem to be something of the
joys, blessings, honors and privileges of God's people in the present life at
the close of this age. R4666:5
May be connected with the great
work of smiting Jordan which, I think, is the thing before us. Q531:T
Perhaps the reward the Lord would
give those who are his, not only those who are of the Little Flock, but also of
the Great Company. Q500:3
As applied to the Jewish harvest,
it represents the privilege of entering the Kingdom of heaven, the privilege of
discipleship. R5473:5
Matthew 20:3
The marketplace -- Greek, agora, root word of the word agorazo, to purchase in
the open market, translated redeemed. E429
Matthew 20:4
Go ye also -- During the Gospel age, our Lord has continually, through
his mouthpieces in the Church, invited all believers to enter into his service.
C224
Whatsoever is right -- The exact, clear understanding of what the wages should be
was mentioned only at the beginning. C223
The promise of the Kingdom was
clearly understood by the early Church, but afterward was in the main lost
sight of and not clearly enunciated. C223
Matthew 20:6
The eleventh hour -- The last hour. C223
The very closing time of this
Gospel age. Q258:2
5 p.m., only one hour before the
labor of the day would cease. We are now just at the close of the Gospel day.
R214:2
We are even now (1889) in the
eleventh hour. R1111:5
Apparently no others were admitted
during the twelfth hour. Q74:4
And found others -- Perhaps 20,000 to 30,000 of the consecrated in 1881
did not prove faithful to their
covenant of sacrifice and were replaced. This process will continue until the
last crown is everlastingly apportioned. F95; R4304:1
Partly applicable, in the Jewish
harvest, to some publicans and sinners who had previously neglected God's service
and labors in the vineyard. R5473:5
Standing idle -- Waiting for an opportunity to enter the vineyard. R4303:5;
Q258:2
Matthew 20:7
Hath hired us -- We were too late to get into the service under the call.
C223, 224
Go ye also -- Some of the places in the work will be vacated by reason of
some not continuing faithful. C225
All were hired. There is so great
a variety of work that all may find employ. R214:3
Into the vineyard -- So long as the door of opportunity for service is open.
C224
And whatsoever is right -- These words, to the end of the verse, are not in the old
manuscripts. C224
I promise nothing. The general
call is ended. The time is short. The time for labor is nearly ended. C224
Who can tell the blessings which
may flow from one hour's service under God's direction? R214:3
Matthew 20:8
Call the laborers -- Only the faithful are represented by the laborers. C223
Matthew 20:9
Penny -- Something of the joys, blessings, honors and privileges of
God's people in the present life at the close of this age. R4666:5
Eternal life, the reward of those
who labored throughout the whole day, or only an hour; to the Little Flock and
to the Great Company. Q500:3
Matthew 20:10
Every man a penny -- Drawing attention to the fact that it was the same reward
to all--the prominent feature of the parable. Q530:1
Perhaps the only significance is
to call attention to that fact and the reason for the murmuring. Q530:1
Matthew 20:11
It -- The penny, representing eternal life. Q500:1,5
They murmured -- Whatever it shall signify will be something that will yet
be in the Church before we pass beyond the veil, because surely no one would
murmur on the other side. Q258:3, 531:T
Anyone who would be inclined to
murmur against the Giver of all Good would not be accounted worthy of a share
in the Kingdom. R4666:5; Q530:1, 500:6, 259:T
It will mean that they were
looking for the reward merely, and not appreciating the privilege of being
laborers with Christ and with the Father. R4666:5
A warning to those long in the
truth, with great privileges of service. R4666:5
All who are servants should be
praying to the Master to send other laborers into the vineyard. They should not
be feeling jealous of any others who might come. R5474:1
Matthew 20:12
But one hour -- Similarly today some Christian people stumble over the fact
that the time is near at hand when God will pour out his spirit upon all flesh.
R4666:6
Made them equal -- The Scribes and Pharisees thought that, if publicans and
sinners were to be privileged to have discipleship with Messiah, some still
higher favor should come to themselves. R5473:5
Of the day -- This Gospel age. C223
Matthew 20:13
I do thee no wrong -- All who appreciate that God is just, generous and
bountiful, will rejoice in the blessings which overflow upon others. R4666:5
Whatever God has to offer is a
gift. R5473:6
Matthew 20:15
To do what I will -- In matters of grace or favor. R5069:4
Is thine eye evil -- A special test upon them as respects their loyalty and
their motives. R4666:6
Matthew 20:16
Last shall be first -- Some last and least found opportunity for receiving the
divine blessing sooner and more effectively. R5473:6
The first last -- Some first to respond to the call may be the last to
receive special blessings, testing their loyalty and motives. R4666:5, 5473:6
See comments on Matt. 19:30. Many
be called -- To the divine nature through opportunity to sacrifice.
R682:2
Not many are called in proportion
to the whole, but many are called in proportion to the number chosen, the few,
the elect. R2508:1; HG746:1, 744:3
More are called and drawn by God's
providences and the preaching of the message than he designs to save in the
present salvation. NS769:6
But few -- The approved. R779:3*
The terms and conditions of the
present salvation are extremely difficult. NS769:6
Not only was the Jewish nation a
small nation amongst the others, but the "very elect" out of that
nation, the ancient worthies, was a very small proportion of the whole. NS369:6
Chosen -- This does not make God partial. He was under no kind of obligation
to make any of the race immortal rulers. R779:3*
Matthew 20:18
They shall condemn him -- The priestly Sadducees, not the people, were interested in
having Jesus brought to trial for his open attack on the priestly misrule, and
they feared lest the Romans might hold them responsible. R2420:1*
Matthew 20:20
With her sons -- James and John, supposed to have been Jesus' full cousins.
R3362:2
Matthew 20:21
Grant that these -- If it had been wrong for them to have the promise in mind,
it would have been wrong for the Lord to have given the promise. R5376:1
On thy right hand -- And on the left, the two positions of chiefest favor.
R3362:2
Others might not care so much
where they were placed, but James and John would like to be close to the
Master. R5091:1
Evidently thinking less of the
glories of the Kingdom than of nearness to the Master. R4487:3
The disciples were afflicted with
a common ailment: love of honor of men and also of honor of the Lord. R5375:6
It is possible that one of these
positions is reserved for the Apostle Paul. R3362:6
In thy kingdom -- There was no doubt in their minds that the Kingdom was
near. R5090:6
Matthew 20:22
Jesus answered -- From the few recorded words, we gather the drift of the
more extended conversation. R2072:2*
Ye know not -- At that time they could form no idea of the blessedness of
being joined with Christ in his Kingdom and glory, to sit with him in his
throne as his Bride and joint-heir. R2072:2*
What ye ask -- Jesus did not condemn them for this desire. R5786:4
You can form no idea of the
blessedness of being joined with Christ in his Kingdom and glory. R2072:2*
They little realized what this
high privilege of sitting with him in the Millennial throne would cost. NS755:4
When we consecrate ourselves we
agree to do the Lord's will, but we do not know what it means. R5081:5
Are ye able to drink -- Are ye willing to participate, to drink? 5599:2, 5538:5,
4547:2, R3362:3; Q188:T
The word "able," while
it contains the thought of force, nevertheless expresses willingness. It refers
to the will. Not, Are ye physically able?--but, Are ye mentally able? R5599:2
Of the cup -- Of shame, ignominy, suffering and reproach. R5599:3,
5421:3, 4669:1, 2292:4
Of self-denial and self-sacrifice
with Jesus, participating in his sacrifice. R4456:4, 5421:3-5, 5192:6,
4547:2,5, 4429:4; CR47:5
The earthly experiences of the
Lord. R5538:6, 5599:5
Showing not only our interest in
his sacrifice, but also expressing our own covenant to be dead with him and to
drink of his cup. R325:5
We are called to share the cup
with him, thus partaking in symbol of his death. R721:4
Does not symbolize justification,
but only the justified may drink of it. R4547:4
It is our individual cup, and yet
it is our Savior's cup. R5538:5
"The cup which my Father hath
given me, shall I not drink it?" (John 18:11) R3362:3, 5599:5
If we drink our Savior's cup of
death with him, then we shall participate with him in the future cup of joy.
R4547:2, 5538:6; CR307:2
Our cup is supervised by our
Savior, although it is the cup poured by the Father; for it is the Father's
program. We shall not be alone. R5422:1, 5538:5, 4547:2
Symbolizes the means of our
sanctification, by which we exchange our justified earthly rights for the
heavenly inheritance and joint-heirship. R4547:4
To lay down your lives completely,
even though it shall mean injustice to you. R5421:3
While this wine of sacrifice
exhausts the human nature, it invigorates and makes strong the spiritual
nature. R588:3
I shall drink of -- Jesus was to drink of the cup which belonged to the sinner,
that he might redeem man. R5421:6
He drank the bitter cup to its
dregs, thankfully. R5422:1, 5538:5
That cup was a terrible draft to
him--not the dying, but the cross. R5599:5, 5422:1
About to be poured for him.
R5421:2
The same cup. He did not drink of
one cup and we of another. R4475:2, 4547:2, 212:2*
Neither James nor John nor anyone
else can sit on Christ's throne unless he drinks of this cup. R4547:2, 4475:2
With the baptism -- The baptism of death. F438, 442; R4547:5, 4669:1, 5599:3, 1543:1;
PD66/78
Into his sacrificial death.
R4547:5
Signifying the complete surrender
of self to God at any cost or privation or suffering, even unto death. R2072:2*
I am baptized with -- Now, during the three and a half years of his ministry.
R5421:1
The sacrifice of all earthly
interests. R4669:1
We are able -- We are willing. We will sacrifice everything to follow in
your footsteps. R3362:4, 5421:3,4, 5599:2, 5786:4
Let us make such a decision
promptly, and think of it daily. R5607:3
They did not, of course, yet know
the full import of the word "baptism" or the word "cup."
R5421:4
And we can do no more. If left to
ourselves, undoubtedly the contract would be more than we would be sufficient
for, but our sufficiency is of God's providence. NS755:4
Our Lord was evidently gratified
with their promptness to make the consecration, declaring themselves willing to
endure the cross to win the crown. R2292:4
They had counted the cost and
promptly responded as to their willingness. R4669:2
They were ready for anything, with
the Master's help. PD66/78
Not a boast on their part, but a
simple declaration of their decision to obey and follow the Lord's footsteps in
whatever circumstances might arise. R5607:3
And so with us. Our wills are made
up. There is not a doubt--nothing to interfere. R5599:3
Matthew 20:23
Ye shall drink -- The apostles could not actually drink of the Redeemer's cup
until he, as their Advocate, should appear in the presence of God for them.
R4547:5
Jesus guaranteed that, being
willing, they should have these experiences; continuing willing, continuing to
suffer with him here, they should reign with him in his throne. R5421:4,
4669:2, 2292:5
Those who drink will share with
him in the glories of the future. R5607:3
Jesus, in turn, pledged that they
should indeed be able to carry it out. R2292:4
He assured them and us that he
will furnish trials and assistances, and that, if faithful to the end, we shall
have a crown of life. PD66/78
There is no doubt--if we follow in
the footsteps of Jesus, a life of obedience, we shall suffer. R212:1*
It is hard that our good should be
evil spoken of, that we should be declared to be poisonous to every religious
sentiment. This is a part of our experience. R5599:5
My cup -- Styled the blood of the New Covenant, New Testament, New
Will. R4436:2
Of suffering or ignominy. R5607:3,
4555:5, 2292:4
Share with him in his
sacrifice--not a different cup, not a different sacrifice. R4475:2
The merit of Jesus is the only
merit which cancels the sins of the whole world; but it is applied indirectly
through the Church. This is the favor he specially offers them. R648:6
The same cup represented in the
Communion service. R5421:3, 4555:5
Also signifies a share in his
glories, honors and immortality, the new wine with him in the Kingdom. R5192:6
Those who drink of his cup are
specially loved of the Father. R5607:3
And be baptized -- If we have indicated our willingness, we have his promise
that the ability will be supplied. R445:1
Sit on my right hand -- Be associated thus intimately with me on my throne. R2072:2
Not mine to give -- Will not be given according to favor, but according to
justice. R5786:4; PD66/78
Positions in the Kingdom of heaven
will be awarded according to the degree of development of the fruits of the
holy Spirit. This means a love which will lead to zeal in the Lord's service.
Q121:3
Be given to them -- Possibly Paul and John. F726
For whom it is prepared -- Reserved for overcomers. At that time it yet remained to be
proved whether these would be faithful to their covenant. R2072:2*
Of my Father -- According to the standards which the Father has prepared
and established. R4669:2
Matthew 20:25
Jesus called them -- In answering the ten, he did not reprove the two
specifically, but indirectly. R4669:2
Exercise dominion -- The Gentiles exercise authority over their people at the
expense of the ruled. R5375:6
With men, the aggressive and
powerful hold the lordship and dominion over others, but in the divine
arrangement the order is reversed. R4669:4
The great success of Papacy's rise
to power, accomplished by cunning, trickery and political intrigue, was wholly
foreign to the spirit of true Christianity. R1093:5
Exercise authority -- The Church of Christ has probably suffered more from pride
and ambition for leadership than from any other one cause. R1883:6
Many have lorded it over God's
heritage; our Lord had this class in mind. R5375:6
Matthew 20:26
Not be so among you -- With the followers of Christ there is not to be a spirit to
dominate, to rule others, but a spirit of love, which seeks to serve others.
Q119:6
There should be no rulership,
lordship or masteries amongst those whom the one Master, even Christ, has put
upon a common level. R1883:6
But it has been so in the Papacy.
F230; R1523:5
Be your minister -- Greek, diakonos, deacon, servant. F253
The highest position in Christ's
Church was to be servant, and he declared himself to be the chief servant or
minister of the Church. R1883:6
Matthew 20:27
Whosoever -- Of his disciples, the Lord's people. R5793:1
Will be chief -- Teachers, instructors of the flock. R5321:3
Someone is bound to be chief. An
absolute equality is not possible. R5793:1, 5322:4; Q119:7
We should leave to God's
attendance the matter of honor, and be content merely to be a servant to the
brethren. R5793:2
Our Lord had been pointing out to
his disciples a certain weakness on their part. R5793:1,2
A person without any ambition
never amounts to anything. R5793:2, 5321:3; Q120:3
A certain kind of ambition, to
please God and have his rewards, is encouraged by the exceeding great and
precious promises of God's Word. R4668:3
Nevertheless, the ambitions
awakened by these promises, we are warned, might become our snares. R4669:1
To guide the Church. R5793:2
The Apostle Paul says that those
who desire the office of a bishop are desiring a good thing. (1 Tim. 3:1)
Q120:5
The Lord does not raise up rulers
in the body of Christ, but he does raise up faithful leaders, to whom heed
should be given, whose faith and example should be imitated. R1559:4
God made Jesus a chief. He passed
by Satan, who was self-seeking. After Jesus proved his humility, then the
Father gave him the high exaltation. R5322:5
We are not to help one who aspires
to the chief place into that position. This would do injury both to him and the
cause. R5322:4
Be your servant -- He who renders the greatest amount of service and brings
the greatest spiritual blessing, consider him your chief. R5793:2
The chief honor amongst the Lord's
brethren is to be servant. The one most faithful should be given opportunity to
serve. In that sense, he would be your chief. R5322:5
Honor those most in the Church who
serve the Church, not those who demand service, honors and exaltation. R4669:4
A bishop at that time was a
humble, untitled servant of the Church, caring for the interests of the sheep.
Q120:5
We are to lay aside any desire to
be chief so far as ambition for personal glory is concerned. R5793:3; Q120:4
Not of a spirit to dominate, to
rule others. R5793:1
Serving in any way, in the most
capable manner possible. R5793:2
This does not mean that we have no
aspirations. The controlling impulse is to serve the Church. R5322:4
Let the Lord take care of your
place of service; let him open the way. R5322:2
Matthew 20:28
Even as -- Pointing to his own course as an illustration. R4669:4
The Son of man -- No longer on the spirit plane, but on the human plane.
R5786:1; Q368:2
The requirement was that he become
a man in order to ransom mankind. He could ransom man only by becoming man.
R5786:1, 3088:2
Came not -- Before coming into the world, our Lord had perceived that
mankind was in need of a Savior. No doubt this had to do with his accepting the
divine arrangement. R5375:2
To be ministered unto -- Not that our Lord refused to have anyone serve him, but he
came to render a service. R5375:3
Not to be served, honored or
titled. R1711:1
He did not come into the world to
have servants and get all that he could. R5375:3
The difference between himself and
other kings. R5785:3
He did not try to use his power,
his intelligence, selfishly for his own comfort; but he laid down his life
unselfishly. R5375:2
But to minister -- The true meaning of the word "minister" is one
who serves. R5785:3, 5375:2
To serve others. E426; F230;
R5375:2,3, 5785:3
In the service of his Church,
which is his body. R5250:3
Because it was helpful service,
and was the Father's will. R5375:5
Illustrating the spirit of
meekness, of service, which must characterize the hearts and, in some degree,
control the lives of all his true disciples. R4669:5
The privilege of serving the
fallen race as their Redeemer and Restorer was one of the rewards the Father
set before His Son. NS751:3
Lord of all, yet servant of all.
R1063:2*
He set himself forth as an
example: all disciples must manifest so great loyalty to the principles of God's
government, and so great humility of spirit, that they would be glad to render
service to anyone in need. R5376:1
The spirit of Christ will be the
spirit of service: a zeal, a warmth, an energy, prompting us to serve in the
Church. R5250:2
Our ministry begins at the time of
our consecration. We are not authorized to minister in holy things until we
have entered upon the way the Lord pointed out to us. R5785:6
And to give -- The object in becoming a man was to redeem men, to taste
death for every man. R507:1, 145:1*
He came not to preach and write
books. Others, under inspiration, could do those things. But he alone had an
unforfeited life to give for the life of the world. R3234:3
The serving of Jesus' ministry and
the example of obedience and self-denial, though blessed to those of his day
and to others since, was not all there was to Jesus' life. R851:6
Becoming a man did not pay our
ransom price. E426
The human existence of Jesus, our
ransom, our substitute, was surrendered to everlasting death; but he lives as a
divine being to restore purchased mankind. R823:5
Otherwise his death would have
been contrary to God's will, a suicide and a sin. R1213:3*
He could not rise from the dead as
a human being, as flesh, his flesh being given once for all and forever for the
life of the world. NS3:6
His life -- Greek, psuche, soul, being. E335; R851:6, 62:1*
The death of Christ secures for
Adam and all of his race one full opportunity for salvation. R4594:4
His being or existence in the
condition he then possessed it, life or existence as a human being. The human
Jesus gave himself, his life, a ransom for all. R823:4, 726:3*, 53:4*; NS3:6
His life to secure life for
condemned sinners. R1086:3
Not his pre-human life, for he did
not die to become man, but he said, "Before Abraham was, I am." (John
8:58) R1298:6*
A ransom -- Greek, lutron-anti, a price to correspond. E428; R5925:1,
5622:6, 4426:1, 4352:2, 3088:2, 1256:2, 387:3; SM269:1
Greek, lutron, a price. R408:1*
A substitute. R1256:2, 965:4
Exchange. R432:4
Not only the English words
"ransom, bought, redeem" mean "the giving of one thing instead
of, or as a substitute for another," but also the Greek words which these
are used to translate. R432:4
The word "ransom" is
used in respect to the purchase-price of humanity and also in connection with
the deliverance of mankind after having been purchased by that price. R4818:3
The word occurs but three times in
the Greek (here and in Mark 10:45 and 1
Tim. 2:6) and signifies to recover
by paying a price; intensified in Timothy to signify a corresponding price.
R867:3, 145:1*
His death was the ransom which
justifies all mankind to life, not the sufferings of Gethsemane, nor the
weariness of his three-and-a-half year ministry. R392:6 Corroborating the
declaration that man was under a sentence of death and needed to be ransomed
from it. R5465:1
Jesus was the only one who could
be the corresponding price for Adam. R5622:6
None other than the man Jesus.
PT386:3*
Our Lord's first statement of the
philosophy of the divine plan by which, as Abraham's seed, he would bring the
promised blessing. R4352:2
His death was a free-will
sacrifice. He could have sustained life as a perfect man forever. R463:6
The word here used also indicates
the deliverance of mankind after purchase: "I will ransom them from the
power of the grave." (Hos. 13:14) R4818:3, 726:3*
Without the ransom there could be
no resurrection of the dead. R5465:1
The ransom-price that Jesus gives
has been a progressive matter and is not yet completed. R5622:3
To view our Lord as merely an
example for proper living would be an absurdity. SM269:1
The work of ransoming Adam and his
race is much more than merely providing the ransom-price. It includes their
delivery from the power of sin and death. R5873:2, 4818:6
Prefigured and elaborated upon in
the types and shadows of the Law to Israel. R4352:2
The Master tells how he gained the
right to loose the prisoners of sin and death from the tomb, and to offer life,
restitution, to all for whom life, and everything, had been lost. R866:4
For many -- For all. SM269:1
The principal meaning of the word
"for" is "instead of," as a substitute or representative
stands for, or "instead of," those whom he represents. R588:5
Matthew 20:30
Two blind men -- Bartimeus was one of the two. (Mark 10:46) R2729:3
Thou son of David -- "The Lord shall give him the throne of his father
David." (Luke 1:32) C257
The long-promised king of David's
line, the Messiah. PD65/77; C257; E130; SM210:2
Matthew 20:31
Rebuked them -- When the spiritually blind cry for help, there are sure to
be some, even amongst the Lord's friends, to rebuke instead of encourage them.
R2730:4
Matthew 20:32
Called them -- Giving those about him an opportunity to share in the work
of blessing. R2729:3
What will ye -- Many today, when asked this question, do not choose as
wisely, but request riches, honor of men and temporal blessings. R3848:4
Matthew 20:34
Received sight -- Only the Great Physician is able to open the eyes of the
understanding. R2730:4
It is not in our power to open the
eyes of the physically blind, but it is in our power to help many into a
clearer insight into the things of God, which the natural eye hath not seen.
R4669:5
Matthew 21
Matthew 21:1
And when -- Just five days before his crucifixion, on the exact day
when he should have been received as the Lamb of God so that they might be
passed over as a nation and become the antitypical Levites, from whom would
come the antitypical priests. R4669:2, 839:2, 465:5; NS74:5, 630:6
Bethpage -- A little village on the Mount of Olives. R3850:2
Matthew 21:2
Over against you -- Another village close by. R3850:2
Ye shall find -- Manifesting his superhuman power by designating where and
how the animals would be found. R2745:3
An ass -- Probably a white one, for it is reputed to have been the
custom of the kings of Israel to ride upon white asses. R4669:5, 3850:2,
2745:3; SM400:2; NS629:6
And a colt -- Its little colt. R4669:3, 3850:2
Bring them -- The owner of the animals may have been acquainted with
Jesus and, if so, would also have been acquainted with his disciples. R3850:2
Has no bearing on the question of
the rights of private property. All things belong to God and have their
legitimate and illegitimate uses. R1695:6
Matthew 21:4
Might be fulfilled -- It was necessary that our Lord should do literally what the
prophets had foretold, so that Israel might be without excuse in their
rejection of him. R3850:6, 2296:3; B225
By the prophet -- Fulfilling two prophecies: Isa. 62:11 and Zech. 9:9.
R3850:5
Matthew 21:5
Thy King cometh -- "He is Lord of lords and King of kings." (Rev.
17:14) B238
He also presented himself to them
as Bridegroom (John 3:29) and Reaper (John 4:35,36), the same three characters
which he presents now to the Christian house. B238
The entry was viewed from three
standpoints: for the disciples and multitude, full of Messianic expectation, it
was a grand occasion and a real triumph; from the standpoint of Herod, Pilate
and the authorities, it was merely the parade of a fanatical leader; from the
standpoint of the Lord, the angels and ourselves, it foreshadowed his coming
glory and triumphal entry upon his return from the far country of heaven.
R2745:5
The formal presentation and
rejection was so that God's judgment would not only be just, but its justice
would be apparent to his creatures. R2296:5; NS630:3
Though he knew the result, this
action was performed as a part of that great system of types which foreshadowed
good things to come. R1795:2
In the parallel of time, he must
offer himself to spiritual Israel, at the appointed time, as their King of
Glory. NS632:2
"Even today do I declare that
I will render double unto thee." (Zech. 9:12) B225
Natural Israel waited 1845 years
for the Lord to come; the corresponding date for spiritual Israel is 1878 AD.
R3851:3, 2746:5, 1795:2; C233, 234
This exercise of kingly power and
authority in the spring of AD 33
typified the raising of the
sleeping saints in AD 1878. C233
As a King, he is now taking
possession of his Kingdom--first, as with the Jews, offering himself to his
professed people--but now, as then, finding only a remnant. R2297:2
This message has proven to be the
test to both the fleshly and the spiritual houses of Israel. C136
Meek -- Whereas he was meek and lowly of heart, they were proud and
boastful; whereas he was pure and unselfish, they were impure and self-seeking.
R3850:6
Upon an ass -- After the manner of Israel's kings. PD66/77
See comments on verse 2.
Matthew 21:7
Put on them -- As a saddle. R3537:6
Set him thereon -- A lesson for spiritual Israel at the end of this age,
because the history of natural Israel was typical of spiritual Israel's
experiences. R3851:2
Matthew 21:8
Great multitude -- A million or more Jews in Jerusalem hailed him as King.
R5331:3
Not only from every quarter of
Palestine, but from Babylon, Egypt, Greece and Spain. R3537:3
We cannot suppose that they were
all saints, though doubtless many of them were sympathizers with Jesus. R3851:1
Thus selecting its Paschal Lamb on
the 10th of Nisan. F461
Spread their garments -- A custom amongst various peoples for long centuries to thus
treat their honored rulers. R3851:1, 2745:3; NS629:2
As marks of honor to the great
King whom they imperfectly, indistinctly, recognized, not realizing the still
greater glory of his later revealing at the end of this age. R4669:6, 3538:1,
2296:2
Garments of praise. R3538:6
Their hearts were right; they had
not been spoiled by doubts. So with the Lord's people today, in the simplicity
of our hearts we see his promises and are ready to believe them. R3538:2
Cut down branches -- From nearby date palm trees, fernlike in shape and
sometimes ten feet long, symbols of rejoicing and honor. R3538:1
Implying that the best of earth
was not too good for one so great. PD65/77
Branches of such victories as can
be gained on behalf of the Truth in conflict with the world, the flesh and the
devil. R3538:6
Strawed them -- After our Lord's beast had walked over them, they went
ahead with these and strewed them afresh, in every way seeking to honor the one
whom God had so signally recognized. R3538:1
Matthew 21:9
And that followed -- Two multitudes--one who had come with him from Jericho and
lodged in Bethany over the Sabbath, and another from Jerusalem who had come
forth to see him and Lazarus. R2745:3
Hosanna -- An acclaim of praise, confidence and expectancy, very
closely resembling the word Hallelujah. R3538:2
Their unstable and fickle minds,
swayed by false teachers and unwilling to act upon convictions in the face of
opposition, would, only a few days later, cry, Crucify him! Crucify him! R1795:2,
1696:4; NS630:3
The son of David -- The King of the royal line, probably being deterred from
using the word "king" lest they should bring upon themselves charges
of treason against Herod and the Roman Empire. R2745:3
The long-promised king of David's
line, the Messiah. PD65/77; SM210:2; E130; C257; NS631:6
"The Lord will give him the
throne of his father David." (Luke 1:32) C257
So we, today, hail him Messiah and
proclaim ourselves believers in him. This is justification by faith. Hence,
Palm Sunday may be considered as symbolizing the attainment of justification by
those who recognize Jesus. NS631:6
Blessed is he -- As truly and as necessarily as there was shouting and
rejoicing then, so there is and must be now. R1795:5
Name of the Lord -- Jehovah. PD65/77
Matthew 21:11
The multitude -- Josephus tells us that sometimes the population of
Jerusalem, on such an occasion, was swelled to the number of two millions.
R4122:6, 3537:3
Nazareth of Galilee -- Not highly esteemed among men and in religious circles;
thought to be rather peculiar at very best. R3538:6
Matthew 21:12
Into the temple -- Not to Herod's
palace or to Pilate's palace; but, as the representative of God, the Messiah,
he went appropriately to the Father's house or palace, the Temple. R2746:3
The temple, built by Herod, was
only a type of the Church of the living God, either in future glory or in
present humiliation. R3851:5
Typifying the cleansing of the
consecrated Temple class since 1878; every selfish, carnal thought, and all
worldliness, must be cast out, that the Temple may be clean, the dwelling-place
of God's holy Spirit. B239; R4123:2, 2746:6, 1696:1
And cast out -- As any Law-abiding Jew was privileged to do. R2746:4,
3851:4, 4123:2
Beginning to exercise power, as
befitting a spiritual king, by reproving those who were violating the holy
Temple and its precincts. R2746:3, 1695:6
It is assumed, we believe without
sufficient authority, that there were two cleansings. R4122:3, 2332:1; 1695:3
He had visited the Temple time and
again as a Jew and had witnessed these same scenes, but had not interfered, a
proof that the occurrence took place but once--after our Lord had assumed the
office of King. R4123:2
It is but reasonable to suppose
that the use of force in cleansing the Temple followed, and did not precede,
the assertion of regal authority shown in the triumphal entry. R2332:1
The last verse of John's account,
like the other Gospels, shows the hostile attitude of numerous opponents which
did not appear in the beginning of his ministry. R1695:3
Fulfilling the prophecy, "The
zeal of thine house hath consumed me." (Psa. 69:9) R4670:4, 4123:2
As a typical act, indicating that,
in the end of this age, judgment begins with the professed house of God. (1
Pet. 4:17) R1795:5
In the end of the Gospel age, God
purposes a cleansing of his sanctuary, the Temple-- Christendom. (Dan. 8:14)
R3851:5
Those associated with the Lord's
work for selfish reasons must be driven out. R3851:6
Necessary before the Temple shall
be ready to be filled with the glory of God and become the place of prayer for
all nations. R2297:4
All them that sold -- The antitypical cleansing, now in progress, mainly affects
those who make merchandise of holy things. R3851:6
In the temple -- They had no right within its hallowed precincts. R4760:4
Not in the Temple proper, but in
its outer courts, the whole of which was designated the Temple or house of God.
R4123:1
The tables of -- Not only stopping their usurious exchange business, but
keeping them busy looking after their coins. R4123:2
The moneychangers -- Typifying those who rob the people by accepting money for
that which is not food. R3851:6
Reaping a profitable harvest from
the worshippers who had traveled from a distance, whose money, not being
Jewish, could not be accepted at the Temple. R2746:3
A certain Temple tax must be paid
in the "shekel of the sanctuary" which was last coined in BC 140,
hence quite scarce in our Lord's day and sold at a premium. R4122:6
Today in the nominal temple some
make merchandise of their privileges, opportunities and knowledge. Catholics
are led to believe they can present nothing acceptable except through the
priests; Protestants have regular collection plates and frequent strong appeals
for money. R4123:3
The seats of them -- He did not set at liberty the doves, which could not easily
have been recovered, but permitted their owners to take them away. R4123:2
That sold doves -- Multitudes of strangers from afar rarely brought with them
the doves, pigeons or lambs which they presented in sacrifice. R4122:6
Matthew 21:13
House of prayer -- The channel though which all mankind may, during the
Millennial age, find access to God. R2297:5
A den of thieves -- Taking advantage of the necessities of the people. R4123:1
The thief usually poses as an
honorable man; the same is the case with many Christian ministers, teachers and
elders. R3852:1
Robbing God by detracting from his
honor; robbing the people by taking from them money and honors while selling
them bread which is not spiritually satisfying. R3852:2
Of this class are evolutionists,
who rob God and receive the money of the people under false pretense. R3852:1
Matthew 21:14
The blind and the lame -- He cast out the wrong-doers and received the poor outcasts
of society. R2296:5
Everywhere we find that earthly
wisdom is apt to misinterpret divine promises. Frequently, therefore, the Lord
makes use of the weak, poor and ignorant instead. R3852:5
He healed them -- Continuing the healing and teaching for several days, but
without any further demonstration as a King. R2746:4
Typifying the opening of the blind
eyes and the healing of the spiritually lame, particularly since 1878. R2746:6,
1795:5
Matthew 21:15
And the children -- Little, uninstructed children. R3538:6
Little children and those who, in
simplicity of heart and meekness, become as little children, become the
instruments the Lord uses in shouting his praises. R2746:4
Typifying the Lord's little ones
in the present harvest whose praises will fill the true Temple of God. R2746:4,
3852:4,5
Crying in the temple -- Doubtless without any particular meaning. R3852:4
Were sore displeased -- Typifying the displeasure of the clergy at the present time
because of the harvest message now being proclaimed. R2746:6
Matthew 21:16
Babes and sucklings -- Out of the mouths of the common people. R1796:6
Matthew 21:17
Into Bethany -- Throughout the week he made Bethany his home, going daily
to the city and returning at night. Bethany was about two miles distant from
the Temple. R3850:2, 2746:4
Matthew 21:19
A fig tree -- The Jewish nation. "Now learn a parable of the fig
tree." D602, 604; R750:3, 127:1*
For ever -- "To the age." (Diaglott) R127:1*
"Cursed to the
age"--during the Gospel age, as a nation, they have borne no fruit, but
when the Bride is taken out from the Gentiles, they will receive favor. (Acts
15:14,16) R127:3*
Matthew 21:21
If ye have faith -- Absolute confidence in the Word of God. R5446:4
Unto this mountain -- Symbol of difficulties and obstructions in our Christian
course. R1967:5; Q774:3
A mountain-moving faith would
count for nothing without love as a basis. R2203:3
Be thou removed -- God gave no such command in respect to the literal
mountains. R5446:4
Since there is no basis of
evidence that the will of God is to remove literal mountains, a genuine faith
in his willingness to do it is an impossibility. R1967:5
Cast into the sea -- Swallowed up in anarchy. D596
It shall be done -- If they had faith in the power of God, and received a
command from him to move the mountain. R5446:4
See also comments on Matt. 17:20. Matthew 21:22
Ye shall ask -- God's children are cautioned to ask only such things as he
has promised in his word. R2005:4
Ye shall receive -- It must be understood that all petitions would be subjected
to divine wisdom. Therefore, the answers, though always sure, might not always
be in the way expected. R1866:1
Matthew 21:23
By what authority -- The apostles' authority was questioned by the same class.
Should persecution rise again, let all continue to preach as did the early
Church, asking no other authority than the command of the Lord. R992:6
"He that hath my Word, let
him speak my Word." (Luke 23:28) OV158:4
This authority -- Authority to teach and do good. OV158:3
Matthew 21:24
I also will ask -- Mark the wisdom of his replies when they sought to entrap
him in his words. R575:2
Matthew 21:28
First -- Represents the class of Israelites who made no pretense of
serving God, and were branded publicans, sinners, and harlots. R4678:3
Matthew 21:29
I will not -- They made no pretense of serving God. R4678:3 Repented, and
went -- Through John's message and the teachings of Jesus and the apostles, the
publicans, sinners and harlots were the ones ready to receive him. R4678:3,
2755:6
Matthew 21:30
Second -- Represents the outwardly
religious and pious, the Scribes and Pharisees. R4678:2, 2755:6
Corresponding to the "elder
son" of the parable of the prodigal son. (Luke 15:11-32) R1958:3
Do not really seek the divine
service, but rather serve their own sects, personal aims, honor, etc. R4678:2
Matthew 21:31
Go into the kingdom -- Poor, self-righteous Pharisees! To this day, they are
jealous and will not "go in." (Matt. 23:13) R1460:4, 1035:5
Before you -- The "elder son" class who had cultivated a spirit
of pride and boastfulness. R1958:3
"The common people [who knew
not the Law and had not heretofore heard the invitation] heard him gladly"
(Mark 12:37); but those first invited were rejected. R342:6
Matthew 21:33
Another parable -- Forming a part of the Lord's discourse on the last day of
his public ministry. R1982:2
Apparently our Lord had in mind
the parable of the vineyard of Isa. 5:1-7
when he gave this parable.
R2904:1, 1982:3, 1896:2, 1795:3
Nearly all parables related to the
Kingdom; some directly, others, as this one, indirectly. R5504:3
A certain householder -- Jehovah. R1982:3, 4678:3, 5504:6, 2755:6, 1795:3
Planted a vineyard -- "For the vineyard of the Lord of hosts is the house of
Israel." (Isa. 5:7) R1982:3
The Jewish nation, typifying
Christendom. R1982:3, 1983:1, 4678:3,5, 5504:3, 1795:3
Since nominal fleshly Israel was a
prototype of nominal Christendom, we may look for somewhat similar conditions
and dealings in the harvest of this Christian age. R4678:2
In all respects well-appointed and
furnished for his purpose. R4678:3
The vineyard represents the Jewish
polity, and the vine represents the people, especially such as were in
influence and power--the leaders. R2904:1
With a root of promise, a hope,
the promise made to Abraham. R5504:3
And hedged it -- With the divine Law, the prophecies, and special
supervision and guardianship. R1795:3
With the divine promise that as
long as Israel would be faithful and loyal to God, they would be thoroughly
protected against their enemies. R5504:3
Digged a winepress -- Including the trough in which the grapes were pressed, and
the vat for the reception of the juice pressed from them. R1795:3
The various advantages conferred
upon Israel, such as the worship of the sanctuary, the leadings of Jehovah, and
the teachings of the prophets, all of which should have caused the vine to
yield a large increase. R1795:6
Built a tower -- A watch tower, representing the prophets. R1795:6
The watchmen were the prophets who
cried aloud and warned the people from time to time in respect to any and every
breaking down of the wall or partition. R5504:3
The Lord declared himself to be
Israel's High Tower. R5504:3
To the husbandmen -- The scribes and Pharisees, who sat in Moses' seat. R2756:1,
5504:6, 4678:3, 1982:3
Whose duty it was to care for the
vines and fruitage, and render an account. R4678:3
Whose duty it was to instruct and
lead in the way of the Lord. R1795:6
Into a far country -- Implies that the arrangement was intended to stand for a
long time. R5504:5
To receive title to his Kingdom,
and to return to take possession of it. (Matt. 25:14,31) SM693:2; NS855:6
Matthew 21:34
Time of the fruit -- Which the Lord had a right to expect from Israel. R1796:1,
5504:6
The appointed harvest time in
which those addressed were then living. R1795:6
These husbandmen had this
stewardship from the time of the exodus down to the time of the coming of
Messiah, a period of nearly nineteen centuries. R1982:3
Sent his servants -- Prophets and teachers. R4678:3, 1982:5, 5504:6, 1796:1
These servants (the prophets) and
their messages became tests as respected the love, devotion and loyalty of the
vine-dressers, and tests also of the character-development of the people of
Israel. R5504:6
To the husbandmen -- The rulers in Israel, because of their influence and power,
were held specially responsible for the course of the nation, though this did
not relieve the individuals of their responsibility. R1796:1
The fruits of it -- Gratitude, love, obedience, meekness, teachableness.
R1795:6, 4678:4
Expecting that, through their
inability to keep the Law, they would become stronger in character, more
reverential and loyal to God, more desirous for the real Kingdom. R5504:6
"He looked for judgment, but
behold oppression; for righteousness, but behold a cry." (Isa. 5:7)
R1982:3
Matthew 21:35
Husbandmen took -- Today also we see some high in official positions as
representatives of God who use their positions to entrench themselves, hold
power over the people, and carry out their own schemes. R4678:6
His servants -- The scribes' and Pharisees' pride prompted the mistreatment
of the Owner's special representatives, the prophets. R4678:5, 5505:1
Beat one -- Reasoning that to acknowledge these servants and their
reproofs would mean to acknowledge that they themselves were merely
vine-dressers and not the owners. R5505:1
Killed another -- Today they behead in the sense of ostracism, and shoot out
the arrows of bitter words and slanders. R4678:6
The prophets were stoned, beaten,
murdered, sawn asunder, became wanderers, and dwelt in dens and caves. (Heb.
11:36-38) R4678:4
Matthew 21:37
His son -- Our Lord Jesus. R1982:5, 5505:1, 1796:1
His claim to be the Owner's son
was backed by numerous signs which the people were disposed to recognize.
R5505:2
They will reverence -- Though God knew it would be otherwise, it is so expressed
to show the reasonableness of such expectations. R1796:1, 5505:1
Matthew 21:38
The husbandmen -- The chief priests and rulers. R1796:1, 5504:5
Among themselves -- Privately and deceitfully. R1796:1
This is the heir -- This man claims to be the Messiah. R1796:1
Let us kill him -- His death was necessary for the success of their theories
and plans, because his theories and teachings were so different from theirs.
R5505:3
Seize on his inheritance -- Retain our prestige and power. R1796:1, 1982:6
Lord it over God's heritage.
R4678:5
Acting as though they were the
real owners and not merely the Owner's servants. R5504:6
Not realizing that this course was
the very one which would lead to the destruction of that typical kingdom, that
typical vineyard. R5505:3
Matthew 21:39
Cast him out -- Whatever the reasons for thinking the other prophets
deceivers, none of these arguments would hold against the Owner's son, whose
credentials were manifest in his holiness. R5505:2
Slew him -- Thus Jesus foretold his own violent death. R5505:3
Matthew 21:41
Miserably destroy -- God's judgments came upon the Jewish nation, with the
result that it was entirely overthrown in the year 70 AD. R5505:4
His vineyard -- Putting into it only the true vine, inspired with faith and
loyalty toward God. "I am the true vine and ye are the branches."
(John 15:1,2) R5505:5 Other vineyards have been started. The Bible speaks of
two--"the vine of my Father's right-hand planting" (Isa. 60:21), and
"the vine of the earth" (Rev. 14:18). R5505:5
Other husbandmen -- Jesus and the apostles, and other teachers of the Gospel
Church. R1982:6, 2756:1, 5505:4, 4678:5
Dispossessing the scribes and
Pharisees. R4678:5
Matthew 21:42
The stone -- The top stone, Christ Jesus, the head stone of God's
building, pattern for the whole, a stone of stumbling and rock of offense.
C329, 330; R1982:6, 4678:6, 5505:6
The builders -- The priests and Pharisees. C329
Rejected -- By the Jews. R5505:6
Fleshly Israel failed to accept
Christ as their headstone, and hence were rejected from being the special house
of God. C329
Is become -- Though rejected by them, that would not hinder its
exaltation in God's due time as the chief stone in the glorious spiritual
Temple of God. R1982:6
Head of the corner -- The building of God being referred to as a pyramid, of
which the top stone is the chief corner stone. (Psa. 118:22; Zech. 4:7)
R1982:6; C329
Matthew 21:43
The kingdom of God -- The Kingdom privileges or opportunities, first offered to
natural Israel, were transferred to spiritual Israel. R4593:6, 5505:6; B119
The Kingdom dignity pictured by
the purple raiment of the rich man. (Luke 16:19) NS819:1
Taken from you -- "Israel hath not obtained that which he seeketh
for." (Rom. 11:7) B119
Taken from them as a nation, not
as individuals. NS513:5, 606:5, 631:1
Their typical righteousness
ceased, and the promise of royalty ceased to be theirs. R2604:3, 1000:4, 284:2;
HG386:1
Israel was not ready to be used of
God in the blessing of other nations; only a remnant was found worthy. R4593:6
Given to a nation -- Spiritual Israel, whose existence began at Pentecost.
R4593:6
"An holy nation, a peculiar
people." (1 Pet. 2:9) R2604:3, 2125:5; NS630:5
Separate and distinct from all
others, gathered out from Jews and Gentiles, bond and free, from every nation
and denomination. R5505:6
Not to some other nation. God
proposed to organize a holy nation, composed of the holy Jews and others of a
similar class among all nations. NS513:5
A class they esteemed less than
the publicans and sinners, the Gentiles, whom they esteemed as
"dogs," and from among whom the Bride of Christ is being selected.
R1460:4; HG153:5
Represented by "Lazarus"
in the Parable of the Rich Man and Lazarus. R1087:1, 2604:3, 1000:4, 802:3*,
284:2; HG386:1
Matthew 21:44
And whosoever -- The Jewish church in the harvest of the Jewish age, and the
nominal Christian church in the harvest of the Gospel age. R1983:1
"And he shall be for a stone
of stumbling and for a rock of offense to both the houses of Israel."
(Isa. 8:14) R1983:1
Shall fall on -- A number of prophetic statements which met a fulfillment in
Jesus were so mixed up with others not specially applicable to him, that one
might readily stumble over them, not applying them to Messiah, had not the holy
Spirit brought them to the attention of the apostles. R435:3
This stone -- Our Lord was a stone of stumbling to natural Israel in
their harvest, and similarly to spiritual Israel in the present harvest;
especially his presence and his work. R5817:1
Messiah. R4678:6
The doctrine of the ransom. R448:2
Connected with the stone that
strikes Nebuchadnezzar's image. (Dan. 2:34) R3359:4*
Shall be broken -- By stumbling over Jesus they injure themselves. R5505:6,
4678:6
In stumbling over Christ at his
first advent, the Jewish nation was indeed broken to pieces. R1982:6
In stumbling, the nominal gospel
church will, as natural Israel, be broken. The whole institution will be
disintegrated. R1983:4
But on whomsoever -- When the Kingdom is established. R1983:4
It shall fall -- After it has been raised to glory and power. R1983:4
In the sense of condemning them.
R5505:6
By stumbling over him, they injure
themselves; but if he falls on, or condemns them, it signifies their utter
destruction, their cutting off in the second death. R5505:6, 4678:6
Grind him to powder -- When the Church is glorified, upon whomsoever this stone
falls, it will utterly destroy. "Every soul that will not hear that
prophet shall be destroyed from among the people." (Acts 3:22,23) R1983:4
In and by the great time of
trouble, all opposition shall be thoroughly broken down. NS435:1
Matthew 21:46
Lay hands on him -- Thus fulfilling the final prediction of the parable (verse
39). R1795:3
As the chief priests, the clergy,
do today against those whose blindness and lameness the Lord has healed. R1795:5
Matthew 22
Matthew 22:2
Kingdom of heaven -- Not an earthly kingdom, but a heavenly one; whose ruler,
the glorified Christ, will not be an earthly king, but a heavenly being of the
highest rank. R5510:2
The parables of Jesus about the
Kingdom of Heaven seem always to refer to the Church militant--the living,
mortal phase of the Church. R58:2*
Like unto -- Actually we are not called to be guests at the marriage
supper of the Lamb; but we are called to be the Bride, though in some respects
we must be like these guests. C198 A certain king -- Jehovah. R5510:3, 4679:2;
C198
Made a marriage -- As Messiah is to be the great King of earth, during the
period of his Mediatorial reign, it is the Father's good pleasure that he
should have a Bride. R4679:2
For his son -- Our Lord Jesus. R5679:2, 5510:3; C198
Matthew 22:3
Sent forth -- During the three-and-a-half years of our Lord's ministry.
R2301:1
Nowhere is Jesus represented as
calling his own Bride. R4679:2
Servants -- John the Baptist and his disciples. R5510:5
To call them -- This parable shows three divisions, or parts, in the one
call which gathers the guests. R2300:3
The Jewish people, the first
invitation. R2301:1, 4679:2, 343:2
The Jews had been invited to this
high honor from the time of the giving of the Law Covenant at Sinai. R4679:2
The call first reached the
priests, scribes, Pharisees and the Doctors of the Law who sat in Moses' seat.
(Matt. 23:2) R342:6
That were bidden -- The Jews had the first opportunity for joint-heirship with
Messiah in his Kingdom. PD59/70
During the Jewish age God had,
through the Law and the prophets, informed Israel, his friends, of his
intention to have such a feast. NS317:5
They would not come -- To the first call none seem to have responded, save the
servants only who bore the message. R2301:2
"He came to his own and his
own received him not." (John 1:11) R51:5
Matthew 22:4
Again -- During the three and a half years following the
crucifixion. R2301:1 The second invitation, after their house or nation was
left desolate. R2301:1
Other servants -- Jesus and his disciples. R5510:5
The disciples at first were simply
justified men; but on and after Pentecost, they were new creatures, begotten of
God. (1 Pet. 1:3) R343:2
Which are bidden -- Previously bidden, who had, during the three-and-a-half
years of our Lord's ministry, refused to come. R2301:1
The second call is not to the
righteous and prominent among the Jews, but to the morally and mentally poor,
blind and naked. R2301:2, 342:6
Prepared my dinner -- The good things pertaining to the spiritual phase of the
Kingdom of God. R1957:3
"O taste and see that the
Lord is good." (Psa. 34:8) R1957:5
He came in the flesh to a fleshly
typical bride; the marriage feast was prepared. R70:1*
This comprehensive statement of
readiness could not be made in the first invitation, before our Lord's death.
R2301:2
Fatlings are killed -- The ransom price has been paid. Our Lord himself was the
bullock slain. R2301:1
Come unto the marriage -- Only by consecration could anyone have the right to be at the
banquet, as a member either of the Bride or of the Great Company. R4525:5
Matthew 22:5
One to his farm -- Coming to this feast involves the leaving or sacrificing of
earthly aims and pleasures. R343:4
To his merchandise -- The cares of this life: business, politics and religious
schemes of their own concern. R4679:3
Matthew 22:6
Entreated them spitefully --
Imprisoning the King's messengers, the
apostles, and slew some of them. R2301:3
Slew them -- Jesus was slain; his followers were evilly treated and slain.
R5510:6
Matthew 22:7
He was wroth -- Indignant. R3833:6
His armies -- The Roman armies. R4679:4, 5510:6
Those murderers -- The refuse, chaff, of the Jewish nation. R2301:3
Burned up -- Utterly destroyed in the end of the Jewish harvest. R2301:3
Their city -- Government, nation. R2301:3, 4679:4
Jerusalem, in AD 70. R4679:4,
5510:6, 343:3
Matthew 22:9
Go ye -- The servant, the Body of Christ. R343:1
Into the highways -- Among the nations, the Gentiles, outside of Israel; the
third invitation. R2301:4, 4679:4, 5510:6, 343:3; PD59/70; NS317:6
As many as -- The parable does not teach that all heard the invitation to
the feast. History demonstrates that it was only a comparatively small
proportion of humanity. NS317:6
Ye shall find -- Not to intercept all the people in the highways, but merely
to urge upon those they met the great privilege of the open door to the wedding
feast. R5511:1 Bid to the marriage -- The third division, the call of the
Gentiles. R2301:4
"Going in to the
wedding" is not the translation of the living into immortality, but coming
into a position of expectation which may be lost on account of lacking certain
qualifications. R58:5*
Matthew 22:10
Gathered together -- The servants gather, but the king sifts out those unfit for
the Kingdom. R58:5* Both bad and good -- Suitable and unsuitable.
"Gathered the good into vessels, but cast the bad away." (Matt.
13:48) R2301:4
The call has attracted some
naturally very fallen, as well as some better favored by nature. R4679:5
Not all saintly: "Not many
wise, mighty, noble: but God hath chosen the foolish, weak, base, despised,
things which are not." (1 Cor. 1:26-28) R5511:1
The wedding -- To the ante-chamber of special preparation, into the light
of present truth where we feast already on the prospect before us, in the
brilliant light of the clear unfolding of truth now due. C199
Here is food to satisfy every
longing, more and better than we could ask or think, a spiritual feast of
future good things, joys and pleasures in the presence of the Lord. R343:1
Imagine the provisions for their
entertainment, the reception rooms, the brilliant illumination, corresponding
to the blessings received now by the living members of the consecrated Church.
The light has been turned on since 1874. R2303:3; NS319:1
Furnished with guests -- a definitely fixed number; every place filled. R5511:1
The number of guests was limited.
It was the same number originally intended when the offer was made to the Jews
alone, 144,000. NS318:2
This number of guests had been
found before the King came in to make the inspection. R2301:5
The filling up of the elect,
predetermined number which shall constitute the joint-heirs in the Kingdom by
becoming the bride, the Lamb's wife. R2301:4
To be in the light while the
wedding process is due is the privilege of the living generation, and because
of this they are called guests. R58:4*
There would be no room for any to
enter since 1878 were it not for casting out those not worthy. R2302:6
Matthew 22:11
And when -- In 1878 and since. C204; R2301:5, 41:1*
As the parable relates the history
of the living phase of the gospel church, this closing scene must refer to the
condition of those who are "alive and remain." (1 Thess. 4:15) R49:2*
We should expect, especially since
1878, various no-ransom theories--"denying the Lord that bought
them." (2 Pet. 2:1) R2302:5
The king -- Jehovah himself, through the exhibition of divine justice
in some manner. R5511:2
Or, Christ, for at his coming he
is invested with kingly authority by the heavenly Father (as indicated in the
parables of the Pounds and Talents). R5511:2
Here our Lord Jesus at his second
advent. NS318:3
We believe our Lord assumed the
office of King in April, 1878. R2301:5, 343:5
Came in -- The parallel in time to our Lord's typical assumption of
the office of King of the Jews. C204
Just before the feast. C204
Now present to gather out of his
Kingdom "all things that offend" (Matt. 13:41) and to gather unto
himself his jewels, his bride. (Mal. 3:17) R1937:1
The invisible, but present, King.
C202
Just prior to the marriage,
pointing to the exact time in which we are living, the harvest of the Gospel
age, just preceding the marriage of the Lamb. R954:5*
To see the guests -- This parable shows the character of the readiness required,
and also the individual inspection which rejects some and accepts others. C198
An inspection just prior to the
feast. R5511:2
The inspection of the guests is
the last thing prior to our change. R180:5*
A testing among those who have
heard and recognized the harvest message. C197
"Judgment must begin at the
house of God." (1 Pet. 4:17) R2301:6
Showing a trial, shaking,
inspection and casting out of some after the Bridegroom comes. R40:3*
At his second advent, Christ will
himself inspect all those who pose as his faithful servants. R5511:2
After the King comes and
inspection is due, we should not be surprised if there is a sifting out instead
of a gathering in. R58:6*, 41:5*
As none could enter without a
wedding garment, an acknowledgment of the merit of Christ's sacrifice, so none
could remain without maintaining their standing of confidence in Christ.
R4679:5
This thought of inspection at the
end of the Gospel age is also in the parables of the drag net, the wheat and
tares, the wise and foolish virgins and the pounds and talents. NS318:3
The Body of Christ is represented
as wise virgins, as servants waiting for their Lord's return from the wedding,
as guests to a wedding, and as a bride--distinct and separate illustrations
which must not be blended. C197
He saw -- God, through the exhibition of divine justice in some
manner; or Christ, now invested with kingly authority by the heavenly Father.
R5511:2
There -- We need not look for him amongst those who are in the outer
darkness and who have not seen the inner light of the feast. NS319:1
A man -- A class, rejecting the wedding garment. R5511:3, 4525:3;
C204
A small class. R343:6
A very limited class, all of whom
once appreciated the ransom and, under its favor, entered into the special
light of the harvest time. C204
A class which, because of
headiness and lax consecration, are led eventually to deny the ransom--the
necessity, value or merit of the atoning sacrifice of Calvary--and appear at
the feast in the filthy rags of self-righteousness. R2302:1,2, 5511:4; C201
Which had not -- Repudiated his contract to be dead with Christ, to drink of
his cup, to go to him without the camp, bearing his reproach. R4548:4,
4525:5,6; Q339:3
Repudiation of the sacrificial
work of Christ. R4548:4
Repudiation of the nuptial
contract, to suffer with him. Q734:3
Rejected Jesus as Savior,
Redeemer, Atoner for their sins. R5511:4
God takes note of anyone
professing loyalty, yet disregarding the merit of Christ's death. R5511:2
Such seem to lose sight of their
personal unworthiness, as well as of the Lord's unblemished perfection. C200
All who attend this wedding must
have on the wedding garment, must be covered with the merit of Christ's
righteousness. R5511:1
For anyone to appear at the
wedding without the robe would imply that he had taken it off; for no one was
admitted without the robe. R5511:2
Indicating that, though the robe
was given him, he preferred his own clothing and considered it better than that
provided. R954:4*
All Christians who cast away their
confidence in the sacrifice of Christ and accept Evolution theories and Higher
Criticism take off the wedding garment. R4679:5
Professed ministers of Christ, as
well as agnostics, declare that, while they accept Jesus as a teacher, they
totally reject the covering of his robe of merit. NS318:5
This rejection of Christ's
ransom-sacrifice first made its appearance amongst those in the light of
present truth in the summer of 1878. C202
Contrary to the rules of such a
feast. NS318:4
A shameful impropriety,
significant of pride and of disrespect for his entertainer. C198
A wedding garment -- The imputed righteousness of Christ, justification. It was
the Jewish custom to provide white linen robes for all the guests. C198;
R4525:3, 4998:4, 5197:6, 2301:6; Q490:2, 507:6; NS318:4
At a Jewish wedding, we cannot imagine
the offering of robes to passers-by who merely have knowledge that a wedding is
in prospect. Q734:1
Clean and white, representing the
absolute purity and spotlessness of our Lord's holiness; each is to "keep
his garments unspotted from the world." (Jas. 1:27) R2160:2
Covering his own garments. Thus
all at the wedding were on an equal footing as respects dignity because they
were the guests of the host. R5511:2, 2301:6, 343:3; NS121:4, 318:4
Covers all the blemishes of the
most imperfect as well as those of the least imperfect. R4679:5
The robe does not cover sins of
the new mind. If the new mind were disloyal to God, it would cease to be a new
mind. R4842:4
New creatures in Christ Jesus are
all on a common footing because of Christ's robe. There is no difference
respecting previous conditions, bond or free, male or female. (Gal. 3:28)
R2301:6
The robe of justification which
becomes ours at the time of consecration. Given, not to the old creature, but
to the new, to cover the blemishes of its imperfect body. R4842:1, 5855:3,
4525:5, 5902:3; Q507:6
Represents more than
justification--consecration, sanctification, to suffer with Christ, to drink of
his cup, to be baptized into his death. R4525:5
An acknowledgment of the merit of
Christ's sacrifice. R4679:5
To make one suitable, no matter
how mean, degraded, ignoble by nature. R5511:1
Given only to those who accepted
the invitation and entered in through the door. R4525:4
The acceptance and putting on of
the garment symbolized consecration and its acceptance. R4525:5
Represents a faith relationship
with God through Christ's merit. PD59/70
Signifies our entrance into the
family of God, as members of the Church. R5960:4
Also beautifully pictured as the
bridal robe. (Psa. 45:13,14) R5197:6
"Fine linen, clean and white"
with which the Bride is clothed. (Rev. 19:8) It is not limited to theology, but
must include character. R50:2*
Do not let anyone think that
theology is a garment; we must be clothed with righteousness. R50:4*, 41:5*
Each may embroider his own with good
works. C199
Matthew 22:12
Friend -- Comrade. C202
How camest thou in -- A gentle but forcible reminder that the wearing of the robe
was the very condition of admission to the favors enjoyed, and that he had been
provided one gratis. C202
Wedding garment -- Christ's merit, the covering he provides for his own.
Q732:2
Inferring that he had taken it
off. Q732:2
Symbolizing a repudiation of the
sacrificial work of Christ, or a repudiation of our nuptial contract, to suffer
with him. Q734:2
He was speechless -- For he did not come in without it. C203; R5511:4, 2302:1;
Q732:2
No one ever came to a knowledge of
Christ's presence and other deep things now due who did not have on the robe at
the time. C203, 202
He could make no defence, he was
guilty. NS318:5
Matthew 22:13
Said to the king -- Let none be in haste to judge his brethren; the Lord is
judge, and he will decide who is or is not possessed of the wedding garment.
R58:6*
Bind him -- By the presentation of the truth in contradistinction to
the error, the influence of the truth being the restraining influence
circumventing the error--a duty of all who see the truth. R2302:4
Restrain his influence by
thoroughly answering his arguments. R1453:5
Making an example of such before
the company of the consecrated. C203
By putting others on their guard,
thus restraining their influence on the Church. R954:6*
Restrain him from making further
progress toward the feast. C201
Hand and foot -- Take away all his influence. C203
It would not be optional; the Lord
would force such a one out of the light. Q199:4
Implies that such may desire to
resist and have a preference for the light, but that none will be permitted to
enjoy it except those appreciating the robe of Christ's righteousness and
wearing it. NS319:2
Take him away -- He cannot occupy any place in the Kingdom, whatever other
blessings he may or may not get at the hands of the great King to whose grace
he does despite. NS318:6
Since some would be cast out after
the full number was chosen, and since the elect number must be complete, there
must be a way of bringing in others to replace those cast out. R2676:5
For each one of those cast out of
the light and the privilege of the feast, there is an opening, an opportunity,
for another to take his place and crown. R2302:6
These stand condemned of
"counting the blood of the covenant wherewith they were sanctified"
and accepted as a common or ordinary thing. (Heb. 10:29) C201
Cast him -- Reject such a one from any fellowship which would mark him
or her as a brother or sister in Christ. R1453:5, 954:5*
As manifestly unfit to be a member
of the Bride of Christ. R5511:4; PD59/70
Into outer darkness -- From which he originally came in. R1698:4
Out of the light of present truth
entirely, to share in the anguish and vexation of the great time of trouble.
C201, 203; PD59/70; Q732:2
Expelled from the privileges
enjoyed and the light and blessings afforded to this favored class, into the
outer darkness of the world, and of nominal Christianity; in confusion, in
bewilderment. R4679:5, 5511:5, 5949:1, 2302:4; Q199:4, 732:2; NS319:1
Such must first have been in the
light of harvest truth, and consequently have a greater responsibility and
penalty than those who never enjoyed such favor. C203
Taking away the knowledge and joys
represented by the wedding-chamber light. R5511:5
Prefigures the fate of all who
reject the efficacy of the sacrifice of Christ. PD59/70
When their lamps went out, the
foolish virgins were in this darkness. R88:5
Even that which they have is taken
from them. (Matt. 25:28) R41:5*
The darkness of human reasoning,
undirected by God's Word and unsquared by his revealed plan of ransom and
restitution. C203
We are not to waste sympathy on
those who depart. When the Lord has put any out of the light, we cannot hope to
bring them back. R5949:1, 1860:6
Darkness: not the interior of a
blazing hell. R2302:4; Q199:4, 732:2
Not eternal torment or hell-fire;
outer darkness and inner fire would be opposite thoughts. R2302:4, 5511:4;
Q199:4
There shall be -- Shortly. R2302:4
Weeping -- They thought they were ready for the marriage and were
bitterly disappointed. R49:3*
By and by they will realize with
chagrin their loss of the Kingdom. PD59/70
Gnashing of teeth -- Great disappointment, sorrow, pain, trouble and anguish
throughout Christendom. R3771:4, 5511:5; CR253:3; PD59/70; Q732:2
Signifying chagrin,
disappointment, savage animosity; as in the case of Stephen, "They gnashed
on him with their teeth." (Acts 7:54) R4329:1; PD59/70; Q732:2; NS317:3
Representing the great time of
trouble. R4679:5, 2302:5; Q732:2; NS319:3
The expression "weeping and
gnashing of teeth" occurs altogether seven times in the New Testament.
NS317:2
See comments on Matt. 13:42.
Matthew 22:14
Many are called -- Not all have been called. R2302:5
With the heavenly calling, after
being justified. R4078:2; CR131:6
To the high calling of
joint-heirship with the Redeemer. CR131:6
The Jewish nation was called, or
invited, to the wedding and failed, except the few "Israelites
indeed." R5511:5, 5435:3, 2302:5
But not so many respond to the
call. NS654:5
But only those who have the ear to
hear. NS331:4
Merely many in proportion to the
few who will constitute the elect; not many as respects the whole number of our
race; but, on the contrary, few. HG746:1; NS373:6
The call has reached millions
during the last 18 centuries, but comparatively few have cared to accept the
invitation. R2302:5
They may rejoice with the few but,
refraining from a full consecration of themselves, they can not be of them.
NS294:3
But few -- Few prove worthy of the favor to which they have been
called. C214
Because few of the justified ones
make the necessary consecration. R4078:2
Because only the few will have the
characteristics demanded by the Lord's call and selection. NS294:3
Thus all of the called ones should
be deeply interested in ascertaining the conditions which determine their
acceptance with the Lord as his chosen. NS372:1
Unlike the Millennial feast, this
dinner is not for all people, but for the few selected from among the many
invited in the present age. R342:3
Because nothing connected with the
call is compulsory. R4138:6
Are chosen -- Begotten of the holy Spirit and adopted as spirit-begotten
sons of God. R4078:3
We have been invited, we have
accepted, our names have been enrolled and we have been given the white garment
that we may enter in. CR301:2
Of the few elect, there will still
be a class not properly appreciative which will be cast away. R5511:5
The "called" who fulfill
their consecration become the "chosen." R1151:5*
Of those who accept, the Lord
makes the choice. He rejects all who do not accept the invitation and all its
privileges as a grace, a favor. R2302:6
Elected is from the same Greek
word. R3586:3
This does not mean that all the
remainder will be eternally tortured. R5511:5
Matthew 22:15
The Pharisees -- Who secretly taught, in a general way, that the Jews, as
the people of God, ought never to pay taxes to other rulers. R3852:6
Worldly-wise and spirit-blind.
R5512:3
Who opposed Jesus because he did
not acknowledge them. They did not like him to criticize them for the hypocrisy
of their claims to be perfect, or for their lack of sympathy with the poor.
R4687:1; Q273:3
The triumphal entry awakened fear
in the minds of the Pharisees. R4687:1
Might entangle him -- Either for counselling sedition for declaring taxes illegal
or, if he declared tribute lawful, alienating the sympathy of the multitudes.
R4687:1, 5512:3, 3461:1; Q273:6
They strove to turn away the
sympathy of the people from the Great Teacher by catching him in his words. R4687:1,
5512:3; Q274:1
Matthew 22:16
With the Herodians -- Ishmaelites, not Jews at all. R2756:2
Who took sides with Herod and
stood firmly and publicly for the suzerainty of the Roman Empire. R3853:1
Thou art true -- They artfully endeavored to ensnare the Master by
complimenting him. R4687:2
All of the complimentary remarks
stood to his credit in the minds of the common people. Q274:1
Matthew 22:17
Tell us -- The most contrary theorists are ready to cooperate with
each other in opposition to the truth. R2756:2
Is it lawful -- According to the Law of Moses. R3853:2
Tribute -- The Jews held the idea that they, as God's Kingdom, must
not pay tithes to any earthly government. R4687:1
Matthew 22:18
Why tempt ye -- Why do you try to entrap me? R3853:2
Me -- It was utter folly for imperfect men to seek to entrap the
perfect one. R104:2
Ye hypocrites -- Why do you veil your base designs under guise of speaking
for the truth? R4687:2; Q274:1
Matthew 22:19
Tribute money -- Literally, the census coin in which the tax was to be paid.
R4687:2; Q274:1
A denarius, the usual wage for the
day laborer, corresponding in value to about seventeen of our cents. Q274:1;
R4687:2
Matthew 22:21
Unto Caesar -- Jesus and the apostles taught the Church to obey laws and
to respect those in authority because of their office, even if they are not
personally worthy of esteem. A266
In all matters that do not
conflict with our own personal liberties and conscience we are to recognize the
official position of those who are governing the world. R3778:2
But when his laws conflict with
the divine requirements, Christians are left no alternative. R5929:2
The Master's followers were
instructed not to be seditious, but thankful, holy, happy and subject to the
powers that be, recognizing them as ordained of God and not merely of men.
R5512:6
In Jesus' case, all earthly
authority was exercised by his personal inferiors, even though they were his
legal superiors; yet he was loyal and faithful to them. R4809:2, 1114:4
Showing the falsity of the charge
before Pilate that he prohibited the payment of tribute. (Luke 23:2) R1810:1
Which are Caesar's -- "Tribute to whom tribute is due." (Rom. 13:7)
A266
The affairs of the world may be
safely left with the world. R3853:3
If Rome ruled, Rome needed to be
supported; and the method of support was, properly enough, through taxation.
R5513:1
We must not render unto Caesar the
things of God. R5513:4
That are God's -- Every talent and power we possess ought, by right, to be
used in the service of our Creator and for his praise. R5513:1
A lesson to the Lord's people to
keep religious affairs separate and distinct from worldly politics. R2756:3
If we have changed our allegiance
from this world to heaven, we are aliens and not citizens of this country, and
should claim and use only such favors as are accorded to aliens. We should not
vote or hold public office. R424:3
Matthew 22:22
They marvelled -- Mark the wisdom of Jesus' replies when they sought to
entrap him in his words. R575:2
Matthew 22:23
Sadducees -- Agnostics, practically unbelievers, of the wealthier, more
respectable class. R4687:3, 4986:3, 3854:1, 5079:5; Q273:3, 594:3
Who opposed Jesus because, from
their standpoint of unbelief, he was a fraud and was gaining influence with the
people, which they feared would disturb the peace with the Roman Empire.
R4687:1; Q273:4
The triumphal entry produced fear
in the Sadducees. They worried that the common people should become so aroused
as to involve their nation in some strife with the empire. R4687:1
Resurrection -- Here without the Greek article, showing no emphasis,
indicating no peculiarity. R1512:1
And asked him -- One of their stock questions. R4687:3; Q594:3
Matthew 22:28
In the resurrection -- Not in heaven or purgatory or eternal torture. Neither
Jesus nor the Jews held any such teaching. R5079:5, 4687:3
Probably referring to the
anastasis of the future in contrast and distinction from any temporary
awakening of the present time. R3461:4
With the Greek article, showing
emphasis and indicating that the first, or special resurrection, is surely
meant. R1512:2, 734:5, 92:6
The Greek article occurs before
the word resurrection, but this would be no positive proof that a special
resurrection was meant unless two resurrections were referred to in contrast.
R3461:3
Matthew 22:29
Not knowing -- You do not know the Scripture teaching concerning such
questions. R4687:4, 5079:6; Q588:3, 594:4
The power of God -- Which will straighten out all such difficulties. R4687:4,
5079:6; Q588:3, 594:4
As we understand the Scriptures
more fully, and appreciate the power of God, we rejoice. CR50:2
Matthew 22:30
In the resurrection -- Greek, anastasis, raising up, restoring; being
lifted fully and completely out of death. R1510:4; F712, 713
A gradual process. R5079:6; Q594:4
The raising up proceeds from the
time of the awakening of the individual until he shall have attained to the
full perfection of manhood--that will constitute his resurrection. R3461:4
Some will be awakened who will not
be accounted worthy to attain a full lifting up to perfection, a resurrection.
R3461:5
The Lord does not say what will be
the intermediate conditions during the Millennium; leaving us to infer that
mankind will be awakened with the same sexual distinctions as at present.
R3461:5
Neither marry -- The propagation of the human race is intended to proceed
only until the earth shall be filled. SM37:3; Q852:T
Adam combined masculine and
feminine qualities. When Eve was formed for the purposes of propagation the
feminine qualities were incorporated in her personality. Members of both sexes
will again become as Adam was before Eve was formed. Q852:T; NS297:4
True, the glorified Church will
not marry, but there is no reference here to the Church class. R3461:3
For man will no longer be alone,
as he was at first, to need a companion. R3461:6
Are as the angels -- Sexless, restored to the condition represented in Adam
before Eve was separated from him. T100, 101
Sex conditions will gradually pass
away. During the first 1000 years after the fall, births were less frequent than
now; during the Millennium, sex functions will gradually diminish, reaching a
full stop toward the close of that age. R3461:6; NS297:4
We believe a similar communication
will be established between perfect men and the heavenly courts that was in
vogue before the first disobedience and the penalty came in. R3462:5
In their proper habitation, angels
do not possess powers of reproduction. As they materialized as human beings,
they exercised the powers of mankind, thus bringing children into the world of
the fleshly nature. Q744:3
As the angels do not die, neither
will the perfected human beings die. R3461:6
Matthew 22:31
Of the dead -- Jesus defended the doctrine of the resurrection. PD32/44;
CR374:2
It is the dead who need a
resurrection. The Lord did not say, "As touching the resurrection of the
living." R3854:5
Matthew 22:32
I am the God -- This surely meant that Abraham, Isaac and Jacob were to be
resurrected. PD32/44
Not the God of the dead -- He would not thus refer to beings whom he had forever
blotted out. E352
God would not declare himself to
be the God of those who are out of existence. NS282:1
But -- He is the God. R2198:1
Of the living -- All "live unto God" (Gal. 2:19) in the sense that
in Christ he has provided for the reawakening of all. PD32/44; E353
From his standpoint, they only
sleep. E353
Implying the right, authority and
power to give life; and, secondly, that the dead are so completely dead as to
need another Father to regenerate them. R810:2
Matthew 22:33
They were astonished -- The supposedly unanswerable question of the Sadducees fell
flat, and their ignorance was exposed. Q594:4
Matthew 22:36
In the law -- God has only one law for his intelligent creatures--angels,
men or new creatures. It is based on justice, and their is no higher law, and
there could be none. R5072:2
According to the spirit, you are
under the law, and you are obliged to live up to everything in the spirit that
the Jew was commanded to do in the flesh. Q449:3
Matthew 22:37
Thou shalt love -- This is God's law, and it will never be put to an end.
Q431:5
No one will ever be acceptable to
the Father except they come up to the standard of that law. Q438:6
The spirit of God's law is love.
R614:6
Every one who will ever get
eternal life on any plane will have to come to the mark of perfect love.
Q449:3; A136
Love for the Lord would prompt one
to be obedient to his just commands, and love for the neighbor would induce one
to do good unto all men as opportunities were presented. Q799:T
Failure to keep this law is the
direct cause of the time of trouble. A309
"Love is the fulfilling of
the law." (Rom. 13:10) A246, 136; Q799:T
The Lord -- Jehovah. E41
It is not in conflict with this
that we should also love our Lord Jesus, for the Apostle declares, "Every
one that loveth him that begat loveth him that is begotten of him." (1
John 5:1) R4052:2
With all thy heart -- Such love does not wait for commands, but appeals for
service. F124
Obedience to the Siniatic Law
enabled Christ to fulfill the Law Covenant and to become heir of the Abrahamic
Covenant at the same time that he redeemed Adam and his race. F356, 357
Love to God would lead us to all
those things which are inculcated in his Word. R5359:6
To love God thus is to subject
every other thing and interest to his pleasure. R543:2
The sum of our hearts, the center
of our affections. CR6:1
Giving all our heart to God does
not mean that we shall not love our families and our brethren. CR6:1
After confessing that the divine
Law is holy, just and good, we find that we are unable to obey it to the full.
R4820:6
If your heart is not all of that,
you will not be of the Little Flock or Great Company. All must come up to this
standard in their hearts, or they will all die the second death. Q449:3
With all thy soul -- Being. R205:2, 276:3
None but a perfect man could fully
live up to this requirement. SM69:2
Any division of the heart or mind
or soul violates this commandment. R5286:3
The Lord thus epitomized the Ten
Commandments, which are, in themselves, a brief epitome of the whole Law. A45
Ultimately, obedience to this law
will be required of all who shall have life on any plane. A136
Matthew 22:38
The first and great -- The chief, primary. R4687:4; E41
Dividing the Ten Commandments into
two parts, this summarizes the first part, relating to duty and obligations
toward God. R5699:3, 4687:4
Matthew 22:39
The second -- Dividing the Ten Commandments into two parts, this
summarizes the duty and obligation to fellowmen, toward the neighbor. R5699:3,
5359:6, 4687:4
Like unto it -- Grows out of it. R1117:5*
In sympathy with it, in harmony
with the same principle. Q704:1
Love thy neighbor -- If we appreciate the concept of a true neighbor which our
Lord gave, then let us observe the Golden Rule. R5699:6
To our brethren we are not merely
to observe the Golden Rule, but be ready to do toward these as Jesus did, to
lay down life for them. R5700:4
The Golden Rule would measure the demands of justice; but the law of God demands not only justice, but also love -- love supreme to God and love to our fellow-men. R5643:6
Fulfill all your obligations
toward him. R5359:6
We are to express this love by
being thoughtful and considerate of our neighbor's welfare and interests, and
helpful as far as in our power, other obligations being considered. R5700:1 To
love a neighbor would thus insure that you would neither kill him, nor steal
from him, nor covet his goods. R543:2
Jesus declared that in the
Samaritan of the parable (Luke 10:29-35), they had an example of one who was a
real neighbor. R5699:6
As thyself -- It does not say, Better than thyself. Christ's course of
self-sacrifice in our behalf was beyond this requirement. R3804:6, 3805:1
Signifies justice. Those who
really love that principle are not easily stumbled. Q529:T
We have agreed to do more, to lay
down our lives for the brethren. R5072:3; Q449:4
This is more important than the
giving of tithes. R5094:4
Relating to mankind, you must
treat him as you would want him to treat you. Q449:4
Be kind, generous, unselfish,
fair-dealing. R5947:3
It would not be reasonable to
demand that one do more for another than for himself. To do so may be invited,
but never commanded. This is the difference between justice and love. R5072:2
Our love for many of our neighbors
must necessarily be along the lines of their characters, hopes and plans.
R3804:6
Matthew 22:40
Two commandments -- The first tablet of the Law contained the laws relating to
man's obligations to his Creator; the other set forth the duties of man toward
his fellow-men. Q757:T, 133:11, 704:1
Each to love other as much as
self, and to love God even more. R1462:5
Surely none but a perfect man
could fully live up to these requirements. SM69:3
Christians are not under the law
of the Ten Commandments, but every Christian, and angels too, are under these
two commandments. Q134:3
But the Church has been given a
third commandment. Jesus said: "A new commandment I give unto you that ye
love one another as I have loved you." (John 13:34) Q134:4
All the law -- God has only one law for his intelligent creatures, based
on justice. R5072:2
The very essence of truth. E41;
Q757:T
The Law given at Sinai has served
as the basis in the formulating of all laws since; and this succinct statement
is still the standard of all law amongst the wisest and best peoples of earth.
SM380:T
That law is the Father's law. It
existed before Jesus came. It still exists. It will always be in existence.
Jesus did not put it to an end and never will put it to an end. Q431:5
The only contingency for man's
continued dominion of earth is that man's rulership must be always exercised in
harmony with the Supreme ruler of the Universe and this one law, love. A246
It is because the depraved, carnal
mind is opposed to this law of God and not subject to it that, as a natural
consequence, the trouble will come, as reaping after sowing. A309
"Love is the fulfilling of
the law" (Rom. 13:10). Love was the only law given in Eden, love supreme
to God, and then love to each other, measured only by the love of self. R1462:5
And the prophets -- The faithful servants and teachers of the Law. Q757:T
Matthew 22:42
Son of David -- In the days of his flesh he was the Son of David, but in
his glorification he is David's Lord. Q365:5; R809:6
He was not the Son of David before
he left the higher nature and became a man--a branch out of the roots of Jesse.
(Isa. 11:11) R809:6
He became David's offspring in
Bethlehem; he became David's Lord by virtue of his death. R810:1
The first Adam was the original
"root"; hence our Lord Jesus in the flesh, son of Mary, son of David,
son of Abraham, was in the same sense a shoot or branch out of Adam. E139
The name David signifies
"beloved," and Jesus himself was proclaimed as the real
David--"This is my beloved Son in whom I am well pleased." (Matt.
3:17) R2551:4
Relates, not to his pre-human
existence, but to his relationship to the human family, his genealogy being
traceable to David both through Mary and through Joseph. (Luke 3:31; Matt.
1:6,16) E129
Matthew 22:43
David in spirit -- By inspiration, prophetically. E129, 136; Q365:4; R4687:5,
808:3
Lord -- David will receive from him, not only resurrection, but
also the blessings of participation in the Messianic Kingdom. Q365:5
"I am the root of David"
(Rev. 22:16); that is, the father, or progenitor of David. R809:5; E136
Not by reason of anything before
he was made flesh, but by reason of the great work which he accomplished as the
Mediator of the Atonement. E134
The Logos might properly have been
styled a Lord, a high one in authority; but there was a particular and
different sense in which our Lord Jesus became a Lord or Master by virtue of
his death and resurrection. E134, 135
Jesus becomes the root, Lord,
life-giver, by virtue of his death and resurrection; hence, in this sense, he
was not David's root or Lord before his death. R809:6; E135
By virtue of his having bought the
race he has, in the eyes of justice, become its owner, its master, Lord of all.
E135
"To this end Christ both died
and revived, that he might be Lord, both of the dead and living." (Rom.
14:9) E134; R810:1
Matthew 22:44
The Lord -- Jehovah. E129; R808:6, 296:5
Said unto my Lord -- Greek, adon, master, ruler, the resurrected Christ. E49,
129; R296:5
"The affirmation of Jehovah
to my Lord." (Psa. 110:1, Young's Translation) R296:5
The reference is not to the
sacrificing one, but to the victor Jesus. E136
On my right hand -- In the position of favor and power. A92; R808:1, 2935:2,
256:1
He hath given him authority above
every other, next to the Father. R256:1
Till -- He will be on the right hand when coming, and remain on the
right hand during the Millennial age. R256:1
Jehovah would not and could not
justly give him the dominion and subdue it under him until it had been released
from the curse, bought with a price. R810:5
Matthew 22:45
Then call him Lord -- Greek, adon, master. E129
Our Lord Jesus could be both the
Root and Offspring of David, both David's Son and David's Father, David's Lord.
E144, 145
How is he his son? -- The father of Messiah in the flesh will become the son of
the Messiah of glory. R4687:5; Q365:5
Matthew 23
Matthew 23:2
The scribes -- Writers. E351
Sit in Moses' seat -- The Pharisees were the principal sect of the Jews, and our
Lord declares them the successors and representatives of the Mosaic Law. E351
Our Lord recognized the scribes
and Pharisees as the legitimate instructors of the people, even though he often
upbraided them as hypocrites who deceived the people. C152
Until the casting off of the
Jewish house in AD 33; antitypically, the synods, conferences, etc., did
likewise until 1878 when Babylon was cast off. C152
God had committed to them special
responsibilities, blessings, privileges and knowledge. R5749:3 As
representatives of God and the Law. R2969:2
As the husbandmen, or caretakers,
of the Lord's vineyard, Israel. R5504:6, 4678:3
Thus they were acquainted with the
Law and the Prophets. R342:5
Representing "orthodoxy"
so-called. R559:3
Moses still had his seat as
Mediator of the Law Covenant, and he was represented by those who came
afterwards. Q498:3
To settle disputes, etc., as The
Christ will do during the Millennial age. B182
Ecclesiastical powers of today are
professedly sitting in the seat of Christ. R5750:1
Matthew 23:3
Observe and do -- Yet Christ came "preaching the Gospel." Hence it
is not surprising if the Gospel age and the age of restitution also lap a
little. HG55:5
The Jews properly follow the
guidance of their leaders in setting the date of the Passover, instead of each
trying to fix the date according to his personal knowledge. R4127:6 Say, and do
not -- They were unjust in their
dealings with the people. R5749:3
So filled with a misconception of
their proper attitude toward God that they merely banded themselves together to
enjoy the divine promises and gave up the remainder of their nation as
publicans and sinners. R3332:6
If any man does not submit his own
heart to the leading and teaching of the Lord, he has no authority from him to
teach others to do so. R1922:1
Matthew 23:4
For they bind -- The Roman Catholic clergy use such cords as the
confessional, holy candles, holy water, holy burial grounds. R1137:3
Heavy burdens -- Exaggerating the Law, making it burdensome. Q725:7
The scribes and Pharisees had
added to the Law a mass of forms and ceremonies so complex and bewildering that
those who attempted a strict observance of them found them extremely
burdensome--a yoke of bondage. R1540:2
Matthew 23:5
Do for to be seen -- As far as outward conditions of morality were concerned,
they were shining examples of righteousness. Q756:4
Broad their phylacteries -- Put on a brassy front. R2716:3
Matthew 23:7
Rabbi, Rabbi -- Gradually coming to regard their position as an office
rather than a service, and seeking each other's companionship in councils as
clergymen. R1135:1
Roman Catholics are expected to
address their clergy, "Your Reverence," and treat them as superiors
in every respect, as holy men, whom to offend might jeopardize eternity.
R1136:6
When Protestant denominations
began, they were so full of the spirit of Christ they claimed no high-sounding
titles, but were merely John Knox, Martin Luther, etc. R321:6, 65:2
A prominent characteristic of the
Beast, copied by the Image, is the honoring of the special class, the clergy,
with special titles and honors. R321:6, 65:2
Matthew 23:8
Be not ye -- Those in position as elders in the Church. R1895:1
We have no evidence that the early
Church ever regarded the apostles as lords in the Church, or that the apostles
ever assumed such authority and dignity. R1523:5; F230
Called Rabbi -- Doctor, Reverend, etc. These hinder some even of God's true
servants from faithfulness. D61; F203; R1487:4
A great man or master. R1895:1
In the voluntary association of
the consecrated, there is no imperial authority, and no lording over God's
heritage should be permitted. R1574:2
It was flattery of the leaders of
the Reformation that stayed the progress of that good work and caused many of
them of understanding to fall. (Dan. 11:34,35) R1895:2
One is your master -- Teacher, Schoolmaster, Director, Supervisor, Caretaker,
Instructor. R4380:5
One is your truly reverend Lord and
Instructor, even Christ. R1487:4
We should not follow man, nor
man-made creeds or systems. Individual study of the Bible seems indispensable,
but we must not ignore the aids to Bible study which God has providentially
furnished. Q844:2,3
All ye are brethren -- Without official titles or peculiar garb; not lords of
God's heritage. F211; R5765:3; OV126:1, 160:5
Comrades, fellows, associates; not
clergy and laity. CR316:2; OV126:1; R5765:3
Members in particular of the Body
of Christ. SM15:T
The apostles were more important
brethren than we are; still we are brethren. R5670:4
Of like passions and all subject
to infirmities. R1895:2
Each royal priest is the peer of
each other in authority and dignity of priesthood, though in talent and
intelligence, and therefore in fitness, they are not all equals R1137:4
A clerical class is entirely
ignored as respects any superiority. NS63:5, 615:3
The one who serves belongs to no
higher class than his brethren who chose him to thus minister or serve. R1137:3
In proportion as the Lord's spirit
of love pervades our hearts, it overrides and obliterates all division of
country, race, sex, and language. R4105:2
Awake to the principles of the
Reformation, to a recognition of the right of individual judgment upon
religious questions. R1136:4
All ye are ministers, servants of
Christ; all ye are preachers, declarers of the good tidings; all ye are
priests, not of human ordination, but by divine acceptance as members of the
body of our Great High Priest. R1101:1
All the brethren were to exhort
one another, all were to seek ability to prophesy or teach publicly, and all
were surely to be living epistles of God. R984:4
One body, one spirit, one hope,
one Lord, one faith, one baptism, one God and Father of all. (Eph. 4:1-6)
R1278:1-6
Matthew 23:9
Call no man your father -- Papacy violates this command directly. D160
Spoken to the congregation of his
people. R1895:2
We have already done so, to some
extent, in refusing to own as our masters the various heads of the great
nominal church. R1487:5
The foundation of the great
Apostasy, Papacy, was laid in the separation of a class, called the clergy,
from the believers in general, the laity. R1134:6 The object of Rome in
establishing a clerical class, as separate from what she terms the laity, was to
gain and hold full control of the people. R1136:5, 359:6*
Those who applied this to protest
the establishment of Papacy were commended, in the Pergamos period of the
Church, under the symbol of "Antipas, my faithful martyr" (Rev.
2:13). In the Greek, anti means against and Papas signifies father. R5993:2,
491:3*
One is your Father -- A very emphatic statement of our dear and close
relationship to God. R297:2
It is far from honoring the
Master, as many appear to think they do, when they contradict his direct
teaching, affirming that the Father and Son are one and the same being, equal
in all respects. R369:6
Matthew 23:10
Called masters -- Neither give nor receive titles of any kind. R1895:1
No marks or badges of distinction
or flattering homage of any kind may be tolerated in the body of Christ.
R1895:2
Papacy exalts a man-ordained
priestly class to rulership in the church, in opposition to this teaching. D160
One is your Master -- No matter what may be the relative importance of some, only
the one Lord and Head is to be recognized. F229
Matthew 23:11
He that is greatest -- The character and faithfulness of the servant should mark
the degree of honor and esteem that should be rendered to any in the ecclesia
of the new creation. F253
Rank and honor in the Kingdom will
be proportionate to humility and service here. R309:4*
Be your servant -- Greek, diakonos, deacon, minister. F253
Even the apostles and prophets who
were elders in the Church were all deacons, or servants. F252
Unpretentious, like Jesus and the apostles,
they were intent on serving God and therefore became the servants of the
Church. R321:6
The extent to which we enter into
our future mission is measurable by our present efforts to prosecute the work
to the extent of our present ability. R875:5*
Matthew 23:12
Shall exalt himself -- Pride is selfishness gone to seed. R1486:3
To aspire to advancement for
self-glory or self-gratification, to desire personal preferment above others,
is contrary to the spirit of God's plan, which is love. R875:4*
It was to ambition that Satan
tempted Eve, saying, "God doth know that in the day that ye eat thereof,
your eyes shall be opened and ye shall be as gods." (Gen. 3:5) R875:1*
In the days of Constantine, the
church sought influence with the civil power, and that successfully, though to
her injury and apostasy. R1093:4
Shall be abased -- As illustrated by Satan. A189; R1686:3, 875:1*
Inflated values must at some time
come down to a solid basis. R1486:6
What degradation can await such
self-exaltation, as is shown in the utterances of Papacy. B313
He assures us that he who exalts
himself shall be brought low in due time. Our attention is called to the great
Adversary. R2585:5
Not only a warning to the
individual seeking preferment in the church, but also an instruction to the
Church to accept as its servants only such as he here describes. R875:4*
The warnings go forth, and
convictions of duty and privilege fasten upon many minds; but, alas! all is of
no avail; they go unheeded. D60; HG715:3
Here, as in other instances, the
Lord shows us that his ways are not man's ways, but higher, as the heavens are
higher than the earth. R2585:5
Humble himself -- As Christ did to become man's Redeemer. E425 Humility is
the essential of all who would be of the Lord's family. R5704:4
By facing popular opposition and
enduring popular reproach. R1487:2
Humility is the underlying
principle of the divine government. R3537:2
Jesus was a perfect illustration:
humbling himself, first, to become a man; and then, when a man, becoming
obedient unto death, even the death of a cross. R875:1*
We have no intimation that either
Jesus or any of the angels that kept their first estate ever aspired to
anything beyond the sphere to which divine wisdom had appointed them. R875:1*
The man who underrates his worth
comes much nearer to the truth than the man who overrates. R1487:1
Especially important for a person
who has naturally little of reverence for God and holy things and who is
naturally coarser and more self-centered and self-satisfied. R3987:4
Shall be exalted -- He that humbleth himself shall be exalted, in due time, as
illustrated by Jesus, our dear Redeemer. R2585:5, 1686:3, 875:1*
But not necessarily to the highest
position. A189
The Church should follow this
general rule in selecting elders. F296
It would be the very height of
presumption on the part of any human being to aspire to the divine nature if he
were not invited to that position by God himself. R875:2*
The exaltation of any individual
or class is always for the purpose of blessing others who are not exalted.
R1487:4, 422:4
"Humble yourself therefore
under the mighty hand of God, that he may exalt you in due time." (1 Pet.
5:6) R3079:2
The work of redemption was given
to Jesus as a mark of special confidence and because of the honors which,
according to divine law, must attach to so great obedience, humility and
self-sacrifice. E424
Matthew 23:13
Woe unto you -- True love was the cause of the anger--love for truth, love
for God and love for the people who were being deceived by the error. R439:2
Jesus was full of the love of God,
but he spoke most emphatically against evil-doers. How differently the Lord's
rebukes affected his loving disciples and the proud Pharisees. R664:1*, 416:1*
It is as much the duty of the Body
of Christ now to point out present hindrances to growth--the teachings,
theories and influences of the nominal church--as it was for Jesus to do so.
R559:6
And Pharisees -- Jesus called out no one of them by name, but merely
denounced them as a class. R5679:4
The word means "God's holy
people." R3552:2
Hypocrites! -- It is much the same today: an outward veneer; a drawing
near with the lips while the heart is far from him; busy with fashion, dress,
pleasure and money-making idolatries, if not with grosser sins. R3552:2, 2872:5
Ye neither go in -- The elder son would not go in (Luke 15:28) to greet the
returned prodigal. "The publicans and sinners shall go into the kingdom
before you." (Matt. 21:31) R1460:2
The news was so new to them and so
good that the Pharisees and religious leaders could not believe it to be true.
R241:3
By their course of action they
say, Bring us no new unfoldings of truth, however beautiful. R1136:3
Let us spend less time and effort
on sectarian-blinded ministers, and more upon the weary and heavy-laden common
people, among whom are still some Israelites indeed. R1035:5, 1001:6
Neither suffer ye them -- Objecting to his telling the poor prodigals anything about
the love of God and his willingness to forgive them and to welcome them back
home again. R1460:2
Seeking by every means in their
power to obstruct and counteract the Lord's teaching. R1735:6
Seeking to prevent the Lord's
sheep from recognizing the Shepherd. R2441:1
Ministers of all denominations are
much less amenable to the truth than their consecrated sheep; not only so, but
they are the greatest enemies of the truth. R2640:2
By false teachings and
misrepresentations, putting darkness for light and light for darkness. R2693:4
Matthew 23:14
Woe unto you -- This verse added by unknown parties somewhere between the
fifth and tenth centuries. R1536:6
Devour widows' houses -- By taking advantage of circumstances to buy them cheaply at
forced sale. R3316:2
By some technicality of the Law;
and because they had no natural protection. R5338:6, 5470:5, 5389:3, 5094:5,
4795:2, 3552:2
The sin of selfishness, avarice,
indicates a lack of the Spirit of the Lord. R4795:2
So today, some scheme to eat the
substance of their neighbor, being cannibals in spirit. R5094:5
Make long prayer -- Merely an outward, perfunctory observance. R5470:5
Matthew 23:15
Pharisees -- The "holiness" people of that time and nation.
F641
Hypocrites -- Their hypocrisy
consisted in pretending to do for God's glory what was really for their own
honor among men. R559:3 Few will deny that donations, labors and sacrifices are
more for their sect than for God's Church. R559:5
Ye compass sea and land -- With your missionary activity. F641
They had sent missionaries
throughout all the civilized world, and had missions in all the principal
cities of the earth. R559:3
Judaism was not without success,
for the whole civilized world was beginning to respect it; and to its holy
feasts came devout men yearly out of every nation. (Acts 2:9) R964:3
The fault lay not in the zeal, but
in the false ideas by which the zeal was inspired, which evidently was, in
great measure, sectarian pride rather than love. R1071:3
Make one proselyte -- One convert to your false and, therefore, injurious,
doctrines. F641
A convert to Judaism. NS169:6
There is a great zeal shown for
the traditions of men, for the propaganda of men's theories, for the
advancement of denominational interests. R5631:1
We are in close sympathy with the
missionary spirit, but not with the missionary effort as at present operated by
the nominal church. R559:5
Twofold more -- Would they not be two-fold more fit for destruction than
they were in their original heathen superstition? C178
The Jewish proselyte is far worse
than before they touched him. R5631:1
In many instances those brought to
a measure of repentance and then fall away are in a worse condition, more
difficult to be reached by the Truth, than if they had not had their conversion
experience. Jesus referred to the first-advent counterpart of these in Matt.
23:15. NS169:6
The few reached will have the more
to unlearn when the times of restitution begin. F641
Less likely to receive Christ as
their Redeemer than if left in heathen darkness. R1071:6
The poor heathen will be better
off to hear nothing in this age and wait for the age to come to spread true knowledge
of God, than to be confused and prejudiced against God by the usual
misrepresentation of his character and plans. R559:6
The evil consisted in the false
ideas which they spread among the Gentiles, teaching that circumcision and the
keeping of Moses' Law justified to life, thus missing the main point of the
Law, to point to Christ. R1071:3
Their teaching was not of a nature
to greatly improve the morals: the Pharisees believing in the immortal soul and
eternal suffering, and the Sadducees not believing in the resurrection. R432:6*
The majority of heathen who bare
the name of Christ have evidently neither part nor lot in the matter. R1851:2
So now, it is far better to let
the world alone than to get them into sects which will only blind them to the
truth and misrepresent to them God's character and plan. R983:1
The child of hell -- Greek, gehenna, destruction, the second death. F641;
R2603:3, 2601:1
Than yourselves -- The effect of the preaching of the bungling arguments of
sectarianism in India has been to abolish all religious faith and to make the
people infidels. C178, 177
Matthew 23:16
Ye blind guides -- This was not retaliation against something they had said to
him. R5679:1
Matthew 23:18
Swear by the altar -- Type of the ransom sacrifice. T22
Matthew 23:19
The altar that sanctifieth
-- Therefore the Ancient Worthies
could not be presented before God as a sin offering, nor as a sacrifice at all,
before the altar (Christ) had been set up. R1872:4
Matthew 23:23
Hypocrites! -- The Lord passed by the criminality of murderers and thieves
as insignificant compared with the hypocrisy of this class. CR473:6
Ye pay tithe -- The Law which says "Love thy neighbor as thyself"
(Matt. 22:39) is more important than the giving of tithes. R5094:4
They were great sticklers for the
various features of the letter of the law. Q756:4
Of mint and anise -- The very smallest of seeds, for an outward show. R2485:5,
5389:3
Have omitted -- To ignore the claims of human brotherhood is meanly selfish
and inhuman. R1940:4
Matthew 23:24
Strain at a gnat -- As, carefulness to avoid things strangled. R5389:5
The observance of the mere letter
of the Law. Q757:T; R5338:6
Swallow a camel -- Of hypocrisy and injustice. Q757:T
Being careful about the little
things, but disregarding God's Law on the weightier matters. R5389:5, 5338:6
A strong hyperbole, a figure of
speech, showing their inconsistency. R5389:5
Some are ready to find fault with
everything that an elder may do, however faithful he may be. R4930:1
Matthew 23:25
Clean the outside -- The cleansing of our minds is far more important than the
cleansing of our flesh. We might succeed measurably in cleansing the flesh
while the mind might still be impure. R3986:1
Matthew 23:27
Whited sepulchres -- Outwardly clean, but inwardly full of death, corruption,
uncleanness, unholiness. R5389:5, 2716:4
Today many are outwardly
Christians, but inwardly skeptics; covetous, extortionate, unjust. R5389:6
Matthew 23:28
Appear righteous -- Deceiving their own selves probably as much or more than
they deceive others. R2716:3
Matthew 23:30
We would not -- Nevertheless our Lord and the apostles were treated worse
by them than were the prophets by their fathers. OV59:3
Matthew 23:31
Ye are the children -- Thus do the Protestants who conciliate, imitate and
cooperate with Papacy condemn themselves. D26
If Pilate, Herod and the Roman
soldiers had some responsibility for Christ's death, the multitude who cried
"Crucify him" had more, the better-enlightened Pharisees and priests
yet more, and Judas the most. R4909:2, 1962:5
Matthew 23:32
The measure of your fathers
-- You are actuated by the same
animosity today toward those of the same faith and spirit with the prophets.
NS135:4
Matthew 23:33
Ye serpents -- This was not retaliation against something they had said to
him. R5679:1
Generation of vipers -- Greek, gennema, race. D603
Jesus did not condemn the
Pharisees to the second death. HG617:1
How can ye escape -- Unless you change your course. R2603:3
Not the poor, degraded outcasts of
society, but the most strict religionists, the most popular and refined
theologians of their day--having a form of godliness, but denying the power
thereof. R521:6
He perceived in them so much
dishonesty and hardness of heart that he prophesied that they would have a hard
time to reform character, even under the favorable conditions of the
Millennium. HG617:2
Not that they were already doomed
to it, but rather that, from their present attitude and course, they were in
great danger of it. R1557:6
When a course is adopted and
persistently followed, when conscience is stifled, when reason and Scripture
are perverted to selfish ends until the heart is deceived and judgment
overcome--who can predict the repentance of such a one? R3674:1
Those who cultivate a spirit of
opposition to righteousness are trifling with a dangerous propensity to evil
which will render it next to impossible for them to turn back to righteousness
and truth. R1424:5
Each violation of conscience
weakens character. Character weakened, degraded, can be reconstructed only with
proportionately great difficulty. HG616:6
Every step in the direction of
willful blindness and opposition to the truth makes return more difficult, and
the wrongdoer more and more of the character God abhors. R2603:3
Damnation of hell -- Judgment of Gehenna, destruction, second death. R2601:2,
2603:3, 521:6
Not condemnation to torment.
CR434:6
They were wickedly resisting God's
grace and such a course, if pursued, must eventually end in condemnation to the
second death, Gehenna. R2603:3
Matthew 23:35
Upon you may come -- The penalty for. R4015:6
Of that age, that generation, God
would require expiation. R5462:5
Let us not confuse these national
and generational judgments with individual judgments. R1702:1
In no way involves future
retribution of the people of that generation. Then they will not be judged
nationally, nor as a generation, but be held individually responsible for their
own conduct. R1702:1
Does not this put them in the
attitude of the scapegoat, receiving the sins at the hands of the priests?
R151:1*
The righteous blood -- To square accounts for the wrong deeds done by mankind not
due to Adamic weakness. R5874:3, 4428:5; Q299:T
The "wrath to the
uttermost" which came upon Jerusalem squared up the account so far as the
past was concerned. R5874:3, 5390:4, 5256:2, 4651:6
A new beginning was made there,
just as a new dispensation began. R4651:6
Similarly the remaining accounts
of the world will be squared during the great time of trouble. R5874:4, 4428:5;
Q299:T
The Lord keeps a very strict account
of the world's affairs, and every injustice cries out for vengeance,
retribution, penalty. R4428:5
Israel being a typical people, we
expect similar things upon the closing generation of this Gospel age. R1702:4
All the blood of God's holy ones,
from the beginning of the Gospel age, will be required of the present
generation in the "great time of trouble such as never was." (Dan.
12:1) R5462:5, 5256:2, 4015:6
As a punishment equivalent to all
past ones combined was exacted of the closing generation of typical Israel, so
it will be with the closing generation of this Gospel age. R1702:4
When Babylon's fall is complete,
after God's people have come out of her, then in her overthrow will be found
"the blood of the prophets and of saints and of all that were slain upon
the earth." (Rev. 18:24) R1702:5
These partially willful sins of
the world are not fully covered by the sin-offerings. R5462:5
Righteous Abel -- Who typified Isaac, Jacob, spiritual Israel and the wheat
class. R2778:2-5
Not that Cain will be excused from
further responsibility after his children suffered, for it would be as unjust
to let the real culprit go unpunished as it would be to punish him and his
children for the same sin. R1701:3
Matthew 23:36
Verily I say -- Not Jehovah, but Jesus, Adonai, for the Father "hath
committed all judgment unto the Son." (John 5:22,27) E48
Because the judgment is in my
hands. E48
All these things -- The trouble at the end of the Jewish dispensation was a
type, a parallel, of the great trouble coming at the end of this dispensation.
R5469:5; D49
For sins other than those of
heredity, willful sins, there will be satisfaction rendered in the great time
of trouble. R5240:2
Come -- Greek, heko, signifying "to have come, be here",
not future tense, but present. R591:4*
Upon this generation -- Greek, genea, people living contemporaneously. D603
The one in which our Lord lived.
R1701:6
Fulfilled about 37 years later
when civil strife and hostile invaders accomplished the fearful recompense. D48
The generation addressed by our
Lord had much advantage every way over its predecessors, and failed to profit
thereby. OV59:3
As it had more advantages than all
previous generations combined, so its punishment is equivalent to the
punishment visited upon past transgressions all combined. R1702:1
The present generation has much
advantage every way. All the accumulated wisdom and experience of the past are
added to its own, but the great moral lessons have been very generally
disregarded. D50
Because the chief light of each
age comes at its close, and sinners against such light are worthy of more
severe judgment. R5462:6, 4016:1
As a legitimate effect from
preceding causes. D47, 50, 51
The Great Company will be allowed
to suffer for the partly willful sins of the world. R5462:5
Matthew 23:37
Jerusalem, Jerusalem -- The ancient city of Jerusalem suffered 32 wars in all, was
stormed and taken seven times, and was twice totally despoiled. R1297:1*
How often -- For three and a half years he had been declaring that the
Kingdom of God was at hand; and six months in advance, John the Baptist had
similarly preached. NS780:1
Even as -- Greek, hon tropon, in like manner. R341:1*
Under her wings -- For safety. R4669:6
And ye would not -- Having stumbled through unbelief. R2518:6
Unworthy! Unappreciative! NS779:6
It is not for us to mourn that
they were not ready, but rather it is for us to realize that the plan of God
was not thwarted or hindered by their unreadiness. R3538:6
Matthew 23:38
Your house -- The Jewish nation. B70
The house of servants. R5470:3
Up to this time the Lord had
blessed and more or less used the priests, Levites, Doctors of the Law and the
Pharisees. R3883:6
The nominal church: rejected in
1878 as, in the shadow, in 33 AD. R224:6
It must be an individual matter.
Neither sects nor parties will be acknowledged in this testing time, only the
"Israelites indeed, in whom is no guile." (John 1:47) NS633:1
Unto you desolate -- The favor which has been exclusively yours is now
withdrawn. B70; A72, 223; R5470:3, 2746:5
"Even today do I declare that
I will render double unto thee." (Zech. 9:12) B225; NS695:5
Ending the 1845 years of Israel's
national life and favor. B213, 226; OV74:19; NS695:5
The Jewish age ended with the
death of Christ, when he gave them up, weeping over them. R532:4, 271:6; A223;
OV28:T
There, at Jesus' death, a new age
began--the Christian age or Gospel dispensation. A72; HG540:1
The Kingdom privileges first
offered to natural Israel were transferred to spiritual Israel. R4593:6
Instead of showering the blessing
of restitution upon natural Israel at that time. R4463:6; CR58:4
The nation was adjudged unworthy
of any further trial. OV38:1
Abandoned by the Lord during this
Gospel age. R2746:2
The utter destruction of that
nation as a people, as a result of their rejecting and crucifying the King.
R1373:3
Being found wanting, it was cast
aside. R3539:2
As soon as spiritual Israel was
begun, the earthly was set aside; yet the first opportunity for membership in
spiritual Israel was given to that people. R4781:5, 3105:6, 2620:5; A223;
NS606:5
Before that time, they were God's
people, as distinguished from all other peoples or nations, the household of
faith; yet among them were only a few Israelites indeed. R821:2*; NS268:1
Now, too, the command, "Come
out of her" (Rev. 18:4) is not given until after the announcement,
"Babylon is fallen." (Rev. 18:2) R457:4*
Not set aside forever, but merely
until spiritual Israel had been selected. R4781:5; CR58:4
It was three and a half years
after the death of Jesus before the individual favor to the Jews terminated.
Q195:2; B70; R5454:2, 2931:2, 271:6, 224:3
Rejected at the time of the
crucifixion, but all the period from then down to their utter destruction in AD
70 was the period of testing to that people. R3105:6
A prediction given five days
before Jesus' death. OV74:19; R805:4, 465:5, 224:3
Symbolized when the veil of the
Temple was rent in twain from top to bottom. R5163:3
These words, our Lord's first act
on assuming office as King of the Jews, AD 33, typified the rejection of
nominal spiritual Israel at the corresponding point of time, AD 1878. B246;
C151; R5772:5
All the laws and regulations given
to that people governing their exercise of God's vengeance were here abrogated
and made null and void. R3609:3
When Israel's typical sacrifices
were repudiated by the Father. R5967:1; Q721:2
The rich man (Luke 16:22), the
Jewish nation, took sick; and the dying process began. For 37 years they
gradually died to all the privileges and blessings which had been theirs as
God's peculiar people. HG428:6; NS819:3; PD60/72
Ever since, like the blighted fig
tree (Mark 11:13,14), Israel has been desolate as a nation. But there is a
promise that this blighted fig tree shall live again, become a living tree, a
living nation. R5920:6
Matthew 23:39
Henceforth, till -- That day when. R4669:6
The Millennial day. Q107:2
The great Millennial day when all
the world is to be blessed, when the "glory of the Lord shall be revealed,
and all flesh shall see it together." (Isa. 40:5) NS252:1
That day has not yet come. NS780:1
Showing that the desolation was
not everlasting. HG161:3
Indicating our Lord's absence
during the period of the selection of spiritual Israel. R3539:2
Meantime the Kingdom is not
abandoned, merely delayed. PD65/77
Ye shall say -- From the heart. B226
As prophesied by David in Psalm
118:26. D639
Indicating that when that day
shall come the blindness of natural Israel shall be turned away. R3539:2
At his second coming as the King
of glory. R4463:6, 4670:1, 2746:5; Q107:2; OV38:1; PD65/77
Blessed is he -- "The stone which the builders refused is become the
Head stone of the Corner!" (Psa. 118:22,26) D639
Matthew 24
Matthew 24:2
There shall not be left -- The emperor Julian the Apostate endeavored to rebuild the
temple in AD 363 to defy this prophecy, but his design was frustrated by an
earthquake and fire bursting forth from the foundation walls of the thrown down
temple. R1297:1*
Matthew 24:3
Tell us when -- Perhaps remembering that Jesus' first advent had been
obscure and unrecognized by many. R710:2
Asking three distinct questions,
each of which received separate answers. R531:3
These things be -- The destruction of the temple, etc. R342:1*
Shall be the sign -- Indication. B160; R710:3
They suspected that he might be
present, yet unrecognized by the world, and possibly by even his saints, unless
some expected sign should indicate his presence. R710:3
As clouds are a sign of storm and
smoke of fire, so the specially appointed works of his presence in progress
will, to those who can appreciate them, be a sign of his presence. R710:3
There will be no sign for the
worldly masses; they will not know of my presence and of the new dispensational
changes. Only the few will know. B162
What sign would be needed of
Christ's presence, if he were visible. R555:1*
Of thy coming -- Greek, parousia, a being alongside, presence. B160; D565;
R2978:6, 1693:1, 591:4*; HG24:4, 26:6
The Greek word parousia invariably
signifies "personal presence," as having come, arrived. It never
signifies to "be on the way," as we use the word "coming."
R580:5, 348:2, 223:2*, 20:4
Whedon's Commentary, page 277,
says: "The word parousia never, in the whole New Testament, signifies
anything else than presence." Liddell and Scott and Young's Concordance
concur. R223:2*
The parousia began in 1874.
R5565:6
End of the world -- End of the age. B160; D565
The Greek word aion does not mean
this globe, or this general order of things, but an era or age. R236:3*
The Greek word suntelia,
translated "end," does not mean a "point," but a
"period of time." The same word is used in Matt. 13:39, "The
harvest is the end [suntelia] of the age." R236:3*, 223:1*
The sign of the presence is the
sign of the time of harvest, one sign for two things. The worker and the work
are related to each other. R236:3*
Matthew 24:4
Jesus answered -- Verses 1 to 14 cover the entire Gospel age; verses 15
to 22 have a double application,
literally to the close of the Jewish age and figuratively to the end of the
Gospel age of which the Jewish age was a shadow; verses 23 to 26 contain words
of warning against false Christs and, in verse 27, our Lord reaches their
question regarding his parousia. B160
The Master traces various
experiences of his people down to the consummation of the Gospel age. R5522:2
Take heed -- To put us on guard against some who would assume his name
(Christ-ians) and deceive many by saying that the Kingdom of God has come.
R710:3
That no man deceive -- A sign will enable those who obey this injunction to
discern between the false and the true. R98:2*
Matthew 24:5
Come in my name -- "Many will assume my name." (Diaglott) R710:5
Saying, I am Christ -- Evidently refers to pseudo-Christs who have arisen during
the Gospel age, but before the closing part of the age. R5865:6*
Not Sabbathai Levi of Smyrna, with
his 400 prophets, is here meant, but whoever claims headship of the church, as
Pope, Czar, Synod, and especially the coming Image of the Beast. (Rev. 13:15)
D565, 580
Gamaliel mentions two of these
false Christs in his speech referred to in Acts 5:36,37. F565
They say, We are Christ's
vicegerents, his representatives; our Church is the body of Christ and his
rightful and promised representative to rule and conquer the world. R710:5
Not only have false christ
systems, antichrists, arisen, flourished and deceived many, but many individual
false teachers have also arisen. R767:1
Deceive many -- By unrestrained fallen angels, with power to counterfeit
and personate humanity. SM199:T
Matthew 24:6
Rumors of wars -- Threats, intrigues of wars. D566
Wars, which have continued all
through the age, are not the particular thing the Master had in mind when he
referred to the great time of trouble. R5526:1; NS57:2
Must come to pass -- The physical convulsions are as needful and as proper as
the moral and social upheavals. R879:5
War is not the disease, but merely
a symptom of the disease in the body politic. So long as the disease, sin,
continues, its outward manifestation, war, is bound to continue. SM452:3
As long as Satan rules the world,
strife, war, and confusion must reign. R605:4
End is not yet -- The mere fact of war should prove nothing to the Lord's
people respecting the consummation of the age. We are otherwise guided.
R3327:1, 605:3
Matthew 24:7
Shall be famines -- Famines, pestilences and earthquakes are not to be regarded
specially as signs of the end. R605:5
Earthquakes -- Revolutions. A336; SM316:2
Famines and earthquakes have in
all ages given evidence that not only man, but his home, the earth, is under
the curse. R879:1
Our Lord knew that these quakings
had been before his first advent and would be frequent during the entire period
between the first and second advents. R879:1
Matthew 24:8
Beginning of sorrows -- Primary sorrows, the secular history of the Gospel age.
D566
The start of trouble much more
intense. R879:2
Matthew 24:9
Then -- During that same period, the Gospel age. D566, 584
Deliver you up -- Here the Lord separates the history of the true Church and
states it with similar brevity. D566
To be afflicted -- The faithful servants of the Lord will be ostracized by the
world, as our Lord foretold. R5173:6
Matthew 24:10
And then -- During that same period. D566
Matthew 24:11
False prophets -- False teachers. D566
Matthew 24:12
Iniquity -- Inequity, injustice, unrighteousness. R5857:4
Erroneous doctrine and consequent
erroneous practice, worldliness, etc. R767:4
Shall abound -- "Be multiplied" (Revised Version); in the end of
the Gospel age. R5856:2, 5118:2
Unrighteousness, false
professions, empty forms of godliness, love of pleasure, abound everywhere.
R5857:5
The temptation is strong with many
to follow the multitude. R5857:5
It will be a test for those who
love Christ, as to whether they will partake of the worldly spirit. R5118:2
The love of many -- Speaking to the Church. R5856:2
The many; the majority of the
professed followers of Christ. R5857:4
Shall wax cold -- Will allow their love to grow cold, lacking faith and zeal.
R5118:2
Become lukewarm. (Rev. 3:16)
R710:6
When not persecuted, it has been
because there was so much of the world, so much of the "cold love"
toward the Lord and the truth, that they were not worthy of persecution. D567
The Lord seems afar off,
incomprehensible and almost unknown. R767:4
A cooling of our love toward God
will mean a loss of our desire to please him, which will include a cooling of
our love for his service in spreading the Gospel message. R4253:3
If we have an unjust twist in our
mind, it will interfere with our communion with God. R5857:2
Melancholy and sorrowful as the
sight is, if we did not see it, we should think that the Bible was not true.
R2798:3*
Matthew 24:13
He that shall endure -- The test of endurance is one of the severest. R1995:4
Unto the end -- Until "he comes whose right it is" (Ezek. 21:27)
to take the kingdom from the usurper and reward his faithful saints. R605:5
Patient endurance to the close of
the race is needful for all running for the prize held out in this Gospel age.
R710:3
Matthew 24:14
This gospel -- We make a distinction between the Gospel of the Kingdom and
the Kingdom. The Gospel is the announcement beforehand that the Kingdom is
coming. SM678:3; R5010:1
Announcing the second coming of
the Messiah to rule, heal and instruct all the families of the earth. R5010:1
Of the kingdom -- The word gospel here is emphatic in the Greek, and so is
the word kingdom. It is not any and every good message, but a special one--this
good message of the Kingdom. R1349:3
Shall be preached -- He did not say that it would be received. A91; D567;
R516:6*
The object is to prepare for this
coming Kingdom. SM678:2
The real purpose of this Gospel
age. D169
The entire work of this Gospel age
was to be the preaching of the Kingdom. R2139:1*
To everyone who has an ear to
hear. SM679:1; CR437:2
We ask whether this has yet been
done by Christendom, and reply, No! (1892) R1349:3
This witness has already been
given; the Word of the Lord, the gospel of the Kingdom, has been published in
every nation of the earth. D568; SM685:3
In all the world -- By 1861, the Gospel had been published in every language of
the earth. A91; R603:4*
Even though the traditions of men,
which tend to make it null and meaningless, are permitted to accompany it.
R1077:3
"In the whole inhabited
earth." (NEW Version) R531:3
The Bible, which is the Gospel
message, has been translated into all the national tongues of the world; and
thus every nation, representatively, has been made acquainted with the letter
of God's message at least. R2518:5
For a witness -- Not to convert them. R5008:2, 2872:2, 2809:5, 2518:5,
516:6*; D169, 568; A91
To find that special class which
the Lord is seeking, an elect few from all nations. SM679:1; CR437:2; R5008:3
The present mission of the Church.
R5822:2
This is the dispensation of
election and not of universal conversion. R2798:3*
The preaching of the Gospel during
this age will serve as a witness in the coming age. R517:1*
Later on the elect, as the
Kingdom, will bless the nations, opening their deaf ears to the Gospel. D568
Unto all nations -- "Go ye therefore and teach all nations." (Matt.
28:19) C215
But witnessing to nations is not
witnessing to individuals. R603:4*
Shall the end come -- The end has come: "The harvest is the end of the
age." (Matt. 13:39) D568; R603:4*, 342:5*
The end of this age or harvest.
R2157:2*, 2139:1*
Not the end of the world, but the
end of the preaching of the gospel. SM678:2
Before this age shall have fully
ended. R710:6
The Greek heko signifies "to
have come, to be here," not future tense, but present. R591:4*, 555:4*,
342:5*
The remarks of the Master up to
here are in place and needful, but only a preface to the answer of the question
asked. R710:6
Matthew 24:15
When ye -- When Satan's power begins to fall because the stronger than
he begins to spoil his house, then this system will be revealed and recognized
in its true character. R711:1
Shall see -- The Mass was not seen to be the abomination, even by the
Reformers. D572
The setting up of the abomination
is not the sign, but its recognition as an abomination and its improper place
is a sign of greatly increased light (Dan. 12:4) R710:6
When the mask shall be pulled off,
and you shall be enabled to see "The Mystery of Iniquity" (2 Thess.
2:7) as such, your knowledge shall be the sign. R711:2
The abomination -- That Wicked One, the Man of Sin, the Mystery of Iniquity,
the Antichrist, the Son of perdition, the Beast, the Little Horn, the Papacy.
B271, 277; C95
Especially the Papal doctrine of
transubstantiation and the sacrifice of the Mass, supplemented in our day by
various theories of self-atonement urged by Papacy's imitators. D572; C102,
103; NS77:1
The false system of systems,
including not only the mother system, Papacy, but the daughters as well, for
she is the mother of abominations. (Rev. 17:4) R711:1
So called because of the
disastrous influence it has had upon the faith and practice of the Lord's
people. R5641:5
In another parallelism, fleshly
Israel's rejection of the true sacrifice for sins, and their retention of the
typical sacrifices which were no longer acceptable to God, were abominations.
D572
Spoken of by Daniel -- Distinctly referring to Daniel, calling him by name and
quoting a part of his prophecy, giving us the assurance that it would be
fulfilled in the future--not yet come, but near, even at the door. R3630:3
Stand -- Having stood. D573
In the holy place -- In the Church. D572; C26
In the stead of the true
sacrifice. D573
Whoso readeth -- Reader. D573
Let him understand -- Consider. D573
There will be danger of
misunderstanding the real abomination. C26
Matthew 24:16
Which be in Judea -- In Christendom, not literal Judea, because it is itself a
hill country. D573
The destruction of ancient
Jerusalem is a type of the dissolution of the nominal Christian church.
R590:3*, 229:3
Flee -- Flee from all its errors. C26
From the influence of the
abomination and from the system falsely styling itself Christ's Kingdom. D573
Into the mountains -- The mountain, Christ's Kingdom. D573
Matthew 24:17
On the housetop -- Who has a higher life and experience and faith than the
merely nominal member; the most saintly. D575; R5456:4
Not come down -- Everything must be forsaken. R5456:1
All temporizing or human reasoning
will be dangerous; no time must be lost in obeying. D574
To take any thing -- Titles, dignities, respect, commendations of good and
regular standing. D575; R5456:4
Out of his house -- The branch of the nominal church with which he is
connected. D575
Matthew 24:18
In the field -- In the world, not a church member. D574; R5456:4
Return back -- Join the nominal church. D575
To take his clothes -- To secure valuables in human estimation. D575
Matthew 24:19
Woe unto them -- Special troubles at that time; but also symbolical. R5456:4
It will be a special time of
sorrow for the false religious systems in that day, "those who are with
child." Q842:5
That are with child -- With illegitimate spiritual children, not begotten by the
Word of Truth, but by error, and therefore "bastards, and not sons."
(Heb. 12:8) D575, 576
Symbolic of Christian people
seeking to convert the world and teach beginners. R5456:4
And to them -- Ministers, Sunday-school teachers, and others. D577;
R1379:6, 230:1
That give suck -- Those who are dispensing the milk. Q842:5
Look after spiritual children,
proselytes to the church. R591:5*
That give out the milk of the
Word, often diluted and adulterated, to keep the spurious children alive, and
starve, stunt and poison the true spiritual babes. D577 They will fear to flee
in this day, realizing that but few of the "babes" would be able or
willing to join in the flight; and indeed only the spiritual will be able to
endure the ordeal. D577
Matthew 24:20
Not in the winter -- When the winter-time of Babylon's trouble has begun, in the
burning of the tares. D578
This winter time coming is the
time of Zion's travail when the great majority of her children will be brought
forth. (Isa. 66:7) R230:6
In season to be an overcomer.
Harvest always comes in summer and is followed by the destructive frosts of
winter. R230:5
It is still the custom in country
places to leave the burning off of refuse until the winter. D578
"The harvest is past, the summer
is ended [winter has come], and we are not saved." (Jer. 8:20) D578
On the sabbath day -- The Millennium. The further we get into it, the harder it
is to abandon Babylon, when she pleads for help in her hour of need. D579
The Jewish Law placed restrictions
upon the people on the Sabbath and hindered them from journeying as much as
they might desire. R230:2
If some now attempt to obey, they
will find such laws in force in Zion as will make it difficult to get out
quickly, unless those man-made laws are disregarded. R230:2
Matthew 24:21
For then -- At the end of this Gospel age and its harvest. R5019:1
As a result of selfishness
reaching its limit, becoming ripe, and going to seed. SM266:1
Great tribulation -- General and terrible. D540
A time of war and trouble
involving all nations. Q812:2
It will include social, financial,
political and religious institutions. PD92/107
The strife of nations and of
parties, of unions and of combinations, will extend to the individuals of the
world and produce an individual conflict and strife. NS22:3
Anarchy and destruction, born of
fear and despair, and not of preference or a love of lawlessness. R2869:4
Strife, hatred, malignity,
anarchy. SM188:T
The tribulations upon Babylon will
constitute a part of the great tribulation with which this Age will terminate.
SM411:2
Aggressiveness on the part of the
trusts and syndicates will bring about the final catastrophe of this age in the
wreck of the entire social structure by the masses. NS377:5
Coming along the lines of a lack
of confidence, a casting away of confidence. (Heb. 10:35) NS561:5
The poor rich will have a season
of special sorrow and anguish when all their accumulated wealth will become
valueless. (Jas. 5:1-5) Q848:2
Abetted, not only by national
animosities, but also by social grievances, ambitions and animosities. R1355:5
Caused by manifestations of divine
justice and opposition to sin and all iniquity. OV286:3
Caused by a thorough transition
from the reign of sin and death to the reign of righteousness and life. R5399:6;
A307
A dashing to pieces of earthly
institutions; a great crisis. SM717:1, 162:1
The spirit of discontent, stirred
up by knowledge, will ignorantly, unintentionally, cause the wreck of our
present institutions. R5364:1, 4755:6; OV126:3
A manifestation of divine justice.
OV286:3
"A great earthquake such as
was not since men were upon the earth, so mighty an earthquake, and so
great." (Rev. 16:18) Dxiii; OV275:1; SM236:2
So destructive in character that
it will result in the dissolution of the present evil, selfish, social
structure preparatory to the establishment of the "new earth." Q771:4
Upon the ashes of that time of
trouble, Messiah's Kingdom will be established with full power and glory.
PD92/107; NS22:4
The beginning of Messiah's reign
will mean the greatest revolution the world has ever seen. Kings and princes
will hold on to power and advantage to the last, and as a result all will be
dashed in pieces. R1385:5
It will be a battle between
giants--on the one side financial giants, trusts, etc.; on the other side
gigantic labor organizations. PD92/107; NS218:4
The anarchy of the French
Revolution and the anarchy which overthrew the Jewish nation in AD 70 are
Scriptural illustrations of what may be expected soon. PD92/107
When the last member of the body
of Christ shall have passed beyond the veil. R5173:3; NS664:6; HG611:6
A day of judgment upon mankind
socially and nationally--a day of national recompenses. D11
Not for the world's destruction;
but that, as a plowshare, it may break up the fallow ground and prepare the
hearts of mankind. NS664:6
The beginning of his glorious
reign of 1000 years, a very dark hour. HG676:1
Messiah's reign will be a terror
to evil-doers, for somehow the truth is either directly or indirectly to bring
about the smiting of the earth. R1352:2
We are not to think of wars as
being the particular thing the Master had in mind when he referred to this
great trouble with which this age will close. R5526:1
Resulting from the winds of strife
and trouble being let loose after the sealing work shall have been
accomplished. SM188:T
As the harvest of the Jewish age
ended with a time of trouble, so our Lord's words assure us that this Gospel
age will also end with a time of trouble. R5018:6, 4891:5; NS218:5
Nations must pass through it to be
humbled before they will be ready for the blessings from the New Jerusalem.
SM441:2; R5805:6, 4795:5
Thereby the world will know that
Jesus has begun his reign. R5523:1
This trouble we do not expect
(1910) before October 1914. R4671:4
An allusion to Armageddon. Diii;
OV269:2
Armageddon is still future
(1914)--perhaps next spring. R5527:4 The present war (1914) is not the great
time of trouble in the fullest sense, but the forerunner; the great time of
trouble will be brought on by anarchy. R5526:3
The present (1914) will drain the
world of blood and treasure. Then the nations, sick, weak and faint, will fall
a prey to Socialism which will become anarchy. R5526:4, 4955:5; HG499:4, 518:1;
OV186:4; SM162:1
The great time of revolution and
anarchy which the Bible predicts will follow this (1915) war. R5767:4
Already begun. Daily the heat of
human passion is growing more intense (1916). R5864:4
Lasting until the time of divine
interference. OV220:7
Held back during the time God's
people are sealed in their foreheads. SM188:T; R5753:1
The time when the present age will
end and the Millennium be inaugurated. R5554:2, 5462:6; SM411:2
At the close of this Gospel age
there will be a squaring of accounts; for willful sins (not hereditary) there
will be satisfaction rendered. R5462:6, 5240:2
The awful lessons then learned by
humanity will be sufficient for all time. SM188:T; PD92/107
See also comments on Matt. 23:35. Such
as was not -- A ferocity never seen in the past. R5469:3
Because present day conditions
render each member of the social structure more dependent than ever before.
D540
The only settlement of which will
be accomplished by the establishment of the Kingdom of God. R1305:3
Proof that this prophecy evidently
referred to more than the destruction of Jerusalem in AD 70. R711:2
Nor ever shall be -- Because so thorough will be the correction that it will
never need to be repeated. R1519:4; SM188:T, 717:1; OV186:4; PD92/107
These words are added by our Lord
to the prophecy of Dan. 12:1. R5564:1, 5916:1; SM717:1; OV186:4; HG401:1;
PD92/107
The end of all such troublous
times. SM717:1; NS22:4
The great final trouble of this
world's history in which, during a period of anarchy unparalleled, all human
hopes and ambitions will utterly fail. SM266:1
The effect of this trouble will be
so overruled by divine providence in the establishment of the Kingdom of
righteousness that such a tribulation will never again be possible. HG417:3
If a great time of trouble must
come, it is comforting to know that it will be the last of its kind. PD92/107
Matthew 24:22
Except those days -- Of the time of trouble, revolution and anarchy. C364;
R5823:3, 5767:4; OV386:6, 430:6
Be shortened -- The Kingdom will stop the anarchy when men have learned the
lesson that they cannot help the human race. R5567:2
No flesh be saved -- The entire human family would be obliterated. R5715:2,
5735:3; D579
National frenzy, anger, hatred,
malice, will extend to persons: "Every one against his neighbor."
(Zech. 8:10) R5569:2
The kind of trouble the Bible
seems to picture could hardly last more than a year for any to be left. R5328:3
The convictions of the world's
great generals: "Woe to the man or nation who starts the next war in
Europe, for it will be a war of extermination." R1355:5
The Bible counsels meekness and
justice as safeguards. (Zech. 2:3) PD92/107
For the elect's sake -- Through, or by the elect, who will intervene at the proper
time. D578, 579; R5569:3, 5852:5; SM423:2; Q98:1
Christ and his Church in Kingdom
power and glory. R5852:5, 5328:3
On the divine plane. They will
then begin the work of blessing and restitution. R5328:3, 5715:2, 5735:3;
OV386:6
Except for the Kingdom of the
elect and its establishment of peace. R3619:4
Those days -- Of anarchy, which follows revolution and Churchianity's
exaltation. R5554:5, 5767:4
Shall be shortened -- The work of blessing and restitution will bring the strife
to an end. R5328:3
By the establishment of Messiah's
Kingdom. OV220:7; R5852:5, 5767:4, 5554:5,6, 1912:3; SM423:2
Then men will begin to seek the
Lord with truly broken hearts. R5823:2
Be cut short. The work of
destruction will be a short work. D558, 578
Instead of allowing the time of
trouble to run its course and practically exterminate the race in the reign of
anarchy, the Lord declares that in the midst of the trouble he will establish
his Kingdom. NS218:5; R3587:1
Messiah's Kingdom not only dashes
the nations to pieces, but also stops the anarchy when it shall have
demonstrated the fact that nothing that man can do will be able to help the
race. R5567:2
When men shall have learned the
great lesson of what the outcome of selfishness would be without divine
intervention. R5767:4
We infer that the time of trouble
will be sharp and short. HG612:2
"A short work will the Lord
make in the earth." (Rom. 9:28) NS218:5
Matthew 24:23
Then -- That is, right now, just at this time. D581
In "the time of the
end." R711:2
Lo, here is Christ -- The head of the church, as Pope, Czar, King of England,
Synod, Conference, Council; but particularly and especially the Protestant
Federation, the "Image of the Beast." (Rev. 13:15) D580, 581
Because worldly men cannot say, Lo
here, or Lo there; they do not realize his presence at all. R1692:6
Or there -- In any particular place. B165
He will not be a man limited to
place, but a spiritual being, personally present, yet invisible because he is
spiritual. R711:3
Matthew 24:24
False Christs -- False Messiahs. R4872:6
Deceptions. R113:6
Not a personal Antichrist, nor
that Satan will materialize as a man and misrepresent the Lord. R5867:4
Each church claims to be the body
of Christ with an executive or committee as head, as Christ's representative in
his Body. These are the false Christs, false bodies of Christ with false heads,
or governments, not authorized by the Word. R5867:1,4, 3458:6, 766:6, 143:3;
NS44:2
The greatest of the false Christs
must be yet to come. R5866:1*
We should recognize a difference
between false Christs (Greek, pseudo-kristos) and anti-Christs (Greek,
anti-kristos). R143:3
False prophets -- In addition to the false Christs, false systems, and
apparently to some extent outside of them, will be false teachers. NS44:4
Teachers of error. R143:3, 113:6
Large and prosperous denominations
deceiving themselves and millions of others. R4872:6
Theosophy, Christian Science, New
Thought movements are all false teachers outside of the Church of Christ
because in no sense do they profess the essence of Christian doctrines. NS44:5
Even after coming out of
Antichrist systems, there are many false prophets who assume authority to direct
the consecrated, teaching theories subversive of the truth and perverting
Scriptures to support them. R767:5
Signs and wonders -- Doing many wonderful works is one of the old tricks of
Satan and his evil hosts. R5801:6, 1644:3
"Strong delusions" (2 Thess.
2:11) from the wicked spirits, more than even Spiritists have dreamed of.
R2189:3, 4379:3
As Satan's kingdom is about to be
overthrown, in his efforts to support it. R5802:1
Healings, etc. R1736:4
Including "tongues."
SM566:2, 567:2
Miracles to deceive, yet
professing a pious intention. R617:6*
We now see them multiplying all
around us in Christian Science, Spiritism, Theosophy and other such delusions.
R1736:4
Evidences that Satan's kingdom is
being hard pressed by the truth and is nearing its end. R1736:4
Back of, and underneath all, is an
occult power, a hypnotic power, wrought by the Adversary himself as an angel of
light. R2770:5
If it were possible -- But it will not be possible; these alone are promised
grace, wisdom and aid sufficient. F192; R4925:6, 3760:6; Q465:1; SM289:1
Implying a great falling away from
the truth, from the Bible, and from the Lord himself. NS539:3
The shaking and sifting will be
thorough; for it is the Lord that is back of it, wishing to thoroughly separate
the little handful of wheat from the vast quantity of tares. R2704:5
It is of paramount importance that
we put on not only the intellectual covering, the helmet of salvation, but also
the heart covering, love of righteousness and truth. R2353:6
But this will not be possible, for
the Lord has promised them the assistance needful, and they will be in the
attitude of heart and mind to seek assistance and use it. SM289:1; NS95:4,
129:4
Nothing shall be able to deceive
the very elect because the Lord will give his messengers a charge, a message,
in their interest, that they may bear them up in their hands, lest they should
be stumbled in this time. R3719:2
The "very elect" will be
preserved, not through their own wisdom or superiority, but through the power
of God. R4379:3
If they were not divinely aided.
The only safeguard for the Lord's people now is the Present Truth. R2875:5
They shall deceive -- By suggesting the abandonment of God's plan and cooperation
in humanitarian schemes. E115, 116
Every feature of Present Truth
sent by God is promptly counterfeited. R5800:5
Lead astray from the truth and
from the faith. NS44:2
Seduce, lead into confusion and
error. R113:6
The Lord will permit Satan to have
special power now for the purpose of sifting and separating and approving the
faithful and the unfaithful in the nominal church. NS539:3
Owing to the hundreds of
conflicting creeds and doctrinal systems, the many "isms" and the
strong delusions and multiplied errors. Q775:2
Implying that the trials and
testings will be intensified toward the close of this Gospel age. F192
The Lord did not overstate the
terrible battle between truth and error when he foretold that a thousand would
fall to one who would stand, upheld by God's truth and its messengers. (Psa.
91:4,11,12) R867:6
God has so arranged the outward
evidence respecting the Bible that one can find plenty to stumble over; only
from the inside can the Word and plan be seen in their true beauty and
strength. R2875:5
Evil spirits will testify
occasionally to the truth, comment on Millennial Dawn, etc. Their deceptions
will become bold and be apparently backed by advanced truth. R2187:2
Christ will be more and more
exhibited in his followers, but the spirit of Satan will be more manifest in
the remainder of the world. R5867:5
If fallen angels will soon be able
to materialize, what a strong deception it will be. SM199:T
The very elect -- Such of the elect as do not lose their crown; those who
"make their calling and election sure." (2 Pet. 1:10) F165; R4872:6
Those who put on the whole armor
of God, shielded by the truth. R3490:4, 4351:2
All spirit-begotten ones are
elect, and if faithful are the very elect. R4872:6
They are his followers, his
betrothed, his members, his Body, his joint-heirs. R3761:1, 4474:5
How searching will be the tests to
prove our love and loyalty to the Lord. R3760:6
Those who follow closely in the
Master's footsteps and who, instead of leaning to their own understandings and
to Satan's sophistries, have faith in the superior wisdom of Jehovah. E116
None of the fully consecrated are
suffered to be fully ensnared. R2178:4
All but the "very elect"
will be stumbled by the errors and worldliness of our day. R5801:6
The Great Company class are, for a
time, a part of the nominal elect. R4078:5
The Great Company, although in a
grand position, are far inferior to the very elect. NS359:2, 371:6
The saints; represented by the
family of Aaron. Q465:1; OV387:2
Matthew 24:25
I have told you before -- To be forewarned is to be forearmed if we heed the warning.
R766:3, 113:6
Matthew 24:26
If they -- The false teachers. R113:6
Those who claim that Jesus is to
appear shortly in the wilderness of Judea, Palestine. R113:6; B157
Is in the desert -- Of Palestine, as many now believe. B157
Our Lord's revelation at his
second presence will not be to a community in a wilderness or desert; nor even
to one nation, as at the first advent. D583
In the singular, as if to teach us
there would be but one occurrence of this sort; no more. R5866:1*
He is in -- We do not expect to see him until we shall be like him.
R103:5*
The secret chambers -- Of spiritualistic seances. B158; D582; R5866:1*,2188:6,
555:1*
In the plural, as though pointing
out a deception oft-repeated. R5866:1*
Believe it not -- Because the signs or evidences of his presence would not be
secret ones, but would be manifest to all, as is the light of the morning sun.
R2302:6
Matthew 24:27
For as the lightning -- Greek, astrape, not lightning, because lightning rarely
flashes from east to west. The same word as in "The bright shining of a candle
doth give thee light." (Luke 11:36) B155, 156
The bright-shiner, the sun. D583
We translate the Greek noun
astrape as "shining" instead of "lightning" for evidently
it refers to the sun, which rises in the east and sets in the west. R5455:5
It is the electric fluid that
lighteneth or causes the flash; then let us read, "As the electric fluid
which causes flashes of light." R348:5, 264:4, 189:2, 153:1, 114:4
The electric current or fluid,
unseen, yet powerful, its presence widely manifested by the light which it
causes. R711:3
As the lightning is discernible
only by its shining and power, so will I, in my day, be recognizable to my
waiting bride by the light of truth, and afterward to the world, in the light
of events and "the flaming fire" of the day of trouble. R189:2
We recognize his presence by the
lightning flashes of truth. R629:6
Spiritual light is divine truth.
Hence a great and wonderful unfolding of truth is all that the Bible gives us a
right to expect during the presence of the Son of Man. R98:5*
Spiritual bodies are represented
as shining as the lightning. (Luke 10:18; Matt. 28:3; Dan. 10:6; 1 Cor. 15:8)
HG25:5
Its effect is different in
different places. It shines in the heavens, to the church; but sometimes it is
a very destructive agent on earth, to the world. R114:5
The first flashes bring terror and
dismay to the world, but shortly the full glory, the bright shining of his
presence, will be recognized by all and bring healing and blessing. R547:4
Man can see, by the destruction it
leaves, where the lightning has been; so, in the day of the Lord, men will come
to recognize, by the national trouble and overturning, that the great day of
wrath is come. R598:2
Cometh -- Becomes present instantly, yet is first discerned by those
first awake. B160
Out of the east -- And can be confined neither to a solitary place nor to a
private room. D583
And shineth -- Everywhere. D583
Gradually bringing to light the
truth on every subject. B156
Even unto the west -- Even unto the remote West. D583
So shall also the coming -- Greek, parousia, presence. B156, 159, 160; D583; R2978:6,
1693:1
Not that he will come like
lightning, but that he will be like the lightning after he has arrived and is
present. R348:5
Of the Son of man -- Christ, who became son (in law) of Adam. E150, 152
A title of high honor because it
is a perpetual reminder of his great victory by which he secured the title to
his present and prospective honor and glory, and the divine nature. E151
Matthew 24:28
The carcase -- The body, the food. D610; R1890:2
The real food, a satisfying
portion. R513:6
The Lord gives us something
special to eat when we are in fellowship, even if only two or three are
gathered together. CR32:3
The eagles -- Those of keen vision and appetite. D610; R1890:2, 629:6
Be gathered together -- Brought together by the mutual apprehension of the truth,
as eagles would be drawn to their food. R711:3; D610
A general "rounding up"
of Israelites indeed to the feast of fat things. R4937:3
Not one saint in all the world
shall fail to come into contact with Present Truth. R4937:3
Matthew 24:29
The tribulation -- The tribulation referred to is that of verse 9 and not that
of verse 21 and Dan. 12:1. R711:3
Of those days -- The 1260 years of Papal persecution. D584; R711:3; HG95:3
The tribulation "of those
days" should be clearly distinguished from the tribulation at the end of
those days. D583
Shall the sun -- Symbolically, the Gospel light, the truth, and thus, Christ
Jesus. D590
Be darkened -- Literally, in the dark day of May 19, 1780, which extended
over 320,000 square miles. D85; HG95:4; R711:3
Though we recognize a literal
fulfillment of Jesus' words, it is far from our opinion that this was their
complete and only fulfillment, or even the most important one. R711:3
The true gospel sunlight is
already darkened. R1305:2; HG418:3
Symbolically, by denial that we
were bought with the precious blood, and by substituting the theory of
Evolution. D592; R712:1
And the moon -- Symbolically, the light of the Mosaic Law. D590; R1305:2
Not give her light -- "Shall be turned into blood" (Joel 2:31) by
claims that the typical sacrifices were bloody and barbaric. D592; HG418:5
And the stars -- Symbolically, the false stars, wandering stars, pulpit
stars, vainly aspiring to be considered of equal authority with the
"twelve stars" (Rev. 12:1), the inspired apostles. D591, 594;
R1305:2; HG418:5
Fall from heaven -- Literally, the meteoric shower of Nov. 13, 1833, covering
the United States, and a part of Mexico and the West India islands, 11,000,000
square miles. D588, 589, 590; R711:5; HG95:4
Symbolically, the pulpit stars
make a great display in coming down from spiritual things to
Christian-citizenship-politics level. D595, 596
The teachings of the God-ordained
twelve stars of the Church, the apostles, will also fade from view, cease to be
recognized as guides or lights. D593; HG418:5
Powers of the heavens -- Ecclesiastical powers. R1947:6
Sectarian creeds and systems.
D597, 595
Earth shall be shaken as
well as the heavens. (Heb. 12:26) R712:2 Shall be shaken -- Literally, we have had violent shakings of the heavens, or
wind storms and cyclones in our own day. R711:6 He will shake to pieces every
evil system which hinders, binds, oppresses, or blinds the people whom he comes
to bless--all of earth's families. R748:4
Until they are destroyed. R529:2*
Signifying the "removing of those things that are shaken as of
things" that are imperfect and of human construction. (Heb. 12:27) R712:2,
754:5*
He shakes and sifts because he
would separate the many who have assumed the name of Christ but who are not
truly his people. R1307:6
The shaking will be the means of
God for the liberating of some now chained by superstition. R1308:4
The trouble upon the earth,
society, will not reach its intensity until the shaking of the heavens,
ecclesiasticism, has broken the fetters of superstition and plunged the masses
into skepticism and open infidelity. R1308:4
Matthew 24:30
And then -- At that time. D597
Appear the sign -- Greek, seemion, evidence, proof of the Lord's presence, at
his second advent. D598; R712:2
Not a sign that he is soon to
come, but a sign of his presence. R555:1*
The thought might properly be that
something will occur indicative of the presence of the Son of man, that he has
taken to himself his great power and begun his reign. SM420:4
The wonderful inventions and
progress in the world. R5373:5
Reaping of the wheat, the fig tree
of the Jewish nation putting forth leaves, worldliness in the church systems,
the beginning of the smiting of the nations. R5697:2
Since he is to be revealed in
flaming fire, the sign must be some sign of vengeance, some indication of
righteous indignation against wrong. (Isa. 59:17,18) SM420:4
It is a sign to the world, not to
the saints; they have all had evidence of the Lord's presence long before.
R712:2
The shakings in the church nominal
and the raising up of new heavens become a sign to the peoples of earth that
their course of injustice is drawing to a close. R712:2
Some will see the divine plan of
the ages and recognize it as one of the signs. The judgment of Christendom,
social and ecclesiastical, is another sign that the Judge has come. D599
The aggregate sayings and doings
of the scoffers (2 Pet. 3:3,4) are the fulfillment of prophecy, and we think
constitute the sign of the Son of man in heaven. R555:5*
Not his parousia. On the contrary,
the parousia of Christ will not be known to the tribes, or families, of the
earth in general. SM420:3
In heaven -- The symbolic heaven, the professedly spiritual class,
Churchianity. D598; SM421:1
The sign appearing in the heavens
signifies that the beginning of Christ's judgments will fall upon the
ecclesiastical systems of our day. SM421:1
In the new heavens, new spiritual
powers then coming into control and supplanting the old shaking and falling
spiritual powers. R712:2
And then -- Still farther on. R555:2*
All the tribes -- The tribes of earth will not see the sign or proof of the
Lord's presence given only among the "heavens," the at least
nominally spiritual, the churches. D599
Of the earth mourn -- A general mourning of all, incident to the great time of
trouble. D600
The troublous times cause them to
mourn. R555:2*
If the world has mourned in the
past, how much more shall we expect it to do when the trouble will be general.
R5269:5
And they shall see -- With the eyes of their understanding. D600
The root word in the Greek is
horao, to discern; that is, to apprehend, to recognize, the fact that he is
indeed present. R555:2*
When their eyes begin to see out
of obscurity, there will not be anything that they can see with the natural
sight. R5269:5
They discover that sin is the
cause of all the trouble, and this will lead them to investigate, and thus
finally they are led to desire, as well as to recognize him. R555:2*
Son of man coming -- Drawing nearer and nearer in judgment; and they will
recognize that they, too, must shortly be involved. Hence there will be
mourning because of him (Rev. 1:7). SM421:2
In the clouds -- Of the time of trouble. B153
The tribes of earth will see the
clouds of trouble and confusion incident to the shaking of the
"heavens," and realize it to be a storm which will shake the
"earth" also. (Heb. 12:26) D600
Well representing the confusion in
general. R5269:5
Of heaven -- Primary sign of Christ's righteous judgments upon the
ecclesiastical systems. SM421:2,1
And great glory -- The glory of power and justice. B153
Matthew 24:31
Send his angels -- His messengers, such as he has used in the carrying of the
Gospel message throughout the age; those begotten of his holy Spirit. D601;
R885:3, 711:3
A great sound -- Sinaitic and Syriac manuscripts omit "sound."
R907:6
Trumpet -- The seventh trumpet, the last trump, the trump of God, the
jubilee trumpet of knowledge and liberty, which sound symbolically from
October, 1874 to the end of the Millennium. The words "sound of a"
are omitted by the Sinaitic manuscript. B145; D600, 601; A316; R3471:6, 907:3,
711:3
The truth now proclaimed by the
saints, the messengers or angels of God. R885:4
Gather together -- Not physically, but spiritually; their minds, hearts,
affections, gathered together, centered, in the secret place of the Most High;
protected in time of strife and trouble. R4379:4
Bring together into sympathy and
harmony with the truths then due. F274
Preparatory to the setting up of
his Kingdom in power and great glory. R1745:6
The first work of the Lord in both
harvests was the rejection of the nominal house, so that he may gather out of
it his elect. R2982:1
Not into another denomination, but
gathered to Christ, into oneness with him, in fellowship of the spirit through
the knowledge of his Word. R2751:4, 1877:6
"Gather my saints together
unto me." (Psa. 50:5) B164
"Make up my jewels."
(Mal. 3:17) B164; D601
"Gather the wheat into my
barn." (Matt. 13:30) B164; D600 "Come out of her my people."
(Rev. 18:4) D601
The harvest began in 1874.
R4842:3; D604; Q150:5
His elect -- The bride of Christ, to be gathered out of the world, of
all nations and classes. R4998:3
Consecrated runners for the prize,
for whom crowns have been reserved. F165
We believe every saint will be
brought into contact with the truth. While confident that no tares will be
gathered, let us have confidence also in the Chief Reaper that not a grain of
ripe wheat will be left ungarnered. R888:5
From the four winds -- From every direction, from all denominations. R711:3
From every quarter of the field.
R1333:4; D601
End of heaven -- The nominal church. D600; R3431:6, 2982:1, 2751:3, 2490:4,
1877:6, 1333:4, 845:2, 711:3
Matthew 24:32
Of the fig tree -- The Jewish nation. D604; R5503:2
Put forth leaves -- Giving signs of life. R4788:5, 5503:2, 4705:6
Begins to plan for national
restoration in Palestine. D604
Indicating that the blight time of
Israel and of the world is at an end. R5503:2
We see the Jews looking back to
Jerusalem. We thus see the fig tree putting forth its leaves, giving signs of
life, looking forward to the reestablishment of the Jewish nation. R4788:5
These buds will thrive, but will
bear no perfect fruit before October, 1914, the full end of the "Gentile
Times." D604
Summer is nigh -- The Hebrews divided their year into two seasons, summer and
winter. D602
Matthew 24:33
Know that it -- "Know ye that the Kingdom of God is nigh at
hand." (Luke 21:31) D602; R127:5
When the time should come, such
watching ones would know it. R593:6
Matthew 24:34
This generation -- Greek, genea, people living contemporaneously, not a race.
D603; R531:4
Not the generation he was talking
to, but the generation that would see these signs when they would be fulfilled.
Q636:4; D603; HG95:4
Might be reckoned as a century,
practically the present limit, from 1780, the date of the first sign, to 1880.
To our understanding, every item predicted had begun its fulfillment by that
date. D604
Those who are walking in the light
of Present Truth are not looking for things to come which are already here, but
are waiting for the consummation of matters already in progress. D604
It would not be inconsistent to
reckon the generation from 1878 to 1914, 36-1/2 years, about the average of
human life today. D605
The generation which witnesses the
putting forth of the green leaves of hope by Israel will see to the full the
accomplishment of the change of dispensation so long foretold. R4706:1
In distinction from the word
regeneration; in other words, he would be present before the regeneration,
before the people of this age should pass away. R342:4*
"This generation of
vipers" (Matt. 23:33); this kind, or class. R539:1*
Matthew 24:35
Heaven and earth -- The present ecclesiastical and social order. D602
Pass away -- In the great time of trouble with which this age will end.
R4706:1
My words -- Plans or purposes. R421:2, 338:1
Matthew 24:36
That day and hour -- When the Kingdom shall be set up. E36
The divine plan which God purposed
in himself from before the foundation of the world, and represented in the
sealed scroll of Rev. 5. R4451:1
Knoweth no man -- At the time the Lord was speaking. B18; D605; R4641:5;
CR95:5
Not the angels -- Not that the angels would be in ignorance up to the last
minute. R4706:2, 2972:6
Sinaitic manuscript adds "nor
the Son." D605
But my Father only -- It does not say that none but the Father will ever know.
B18; D605; R5055:1, 2972:6, 1796:3; OV6:3; NS7:1, 33:1
It does not mean that those living
at the time for the establishment of the Kingdom would not know. R4706:2
Certain features of the plan were
kept secret from our Master until he had finished his course. CR95:5; R4706:2,
4641:5
Matthew 24:37
But as the days -- Not the coming, but the "presence," after
arrival. B160, 161
As the days of Noah were not days
before Noah's time, neither are the days of the Son of man days before the Son
of man's presence. R2974:5, 580:5
Of Noe -- Before the flood. B161; R349:1, 342:4*, 237:5*; NS200:4
Doubtless much of the immorality
and sensuality which marked the days of Noah and of Lot will prevail in the
world in the closing days of the present age, though that is not the lesson
here. R4706:3; B161; D606; HG611:5
Everything will continue as
ordinarily. R4706:3
Noah was informed respecting the
coming change of dispensation; likewise, the Church of Christ is forewarned.
R4706:2
As the giants were in control in
the days of Noah, so giant trusts are getting more and more control of the
situation now. R4797:5
So shall also -- Before the hot fire of trouble. B161
The coming -- Greek, parousia, presence. B159; D296, 606; R4797:2,
4706:4, 2978:6, 1874:1*, 513:4, 188:4
Of the Son of man -- The days of the Son of man are the days of his parousia or
presence, invisible and unknown to the world, known only to the watchers, and
seen by them only with the eye of faith. R2974:6
See comments on Matt. 24:27.
Matthew 24:38
They -- The world in general. D606
Were eating -- Pursuing the ordinary, proper affairs of life; ignorant of
the impending catastrophe. D606; R5455:6, 3355:6, 2974:6, 2957:1
Does not imply that there is
anything wrong in so doing. R4797:2; B161; NS7:6, 33:6
Showing that there will be no
outward sign to indicate to the world the time of the second presence. R5455:6
The world's affairs will not be
interrupted by the Lord's presence. NS200:3
These things are not signs of
wickedness, but mentioned to show us that there will be no outward sign to
indicate to the world the time of the second presence of Christ. R5455:6,
4797:2, 580:5, 20:4
The world's whole attention given
to fleshly desires, not understanding nor caring for the spiritual. R327:1*
Into the ark -- Type of Christ and the power in him which will replenish
and reorganize society. A318
Matthew 24:39
And knew not -- Were ignorant of the coming storm and disbelieved Noah's
testimony. B161
So, in the early part of the Day
of the Lord, the world will have no faith in the announcement of his presence
and of the impending trouble. B143
Similarly, at the end of this age,
only the Lord's people will know of Christ's presence and the time of trouble
impending. D606; R5590:6
There was apparently nothing to
indicate that anything unusual was about to happen. R4797:2
They read not the signs of the
speedy and great changes just at hand; they are too busy to consider the
testimony carefully, and only continue to scoff. B167
The world will never be completely
converted to Christianity by any existing agency before the end of this
dispensation. R2798:2*
The signs of the times will not be
in the outward condition of the world. R5455:6
"Where is the promise of his
presence, while all things continue as they were from the beginning." (2
Pet. 3:4) R2957:1
How then shall the Church be aware
of his presence, except by a sign. R98:2*
First, in witnessing, we should
present the doctrine of restitution, the work of the presence; then, the
manner; and lastly, the time, telling it to none unless they show that they
have an ear to hear. R216:3,6
Until the flood came -- Contrary to the teachings of many modern theologians. A61
Though there shall never be
another flood to destroy the earth (Gen. 9:11), it is written that the whole
earth shall be devoured with the fire of God's jealousy (Zeph. 3:8). B162
Marking the close of the first
dispensation; as a great cataclysm of trouble, anarchy, symbolically called
"fire," will mark the termination of the present dispensation.
R2842:6
Likewise in his second presence,
until disturbed by the commotion and trouble of the epiphania, the apokalupsis
of the King in the pouring out of the seven last plagues. R2957:1
They did know when the flood came;
and they will now know when every eye shall behold him. HG24:6
Took them all away -- The Deluge was merely a quick means of executing against
the race the death sentence already expressed 16 centuries before. SM62:1
By drowning all the people except
Noah's family; in the antitype, by burning all except the family of God in the
symbolic fire--the great trouble of the Day of the Lord. B162
Intimating that a great
catastrophe, corresponding to the flood, is to occur in the end of the Gospel
age. R3934:6
The threatened catastrophe will be
anarchy. R2842:6
So shall also -- Equally unrecognized and unbelieved. B161
From these statements we see that
the world will be far from being converted to Christ at his coming, and they
will have little regard for the teachings of the Master. Q816:4, 852:2
Again the doctors of the law and
doctors of divinity, professing faithfulness and praying continually, are blind
to the fact that we are now living "in the days of the Son of man."
R3538:6
The coming -- Greek, parousia, presence; as of one who has already come.
B161; R4706:3, 2978:6
Matthew 24:40
Be in the field -- In the world, outside the nominal house. D609; R4706:4
Who previously had not been
justified. Q151:2 The Lord will gather some of his jewels from the field.
R4706:4; D609
Not all "come-outers"
will be gathered, but the jewels will be sought wherever they may be. D609
One shall be taken -- To the food of Present Truth which the Lord would supply.
R2302:6, 513:6
Matthew 24:41
Grinding at the mill -- The place where food is prepared; the theological schools
and the ministry. D609; R4706:4
Grinding the husks of human
tradition. R513:6
Matthew 24:42
Watch -- The signs of the times in the light of God's Word, for the
second advent of the Lord, the establishment of his Kingdom, the transformation
of the Church to the divine likeness. R2973:1-3, 4706:5, 2303:1
Watch yourselves and also the word
of prophecy. B22; R4706:6, 2303:2
Watch your words and thoughts and
doings. R4706:6
So that when the due time comes
you may be one of the wise ones. B19; D606
This will serve as an antidote to
worldly influences. R2303:1
The watchers keep separate the two
thoughts of the presence and its manifestation. R2974:3
Watching intently, earnestly,
interestedly, because they know of the good things God hath in reservation.
R2973:5
Watching implies hoping, and it
also implies waiting. R2973:2
That the early Church lived in
joyful anticipation of this longed-for event is manifest from many Scriptures.
(See 1 John 2:18; 2 Tim. 2:18; 2
Thess. 2:1-5) R1796:2
Implies not only some advantage in
watching, but also that the manner of the event might be so contrary to general
expectation as to require some discernment on the part of the watchers. R1796:5
In reply to your question, When?,
I merely tell you to watch and be ready. When I am present I will communicate
the fact to all who are watching and faithful. B163
Therefore -- That ye may be gathered or separated from the world and
theological relationships and from earthly church relationships to the Master
himself. R4706:5
An intimation that the manner of
the second advent would be contrary to the general expectation. R1796:5
Unobserved, unknown to the world.
R4706:3
For ye know not -- It is not a matter that is left in such a form as to be
speculated upon in advance. His knock will be the first intimation of his
presence. R3355:5
Implies that when the event does
take place the watching ones will know it. Watch, because ye know not, in order
that, at the proper time, ye may know. R2972:2 D606
What hour -- "The day" according to the oldest Greek
manuscripts. R2972:2,3
Your Lord doth come -- This cannot refer to our Lord coming to receive a dying one
at death, as is often taught, because death is an enemy. R2303:1
Greek, erchomai, arrive. B163
Matthew 24:43
But know this -- Understand the reason why the time is so secreted under
symbols and parables. D611
If the goodman -- The householder, the devil. D611; SM102:2
Of the house -- Master of present institutions, of the present evil world.
SM102:2; Q621:2; R4706:5, 2303:2
Had known -- Although Satan has long known the Bible, he has understood
but little of it, for the same reason that man has not understood it--he does
not possess the holy Spirit. D611
Thief would come -- The Lord's second presence is likened to the presence of a
thief in a house, unknown to its master. R4706:6, 3784:5, 842:1
If he comes as a thief, it is not
to sound a trumpet before him, calling the world's attention to his work.
R1742:6
He comes as a thief and snare upon
the world. R1693:1, 326:6*
To take, first, his
"jewels," his saints; and then to utterly spoil and overthrow the
affairs of this present time, that on its ruins he might set his Kingdom.
R3784:6, 4706:6
He would have watched -- Satan was taken unawares by the Lord's parousia in 1874 and
the harvest work then begun. D612
Would not have suffered -- Whatever knowledge Satan has of the divine times and
seasons and arrangements, he is prompt to use in opposing the divine plan. D611
In what way Satan would have
managed his affairs differently if he had known sooner more about the divine
plan we can only surmise. D612
To be broken up -- Had Satan understood the divine plan he would have tried to
make it very difficult for it to be carried out. Q621:2; D612
His "house," present
institutions, will suffer complete collapse. D612
There would not be such a breaking
up in earth's affairs as is now impending; the Kingdom would be established,
but not in the way in which God designed. R4706:6
Slowly and surely the "strong
man" is bound in his own house by the stronger one now present. R842:1
Matthew 24:44
Therefore -- Now that you know prophetically that Satan will be caught
unawares. D612
Be always watchful for the
evidences of my parousia, because the time will come when it will be very
important to know that fact. B19, 163
Ye also -- Believers, the Lord's faithful. D612
Ready -- Not in a literal ascension robe, but in a figurative
ascension robe--a condition of heart and life ready to welcome the Lord and his
scrutiny of our hearts and conduct. R2303:2
As ye think not -- The time of our Lord's presence could not be known
beforehand, even by the saints; nor was the fact recognized until nearly a year
after October, 1874. D612; R149:5*
Matthew 24:45
Who then -- In the harvest. B163
Few would be found giving to the
household of faith meat in due season at his presence. R718:4
Faithful and wise servant --
Faithful to the "Master" and
to "his fellow-servants" and "the household." D613
God's grace will probably come
through a human channel, through the helpfulness of the fellow-members of the
body of Christ, whom the Lord will make use of in serving the meat to the
household of faith. R2383:4
Ever since the Church has had an
existence, God has raised up some from its midst as special servants of the
body, some who had special teaching ability. R1206:4
God in his own time raises up
suitable servants or expounders to dispense his meat in due season. A319
Servants who are anxious, not only
about the amount of service, but also that it be in exact cooperation with God.
R1797:1
Merely a steward, liable to be
removed at any moment should he fail to fully and duly acknowledge the Master
in every particular. D613
One channel dispensing the meat in
due season, though other channels or fellow-servants will be used in bringing
the food to the household. D613
A special messenger to the Church
at this time. R6023:3*
Some one servant (animate or
inanimate) whom the Lord would specially use in the present time to dispense the
present truth. R1994:3
Originally applied to Pastor
Russell by one who became his bitter enemy. He avoided the discussion which
followed, except for references in Volume 4 and when the passage occurred in
the International Sunday School Lessons. R4482:1, 4473:3, 3811:2
Thousands of readers of Pastor
Russell's writings believe that he filled the office of "that
servant." His modesty precluded him from claiming this title. OV447:6*;
R6011:2*, 4482:1, 2489:4* While this exhortation in general seems to apply to
one particular servant, we can see the same principle would apply to each
servant in turn as he would receive either food or stewardship. R3356:5
Whether you like to call it a
class or individual, whatever it be. Q355:5
Let each reach his own conclusions
and act accordingly. R4483:3, 1946:2; Q644:4
The whole body of Christ,
faithfully carrying out their consecration vows. R291:6, 149:5*
The Lord has used the Watch Tower
Bible and Tract Society as his channel or servant in forwarding the harvest
message in a most remarkable degree. R4483:1, 4562:4*
Hath made ruler -- The Lord promised that, at the time of his presence, he
would bring forth from the storehouse things "new and old," and that
he would select one special channel through which those blessings would be
brought to the household of faith. R4482:4, 2693:6
Has placed over. D613
Sinaitic and Vatican manuscripts
read "shall make." B163
It would be very remarkable if the
Lord should change his channel of sending the truth at this late date. R4483:3
In the interest of the household
and for its comfort, joy and blessing, the Master, at an appropriate time,
would furnish to some one of his servants a key to the precious things of his
Word. R2694:4
No suggestion here of either the
inspiration or infallibility of "that servant." This distinction
belongs only to the Lord, the apostles and the prophets. R1994:3; D613
The Lord, as the overseer of his
work, may today, as in every period, use some special instruments for the
service of the Church as a whole. F274
The Revised Version is preferable:
"set over his household to give them meat" as a "steward,"
not as a lord or master--rather a general servant, or servant of all. R1946:6
Over his household -- His faithful people in general; but not nominal Christian
professors in general. R1946:2 The household of faith. R327:1*, 291:6
In this context we have "that
servant," "fellow-servants" and the "household." The
Lord is indicating a chief servant of the truth and fellow-servants, assisting
in serving meat in due season to the household of faith. R3811:3*, 1994:2,
1946:2
If neither the
"household" nor "fellow-servants" were mentioned, it might
be questionable whether the expression "that servant" referred to one
or to all faithful servants. R1946:2
Each one of the household is to
prove all things he accepts as spiritual food, whether he gets it from the
Bible himself or from that servant or from fellow-servants. R1994:4
To give them -- When and as they are able to receive it. R806:2
Merely a channel for distributing
the truth. His business is not to make truth, but to circulate it. R1994:3
The fact that the messenger has
been gathered into the kingdom should not affect the message, which remains
with the Church to be handed out to others until all have been gathered. R6023:3*
Freely we received, let us freely
give to others the heavenly food--manna. R548:1
Meat in due season -- Spiritual food. OV356:2; R5651:5, 5566:2
Truth as it becomes due, dispensed
by the holy Spirit to the household of faith. B165; A349; OV6:1; SM404:1
Hidden things would be gradually
revealed. OV6:T; Q554:4; R5055:1
For strengthening, upbuilding and
preparing for a share in the Kingdom. R5615:4, 4671:6
The deep things pertaining to the
Messianic age formerly closed up, sealed. R5055:1
To whomsoever has "an ear to
hear." Q554:4 The Lord's bountifully spread table of good things from the
Bible. R4744:5
Dispensed in a manner and to a
degree never before enjoyed by his saints. R5651:5
Can we suppose the Lord would
commend anyone who, by teachings or silence, supports the eternal torment
theory? R2599:1
The message of the Kingdom to the
Church, given at the time the Lord intended it should be given. R6023:3*
The stewardship mentioned is not a
stewardship of talents and opportunities, but a stewardship of spiritual food.
R2694:1
Showing that the revelation of the
"mystery" was to be a gradual one. OV5:4
God's Word is a great treasure
house in which he has hid in past time all knowledge needful to his children in
all ages. R318:2
We are living in a peculiar time
when some of the special features of the Gospel are properly made more
prominent than others. R500:6
The harvest is the richest season
of the year, when the buds of prophecy and promise have developed and are now
bringing forth their golden fruit, and the table of the Lord fairly groans
under its bounty. R1899:2, 1890:1
It would be meat in due season in
Noah's time to know about the flood; but that information would not be meat in
due season today. R5055:4
For those who are weaned from the
milk. R230:5; OV356:3
Things to come, as they become due
to be fulfilled, become meat in due season for the household of faith. A319
Which, of course, would be the
declaring of his presence. R189:2, 149:5*, 123:5
Matthew 24:46
Blessed is that servant -- A steward, the one channel selected by our Lord for
dispensing food to the "household"; faithful both to the
"Master," his "fellow-servants" and "the
household." D613
Humble and unassuming, not
claiming authorship or ownership of the truth, but dispensing it zealously. D613
A certain servant which the Lord
would use at the end of this age. Q355:5
The one whom our Savior has chosen
as our pastor. R5828:4*
If the service be shown to have
been performed, the title of servant is an appropriate one. R4483:2
But it is a place of special
danger as well as of special privilege. R1946:4
And no less blessed is the
faithful household who search the Scriptures daily to see if these things be
so, who prove all things and hold fast to that which is good. R1206:4
Lord when he cometh -- Greek, erchomai, arrives. B163
Greek, ethlon, has come. R141:5
Especially when he is present.
R845:4
Shall find so doing -- Shall find thus employed. D613; R2303:5
Faithfully utilizing every
available talent in his service. R601:4*
Matthew 24:47
He -- While the Lord will be the real Provider and Servant, yet
the food will be dispensed through a steward to fellow-servants and the
household in general. R1946:6
Shall make him ruler -- Will appoint him over. D613
He will be exalted and given
fuller stewardship over the storehouse of truth, with increased ability to
bring it forth to the household. B164
Over all his goods -- The whole storehouse of divine truth shall be open to such
to be ministered by them to others in the household of faith. R1797:1; B163,
165 D613
Matthew 24:48
But and if -- It implies that when the Lord selects a servant, it is upon
condition that he remain in the Lord's favor and in harmony with him; and if he
does not, then thus and so shall follow. Q355:5
If the servant's heart is not
right. B163
A solemn warning to those who are
blessed with being servants against a possible falling away from even such a
blessed condition. R1797:2
That evil servant -- Shall become wicked and, losing faith. D614; R2303:5
That one previously spoken of.
R149:5*
While these are servants, they are
not faithful servants, but are engaged in revelry, eating and drinking with the
world. R593:5
Delayeth his coming -- Has not arrived. B163; Q355:5
Not denying that he will come
sometime, but that he has come. B164
This would not be likely to be
said until some one had said he had come, nor would it delay until after he was
due to come. R555:4*, 237:5*, 149:5*
Evidently the presence is one not
recognized by the natural eye, but by the eye of faith, else there could be no
disagreement between the servants as to the fact of his presence R123:5
His coming in the glory of his
Kingdom, his personal coming being already recognized. R1797:4
Matthew 24:49
Begin to smite -- Oppose and contradict. B163
It does not say that it will be so,
but "And if he should." Q355:5
A disposition to tyrannize the
household, arrogancy. R2694:1, 2303:5, 1797:4
Because they declare his presence.
R555:4*, 189:2
We love fellow-servants too much
to wish to smite them, and we trust that we are too wise to allow the Adversary
to draw us aside to squabble with the enemies of the truth and thus hinder the
more important work of scattering the truth. R4194:3
His fellowservants -- Those who are faithfully declaring that the Lord is
present. B163
Co-laborers. R4482:1
It is not the special servant
alone that will have to do with the dispensing of the food for the household.
R2694:1
The ones smitten evidently are
taking the opposite ground, namely, that the Bridegroom does not delay, but is
present. R123:5
Service is their only
commission, not lordship or self-appointment. R1994:4 Eat and drink -- Imbibe more and more of the spirit of the world, the spirit
of selfishness, and become intoxicated with it. R1797:4, 292:1
With the drunken -- Become intoxicated with false doctrine. D614; B164
Become intemperate in words and
deeds. R2303:5
Matthew 24:50
Shall come -- Greek, heko, will have arrived, be here. "Will have
come"--Rotherham. B164; R555:4*, 591:4*
Looketh not for him -- Is not aware. B164
Matthew 24:51
Cut him asunder -- Cut him off from being one of the servants privileged to
hand meat in due season to the household. B164; D613, 614
Separate him from the real Body.
R920:5
Be gradually separated and drawn
into closer and closer sympathy with the mere professors or hypocrites. B164
It is inferable that such an one,
being deposed from stewardship, another would take his place, subject to
similar terms and conditions as to faithfulness. R2694:1, 1946:4; D613
His portion -- Share with the world the great time of trouble which will
follow the gathering together of the Lord's elect. R2303:5, 1797:5
With the hypocrites -- Though not a hypocrite, he must, because unfaithful and
overcharged, have his portion with the hypocrites. B164; R2303:5, 983:6, 920:5
The Great Company are not
hypocrites, but since the time of trouble is properly for hypocrites, they will
have their portion with them. R4655:1, 1470:2, 593:5, 173:1
Those who are not faithful enough
to get into the Little Flock will come into this condemnation with the world.
R5256:4
Have a severe experience with the
unbelievers in the time of trouble. R2694:1
Weeping and gnashing -- Sorrow and disappointment. CR253:3
The perplexity and trouble coming
upon Babylon. B164
Matthew 25
Matthew 25:1
Then -- Indicating that it was not applicable at once, in the
Lord's day, but sometime in the future. C91; HG94:3
Following the sign of the falling
stars. D588, 590
Down at the close of this age.
CR252:6; R5522:3, 5137:4, 3867:3
Shortly before the establishment
of the Kingdom. R5150:2
At the time of the Millerite
movement in 1844, typified by the visit of the wise men to Bethlehem, and
since. (Matt. 2:1-16) B247; C91; R5522:6, 288:3; NS10:2, 36:3
This parable is not applicable at
all times and under all conditions. R5522:3, 4692:3, 3867:3
The subject of this parable is the
continuation of the subject of Matt. 24, the divisions of the chapter being
only the work of the printer. HG95:2
Taken in connection with the
preceding chapter, it is fixed as belonging to the last generation of the church
living when the Lord comes. R87:5; HG95:5
Emphatic by position. R5866:1*
Kingdom of heaven -- In its embryotic condition. C91
The Church--the entire ten
virgins. R4654:5, 87:5
Be likened unto -- This parable shows that in the end of this age is a separation
or division in the true Church of Christ. R5522:3, 2541:6
The object of this parable is
twofold: first, the necessity for alertness; second, to show that it is not
sufficient to hope and pray for the Kingdom, but the wisest possible
preparations must be made for it. R3868:2
Ten virgins -- Pure ones, "holy people," lovers of the
Bridegroom, longing to meet him. C91; CR348:1; R4692:3, 87:5
Separate from the world,
uncontaminated. R5522:6
Only those who have been justified
by faith and consecration, because by nature none are pure, none are virgins.
R4692:3, 5522:3, 5865:3
Applies only to the true Church,
the virgin class, not even to the nominal church. R4692:3, 3868:1, 2763:2
For a time these will be all
together, unseparated. R4692:3
No mention is made of the bride,
but all of the wise virgins are mentioned as those for whom the Bridegroom
comes. C191
While there have been virgins all
through the age, this parable refers only to the virgins at the close of this
age. R110:3; R58:2*
Took their lamps -- The Bible. "Thy Word is a lamp unto my feet."
(Psa. 119:105) R5523:2, 87:5; C92, 191; HG95:5
All the virgins had the Bible and
some light therefrom. R5523:2 R3868:1
Not until the nineteenth century
has the lamp been in the hands of the virgins. Prior to 1798 it was clothed in
the sackcloth of a dead language. R87:5
Went forth -- Many of all denominations believed in the message that the
second coming of Christ was at hand and went forth to meet him. R5522:6
For some 14 years prior to 1844 a
cry had gone forth throughout the Church that the time of the second coming of
Christ was at hand. R5522:6
Corresponds exactly to the Miller
movement, which is still (1890) in progress. C91; HG95:5
A movement in the same
geographical area, New England and the Middle States, where the literal
"sign" of the "dark day" (Matt. 24:29) occurred on May 19,
1780. D588
Aroused, in part, by the great
Meteorite Shower of Nov. 13, 1883, as applied to Matt. 24:29. D590
This movement, the Adventist
movement, was to end in the bitterness of disappointment; the other, the
"midnight cry" movement of verse 6, was to end in success. HG79:3,
95:1
The movement is a representative
one. Not all the church went forth, but it was an important movement in the
church, and ended in the disappointment of 1844. R39:4*; HG70:1
In going, they walked by faith and
not by sight. R88:1
The bridegroom -- Jesus, personally, is the Bridegroom, and not Jesus and the
overcomers. R398:4
Christ, who is "afar
off," and is now entering into a covenant with those who would be members
of his bride class. R5522:3
Matthew 25:2
Five of them were wise -- The little flock, the fully consecrated. C93, 94; F75
In addition to purity,
watchfulness and zeal are essential. R5522:6
They will understand features of
the divine plan previously kept secret. R5150:2
The wise were those who heard and
obeyed the cry. R40:5*
Full of faith, fervent love and
the spirit of prompt obedience. C190
The fifth chapter of the Song of
Solomon gives even fuller suggestions respecting these two classes. R4249:3*
The numbers are not significant,
neither are the proportions. C91
Five were foolish -- The Great Company class. C94; R5656:2
Lacking love and zeal, they are
overcharged with the cares and plans of the present life. R5656:2, 4078:5,
1952:1; C194
In that they permitted the things
of the present life to balance against the things of the life to come. R5865:3
Allowing their first love and
fervency of spirit to cool, and their faith and promptness of obedience
consequently to abate. C190
Probably in very large number all
around us. R5134:4
In that they lived carelessly. F75
Have been in the household of
faith, but not overcomers. R1952:4
Not all the virgins will be
acceptable as members of the bride. R5522:6
In addition to purity, a certain
amount of watchful zeal will be required. R5522:6
The foolish were those who heard
the cry and, for want of sufficient light, could not obey the cry. R40:5*
Some were actuated by excitement
and carried along with the occasion. R88:1
Their cause of failure--idleness.
R4079:4*
In the end of this age a division
will take place in the true Church. R5522:3
They will wash their soiled robes
during the great tribulation. R5545:1
But they are still virgins in the
parable, not corrupt or lovers of sin. R4078:5
Matthew 25:3
Took no oil -- The spirit of the truth. C92
The wisdom, the understanding of
the divine Word. R4693:1
One class had the spirit in their
hearts as well as light in the Word, oil in their vessels and in their lamps;
others had only the light of the Word, oil in the lamp. R288:3
Matthew 25:4
But the wise -- "None of the wicked shall understand; but the wise
shall understand." (Dan. 12:10) OV268:3
Took oil -- The holy Spirit of truth, of consecration and obedience.
C94, 194, 191; R5523:2, 4693:5, 4654:6; CR253:3
In their vessels -- In themselves, in their hearts. C92, 191; R5523:2
Only those having a good supply of
the spirit of truth will be able to hold out. R5523:2
Matthew 25:5
Bridegroom tarried -- Seemed to the expectant ones to tarry. C92
The Millerite movement culminated
in a disappointment in 1844. R5522:6
The Church is betrothed to the
Bridegroom, Christ, when "afar off" during this Gospel age. R5522:3
The 30 years of tarrying between
1844 and 1874 was the exact parallel to the 30 years of tarrying at the first advent,
from the visit of the wise men until Jesus was anointed at Jordan. R289:4,
88:2, 38:2*
The delay of the Bridegroom serves
as a test to the virgins invited to go in to the marriage, proving who are the
wise and who are the foolish. R3868:3
Slumbered and slept -- Many of them dreamed strange, unreasonable things. C92;
CR253:2; R5522:6, 3868:3, 88:1
A general stupor, uncertainty and
drowsiness came over all. R5522:6, 3868:3
During which time the lamps were
measurably neglected. R3868:3
Were in darkness. HG95:6
Corresponding to Elijah's sleep
under the juniper tree (1 Kings 19:5,6); covering the period of 1844 to 1874.
R4211:6*
Matthew 25:6
At midnight -- At a fixed hour the Bridegroom set out for the bride; at
midnight the Bridegroom came. C191; R5522:6
When the knock of prophecy was
heard announcing the Lord's presence in the autumn of 1874, almost immediately
it began to be recognized. C190, 93
Or, during the night. The Greek
word is not definite like ours. R88:1
The call was made before morning.
R88:1
His presence makes it morning. The
cry, made at midnight in the parable, points to the morning of the parable.
R39:5*
Very early in the morning of the
new age; but it was the midnight hour so far as the deep slumbering of the
virgins was concerned. C93
The movement, proving that Christ
was due in 1874, began 15 years after 1844, the mid-point between 1844 and
1874. HG96:2
There was a cry -- Which sounded forth in 1874, just 30 years after the Miller
disappointment. R5522:6, 3868:3
This cry still goes forth and will
continue until all the consecrated virgin class have heard and have had their
faith and loyalty tested by it. C191
So loud that all of the virgins
will hear it, even though the world will have no knowledge of it. R4693:4,
3869:5
As there was a proclamation of
Jesus in the flesh as King, so there must be correspondingly a proclamation of
Jesus, the new creature, as King of glory. R2645:3
Implying that something from the
prophetic word at the appropriate time will call the attention of all the virgin
class to the presence of Messiah. R4692:6
Appropriately, the monthly paper,
"The Midnight Cry," attracted general attention with a circulation of
up to 15,000. This was more than the combined total of all the other papers
devoted to the subject of the Second Advent. R88:2
The name "Midnight Cry"
then disappeared from the publication because, as stated at the time, it had
done its work. R39:6*
As long as the cry goes forth
there will be opportunity to hear it. All of the virgin class must hear it.
R5523:2, 4692:6
Behold the bridegroom -- Not cometh; but behold, he is present, he has come.
CR253:2; Q73:2; R5523:2, 3869:4, 149:1*
Not in the flesh; he is never to
come in the flesh again. R5522:6
Christ came in the character of a
Bridegroom in 1874. R39:6*
All the virgins will hear this
message. R5523:2
This message of the Bridegroom's
presence will cause the separation which will test and prove each individual of
the virgin class. C192
The revelation of Christ to the
world will be subsequent to his revelation of himself to the wise virgin class.
R5523:1
And the further announcement,
"Thy God reigneth." (Isa. 52:7) R2645:3
Cometh -- Omit, not in the oldest Greek manuscripts. C93
Go ye out -- Taking their lamps and following the Bridegroom,
representing leaving all else to follow Christ in this time of his presence;
equivalent to leaving Babylon, where the virgins had mainly been. C194
This movement finds exact
parallels with Elijah's movements from leaving Gilgal until he crosses Jordan.
(2 Kings 2:1-8) HG69:6
Matthew 25:7
All those virgins -- Not the world nor the nominal church in general. C192
While all will be aroused, only
those will be led out who have the spirit of the truth in their hearts as well
as a knowledge of the Bible--a trimmed lamp. C92
Arose -- All the virgins were to be aware of his presence after he
had come. Even the foolish virgins know of the Bridegroom's presence. R5523:5
It is but a kindness on the part
of the virgins who are awake that they shake and otherwise attempt to arouse
the sleeping virgins. R2763:6
Trimmed their lamps -- Searched the Scriptures. C92; R5523:2, 3869:4; PD92/107
Trim away every vestige of error
as fast as it becomes apparent to us so that the pure light of truth may shine
out through the medium of a clear and transparent character. R3243:3
Our work in the present time is
not only to proclaim the Bridegroom's presence, but to assist those who have
the oil in their vessels to trim their lamps. R3869:5
Have clearer enlightenments from
the Word of God. R4654:6
Matthew 25:8
The foolish said -- The parable is a progressive one. One might fall out from
the wise and become foolish. Q230:1
The foolish were the first to know
and confess their lack. R116:2
Give us of your oil -- Your spirit of consecration. C94
There is only one way to get the
holy Spirit, that is from the Lord and on his own terms. We need to look well
to our covenant with the Lord and our zeal for him and the truth. R5523:2
We wish we could be as earnest at
Bible study as you are. R5523:2
Tell us how you know these things,
why you feel so sure about them. R3868:6
Lamps are gone out -- We are not able to appreciate and apply the Scriptural
prophecies relative to Christ's second coming. R5523:2; C93
They fail to get clear light on
the subject of the Bridegroom's presence. C194; R4693:1
Though all the virgin class trim
their lamps, all cannot see. Only those who have oil, the fully consecrated,
can get the light from their lamps and appreciate the facts. C93
The disappointment of 1844 cast
reproach on the subject of time; and the prudent reached the worldly-wise
conclusion that, having been disappointed once, they would be more prudent in
the future and not expose themselves to contempt. R289:1
"None of the wicked shall
understand, but the wise shall understand." (Dan. 12:10) Cii; HG316:4
Matthew 25:9
But the wise -- They will not be in darkness that that day shall overtake
them as a thief. (2 Thess. 5:4) Q230:1
Saying, Not so -- The spirit of consecration, and its attendant light, cannot
be communicated from one virgin to another. C94
One person could no more
consecrate himself for another person than he could transfer either his natural
or his spiritual life to another person. HG733:3
Not enough for us -- None can secure too great a supply of the holy Spirit.
R3868:5
Not an ungenerous spirit; it was
just that they had none too much themselves. R5523:4
Go ye rather -- We can do no more than tell them how and where the oil, the
light, must be obtained. We must go on in our personal preparations. R3868:6
To them that sell -- To the market of experience in the great time of trouble.
C94; R1952:1
Go to God who "giveth
liberally." (Jas. 1:5) R5523:4
Buy for yourselves -- Each virgin must buy for herself. R88:4; C94
The fruits and graces of the holy
Spirit cannot be had for the asking; they must be bought in the market place of
experience. R3868:5
There is only one way to obtain
the light, and that is through a patient, persevering study of the divine Word
under the guidance of the holy Spirit. R3868:6
In order to receive a fresh supply
of oil we need to look well to our covenant with the Lord and to our zeal for
him and the truth. R5523:3
It will cost some of them
considerable self- sacrifice and humiliation to learn their lessons. R4693:1;
C94
This costs something of time and
study, and of neglect of the things of this life. R5523:4
The waking up of the Great Company
to go out and purchase the oil is the latter part of the harvest work. R5761:2
Matthew 25:10
They went to buy -- If it is not already too late to go to buy the oil, it soon
will be. R3869:5
Bridegroom came -- Any who did not know of the presence would lack evidence
that he belonged to the bride class. R5523:5
All the virgins were to be aware
of his presence after he had come. R5523:5
Went in -- The entering in to the marriage began in 1878 and still
continues. R3868:6
One after another, passing beyond
the veil. R5523:4, 3868:6
The dead by resurrection, and the
living by translation or change. R181:2*
Braving opposition, hostility and
darkness of night, through which they must pass to go with their beloved
Bridegroom to his house and enter in. R4654:5
A going in to a condition rather
than a place; implying a withdrawing from the world and a coming into a
condition of special preparation for the marriage. R88:4
As the "going forth"
(verse 1) and the "going out" (verse 6) were not literal, but acts of
faith; so also the "going in"--the virgins are guests by faith, by
being in light at a certain stage of development. R40:1*
The going in, like all other
features of the parable, is a work of time, which we understand has been in
progress since 1874. R289:5
Beautifully illustrated by the
happy bridal procession which escorted the Jewish bride to her husband's home
with music, lighted lamps and every demonstration of joy. C196
After the going in comes the
inspection of the guests, followed by a casting out of one at least who has not
"the wedding garment." (Matt. 22:1-14) R40:5*
To the marriage -- "To the nuptial feasts." (Diaglott). R87:1; C191
And the door -- To the marriage feast; not the door of mercy, but the door
to the high calling. C195; R4693:1, 4654:5; NS319:6
All opportunity to become of the
wise virgin class by engaging in the harvest work. C210, 213, 221; R1952:1
The door to the Bride class.
Q738:2
The door through which the Bride
class shall enter and the door to service should be kept separate. Q75:1
Not the door of hope, either to
the foolish virgins of Christendom, nor to the heathen world. NS295:4
Though the call has ceased, the
door is not yet shut. The call and the door are distinct and separate. R1112:2
Was shut -- The closing of the narrow way of this Gospel age. NS195:4
"I am he that shutteth and no
man openeth." (Rev. 3:7) C195
We should lose no time dreaming
that the door is shut. R5633:5
Evidently the door is not yet
shut, but who can say how soon. Cii; R5068:6
Not yet closed, but stands ajar to
permit replacement of lost crowns. Q150:6; R1113:1
Will be forever closed when the
full predestinated number of the Bride of Christ has been found faithful.
R1951:6, 5523:4, 1112:6; Q73:2; C210, 221, 195; NS319:6, 804:1
The door will close because the
full number elected will have attained the necessary character-likeness to
Christ and will have stood the necessary testings. R4693:2, 3869:1; Q73:2,
230:1
Marking the full end of all
opportunity for even the called ones thereafter to attain the prize of the high
calling. C213
The choicest blessings of all time
will soon be won or lost. SM258:2
No one else will ever be of the
Bride class. CR253:3
Not merely is the world shut out,
but the foolish virgins also. R4654:5
After the door is shut there will
be no more begetting to the spirit nature. R5761:4
When that time comes there will be
a corresponding suppression of truth by the nominal church. R3532:4, 1448:4
The door merely shuts in the
Kingdom class, the Little Flock; God has other blessings for those outside.
R5523:4 This does not mean that the foolish virgins will be consigned to
eternal torment. F75; R5523:4
The deliverance of the last member
of the Body will follow shortly after this. C231; R5776:6
It is not ours to say which,
individually, are shut out; but we believe that none were shut out who, up to
that time, had made an entire consecration to God. R289:6
Matthew 25:11
Afterward -- After they get the oil and recognize that the end of the
age has come. R5523:5, 1952:1
After the door is shut, but
apparently before the marriage takes place. R290:4
Christ harvests the earth before
he makes open manifestation of his presence. HG25:3
Came also -- They had gotten the experience, development, knowledge and
the light, and they came. Q74:T
Having gotten a clearer
enlightenment from the Word of God. R4654:6
Their knowledge of the presence of
the Lord came not from the light shining from the light of prophecy, but rather
from the judgments upon the nominal church. R290:4
The other virgins -- Although foolish, still virgins, not impure. CR348:1;
R4693:2, 4078:5
Made wise by getting the oil they
previously lacked. NS320:1
Saying, Lord, Lord -- Knocking at the door in prayer. R5523:5
Open to us -- We desire also to be of the Bride class. R4654:6
Matthew 25:12
I know you not -- As the Bride class; but they all belong to the company of
virgins, the Bride's companions who follow after her. R5865:4
I do not recognize you; my Bride
is complete. R5383:6, 5523:5, 4693:4, 4654:6, 3869:1; Q739:T
They lost the great prize. R4693:5
They will then realize they have
failed to make their calling and election sure. R1952:1
All outsiders are treated as
strangers, as unknown. R1951:6
There is nothing in the parable to
indicate that the foolish virgins will be aware of their foolishness until the
opportunity of going into the feast has passed by. C194
Matthew 25:13
Watch therefore -- How absurd it would be to tell them to watch for a thing,
and in the same breath assure them that the watching would be useless because
none would ever know! R2763:5
The virgins alone, not the world,
are called upon to watch and wait for the Lord from heaven, the Bridegroom.
R2763:6
Because, if watching faithfully,
they will know of his second coming. It will be distinctly announced. R2763:6
The watching suggested by our Lord
refers to the time prior to the presence. R3869:5
Ye know neither -- Although the time of the Master's coming could not be known
in the past, nevertheless it would be known to all the virgin class in due
time. R4693:4
Wherein the Son -- These words, to the end of the verse, are not in any of the
oldest Greek manuscripts. R3869:2
Matthew 25:14
Kingdom of heaven -- The Revised Version notes that these words are not found in
the ancient manuscripts, but it is the kingdom of heaven in embryo, the church,
that is discussed. R2764:2
Is as -- We are not to confound the parable of the pounds with the
parable of the talents. They teach different lessons. R5492:2, 2764:1
The parable of the pounds and the
parable of the talents are companion parables, illustrating from different
standpoints the responsibilities of the stewardship of God's people. R1972:3
A talent is sixty times as
valuable as a pound. In the parable of the pounds, each got one pound; but in
this parable the number given varied. R4693:3, 3869:3; HG665:2
This parable illustrates the
fruits of labor. The ratio of increase is the same with both of the faithful
servants, and the same approval is expressed to each. R1973:4
Illustrating the different
abilities of God's people, their accountability according to ability, and that
the same results are not required of all, but simply faithfulness by each in
the use of what he possesses. R2764:1, 1973:4
A man -- The Lord Jesus. R4693:3, 2764:2, 5386:1 Into a far country
-- Heaven itself. R2764:2, 5018:3, 4693:3; CR306:5; SM508:2
For investiture in authority to be
the great King of earth. HG439:1; Q91:4; SM693:2; NS678:2
To appear in the presence of God
to present on behalf of mankind the sacrifice for sins and, incidentally, to be
crowned, highly exalted and honored. R2764:2
Gives the thought of a
considerable time to elapse between the Master's leaving and his return.
R2764:2, 1972:6
His own servants -- Not the world in general, only the consecrated; not even
the general household of faith. R2764:3, 4693:5, 3870:1, 3696:1, 1281:5; F662;
SM508:2
All who would become his disciples
throughout the Gospel age down to his second advent. R4659:3; R5386:1; SM629:2,
508:2
They had all engaged to serve him,
and he had a right to expect of them a sincere and faithful interest in the
work. R3696:1, 1281:5
Addressing those who will be alive
at his second advent, and speaking as if they were the representatives of all
his faithful followers throughout the Gospel age. SM629:2
A number of servants is implied,
yet only a sample illustration of three is given as representative of the
whole. R2764:2
Unto them his goods -- Upon consecration, he appoints us his stewards over the
things we have--our all--time, influence, talents. R5386:1; SM508:2; PD59/70
Certain blessings, privileges,
opportunities. R4693:3
All of his interests and affairs.
R2764:3
Entrusting various stewardships of
wealth, influence, talent and opportunity. F419
In the day of reckoning the Lord
will ignore the affairs of our lives which preceded our consecration, and
merely judge us according to our use or misuse of our consecrated time,
influence, talents, etc. R3870:2
Matthew 25:15
And unto one -- Each is a steward and should individually, not
collectively, as a commune, manage his own affairs and render his own account.
D480; R1862:5
Gave five talents -- Can be viewed from two standpoints, both true: our natural
talents or our spiritual qualities; or the two views can be combined. R3870:4-6
What are these talents? The very
talents which we possessed before consecration, and which, in consecration, we
laid down at the Lord's feet. SM510:1
All those things and opportunities
which are over and above what we need for the necessary and reasonable
maintenance of ourselves or our families. R3696:4, 1282:2
Natural gifts, consecrated to the
Lord and accepted by him as being owned by the man's new nature. R2764:5
Represents our opportunities for
service according to our several abilities. R5386:2, 5932:1, 4660:4, 4659:6;
Q536:3; SM629:2
Some might have a talent for
private conversation, another for public service, another for writing. Q536:3
Wealth, influence, intellectual
power, education, public utterance, time, opportunities. SM509:1, 509:1;
R3870:4, 4660:1
About $6000, a talent being
equivalent to $1200. SM509:1
There are not many five-talented
people in the world; the world, the flesh and the devil bid so high for their
services that most of those who become the Lord's people are of the lower
classes. R2764:5
In some respects all God's people
have one common footing, as represented by the pound. In another respect their
opportunities, privileges and advantages vary, as represented by the talents.
R4693:3
"The manifestation of the Spirit
[a portion, at least one talent] is given to every man [in this consecrated
Church] to profit withal." (1 Cor. 12:7) R2764:3
The more talents possessed, the
greater the responsibility. R4660:4
The man with the five talents
would have more difficulty in keeping them fully employed, fully devoted and
fully separated from worldly ambitions than would the man who had fewer.
R4660:4
The man of five talents would have
the danger of being puffed up, heady and high-minded. R4660:1
If we assume that Adam, as a
perfect man, had ten talents, it would be quite appropriate to say that not one
of his posterity today has more than five talents, and the majority much
less--two talents or one. R3870:3
A talent represented 3000 shekels
of silver. There were great shekels and small. In our money, $1000 or $2000.
R3870:3
To another two -- Would have a natural advantage, he would be neither so
likely to be discouraged nor to be puffed up. R4660:1
Those consecrated with no families
and a reasonable degree of health have at least two talents--time and health.
R3696:3, 1282:1
"Give me neither poverty nor
riches." (Prov. 30:8) R4660:1
To another one -- Many of small talents increase them by use and become quite
proficient in the truth. R4659:6
The man with the one talent has,
in some ways, a better opportunity for making his calling and election sure.
R4660:1
The majority of the consecrated
have possessed only one talent. SM510:2; R2764:5
To every man -- Every one in the Body of Christ has some talent, some
ability and opportunity for service. R4659:3, 3696:1, 1281:5
Some fear that they have no
talents useful and needful to the service of the body; and some, possessing
several talents, use and seek to cultivate the lowest of these rather than the
highest. R733:4
His several ability -- "God hath set the members in the body." (1 Cor.
12:18) F295
Our varied conditions of mind,
body and opportunity. Q536:3
"If there be first a willing
mind it is accepted according to what a man hath, and not according to what he
hath not." (2 Cor. 8:12) R1973:4
Opportunities for the service of
God along the lines of such abilities as we possess--education, influence,
money, good health, time, tact or genius. R1972:6
The duty and privilege of every
member of the body is to soberly and honestly judge of his abilities, neither
in pride overrating them, nor in false humility underrating them. R733:4
Some in one service and some in
another. F295
Some who are not platform speakers
are excellent otherwise, "apt to teach," and should be appreciated
and used in Bible class talks. R1848:2
We, today, have special
opportunities and privileges for ministering the truth to others. Our
responsibility is correspondingly large, and our faith, love and zeal should be
correspondingly shown. R2141:6
Communism is not the Lord's
arrangement. D480
Matthew 25:16
The five talents -- Seeking to use every one of these as fully, as thoroughly
and as constantly as possible. R2764:6
And traded -- Used them in preaching, teaching, etc. R4693:3
Possessions or personal
qualifications are to be released from the service of worldly ambition, not for
aimless inactivity, but to be utilized in an opposite direction, in the service
of God. R1281:4
Left free to exercise his best
abilities. So, too, we are not specially hampered by directions as to how we
shall use our consecrated talents and opportunities. R3870:4
It is a steward's place to seek
and find places where he can dispose of the talents and moneys consecrated to
the Lord, to find best advantage, as his sanctified judgment, under the guidance
of the Lord's Word, may dictate. R855:4
It is a part of our privilege and
duty to study how we may best invest our talents in order to secure the largest
results; just as necessary in investing for the Lord as in investing money for
financial profit. R935:2*
With the same -- With all his talents, not part of them. As a rule, people
are either hot or cold in spiritual things. R2765:5
Some with five talents may use
three faithfully and bury the other two in business, but we question the
probability of this happening. R2765:4
Made them other five -- He expected no more than they were severally able to
accomplish, rightly expecting larger returns from the one who had five talents
than from those who had one or two talents. R3696:1, 1281:5
Five-talent people amongst the
Lord's servants are not to measure themselves with others and to say, I have
done enough. R2764:5
The servant who has five talents
and uses them faithfully, and doubles them, accomplishes a greater work than
the servant who, having one talent, uses it faithfully and doubles it. R2729:1
But proportionately as many of the
two-talented and five-talented dig in the earth and hide their talents as those
who possess only one. R2765:1
Matthew 25:17
Gained other two -- While this parable should be a check on the five-talented
to not be slothful, it is an encouragement to the two-talented, showing that
the Lord will not expect as much from them. R2764:6
Matthew 25:18
That had received one -- Not that one-talented people are more likely to neglect and
misuse the talents, but to show the responsibility to those who have least that
they, too, must be faithful. R2764:6
In the earth -- The opportunities and abilities consecrated to the Lord are
being buried in earthly interests, earthly affairs. SM512:2
In the service of self and mammon.
R1973:5
Or in a billiard parlor, or in
business, or in pride and show. R1942:5
Burying the talents in business,
pleasure or sloth; thus showing lack of love and appreciation, and consequently
unworthiness of the Kingdom. F419
Are your money or business talents
largely swallowed up in a superabundance of the good things of this life for
either self or family? R1282:2
And hid -- Perhaps under cares and responsibilities. R4693:3
By wasting consecrated time upon
science, philosophy, music or art; or upon business, politics or pleasure; or
in pampering pride or appetite. R1282:5
Had the servant with the one
talent been as faithful as the others, he would have received the very same
commendation. R1281:5
Matthew 25:19
After a long time -- In the end of the Gospel age, at the Lord's second advent.
SM511:2; F419; R5386:1, 4693:3, 4659:3
They were not to expect him to
return in a very few days, a few months or a few years. R2765:1
It was doubtless best every way
that the exact time for the ending of the Gospel age and the beginning of the
Millennial age not be made known until the time of the reckoning. R3870:6
The lord -- We are not to be judged by human judgment, but by him who
called us and drew us to himself. CR132:4
Of those servants -- Christendom: social and ecclesiastical. D599
The Church. Q313:2
Cometh -- At our Lord's second advent. SM511:2
To take possession of his Kingdom.
SM693:2
Manifestly prior to any outward
manifestation of the King in his glory, because the worthy ones are to share
with the Master in his glorious manifestation. R4693:6
Reckoneth with them -- Even before his enemies are conquered. C133; F419, 662
During the harvest period the Lord
has been judging amongst his people. R5566:4
His first work is with the Church:
"Judgment must begin with the house of God." (1 Pet. 4:17) SM511:2;
R5566:4, 3870:2, 1973:1; C133; D599; F419, 662; Q91:4
We, the Church, "must all
appear before the judgment seat [tribunal] of Christ." (2 Cor. 5:10) F418
He will judge us according to the
spirit, our minds, our intentions, our efforts. CR132:4
This period of reckoning began in
1878 with the raising of the sleeping saints, and still continues. R3871:1,
2765:3
The reckoning was to begin with
those servants who had fallen asleep. R2765:2
In the "harvest" or
reckoning time. R1078:3
As individuals, and not by groups
or classes. R1973:1
This work of judging the servants
is totally distinct from the judging of the world. R2765:3
There is no intimation that the
disciples would die and go to their Lord to be reckoned with and rewarded.
R2765:2
God, who is no respecter of
persons, requires faithfulness on the part of female as well as male stewards
in the use of all their talents. R1549:4, 1105:5*
Matthew 25:20
I have gained -- Not all who have five talents use them wisely and
effectively. R3871:1
Matthew 25:21
His lord said -- In the first resurrection. NS137:1
Unto him -- He who had been faithful with five talents was to have a
special commendation, while the other faithful ones, who had a lesser number of
talents, were to be dealt with proportionately. F725
Well done -- The verdict if you overcome. R5108:6, 2461:3
Approval suggests the thought of
having measured up to some standard. Here, the standard is the Word, the
standard of the Lord's own character, which is right and true and good.
R4242:1*
Let each keep patiently and
perseveringly on in the way of self-denial until his course is finished.
R2474:6
Faithful servant -- Those who at heart are overcomers. CR132:4; SM512:1
Hast been faithful -- Gladly spent themselves zealously in the service of the
Lord; faithful unto death. R5492:6, 5914:4
In proportion as one confesses his
faith, that same faith grows, and the blessings and privileges connected with
it grow. R3768:6
In no case have we seen one drift
from the truth into the snares of these perilous times who was very active and
fully enlisted in the Lord's work. R1282:5
Over a few things -- The Lord's method is to advance only him whose zeal,
faithfulness and patient perseverance in well doing has shown itself in little
things. F296; SM284:2
Faithful to the covenant of
self-sacrifice. NS327:3
Not very many; it is all trifling
from God's standpoint, but he looks at the spirit. CR395:5, 309:4, 300:4;
Q533:2
Our talents and opportunities of
the present time are few and small. HG658:5
There is plenty of room at the
bottom of the ladder of honor. F296
You have used the favorable
opportunities which showed the intentions of your heart. CR300:5
Make thee ruler -- Sharing the great honor with the Master of ruling the
world. Q533:2; CR292:3, 255:1
This giving of the dominion to his
faithful servants signified their sharing with him in his kingdom at the time
of its establishment at his second coming. HG439:2; NS678:2
His assistants in the great
Millennial work of teaching and helping the world in their great fight. NS618:5
With the end of the Millennium,
the time for all such ruling will be at an end; hence the parable is a strong
lesson in support of the pre-Millennial coming of our Lord. R2765:6
Ruler over what? Some say
everything is to be destroyed. Not so! The world will be to rule over, to be
brought into harmony with God. HG147:2
Over many things -- Faithfulness in using the few talents of the present will
bring great opportunities for blessing the world in the next age. PD59/70;
OV190:2; Q533:2; CR292:3, 254:6; R3871:2
The service of the present life is
but an insignificant one in comparison to the glorious service which awaits the
Lord's faithful people in the future. R4693:6
How abundantly the Lord rewards
all of our little efforts in the service of truth and righteousness, whatever
our talents, few or many. R3871:2
Such noble characters as Peter,
Paul, John and others, zealous in the service of the Lord, will have the
highest rewards. R5492:6
Enter thou into -- Each one, as soon as examined, is caused to "enter
into the joys of his Lord," before he receives the dominion promised. C133
The joy of thy Lord -- A clear view of the coming Kingdom and glory and the great
work of the Millennial day. C134
The Kingdom joys. R5396:6
The first resurrection change.
CR254:6; R3871:2, 3788:6
A share in his favor. R3871:2
Not merely enter into joys, but
shall share the joys of his Lord. R795:6
The throne of his glory. NS180:1
The joys of the Kingdom and its
work of blessing and uplifting the lost race in Adam. NS343:4
The reward was the same in each
case, meaning that the cup of joy to each will be full. R2765:5
Matthew 25:23
Well done -- All faithful ones will receive a blessing; nevertheless,
those who have been most earnest, most zealous, most devoted, will be the
nearer to the Master in his throne. NS608:5
Some have less ability and some
more, but the Lord's approval will be in proportion as we have endeavored to
accomplish his will. SM257:1
Faithful servant -- This was said of both the five-talented and the
two-talented. CR254:5; R3871:2; Q500:4
Over a few things -- Only a few things are committed to any of us, and the Lord
is seeking merely to note our disposition and to reward us accordingly. CR17:5
From the Lord's standpoint, all of
the affairs of this present life are little in comparison with the future
things. R2494:1
General faithfulness to principle,
even in small things, gives evidence of the disposition and character which may
be entrusted with the great responsibilities of the Kingdom. R2494:1
Make thee ruler -- Everyone who is faithful would get the same general reward.
Q536:3
Joy of thy Lord -- These have an equally good opportunity of entering into the
joys of the Lord as they that had five or ten talents. R2765:6
Matthew 25:24
Received the one -- Having become a consecrated believer in the Lord, he had
received a talent of privilege or opportunity in the Master's service which he
neglected to use. SM508:T
Not only the great talents, large
abilities, opportunities or means, are noted by the Lord, but also the small
things are never overlooked by him. R2157:5
Applicable to the larger
proportion of his people, for not many wise, learned, rich or noble according
to the course of this world, but rather the poor, rich in faith, hath God
chosen. (1 Cor. 1:26-28) SM511:1
It is possible for the person
having the one talent to be faithful, and equally possible for those having two
or more talents to be unfaithful. SM510:2
I knew thee -- Cause of failure--presumptuousness. R4079:5*
Thou art an hard man -- The failure of the wicked servant was due to his lack of
love. R2766:1
Those who know God and his plan of
the ages cannot be afraid of the Lord, nor believe him unjust. R21:5*
His heart was filled with fear
instead of love for the Lord; for he thought of his Lord as unjust, hard,
unmerciful, unloving, exacting. He had a bad theology. SM512:2; R633:3*
Many, who having taken upon
themselves the vows of consecration and subsequently failing to perform them,
are disposed to blame the Lord rather than blame themselves. R2766:1
Matthew 25:25
I was afraid -- One difficulty with many of us in the past has been fear of
the Master. R4694:1
Hid thy talent -- Representing those who violate their consecration vow, to
do and serve, to use, to spend and be spent in the Master's service. R3871:3
If one fails to use his
opportunities and privileges, they will be given to another. Q537:1
Would you recommend a man of means
to dispose of his business and go colporteuring, living on his interest, or
perhaps on his principal? Why not? R3148:5
In the earth -- A talent which is unused is soon buried by the tide of
life. R3871:5
Buried under a weight of worldly
cares or encumbrances which might be avoided or set aside; or under worldly
ambitions for either self or family. R3696:6, 1282:5
In banks, store-houses and
investment securities, to enrich and cultivate the spirit of pride in friends
or children and for them to quarrel over after you are dead. R3696:3, 3148:5,
1282:2
That is thine -- He evidently wanted to be considered a servant still, and
probably thought he was worthy of commendation and reward for not perverting
the Lord's money to other uses. R1281:6
Not wicked, simply an idler;
willing to draw a servant's approval and compensation, but lacking any real,
active interest in his master's business. R3696:2, 1281:3
Strictly honest; he had not wasted
his talent in ministering to the flesh or riotous living of any kind. He had
kept it safe. R3871:3, 3696:2
While faithful in that he did not
squander it or repudiate his Master, he did not have the higher faithfulness of
earnest, self-sacrificing zeal in the Master's cause. R3871:4
Matthew 25:26
Wicked and slothful -- As a faithless, slothful servant, he was really a
covenant-breaker, and therefore wicked. R1281:6
It is required of stewards that
they be found faithful. (1 Cor. 4:1,2) R819:5
If the one-talented man, misusing
his, was disapproved, it goes without saying that the two- or five-talented
would be even more reprehensible in the sight of the Lord. R3871:2
A man's condemnation corresponds
with his misuse of his talents. R3074:4
Matthew 25:27
Thou oughtest therefore -- The very object of the parable is to arouse us to a sense
of our shortcomings and recover us from our lethargy by reminding us of our
responsibilities. R1282:1
Diligence in seeking and finding
ways and means to dispose of our consecrated talents to God's glory and to the
advancement of the truth is essential to faithful stewardship; any other course
is a violation of covenant. R819:5
To have put my money -- Some get the mistaken idea that a steward is not expected
to spend that committed to his care unless circumstances demand it of him.
R819:5
At my coming -- Evidently a master would not expect a settlement until he
had come, not while on the journey coming. We should therefore translate the
Greek erkomai as "on my arrival." R144:1
Mine own with usury -- Interest on a business loan is quite proper. F568; R3871:6
The words interest and usury once had the same meaning; now interest is a just
payment and usury is an unjust and extortionate charge. R3871:6
Matthew 25:28
Take therefore -- These gifts are not inalienable; by neglect to use them, or
by their abuse, they may be lost. If we fail to use, or fail to use for the
Lord's glory, or use for self-glory, our place can readily be filled by
another. R733:6
The talent from him -- Implies that he can have neither part nor lot in the
Kingdom. SM513:3
He deserved to be punished because
he did not use that which his Lord had entrusted to him. R5386:2
The loss of the opportunity and
privilege of service as a co-laborer with the Lord. SM513:3
Not because he never was a real
servant; but because, being really a servant, he proved unfaithful. R1698:5
There is nothing in this parable
to indicate eternal torment for this class of unfaithful servants. SM513:2;
R5386:2, 2766:1
Give it unto him -- Their neglected opportunities for more abundant service
will go as a reward to those who are already earnest and active. R1282:3
Illustrated in St. Paul's experience;
if there was any brother who was short in any way, that was another opportunity
for Paul to come in and do that much more. Q537:1
Matthew 25:29
That hath -- Through use of his talents. R5419:3, 3696:5, 1282:2
Shall be given -- Following this just principle, the Logos, who had always
proved faithful in all things, was offered the headship of the new creation.
F64, 65
Hath not -- Hath not increased. Q843:2
From neglect of his talents.
R5419:3, 3696:5, 1282:2
Shall be taken -- The opportunity will be taken from him. He will have it no
more; neither will he have any share in the reward given to the overcomers.
R2766:4
That which he hath -- Losing the Lord's approval and the light they once enjoyed.
Q843:2
Matthew 25:30
Cast ye -- Not a case of being liable to get into outer darkness, into
error; it is a case of must. The Master's orders are peremptory and decisive.
R3696:6, 1282:5
Not because of murder, theft or
blasphemy; not through immoralities; but because of neglected opportunities of
service. SM508:T
None can be of the anointed body
except they be preachers to the extent of their ability and talent. R812:3*
Unprofitable servant -- The Great Company class. R3871:4, 4694:1
The Lord does not deny that he is
a servant, nor does he charge him with being an enemy. R4078:5, 4693:6; SM507:3
A Christian, not a worldling,
stranger, alien, foreigner to the divine promises. SM507:4
The Lord will have a blessing for
the unfaithful servant. He was a servant all the time. He did not lose it. But
he did not use it properly. R4693:6
Into outer darkness -- The darkness common to, and resting upon, the whole world
of mankind; not flaming fire of eternal torment. R2766:1,4, 4872:5, 4398:6,
3033:5
Not death. SM507:2
It is possible to lose what light,
privilege and appreciation of spiritual matters had been previously enjoyed.
SM514:1; R4398:6, 2766:4
Emphasizing the responsibility of
even those with the smallest natural ability, whose consecrated powers are the
most insignificant. R3871:1
The darkness of error and ignorance
concerning God's plans and ways envelops the world in general. R1282:3
Flames of fire would surely make
the place light. R2766:1; SM507:3
In contrast with the inner light
of the holy place of favor and communion and instruction from God, symbolized
in the Tabernacle. R3696:5, 1282:3
There shall be -- In the time of trouble with which this age will close.
R3871:3
Weeping -- Grief is indeed implied, but not one word about an eternity
of grief and pain. HG303:2
Gnashing of teeth -- Sorrow, disappointment and chagrin in every sense. R3871:3,
4694:1; CR253:3
In the great time of trouble with
which this age will close. R4694:1, 4473:2, 3871:3, 2766:4; SM514:1
They shall "come up out of
great tribulation, having washed their robes and made them white in the blood
of the Lamb." (Rev. 7:14) R3871:4
Matthew 25:31
When -- The Parable of the Sheep and the Goats is the only one of
Jesus' parables which furnishes a clear outline of the Millennial age. R769:6
This parable tells of the Kingdom
from another standpoint, explaining the work of the Kingdom after it has been
set up. R4694:3
The Son of man -- Christ, the Seed of Adam through Eve, in the same sense
that he was the seed of David; while his life proceeded forth from God. E150,
152
A title of high honor, showing his
obedience unto death, by which he secured the title to all his prospective
honor and glory. E151
Not in the sense of simply being a
man, but the son of the man David, with whom Jehovah had made an everlasting
covenant--that the throne of Israel should belong to him and his seed forever.
R944:1*
Come in his glory -- Descriptive of Messiah's Kingdom following his parousia and
his epiphania. R5530:3, 4784:6, 4694:3; OV165:3; PD63/73
Not another coming, but another
step or development during the same coming or presence. R2303:6
The Savior has not yet appeared in
his glory. R4784:6; OV165:4
Applies not to this age, but the
coming age of Messiah's reign. R4694:3, 4986:2, 4784:6; OV165:3
Not yet. He is waiting for the
development of the Church, his saintly Bride class, which is to sit with him in
his throne and share his glory. OV165:4; NS179:2
The first event of the second
advent is not the manifestation of glory, but the thief-like gathering of the
Church, unknown to the world. R2303:3
The elect Church shall share his
throne and glory. E479; F419; OV165:4; R4694:3; HG149:3
"Then shall ye also appear
with him in glory." (Col. 3:4) R4784:6, 4694:3, 2303:6; SM224:2
"The woman is the glory of
the man" (1 Cor. 11:7); hence, the Church is the glory of Christ. R2303:6
And have established his Kingdom,
his Church, in power and great glory. R704:4
In the glory of the Father.
NS556:6
Conclusive proof that the world's
judgment is not yet in progress. Q795:T
This parable applies entirely to
the world, the nations. R5530:3,2, 2606:2
Angels with him -- Jesus with the Church. R4986:2
The saints, his holy messengers.
"The Lord cometh with ten thousand of his saints." (Jude 14) C302;
R4644:4
"When Christ who is our life
shall appear, then shall ye [the Church, the sheep of the present age] also
appear with him in glory." (Col. 3:4) R4784:6, 4694:3, 4693:1, 2303:6
The salvation of the Church will
be finished before the salvation of the world will begin. R4694:3
Then -- In the Millennial age. R4644:4, 5530:3, 2606:2; E479;
OV42:1
After the Church is completed and
sits with Christ in his throne. R5406:3, 654:4; E479
Here begins the world's probation,
the world's great judgment day, a thousand years. R2606:4
Sit upon the throne -- This parable corresponds exactly to the picture of Rev. 20:11,
"I saw a great white throne and him that sat on it." OV42:1; A345;
R5530:5; CR324:3
All the faithful shall sit with
him in this very throne. R5530:6, 2606:3, 486:6*; OV42:3
"To him that overcometh will
I grant to sit with me in my throne." (Rev. 3:21) R2606:3, 5530:6
Of justice, mercy and love.
R5530:5
The Lord's consecrated people
recognize him as their king; but he is not yet the king of the world,
"King of kings and Lord of lords." (Rev. 19:16) HG663:5
Christ will not reign over his
glorified Church, nor they reign over each other; but the Church complete will
reign over all nations, dead and living. HG336:5; NS179:6
A trial can in no case proceed
until the judge is on the bench and the court is in session at the appointed
time. A345
Matthew 25:32
Before him -- During the thousand years, the world's judgment. SM225:T;
R5530:3; NS678:3
After the time of trouble.
R2606:2, 654:4
The world will be before the
judgment-seat of Christ in the sense that the Church is now on judgment or on
trial. HG223:5
Under his observation. HG149:3
If Adam was judged by a trial of
his will without God's interference, so the judgment of the whole race will be,
similarly, a judgment or trial of their wills without God's interference.
R1221:6
Gathered all nations -- Including those now asleep in death. F19; PD63/73; R5530:6
First the living nations, then the
dead. R2606:3, 654:3; NS182:1
Not all the 20 billion of the dead
in one 24-hour day. NS179:3
Not in a 24-hour day, but in a
1000-year day. (2 Pet. 3:8) HG273:2; NS180:1
Not including the Church, already
judged. F418; SM224:2; R5530:3,5
The gathering of the world will be
the result of knowledge. The time of trouble will lead to great enlightenment.
R5530:6
After the time of trouble, when
the nations shall have been subdued, Satan bound (Rev. 20:1,2) and the
authority of Christ's Kingdom established. R2606:3
The gathering to judgment will be
a gradual one, not all at the same moment, not all on the same day, not all in
the same year. NS182:1
Not to receive an immediate
sentence, but to receive a fair and impartial individual trial. (Ezek.
18:2-4,19,20) R2606:3, 654:4
Sometimes called Gentiles, meaning
those not in covenant relationship with God. SM224:3
As the Jews thought of themselves
as God's nation and all others as heathens, so with spiritual Israel, they are
the holy nation and all the remainder of mankind can be properly described as
"the nations," "the Gentiles." R5530:3
Shall separate them -- This separating and judging will occupy the entire
Millennial age. E479; R5406:4, 4644:4, 3528:4, 2736:6, 2606:4, 1086:4, 655:1;
NS182:2
The whole world will be granted
the opportunity of making their choice as to whether they will be sheep or
goats. R5694:1, 5530:6; SM225:T,1; PD63/73
The final, complete separation,
taking place in the harvest of the Millennial age. D644
All are brought to a clear
knowledge of the truth for the purpose of testing them, that those who choose
the law of God, Love, may be clearly manifested and separated from those who
choose ungodliness, selfishness. R1235:4
God's truth, as a two-edged sword,
will be quietly, but surely as now, doing the separating work. R269:4
One from another -- It is an individual separation. SM225:T; R5531:2
Sheep from the goats -- The judge will make manifest to all ultimately the heart
difference of the two classes. R5531:2,3, 5406:5
The loving, sympathetic characters
from those wayward and unsubmissive. R4694:6 Inferring that a majority will
obtain everlasting life, as sheep are more numerous than goats. R1227:6,
1057:4; Q639:3
Those sheep and goats will not
include the Church. R4694:3
The final test must be applied in
the end of the thousand years, when Christ has completed the work of
restitution. R1234:1
Outwardly they will have much the
same appearance and demeanor, except the Judge will see the real
heart-difference between the two classes. R5531:2
The harvest of the Jewish age was
likened to the separation of wheat from chaff; the harvest of this age to the
separation of wheat from tares; and the harvest of the Millennial age to the
separation of sheep from goats. R2606:2, 654:3, 267:6, 34:2*; D644
Matthew 25:33
Shall set the sheep -- Those who will have the Lord's spirit. SM227:3
Who are meek, teachable, willing
to be led in the pastures of truth. R2606:4, 2304:3
Such as receive instruction and
come into accord with Messiah. OV165:4
Co-laborers with God in the work
for which Christ died. R5531:6
"Other sheep have I which are
not of this fold; them also I must bring." (John 10:16) NS181:5; R2606:6
On his right hand -- Place of favor. R4986:2, 5046:5, 2606:4; OV165:4; SM225:1
But the goats -- With the goat character of waywardness and
unsubmissiveness. R4694:6
The wayward, those not developing
the graces of character under instruction; those not interested in
accomplishing the work for which Christ died. OV165:4; R5531:6, 2304:3; PD63/73
Self-willed, stubborn, climbing to
places of prominence, feeding on miserable refuse. R2606:4
Those found unworthy of
everlasting life. R5973:2, 4785:1
Outwardly having much the same
appearance as the sheep. R5531:2
On the left -- Place of disfavor. R4986:2, 4785:4, 2606:5; OV165:4;
SM225:1; PD63/73
As subjects of condemnation.
R2606:4
Both classes will have been on
trial for a thousand years, receiving blessings from the Kingdom. R5531:2,
4694:3
These two classes will not be
aware that they are going to the right or to the left until the conclusion of
the trial. SM225:1
Not for Adam's sin, nor for the
sins of their own weakness and ignorance while yet blind and deaf. NS181:2
We have no assurance that the
sheep will outnumber the goats. In Palestine the numbers are about equal.
R1984:6, 5694:1
Matthew 25:34
Then shall -- At the end of the Millennial age. R5973:2, 2606:6
The decision of some individual
cases will be reached long before the end of the age (Isa. 65:20), but in each
age there is a harvest or general separating time at the end of the age.
R2606:3
By the close of the Millennium,
two classes will have been completely separated; those in harmony with the
letter and spirit of God's law, and those out of harmony with it. A144;
R2606:5; HG149:3, 223:6; PD63/73
All will be subjected to a final
test of loyalty to God after the thousand years. R2051:5
The two classes will not be aware
they are going to the right or to the left. Not until the conclusion of the
trial do they find out where they stand. SM225:1
On his right hand -- Those who, during the Millennial age, will have attained
the position of favor by harmony and obedience. A305
The reverse order of Rev. 20:7-10
which seems to indicate that the goat class will be dealt with first. R2304:4
Who have been perfected through
the processes of the restitution. R2304:4
Come ye -- You who are about to enter into everlasting life. A144;
D644; OV165:4
Those in harmony with God. Q446:2
But only those who pass the test
of the "little season" when Satan is loosed (Rev. 20:3,7-9) will be
worthy of continued life. R1234:1,2
Those who will have developed the
God-like character. R5531:3
All who develop the spirit of
obedience. R4785:1
Blessed of my Father -- Approved ones. F50
The kind that my Father is pleased
to bless and to grant everlasting life! R5531:3
Perfect works only will be
rewarded. R4695:1
Whom my Father designs thus to
bless. A305
Enter fully into the blessings of
the second life. R892:6
Inherit the kingdom -- The World-Republic, in which every man will be a king. F50;
R5636:6, 2606:6, 2304:5, 655:3
The kingdom of earth. R1057:1,
852:4
"Have dominion over the
earth." (Gen. 1:28) R2606:6
The dominion of the renewed earth
will be handed over to the rule of its redeemed and restored rulers, humanity.
R2304:5
These will be invited to become
the kings of earth under divine supervision, even as was Adam, in his original
perfection, crowned with glory and honor and set over the earthly creation.
(Psa. 8:3-5) R4694:6, 3572:2
Be installed as the subordinate
rulers of the earth for future ages. R2606:6
"They shall reign forever and
ever." (Rev. 22:5) R3572:1
The kingdom of earth is sure to
man after he has learned that the heavens do rule. (Dan. 4:17-26) R196:4
The dominion now exercised by
Satan, who uses fallen man as his tool. R860:5
Even the obedient of mankind will
not be fit to be entrusted with the kingdom of the world until absolute
perfection shall have been reached. NS182:5
We may reasonably suppose that even
perfect man will require some form of government. R2304:4
Not a rule independent of divine
law and supremacy. God intends man to rule under, or in harmony with, his
supreme law. R2607:5
They are not invited to inherit
the kingdom prepared for us, the heavenly kingdom; but they shall inherit the
earth, the purchased possession. R2833:5, 2606:6, 2304:5, 269:4; OV42:2
Not the same kingdom as the
Messianic kingdom; but the kingdom which God gave to Adam, which Adam lost and
Christ redeemed. R5531:3, 4695:1, 2833:5, 2606:6, 860:5; SM229:5; NS182:3,
482:5
Not a dominion of some of the race
over others, but a joint dominion, every man a king, with equal rights and
privileges in appropriating and enjoying every earthly good. R2606:6, 655:2
By the end of the Millennial Age,
the kingdom will be a grand republic, whose stability will be assured by the
perfection of every member; whereas the Millennial Kingdom over which the
saints shall reign will be a theocracy which will rule the world without regard
to the subjects' consent or approval. R655:3
Theirs will be a dominion under
the whole heaven, and not a heavenly dominion. It will be restitution to
perfection. HG223:6
Eden restored, the kingdom which
was prepared for man from the foundation of the race. NS482:5
When Christ restores all things,
man and earth, to the original design of the Father, illustrated in Adam and
his dominion. (Gen. 1:28) R860:6
Restored to earthly likeness lost
by Adam, the image of God in clay, "very good" and very grand. (Gen.
1:31) R852:4
Restitution will not be quite
complete until the great mass of mankind is reinvested with the dominion of
earth as possessed by Adam before sin entered. R655:2
The eternal conditions beyond the
Millennial age. R3531:1
When Christ delivers up the
dominion of earth to the Father, he will do so by delivering it up to mankind,
the Father's representatives, who were designed from the first to have this
honor. A305; F50; R5973:2, 5531:3; SM229:1; OV42:2
The mediatorial Millennial kingdom
of Christ having accomplished its purpose and being withdrawn, the dominion
will be handed over to humanity. R2304:5
With this transfer of the earthly
control to the perfect man of that time, Christ's millennial or mediatorial
kingdom will end. NS182:5
Man's dominion under God is illustrated
well by the government of this country--each state having dominion over its own
territory, but all subject to the government of the United States. R196:1
Prepared for you -- The place for man, the earth. R4966:2
The earthly kingdom or dominion was
intended and prepared for human, earthly beings. R269:4
When God laid the foundation of
the earth and planned its human habitation, it was his design to give it to
you. R5531:3
And, though forfeited by man on
account of disobedience, it will be restored, as taught by all God's holy
prophets. (Acts 3:21) R632:5*
Six thousand years under the
dominion of evil, to learn its consequences, in contrast with the
seventh-thousand year period under the reign of Christ. R2607:1, 655:2
For the perfected and worthy ones
at the close of the Millennium. R2607:1
The blessings intended for them.
R5406:5
From the foundation -- Not "before the foundation," as in the case of
the Church. A305; R2607:1, 2304:5; SM229:1
Of the world -- Mundane creation. F50
The earth having been made to be
the everlasting home and kingdom of perfect men. R2607:1
As expressed to Father Adam:
"Have dominion over the earth." (Gen. 1:28) R2606:6
From Genesis to Malachi, every
promise to the natural man is earthly. R4966:2
Matthew 25:35
I was -- The Redeemer counts redeemed mankind as representing
himself. R5532:1
An hungred -- The world is starved now, for lack of spiritual food.
R5531:5
There will be abundant opportunity
for mutual helpfulness, sympathy, instruction and encouragement. R2607:4
This sheep class will manifest
God's character of love to each other in the time of sorest need. R2606:5
All will awaken from the tomb
without possessions of any kind. R2607:2, 655:4
Ye gave -- All in harmony will have the privilege of helping others.
R5531:5
Illustrated in the case of
Lazarus; Jesus only awakened him from death. His rejoicing friends were left to
loose him from his grave clothes and clothe and feed him. R2607:2, 655:4
Good works indicative of sympathy,
love, compassion. R2304:6
In that time, knowledge will have
practically supplanted faith; hence, faith will have no special rewards, but
works will have the rewards. R4694:6
The Millennial location of the
parable is fixed by the rule or judgment prescribed, works. The judgment of the
Church during the Gospel age is not works, but faith. R700:3; HG106:5
Works were the basis of the Law
Covenant. Obedience, works, is to be the basis of the antitypical covenant, the
"New." R700:6
No great deeds are assigned for
this honor and favor. Restored mankind will have simply come into harmony with
God's law, Love. R195:6
Love and its fruit, good works,
will be the ground upon which the sheep of that age will be rewarded. R701:1
We would not desire to have one
get here and find that there was no place for him to eat, sleep or live; so we
would make provision for him. SM227:1
Those who have the spirit of God,
of love, will be glad to carry the message of reconciliation to all
humanity--to apply the eye-salve to the blind, to unstop the ears of the deaf,
and help the sin-sick back into harmony with God. R5531:5
As a lesson for the Church, the
Lord does not say that we must entirely transform our flesh; but he does say
that we must transform our mind, will. SM229:3
Matthew 25:36
Clothed me -- Helped them to cover their nakedness with the merit of
Christ. R5531:5
The sheep class will be feeding,
clothing and helping those whom they have gotten out of the prison-house of
death. SM227:3
I was sick -- Sin-sick, neither actually dead nor actually perfect.
R5531:5, 2607:4, 655:6
I was in prison -- Prison-house of death, where the majority of mankind are.
R5531:6; SM225:3
Prayers will go out continually
for those in this prison. SM227:3
Under watch and ward until made
physically, mentally and morally perfect. R655:5, 2607:4
Ye came unto me -- Praying for and preparing for those who are in the great
prison-house of death. R5531:6
Our thought is that man will come
back in answer to prayer, very much the same as did Lazarus. SM226:2
Matthew 25:37
When saw we thee -- Surprised at what the King declared to be the basis of his
judgment. R5531:4
Not realizing that they were
developing a noble, Christlike character. SM228:2
These two classes will not be
aware that they are going to the right or to the left until the conclusion of
the trial. SM225:1
Matthew 25:38
When saw we thee -- You did not know it, but I was watching you. SM228:3
Matthew 25:40
Ye have done -- Helped the sin-sick back into harmony with God. R5531:5
Made preparation to assist men
when they would come back to life. SM227:2
The judgment of the world in the
future age will be very similar to the judgment of the Church in this age, so
far as matters of judgment are concerned. NS181:4
With us in this age the test is
faith; but with them, the test will be works. R486:6*
The least of these -- Since mankind will not all be raised at once but in
separate ranks or orders (1 Cor. 15:23) during the thousand years, each new
rank will find an army of helpers who will have preceded them. R655:5
My brethren -- Those who will need assistance. R5531:5
Human sons of God. R2607:2
The body of Christ. R2744:4,
2448:5, 412:1
Children of God, though they will
be of the human nature, while he is of the divine. All of God's sons, whether
on the human, angelic or divine plane, are brethren. R2606:5, 2607:2, 655:4,
195:3 They will be brethren to all who are the Lord's on any plane of
existence--to the Church, and also to all the angelic hosts. R3528:4
Have done it unto me -- Whoever serves any whom the Lord classes as his brethren is
really serving him. R5371:5, 5180:5
Does not now apply to the world,
but it does apply to the Church. R5819:1
All through the period of their
sufferings, the Church could be comforted with the assurance that when they
suffered, he, the sympathizing friend, suffered with them. R92:5
Would not true loyalty and
devotion count the injury or the blessing done to a friend as done unto us?
R1588:6
Matthew 25:41
Then shall he -- Even though all the while they have been receiving the
blessings of the Millennial kingdom and outwardly rendering obedience to its
laws, not until the conclusion of the Millennium will the decision of the Judge
be manifested. R5531:3
On the left hand -- Those who have the goat-like disposition of wilfulness
remaining after enjoying the "times of restitution." R2304:4, 5925:4
Those who fail to develop the
characteristics of the Lord's sheep: gentleness, meekness, love. R4785:1,
4694:6
Depart from me -- At heart you have not come into harmony with God. He cannot
recognize you as his sheep. R5531:3
His guarantee is that sin and
sinners and those who sympathize with evil shall not go beyond the Millennium
to endanger the happiness, peace and blessings of the great eternity beyond.
D644
Ye cursed -- Condemned. NS183:2
Condemned as unfit vessels for the
glory and honor of life. R2607:5
Doomed ones. R5531:3
Signifies the very opposite of
blessing, a curse in the usual sense of the English. Webster defines it:
Deserving a curse, execrable, hateful, detestable, abominable. R701:5
Counted enemies against God and
against the law of the empire, and no longer coerced, but destroyed. R1057:2
Redeemed by Christ from Adamic
curse once; but now condemned or cursed, as worthy of the second death, by the
one who redeemed them from the first curse. R1040:3
Some, after being fully enlightened
in the Millennial age, will reject the favor in the way it is offered. We
believe the number will be small. R883:4
Not a member of the race shall be
"cut off" whom it is possible to recover; but not one member which
divine wisdom finds impossible to renew shall remain to spread his baneful,
poisonous influence to others. R872:2
Failing the test of the
"little season" (Rev. 20:3,7-9), they are cursed a second time,
having previously been released from the Adamic curse. R893:3,5
Everlasting fire -- The lake of fire, the second death, everlasting
destruction, symbolized by Gehenna. E30, 480; R5973:2, 5531:4, 4694:6,
2607:5,6, 2304:6, 2051:5, 1180:1, 1040:3; OV165:4, 166:3; PD63/73
Fire is a symbol of destruction,
not preservation. CR293:1; R5532:4, 4694:6, 4644:5, 1086:4, 1040:1, 926:1;
OV166:1; SM230:3; NS183:3
We must infer that the fire here
is as symbolic as the goats which go into it. R1086:4, 1040:1, 926:1, 487:1*;
OV42:4, 166:1; NS183:3
The eternal fire is the fire of
God's jealousy or anger, destroying everything antagonistic to his
righteousness. (Zeph. 1:18; 3:8) R5532:4; SM231:T
They "shall be destroyed from
among the people." (Acts 3:23) OV166:T
Illustrated by the fires of the
Valley of Hinnom in which the garbage of Jerusalem was destroyed. PD63/73;
R2051:5
An everlasting fire is one not
quenched, one which burns until it shall have accomplished its purpose of
complete destruction. OV42:4
Everlasting death, a death that
will last through all eternity. R4785:4
A lasting or perpetual destruction,
extinction. R1086:4, 1040:3
Matter is indestructible, but man
is more than a body. The intelligent will, thought, constitutes a human soul,
and the soul can be destroyed. OV166:2
Death everlasting, not life in
torment everlasting. R926:1
God, under the Law, never
permitted Israel to torture any creature; but he frequently commanded dead
carcasses to be burned with fire as a symbol of utter destruction. R701:2
Everlasting, because there will be
no further provisions made for your redemption or your resurrection from the
second death. R5531:4, 5406:5, 4807:1, 4785:4, 926:1, 655:6; A144
"Fire will come from God out
of heaven and consume them." (Rev. 20:9) R1040:4
Prepared -- To cut off the wilfully wicked, and them only, was God's
plan from the beginning. R697:4
The fate already determined for
them. R4695:1, 3084:1
Stated in so many words in 1 John
3:8 and Heb. 2:14. R701:3
For the devil -- Whose very existence is now denied by many. F609; R3165:6
"That he might destroy him
that hath the power of death, that is, the devil." (Heb. 2:14) F619;
R2608:6, 2607:5
Satan has become inseparably
connected with sin, and his destruction is plainly declared in the Scriptures,
as is also that of those who have so imbibed his spirit as to make it
impossible to renew them again to repentance. R5896:2
In the end of the Millennial age,
when good can no longer be served through his permitted existence, Satan is to
be totally and forever destroyed. R725:3
And his angels -- All who follow his leading and his course. F619; R1648:4
Those who pattern after his
character and partake willingly of his spirit. R5896:2, 5301:3, 1180:1; OV42:3;
SM231:1
His messengers or servants.
R2608:3, 2609:3, 4695:1
And for no others. R1040:3, 769:6,
701:4
Satan has some assistants,
"the angels that kept not their first estate." (Jude 6) SM231:T
All who do unrighteousness or have
pleasure therein, spirits or men, are reckoned on Satan's side. R697:4;
HG329:5, 728:4
Those, who during the Millennial
age will not become willing and obedient servants of the Lord, are reckoned his
adversaries, accomplices of Satan. R701:4
Those of men affected similarly to
Satan by knowledge and experience are reckoned his messengers and co-workers,
and share with him the final destruction. R872:3
All who intelligently and willfully
are co-workers with him in his rebellion against divine love and justice.
R2842:4, 891:4, 769:6
All who serve sin are his servants
or messengers. R3084:2
The goat class, messengers of
Satan, who love unrighteousness and, during the Millennium, pass to the left
hand of the great king and judge. R4292:3, 2935:2, 2736:6, 1107:5; NS183:1
Called the servants, angels, of
Satan and children of the devil (1 John 3:10) and such like names, because they
pattern after his character and partake willingly of his spirit. R1180:1;
OV42:3
None will then be servants of
Satan ignorantly or unwillingly. R1040:3
Not only the fallen angels now
associated with Satan. R701:3; HG329:2
They will be destroyed with Satan
as described in Rev. 20:9,10. R3433:3
Matthew 25:42
Ye gave me no meat -- They will not be forced to help the dead. That work will be
one of charity, of love. But, unless they attain the spirit of love, they will
not be fit for the kingdom, for God is love. SM230:2
Careless in respect to their vow,
and merely enjoying the Millennial blessings for themselves. R5531:5
Intimating the absence of good
motives and tender, loving sentiments. R2304:6
You have more or less of the
selfish spirit which is the spirit of Satan. R5532:4
Not murderers, thieves and liars
in the present-day acceptance of these terms, but those who lack evidence of
the possession of the spirit of love. R2304:6; NS183:1
Under Satanic delusion and the
relaxed iron rule during the little season, those who, at heart, are not loyal
to God, and who thus far have been controlled principally by the force and
rigor of law, will manifest their real disposition. R1234:2
Matthew 25:43
Sick, and in prison -- Imperfect and under ward. R2607:4, 2609:3
Matthew 25:44
When saw we thee -- Surprised at what the King declared to be the basis of his
judgment. R5531:4
Matthew 25:45
Ye did it not -- Your interest was not in the things of God, but personal,
selfish. R5532:1
You have failed utterly to
appreciate the goodness of God and copy his character. R5531:4
Failed to develop gentleness,
meekness, love. R4785:1, 4695:1
Even in the Millennium, with
fullest knowledge, some will not learn to love righteousness. R1219:6
Their condemnation is because they
lacked the spirit of love. R2606:5
God does not purpose that any who
are selfish shall have everlasting life. Selfishness came in as a result of
sin. SM228:T
Matthew 25:46
And these -- Only the incorrigible. A291; R5537:6
The Bible intimates a considerable
number of goats. R5925:5
Everlasting -- Greek, aionios, lasting. R2607:6, 1039:3*
Used sometimes to represent an
unlimited or everlasting time. R701:4, 699:6
The word does not always mean
never ending, but rather a space or epoch of time upon which no limit has been
placed. R719:4, 699:4
Continuous, that is,
uninterrupted. R719:5, 487:1*
The punishment will be as lasting
as the reward. Both will be everlasting. R2607:6, 1298:4*, 1039:3*, 719:1*,
701:5, 699:5, 655:6, 345:3
Everlasting cutting off from life.
E480, 30; R4785:4, 1344:4*
Not everlasting torture, but
everlasting death. R4785:4; SM766:1,2, 230:1
Death from which there will be no
release, no resurrection. R345:3; HG334:6; OV42:4; NS557:1
The punishment, in this sense,
will be different from the blight of death which, for the past 6000 years, has
rested upon the whole human family. SM767:T
The first death can and will be
destroyed, while the second everlastingly blots out of existence and thus
everlastingly punishes all who go into it. R769:5; CR293:5
Punishment -- Greek, kolasin, cutting off, pruning or lopping off (Diaglott
footnote). R2608:1, 5694:2, 4695:4, 1298:4*, 1040:1,2, 367:4; CR293:4; SM230:2
"Pruning, restraining,
restraint." (Young's Analytical Concordance) R2608:1, 1040:2, 367:4
Occurs in 1 John 4:18 where it is
improperly rendered "torment." It should read, "Fear hath
restraint." Also found in various forms in Acts 4:21 and 2 Pet. 2:9.
R2608:1, 1040:2
Liddell and Scott say it means
"pruning." R367:4
According to the Greek lexicon,
restraint; used in the expression, for instance, "The charioteer restrains
his fiery steeds." HG133:5
To restrain by cutting off.
SM230:2; R2608:1
It may mean more or less of
restraint. In this case it signifies complete restraint, the restraint of
death. NS183:6
Restraint, not pain; the
everlasting restraining into which the wicked will go is the second death.
HG224:2
Everlasting cutting off from life,
from the Lord, and from all hope of life. CR293:4; PD63/73
If torment were meant, the Greek
word basinos would have been used. R1086:5
It does not here state what the
nature of the punishment will be. But it is elsewhere stated that the
"wages [punishment] of sin is death." (Rom. 6:23) R1026:4, 926:1,
769:6, 345:3; HG224:1
"Shall be punished with
everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord and the glory of his
power." (2 Thess. 1:9) R2608:2; NS183:4
Because of individual, willful
sin. R5925:5
Death, the final sentence against
sinners. R4986:2
Destruction, symbolized by the
fires in the Valley of Hinnom, in which the garbage of Jerusalem was destroyed.
PD63/73
The righteous -- The one ultimate standard of admission to blessedness in
the future is character. The righteous go into life eternal. R800:5
Into life eternal -- Greek, aionios, lasting. R2607:6
Life in perpetuity, so long as one
remains in accord with the spirit and laws of the Creator. Not based on an
immortal quality, but on the principle that there is no penalty to any
intelligent creature except upon condition of sin. R3387:6
On condition of absolute obedience
to the law of love, not merely a perfunctory obedience, but an obedience from
the heart. R3605:2
The same lasting life which father
Adam had--human life unimpaired either by sentence or disease. R3387:3
The English word
"everlasting" is stronger than any word in Greek or Hebrew; the
strongest Greek or Hebrew word would properly be translated
"lasting." R3387:3
The antithesis of
"everlastingly cut off from life." R1040:2, 4695:4, 2608:2, 1086:5,
487:1*
The exact antithesis of the
everlasting punishment designed for the goats. R2608:2
At the end of the age Messiah will
bless all the sheep class. R4986:4
The trial continues until each
individual has been either rewarded or punished. R4986:5
Matthew 26
Matthew 26:4
By subtilty -- Hesitating only lest it should cause tumult. R4702:2
And kill him -- Anger, envy, hatred, united in branding him as an imposter
and in sending him to death "for the good of the cause." R4702:2
So far as Caiaphas was concerned,
his mind was already made up in respect to Jesus, and he merely sought
opportunity to carry it into effect, to kill him. R2780:3
Matthew 26:5
Not on the feast day -- But our Lord eluded them and returned only at the time of
the Feast of the Passover. R2312:3
Matthew 26:6
Now when -- Maybe on the night before his betrayal two days before the
feast of the Passover; but the consensus of opinion seems to be that it
occurred on the Sabbath evening preceding the triumphal ride to Jerusalem.
R4702:2, 3877:1
Supposedly about a year and a half
after a similar entertainment and anointing in the home of another Simon. (Luke
7:36-50) R2625:3
In the house -- One of the Evangelists says that Lazarus sat at the feast,
Martha was one of those who served, but the story deals especially with the
work of Mary. R3877:2
Simon the leper -- Not mentioned in the narrative; probably already dead. He
is conjectured to be either the father of Lazarus, Mary and Martha; or that
Martha was his widow, and that Lazarus and Mary were younger than she. R2743:3
Quite possibly he had been healed
by the Lord, and this may have been the beginning of the intimate acquaintance
with the family of Lazarus, Martha and Mary. R3877:2
We ourselves also had the leprosy
of sin, condemnation, and were children of wrath even as others; but our sins
have been graciously covered by the Redeemer, the leprosy has been cleansed.
R3878:4
Matthew 26:7
A woman -- Mary, sister of Martha and Lazarus. R3877:2, 4702:2
Let the Marthas serve the Lord in
one way and the Marys pour out their most precious spikenard perfume, assured
that neither service will be forgotten. R2744:4
An alabaster box -- Our alabaster boxes are our hearts, which should be full of
the sweetest perfumes of good wishes, kindness and love toward all, but
especially toward Christ, head and body. R2744:3
Our hearts are receptacles for the
holy Spirit, the spirit of love, the choicest perfume, most precious to the
Lord and to men. R2744:3
The flowers you mean to send for
the coffin, send to brighten and sweeten your friends' homes before they leave
them. R3878:3*
Precious ointment -- Equivalent to a year's wages. R3535:1, 3877:2
400,000 full-grown roses are
required to make one ounce of this perfume. R2448:2
Mary's love was so intense that it
knew no economy. R2743:6
Our Lord wished that all who
should know the good tidings should know also of his appreciation of such devotion
to him, and that the more it costs us, the more he appreciates it. R2744:5
Expensive because it cannot be
gathered rapidly. It requires patient perseverance in well-doing to be
"filled with all the fullness of God." (Eph. 3:19) R2744:3
And -- While Christ was still alive. A week later and it would
have been too late. Do not keep the alabaster boxes of your love and tenderness
sealed up until your friends are dead. Flowers on the coffin cast no fragrance
backward on the weary road. R3878:3
Poured it -- The twelve apostles were too cold, calculating and
business-like; Mary made up for this deficiency in the warmth of her loving
devotion. R3877:5
She was not a woman's rights
advocate; she found no fault with her Lord that he had not chosen her and
Martha to be members of the company of apostles. R3877:3
These climaxes of character are
not reached suddenly. Mary's love had been growing from the first. R2745:4
It behooves us to anoint the
brethren with kindly words, loving sympathies, tender expressions, while they
are still in the valley of conflict, before they have reached the end of the
journey. R3878:1
On his head -- The perfume of her act of love, kindness and adoration has
come down through the ages, filling the entire church with its sweet odor of
devotion, and illustrating the noblest and truest qualities of the feminine
heart. R3877:4
Matthew 26:8
Indignation -- Instigated by Judas. R4702:3, 4487:6, 3877:2
The one who made the greatest ado
on behalf of the poor, and who objected most to the expression of Mary's
devotion, was the thief and murderer, Judas. R2744:5
To what purpose -- We may sympathize with the apostles, for they were all poor
men, unused to such luxury and extravagance. R3877:2
This waste -- Considered in the light of the odor, blessing and
refreshment which it has shed upon all the Lord's people throughout this Gospel
age, Mary's alabaster jar of perfume, very costly, has proved to be extremely
cheap. R3535:3
The Lord's followers are to be
prudent and economical, but not parsimonious, miserly, stingy or hoarders of
wealth. R3877:6
Similarly, we were once inclined
to consider conventions of the Lord's people entirely too expensive, but do so
no more. R3877:6
If we should err on either side,
would it not be safest and best that we should err on the side of too great
generosity rather than on the reverse? R3878:6
Matthew 26:9
Might have been sold -- Mary may have prepared the perfume herself, for the
objection is not to its having been purchased for a large sum, but that it
might have been sold for 300 pence. (Mark 14:5) R2744:1
Given to the poor -- It is a mistake to suppose that time or money spent in the
Lord's service or in the study of his plan means that so much less will be
given to the poor. R3877:5
Fellow-disciples tell us that we
should not be seeking to anoint the saints with the sweet perfume of his
present truth, but should, on the contrary, be going to the outcasts of society
in slum-work or foreign missions. R2744:6
Matthew 26:10
A good -- How appreciative was the Great Teacher of everything done
for him! R4702:3
Our Lord appreciated the matter
fully; the sweet odor of the heart which prompted the act still more than the
sweet odor which filled the entire house. R2743:6
Money is not the only thing of
which people are sorely in need. R2448:3
Matthew 26:11
Ye have the poor -- Yet we have no evidence whatever that the Lord or the
apostles attempted to break the chains of the "slavery of labor."
NS730:3
Always with you -- Until the end of the reign of sin and death, the poor will
be here. R4702:6
By and by there will be no poor;
for, under the kingdom conditions, love will be the ruling principle instead of
selfishness. R4702:6
Me ye have not -- So the body of Christ will not always be here to be
ministered unto. Whatever we can do now for our fellow- members of the body of
Christ, the Head will reckon as done unto him. R567:6, 4702:6
Matthew 26:12
On my body -- The feet members of the body of Christ are still with us,
and it is still possible to anoint them with the precious spikenard perfume.
R3878:5
For my burial -- Which occurred later the same week. NS779:2
Probably Mary had no thought of
perfuming the Lord's body for burial. R2744:2
Matthew 26:13
A memorial of her -- The person who is economical and penurious in his dealings
with the Lord is sure to be the loser thereby. "The liberal soul shall be
made fat." (Prov. 11:25) R3535:4
Memorials to their praise,
testimonies of their love. R2744:4
It was not merely Mary that our
Lord wished to memorialize, but especially her deed. R2744:5
Matthew 26:14
Then -- No doubt reasoning that, since Jesus was about to die, he
might as well sell the Lord and get what he could out of the transaction.
R3878:6
Judas Iscariot -- The very one who had objected to Mary's act of love and
devotion. R2744:5, 3878:4
Representing some who, for earthly
advantage for themselves, are willing to deliver other members of the Lord's
Body up to tribulation, adversity and reproach. R3366:6
Judas hailed from the south of
Palestine, while the other eleven of Jesus' disciples were Galileans. R5552:1
It is inferred that, because of
superior business qualities, Judas was made treasurer of the apostolic company.
R5552:1
Critical of the Master and
fault-finding. From his standpoint, Jesus was carrying on the campaign for the
throne in an improper manner. R4487:5
Made acquainted with the heavenly
gift and the powers of the age to come (Heb. 6:4,5) not by direct reception of
the spirit, but by the indirect blessing which came upon the twelve through our
Lord's special impartation to them. R4488:2; Q382:5, 639:1
He had justification through
faith; he had accepted the Lord as the Messiah. Q639:1
We find no reason for believing
that Judas was a bad man at the time of his selection by Jesus to be one of the
twelve apostles. R5552:1, 3887:4
Matthew 26:15
I will deliver him -- It was not compulsion on Judas' part, not his duty. Q382:2
Covenanted with him -- It would appear from the Greek text and the Revised Version
that Judas received the money for his work in advance. R2745:1
The murder of Jesus was plotted in
advance. R5561:1
Thirty pieces of silver -- The price of a slave. "So they weighed for my price
thirty pieces of silver." (Zech. 11:12) R2745:1
Those who teach for money that
which they know is not the truth have the Judas spirit. R2779:4
Doubtless Judas reasoned that he
could make the money out of the transaction without working any injury to the
Lord. R4488:1
Which, on the basis of labor,
amounted to between $200 and $300 in value. R5552:2
It was not merely the thirty
pieces that influenced the ingrate. Rather, it was pride. He had thought to be
associated with the Master in an earthly throne. R4708:4
No doubt others today, willing
less directly to sell the Lord for earthly advantages or influence or money,
find ways of excusing their perfidy. R2745:2
Matthew 26:16
To betray him -- While the Master himself cannot be betrayed today for
pieces of silver, "his brethren" can be thus dealt with. R4488:2
Matthew 26:17
The first day -- The day before the Passover proper began, on the 14th day
of Nisan. R2771:5, 1800:2
While holding that the Memorial
supper was instituted on Thursday, we have no contention with those who suppose
that these events took place on other days of the week. R3879:1, 4713:6, 3375:1
Of the feast -- Not the principal feast, which lasted a week; but the roast
lamb supper, which preceded the general feast. R3879:2, 3363:1
It was not the Passover Feast, but
the supper, that Jesus observed, and after which he instituted, as instead of
it, a memorial of his death in the bread and wine. R833:3
Unleavened bread -- Typifying the world's proper condition during the
Millennial age. R1800:3
For thee to eat -- Jesus was a Jew and, therefore, obligated to every feature
of the Mosaic Law. R4703:1
The passover -- The type has, for more than 18 centuries, been in process
of fulfillment. R4703:1
Matthew 26:18
Go -- Luke tells us that it was Peter and John who were sent on
this mission. R3363:6
To such a man -- Probably the man was a believer, or there may have been
some previous arrangement with him. R1800:3
At thy house -- During the passover week, hospitality was recognized as a
duty in Jerusalem; hence the readiness with which the Lord's request for a room
was granted. R1800:3
Matthew 26:19
They made ready -- In the sense of furnishing and preparing the lamb, the
unleavened bread, bitter herbs and the fruit of the vine. R3363:6
Matthew 26:20
Even was come -- The killing of the lamb was on the evening of the
fourteenth day, or more correctly, according to the original, between the
evenings; that is, between the sun's declining and its setting, about 3
p.m. R2953:2*
Matthew 26:21
They did eat -- The time had come for the fulfillment of the antitype of
the Passover. Jesus himself was to be the Passover lamb. R4703:3
One of you -- No ray of hope for Judas' restoration. The goodness of God
only hardened his heart, and therefore there was no remedy. R1800:6
Matthew 26:22
Lord, Is it I? -- The Greek word would seem to indicate that the question
signified, Lord, do you mean to accuse me? I am not the one, am I? R2772:1
They were not overconfident, but
each seemed to fear his own stability. They had the spirit of self-examination.
R1800:6
Each one asked, feeling it
incumbent to thus prove his innocence of such a charge. R3879:2, 3364:3
It is well that each one ask
himself this searching question, to see that he is not in any way sacrificing
the truth. R4907:4
Matthew 26:23
He that dippeth -- It was not the attacks of the Scribes and Pharisees, but
the defection of his closest friends, that most troubled his heart; wounded by
professed friends. R3820:2
Shall betray me -- Despite the custom that to receive another's hospitality
was, especially in the East, a pledge of friendship. R3879:3, 4907:1
Matthew 26:24
Goeth -- To death. R4909:3
Woe unto that man -- Upon Judas alone our Lord placed the full responsibility,
the full guilt, of his death. R4909:3, 1962:5
Judas was a free moral agent; by
entertaining selfish and evil thoughts he became the willing tool of Satan.
R4487:2,3
We are not to consider that Judas
was simply fulfilling a prophecy irrespective of his own responsibility.
R4907:2, 3879:4, 3364:2
He sinned against great light;
there is no hope for him in a future life. R4907:2, 4703:6, 5552:6
Betrayed -- Today some are willing to sell the Lord for the good things
of this present life: salary and honor amongst men, etc. R4907:4
Had not been born -- Because the advantages of his useless, wasted life did not
overbalance the sorrows and anguish which terminated in despair, suicide and
the second death. R3879:4, 4907:3
This statement would not be true
if Judas were to have an opportunity during the Millennial age. R5683:3,
4909:3, 1962:6; Q382:4, 639:1
Every suicide, by his act,
confesses his wish that he had never been born. R3364:3, 5552:5, 4907:3
Judas had not been begotten again
of the holy Spirit, for spirit-begetting was not possible until Pentecost; but
this does not prove that he could not die the second death. R5683:2
Judas was one of the twelve upon
whom Jesus had specially conferred a measure of his spirit, enabling him to
perform miracles. This made him specially responsible. R4907:3
These words leave no question, we
think, that Judas had already enjoyed his full share in the great atonement
work, through his intimate opportunities and corresponding responsibilities.
R3879:4, 3364:3
But if God has anything for Judas
in the future, you will not find me making any objection. Q382:5
May the meaning not be that it
would have been better for Judas if he were not born yet? This seems to be the
meaning in the Diaglott translation. R2283:3*
Matthew 26:25
Judas -- Judas brazenly challenged the Master's knowledge of his
deceitful course and said, Is it I? R4703:6
The Judas class are those whose
hearts are not loyal, but selfish, and enter into the Adversary's schemes
heartily. R4908:1, 4907:6
Master, is it I? -- If he did not also ask, it would imply his acknowledgment
that he was the one. R3879:3, 2772:1
Such was his spirit of bravado.
R3364:3
Thou hast said -- Yes, I refer to you. R3879:3, 4703:6
At this point, Judas left the room
to consummate the betrayal. R2772:2
Probably Judas was not with the
others when our Lord washed their feet and subsequently instituted the
memorial; so only loyal, devoted disciples of Christ should meet to celebrate
his death on its anniversary. R2772:2
Not a threat, not an imprecation,
not a manifestation of bitterness, but merely an expression of sorrow and of
pity. Our enemies, too, are to be pitied, not hated. R3364:3
The Master was gentle toward him
to the very end, giving him every opportunity to relent and retrace his steps,
down to the very last act. R5552:6
The testimony that Jesus knew in
advance who would betray him does not prove that Jesus knew this at the time
when he chose Judas. R5553:1
The divine program was carried out
and the Scriptures were fulfilled; but the coincidence marks the divine
foreknowledge, without implying that God in any manner instigated the
treacherous conduct. R4703:6 It was not God's foreknowledge that injured Judas,
but his own wrong course; and thus it is with all. R5553:1
Matthew 26:26
Jesus took bread -- Some of the left-over unleavened bread. R3526:3
Instituting the antitype of the
Jewish Passover. R2771:1; PD67/79; SM563:2
Subsequently, after the Passover
supper, he instituted with the bread and the fruit of the vine his
substitutionary memorial of himself. R4703:5
A commemoration, or memorial, of
the antitype. NS75:6
When this cup and unleavened bread
are used as a celebration of the Passover, it should, on every occasion, be
considered a celebration, not of the type, but of the antitype. NS76:1
Instead of the lamb would be the
unleavened bread, representing our Lord's flesh. SM563:3
Representing the sacrifice of
Christ's humanity for our redemption. R1800:6
"I am the bread of
life." (John 6:35) R2772:3
Unleavened, declaring that our
Lord Jesus was free from sin, a lamb without spot or blemish. R5192:4
In partaking of the broken,
unleavened bread, we memorialize the purity, the sinlessness, of him who gave
himself to be the ransom-price for all mankind. R4591:2, 1636:6, 840:3
Bread stands for and symbolizes
all food; indeed, wheat is said to contain every element of nutrition in its
proper proportion. R3879:6
Soda biscuits are unleavened bread
and will do very well. R3526:6
And brake it -- It must be "broken" in order to be appropriated;
it was necessary also that Jesus be "broken" in death, sacrificed for
our sins, ere we could appropriate his merit and enjoy everlasting life.
R3526:4, 740:4
The Church as a whole must be
broken by "laying down our lives on behalf of the brethren" as Christ
laid down his life for all. R2772:5
And also our own breaking or dying
as members of the Church. R4591:5
"The loaf which we break, is
it not the communion (the common union, participation) of the body of Christ?"
(1 Cor. 10:16) R4591:5
At the time Jesus was the only one
who could break the loaf, all others being unjustified. R5341:5
And gave it -- In giving the bread and the cup, the Master pictorially
offered them justification and sanctification. R4703:6
Take, eat -- In two senses: appropriating and feasting on the great work
done for us by our Redeemer; and appreciating our privilege of
joint-sacrificing with our Redeemer. R3526:5, 740:6 SM564:2
The rights and privileges which
Christ surrendered voluntarily may be appropriated by all who accept him.
R3879:6
Symbolically represents our
partaking by faith of the fleshly perfection of the man Jesus. R4591:3
The partaking means to us,
primarily, acceptance and appropriation to ourselves, by faith, of
justification to human rights and privileges secured by our Lord's sacrifice of
these. R2772:4; SM563:3
Eating and digesting the truth,
especially this truth; appropriating by faith his righteousness to ourselves,
we realize him as both the way and the life. R840:3, 5192:4
God's object in justifying by
faith the church is for the very purpose of permitting them to present their
bodies living sacrifices, and thus have a part with our Lord in his sacrifice,
as members of his body. R2772:4
After we thus partake of him, become
justified by appropriating his righteousness, we, by consecration, become
associated with him as part of the one broken loaf--food for the world. (1 Cor.
10:16) R5192:5, 840:3
Partaking of the glorious elements
of his character through eating his flesh and appropriating the merits of his
sacrifice. NS632:1
Except we eat of his flesh
(appropriate the merit of his sacrifice) and unless we drink his blood (join in
sacrifice with him), we have no life in us--inherent life, immortality. (John
6:53) NS770:5
Eat and drink, O beloved, says the
King to his spouse (Song of Solomon 5:1). Let us eat and drink reverently,
devotedly, thoughtfully, prayerfully, tearfully perhaps. R1505:1
This is my body -- Represents the flesh of the antitypical Lamb. F464; R2772:3
This represents me, the
antitypical Lamb. NS75:6
He could not have meant that it
was actually his literal body, for he was still in the flesh. R3879:5, 3526:4,
3364:5, 2772:3
Not his prehuman existence as a
spirit being, but his pure, spotless, human nature was laid down on behalf of
sinners. R2772:3
Matthew 26:27
He took the cup -- A new feature. While all believers might partake of the
bread, realize justification through the merit of his sacrifice, only a certain
class of them were invited to partake of the blood, the cup representing death.
SM563:4
Representing the crushing of the
grapes, the blood of the grapes, the Master's blood, his life poured out,
sacrificed, and their lives with him. R3880:3, 5081:2, 4591:4, 4453:4, 4331:3
The juice of the grapes not only
speaks of the crushing of the grape till blood comes forth, but it also speaks
of an after-refreshment. R1637:4
The cup of shame, of sorrow, of
indignity, of self-denial on behalf of others. R4429:2, 5087:6
The cup of degradation,
bitterness, distress, suffering and death. PT383:T*
It is the cup of sacrifice, even
unto death. And not only is it the sacrifice of life, but of reputation and all
that humanity holds dear. R1898:3
While this wine of sacrifice
exhausts the human nature, it invigorates and makes strong the spiritual
nature. R588:3
Which symbolized our Lord's death,
our Lord's sacrifice of his earthly rights, which was sufficient of itself to
have sealed the New Covenant. R4453:4
It was Jesus' cup of which he
drank, which he gave to his disciples to finish. R4475:1
It is one cup, though it contains
the juice of many grapes. The grapes cannot maintain themselves as grapes if
they would constitute the life-giving spirit. R5341:3, 2772:6
The same cup as offered to James
and John (Matt. 20:22) and as the "cup of salvation" (Psa. 116:13)
and as that referred to in Psa. 23:5. R4555:5; NS755:2
The antitype of the cup, in its
highest sense, will be the new joys in the kingdom. R4703:6
Nowhere is this cup described as
wine, though it may have been. R2772:6
We are not told that it was wine;
therefore it is an open question whether it was fermented or unfermented. We
may feel sure that unfermented grape juice will fulfill the terms of the
injunction. R3879:6
Our recommendation is against a
general use of wine as being possibly a temptation to some weak in the flesh.
It might not be amiss to put a small amount of fermented wine into the
unfermented grape or raisin juice. R2773:4
If any one should feel himself
endangered by tasting wine at the remembrance of the Lord's death, we would
recommend that such a one use raisin juice instead which, though not wine, is
certainly a "fruit of the vine." R509:5
Scientific men recognize quite a
difference between alcoholic or vinous fermentation and a putrefactive fermentation.
The result of the former is to cast out impurities and produce a sweet liquid,
while the other process produces sourness and ultimately rottenness. R509:4
Gave thanks -- Indicative of a joyful acquiescence in all the sufferings
which the breaking of the bread and the crushing of the grapes implied. R2773:2
Gave it to them -- Only the Little Flock is invited to participate with the
Lord. R4310:2; NS770:4
It is not for the world. R5342:3
Christ symbolically gave them the
privilege of sharing in his sufferings. R4436:4, 4475:1, 840:4; Q188:T
The shed blood was the ransom
price for all; but his act of handing the cup to his disciples and asking them
to drink of it was an invitation to them to become partakers of his sufferings.
R5192:5
We need not only nourishment and
strength from the bread, but we need the precious blood as our redemption to
release us from the condemnation of justice. R3526:5
Drink ye all of it -- All of you drink all of it--leave none of the sufferings of
Christ for the coming age. R3880:2, 4605:3, 4453:4, 4429:4
An invitation to participate with
him in the sacrifice of earthly life, interests, hopes, aims,
ambitions--everything. SM564:1; R3880:2
All who would sit with him in his
throne must drink of this same cup that our Lord drank, of self-denial, of
self-sacrifice; all must be immersed into his death. R4591:5, 5087:6, 5081:2,
4436:4, 226:1
There will be none of it left for
others to drink afterwards. R4310:3
The privilege of drinking with our
Lord in this cup of sacrifice belongs to this age only. None will be left for
the future. NS722:6, 770:4
A double signification: first, it
must all be drunk before the end of the Gospel age; and secondly, all who would
be members of his body must drink of it. R5341:3, 4453:4
Virtually inviting us to drink
into his death, to "be made conformable unto his death." (Phil. 3:10)
R111:4
Jesus passed the cup along, passed
the merit of his sacrifice through us, his followers. R4453:4, 4367:2
Participation in the blood of the
New Covenant, in providing the wherewithal for sealing the New Covenant.
CR47:5; Q188:T; R4456:4
He is still saying this to us.
R4429:1
This cup must not be allowed to
pass. PT389:1*
Showing not only interest in his
sacrifice, but also expressing our own covenant to be dead with him and to
drink of his cup. R325:5
Divide it amongst yourselves.
R4475:1
All who accept this invitation
thereby pledge their lives in the same service for which He gave his life, a
thought entirely additional to anything in the Jewish Passover type. SM564:1
Also signifies our participation
in his dishonor, our share in his sacrifice--the death of our humanity.
R1637:2, 840:5
Memorializes the consecration to
death of all the members of the body of Christ. R4980:5; NS632:1
The appropriation of this by us
signifies primarily our acceptance of restitution rights and privileges which
our Lord has thus, at his own cost, secured for us. R2772:4
There is a peculiar pleasure in
drinking of this cup, the pleasure of fellowship in his sufferings (Phil. 3:10)
and the associated hope of drinking with our Lord in his other cup--of joy,
glory and blessings. NS755:3
Not the many who will be blessed
by the New Covenant are invited to become partakers of the blood, but the few,
the little flock. NS297:6
None are to be forbidden who profess
faith in the precious blood and consecration to our Savior's service. R2773:5
Matthew 26:28
This is my blood -- His human life, his being, his soul, poured out unto death
on our behalf. R2772:4, 2272:2, 1637:2
"The blood maketh atonement
for the soul." (Lev. 17:11) R1293:2
Hence life; not life retained, but
life shed or given, yielded up, sacrificed life. R2772:6, 5192:5, 4605:3, 840:4
Primarily the Lord's death; but,
by divine arrangement, the death of his Church is also made necessary. R4310:3
Which seals. R4331:3
In which his members share. T33;
NS297:5, 631:6
The blood which will seal it is
now being used in the interest of the elect, spiritual Israel. NS722:6
Who will apply it? Jesus. Will it
be his own blood? Yes, because you are members of his body. "Without me ye
can do nothing." (John 15:5) Q188:T
The new testament -- The New Covenant. R4617:4, 4331:3
The New Covenant is the one that
supersedes the Law Covenant. R3364:5
The blood with which the New
Covenant would be sprinkled, sealed, made efficacious. R4331:6
Jesus sealed or ratified the New
Covenant with his own blood, death, just as Moses had ratified the Law
Covenant, which was a shadow of this, with the blood of a bullock and a goat.
R111:1
His will or testament, bequeathing
his earthly rights to the earthly seed of Abraham and to the world through
them. R4429:4
Which he sealed, or made
effective, with his own precious blood. R1604:1
The blood which seals, makes
binding, ratifies, the New Covenant. R2859:1, 740:6
Before our Lord Jesus could become
Mediator, he must seal the New Covenant with his own precious blood. E28
Not until the sacrifice of Christ
and his church is complete, at the end of this age, will the blood of the New
Covenant be ready to apply, to seal the New Covenant, to make it operative.
Q188:T
The New Covenant cannot become
operative until the cup of the Lord's sufferings, which was left behind, has
been drained in death by the last members of his body. NS297:5,6, 4310:3
The merit of Christ passes through
the Church for the sealing of the New Covenant. Q168:2
It takes the entire Gospel age to
find the proper number of those who are thus invited to share in this cup.
R4617:4
When the Church shall have
finished using the blood and are glorified, that same merit will be applied for
the sealing of the New Covenant. R4513:6
When we drink of Christ's cup we
become sharers with him in making the Covenant with Israel, and through Israel,
with the world. R4625:4,5
The two oldest Greek manuscripts
of the New Testament, the Sinaitic and the Vatican, omit the word
"new." R3880:1
There was another covenant, the
old covenant, the foundation covenant of all covenants, the Abrahamic covenant,
which was sealed by our Lord's death. R3880:1
Which is shed -- The giving up of Christ's life provided the ransom price.
R1335:6, 3526:5
Our Lord also indicated that the
cup signified our participation in his dishonor, our share in his sacrifice,
the death of our humanity. R5192:6
For many -- Not for the Church only, but for the sins of the whole
world. R740:5
The world in general. R111:1
For all. R1363:3
Contradicting those who say his
blood has nothing to do with forgiveness of sins; of those who say that all
will be everlastingly saved; and of those who say only the "little
flock" of this Gospel age shall be saved. R1799:6
Remission of sins -- Through faith in Jesus' blood we have remission of sins.
R4476:1, 1443:3
"Without the shedding of
blood there is no remission of sins." (Heb. 9:22) E442
We were redeemed, not with Jesus'
example, but with the precious blood of Christ. (1 Pet. 1:19) R1810:4*
It was necessary that Christ
should die for our sins. Our sins could never have been forgiven by divine
justice except through the divine arrangement by which he paid our penalty.
R3880:5
There is no other way to attain
eternal life except through accepting the blood once shed as the ransom price
for the sins of the whole world. R2772:6
Matthew 26:29
Fruit of the vine -- The antitypical thing represented in the wine. R3365:1
Representing the sacrificed life
of our Lord. R5192:5
Representing exhilaration, the
joys of the Kingdom. R3365:1, 5538:6, 5643:2, 4703:6
Grape juice or raisin juice may be
used as the symbol in the Memorial service. F476; R5194:5; Q486:4
Until that day -- The great seventh, Millennial day; day of his Kingdom.
Q78:3
Until his second coming, in power
and great glory, to receive the Church as his elect bride. R4703:5
Two great days are contrasted: the
Gospel age of suffering and the Millennial age of glory. R5538:5, 5643:2
Drink it new -- The memorial which he instituted would find its fulfillment
in the Kingdom. R2773:1
Not that he would drink literal
wine in the Kingdom, but the antitypical thing represented in the wine. R3365:1
After he had drunk this cup
faithfully he would be given a different cup, a different experience: glory,
honor and immortality. R5538:6
If Jesus' followers suffer with
him they will participate with him in his future cup of joy. R5643:4, 4703:6
To partake of the cup of the Lord
in the present time signifies to share in his sufferings; but to partake of his
cup in the coming age will mean to share in his glory and joy. R1695:2
Commemorative of the heroism of
their faith and their fidelity to the divine purpose under the most crucial
tests, and a rejoicing together in the victory of that faith. R1801:4
Implying a new wine under
different conditions at some distant date. R3880:3
The new wine--new life and joy.
R2436:3, 1504:5
The cup of joy and blessing, honor
and glory, in the Kingdom. R3880:3, 5420:2, 5341:2, 4703:6
The new wine, the participation
with the Master in uplifting the world of mankind. R3880:4
Symbolized by Jesus' first miracle
of turning the water into wine. R1695:2
My Father's kingdom -- Beyond the veil, at his second coming in power and great
glory. R4703:5, 5341:2, 3880:3
As usual our Lord had something to
say about the kingdom. It seems to have been associated in his every discourse.
R2773:1
As a result of the trials and
sufferings symbolized, there will be a jubilation in the Kingdom. R2773:1
Kingdom glory is the end of the
symbol. R5193:2, 2272:4, 1290:6
Primarily it is the Kingdom of the
Father, but the Father has voluntarily proposed to place the dominion of the
earth for 1000 years under the full charge of a Viceroy, Christ and his bride.
D642
Matthew 26:30
Sung an hymn -- A hymn of praise, no doubt, thanksgiving to the Father that
his course was so nearly finished and that he found thus far grace sufficient
for every time of need. R2773:2
They went out -- Instead of dispersing, they went out together. R1801:4
Omitting our usual greetings, let
us keep our thoughts with our Lord--beaten, condemned to death, carrying his
own cross, crucified--for our sins. R3527:1
Let each go home with his heart
full; thus we may prolong our communion and fellowship with the Master. R5195:2
Realizing he would be arrested,
our Lord probably did not wish to bring commotion or trouble upon the friend
who had so kindly permitted the use of the upper room. R2773:6
Into the mount -- To the Garden of Gethsemane and fresh trials; so every
recurrence of the Memorial season brings fresh trials, fresh testings, fresh
siftings upon the Lord's people. R3365:4
Matthew 26:31
Ye shall be offended -- Disappointed, seeing him suddenly taken and ignominiously
crucified as a felon. B111
Seeing the hopes of the kingdom
going glimmering. R4487:6; B111
It was his doctrines that offended
the people, not his personality; nevertheless; their resentment was against his
personality rather than against the doctrines, which were too strong for them
to attack. R4488:4
I will smite the shepherd --
God permitted the Adversary to smite
him. R4487:4
In proportion as we follow closely
to the Master's footsteps, our experiences will be similar to his. We, too,
shall be hated. R4488:4
Flock shall be scattered -- Be desolate, aimless, perplexed. B111
"And they all forsook him and
fled." (Mark 14:50) R4756:2, 3178:6
Only two followed him at the end:
one, in terror, denied him; the other viewed him from afar. R4488:5
Being thus forewarned, no
experience should move us from our constancy and faithfulness. R4488:5
Matthew 26:33
Peter -- The Peter class, the true-hearted, not sufficiently
watching, praying or on guard, are at times taken unawares, and for a moment
dishonor the Lord. R4907:6
We should strive to be not of the
Peter class, but of the class represented by the Lord himself: of the watching,
praying, faithful kind. R4908:4
Never be offended -- It is the specially loyal and ardent that the Adversary
seeks most to entrap. R4712:2
Peter was still unconscious of his
weakness and his need, though full of loving loyalty to the Lord. R1987:6
How little did this courageous man
understand the nature of the trials and difficulties immediately before him, or
realize the weak points of his own impulsive nature. R4712:2
He did not know how much weakness
was in him; therefore, when the Lord was watching and praying that momentous
night, St. Peter was one of the first to fall asleep. R5202:1
Matthew 26:34
Deny me thrice -- Perhaps the Lord allowed that to happen to Peter for our
sakes, that we might realize that we need to be careful to put our confidence
in the Lord. CR307:5
Matthew 26:36
Jesus with them -- Because he loved them and knew they loved him, he permitted
them to accompany him to the place of prayer that they might watch and pray
with him. R1801:2
Gethsemane -- Oil-press place. R2773:3, 4707:2
Not a wild woods nor a public
garden, but an olive orchard; supposed to have been the home of the mother of
Mark, reported to have been a wealthy widow, a friend of Jesus' cause. R3885:2
Tradition has it that this garden
belonged to the family of which the apostles John and James were members.
R4707:2
Sit ye here -- As a kind of outer guard. R3885:2, 2773:6, 1801:2
While I go and pray -- That he might find grace to help in time of need. R1801:1
Matthew 26:37
Peter and the two -- The same three whom he had specially honored on other
occasions; the three most courageous, most zealous, most earnest, of his
disciples. R2774:1, 3885:2, 1801:2
To be sorrowful -- Because of the coming shame of trial, conviction and
execution as a blasphemer and seditionist. The perfect man must have suffered
far more than would have been possible for a fallen one. R3885:3
No doubt the thought of the
extinguishment of life was an important factor in our Lord's sorrow. R2774:3
And very heavy -- Oppressed with the fear that in some manner he might have
failed of perfection and that his death might mean extinction. R3886:1,
4804:2,3
None can read this account
thoughtfully without realizing that there must be something wrong in the
popular theory that our Lord Jesus was his own Heavenly Father. R2773:3
His was no coarse, stoical nature,
insensitive to pain, shame and loss; nor was it a proud, self-centered nature,
which stood aloof from human fellowship. R1801:2
Matthew 26:38
Unto them -- They were inclined to think that he was taking a
pessimistic view of matters. R5090:3
My soul -- Being. R2502:2, 276:3
Exceeding sorrowful -- He was wondering whether or not he had done everything to
the Father's pleasement. CR149:4; R5403:4, 5331:4, 2774:4
The disciples were at a loss to
understand his sadness. R5090:3
He was greatly amazed and sore
troubled. The Greek carries the thought of loneliness, home-sickness,
friendlessness. R5551:1
Not only with the mental
realization of death, but also the desolation of his disciples forsaking him,
the sorrowful reflections on the irretrievable loss of Judas, the course of the
Jewish nation, and the degradation of the whole guilty world. In addition to
all this was his knowledge that every jot and tittle of the Law with reference
to his sacrifice must be perfectly fulfilled. R1801:3
We are glad that Jesus was not one
of those cold, stoical icebergs, but full of tender feelings and sensibilities,
and consequently able to sympathize with those most tender and delicate.
R2774:2
Even unto death -- I feel as if I would die now, without coming into that
great crisis before me. R5551:1
The death of Jesus began at
Jordan, merely culminating at Calvary. R5104:2
An agony which, of itself, would
have worn him out shortly, an intense mental and nervous strain which caused
him to sweat great drops of blood. R1801:2
Supposing 100 to represent perfect
life, our Lord had the full 100 units to lay down while we, at most, have only
the one-hundredth part to lay down. R2774:3
Matthew 26:39
A little farther -- Realizing the impossibility of even his dearest friends
appreciating his sorrowful condition. R4707:3
"I have trodden the winepress
alone, and of the people there was none with me" (Isa. 63:3). He was alone
because he alone had been begotten of the holy Spirit. R4707:5, 3886:4, 2467:2
Having gone to the Father alone,
his thoughts turned inward upon himself and his relationship to the Father, and
outward upon the public shame of his trial. R3885:3
Fell on his face -- Upon his knees, with his face to the earth. The mental
anguish seemed to come upon him here with a force of poignancy he had never
before experienced. R2774:1
And prayed -- Even the perfect human nature was not equal to such an
emergency without divine aid. R1801:4
O my Father -- No one can thoughtfully read these words without feeling
there is something thoroughly incorrect in the prevalent idea that our Lord
Jesus was his own Father, Jehovah. R2773:3
Let this cup -- Not the cup of death, which our Lord expected to drink, but
the peculiar death of shame and ignominy. R3886:2, 5422:1, 5421:2-6, 1247:3
He questioned the necessity of the
public scorn and contempt as a criminal. SM647:1
To his perfect mind the shame,
disesteem and opprobrium added greatly to his anguish. R5421:6
The question was, Had he been
absolutely loyal to God in every particular? If not, death would mean to him an
eternal extinction of being; not only the loss of heavenly glory, but the loss
of everything. R4707:6, 3886:2
If he should fail in any part of
the work, all would be lost, both for himself and for men. Though he was a
perfect man, he realized that the flesh, however perfect, was unequal to the
task. R1801:3
The same cup represented in the
Communion service. R5421:3
Pass from me -- It is well to remember that his perfect organism was much
more susceptible to the pains and sorrows of the hour than could be the
feelings of others of the fallen race. R3885:3
Not as I will -- As a man. T54
I claim no rights nor attempt to
follow my own ideas. SM647:1
The sacrifice of his will meant
all that he had. CR453:5
He did not murmur nor rebel.
R5422:1
Whatever is asked must, in
propriety, include the thought and the expression, Thy will, not ours, O Lord,
be done. R2140:3
A petition of all who are truly
the Lord's in everything--in matters temporal, in matters spiritual. NS226:2
But as thou wilt -- As my heavenly Father. T54
Proving that his affirmation,
"Lo, I come to do thy will, O God" (Heb. 10:7) was not empty words.
R5421:3
He submitted himself to all the
Father's will and thus proved his loyalty. R5421:6
Though at the time he evidently
could not see the necessity for every feature of his test, he nevertheless knew
that the love of God was too great to allow a needless pain, and therefore he
trusted him where he could not at the time trace his inscrutable ways. R1808:4,
959:6
What our Lord did, and what he
refrained from doing, we know was the Father's will. R2037:5
Matthew 26:40
Asleep -- Luke explains that their sleep was the result of sorrow.
R2774:4
Could ye not watch -- Peter did not realize the importance of the hour. R3886:6
Gently, Jesus reproved them.
R4804:5
Matthew 26:41
Watch and pray -- By faith draw very near to the Master, and be full of
confidence in the divine plan. R4488:5
All true watchers must also be
pray-ers [i.e. people who pray]; all fervent pray-ers will also be watchers.
Prayer represents the faith; watching represents the works which must accompany
it, so long as it is a living faith. R2692:2, 2528:4, 2526:2
The necessity for watching as well
as praying lies in the fact that we have an adversary, an invisible foe, who
seeks to seduce us, turn us aside from our vows of consecration. NS227:2
The devil is seeking whom he may
devour. He knows your weak points and is ready to take advantage of them.
R3179:4
To suppose that Christian life
depends solely upon prayer, without earnest study of God's Word, is like
supposing that a tree could flourish from its leaves only, without roots and
soil. Both are needful. R4984:1, 799:2
What they would be praying for
they would be striving for. The earnestness of the praying would help them in
the watching. R5312:3
Our part is to watch and pray and
do our best; God's part is to overrule, direct and supervise our affairs.
R4660:2
Pray for guidance, wisdom and
grace. R5331:5
The praying would signify that
they were watching and that their own watching was not sufficient, but that
they would need divine assistance. R5312:3
Some pray and neglect to watch,
others watch and neglect to pray. Both errors are serious. R4984:1, 2775:5,
799:2
Not merely on my account. You need
to be in a watching attitude on your own account. An hour of severe trial is
upon us all. R2774:5
Our Lord watched and prayed; he
got a blessing, was strengthened and came off victor. The disciples did not
watch and pray; as a result we find them scattered and bewildered. R2775:2
Watching our words, thoughts and
doings, seeing to it that we worship the Lord in the beauty of holiness, not
idolizing either dead or living men or creeds. R4706:6
Watching our own weaknesses,
failures and shortcomings, that we may protect ourselves along the lines of
these weaknesses. NS228:3
Watching not only the Lord's
betrayal, trial and crucifixion, but also their experiences of the subsequent
days when the disciples met within closed doors. R5312:3
Watch to be on guard against the
encroachments of the world, the flesh and the devil; watch for all the
encouragements of the Lord's Word; watch for everything that will strengthen
faith, hope, loyalty and love. R2775:5, 2692:2
Pray together as the Lord's
people; pray in our homes as families; pray in secret, in private; have the
spirit of prayer in all that we say and do. R2775:6
Although a necessity, nowhere is
prayer defined as a duty, nor is a form of prayer furnished. R4984:4
The frequency and subject matter
of prayer will be regulated by circumstances and the earnestness of one's
service. R4984:4
There seems to be special need of
this at the Passover season. R3178:3
Be active, alert, and co-labor with
God and with Christ. R5332:1, 5312:3
That ye enter not -- Yield not. R5202:1
Not that we would not have
temptations come to us, but that we would not fall into those temptations.
R5312:5, 5331:5, 3759:3, 2774:4, Those who neglect the Master's words will be
sure to enter into temptation, and be tolerably sure to fall therein. R2775:5
Into temptation -- In this hour of trial, which is upon us all. R2774:4
The close of this age is "the
hour of temptation" (Rev. 3:10) or testing. It is the Gethsemane hour. R2775:4,
5312:5, 3886:6
"Abandon us not in
temptation, but deliver us from the evil one." (Matt. 6:13) R3759:6
As they were then entering into a
time of special temptation, so we in the end of this age are living in a time
of special trial regarding all that which we have learned. R5312:5
We have noted for several years
the peculiar force of temptations at the time of Passover every Spring. R3178:3
Spirit indeed is willing -- To them it merely meant that they were willing in spirit,
in mind, in intention. R5312:5; NS228:5
Their intention was better than
their ability to perform. R5312:6
Here, the new creature, the will.
R3986:2
Flesh is weak -- Greek, astheneo, meaning without strength; from a, without;
and sthenos, strength. R4099:2*
The old creature, mental and
physical. R3986:2
Not up to the standard of
righteousness, but we are strong in proportion as we overcome the natural
tendencies. R5313:2
How impossible it would be for us
in any measure or degree to carry out the good resolutions which we make when we
accept Christ. NS228:6
Were we perfect, there would be
little difficulty in ruling our minds and our bodies as soon as the will had
been fixed for righteousness. R3986:1
Matthew 26:42
This cup -- He knew his death to be necessary, unavoidable, but it was
the ignominious form of death, "even the death of the cross" (Phil.
2:8), that staggered him. R2775:2
To his perfect mind the shame and
disesteem, the opprobrium, added greatly to the poignancy of his anguish.
R5421:6
Representing the shame and
ignominy of being executed as a blasphemer of the divine law. R5421:3,2
The same cup represented in the
Communion service. R5421:3
See also comments on Matt. 26:39. Pass
away from me -- He felt a great shrinking from the coming humiliation
and degradation. R5421:3
Thy will be done -- Having learned it was the Father's will for him, he was
content to have it so. R5421:2
Matthew 26:43
And he came -- It was no sign of weakness that he thus craved human
sympathy. R1801:2
Matthew 26:44
The same words -- That is to say, the same sentiments were expressed. R2774:5
Matthew 26:45
Sleep on now -- Not sarcasm; he wished that they get a little rest,
refreshment, in view of the ordeals of the day approaching. R3887:2
The hour is at hand -- He was assured of the Father's favor, and could pass
through any experience; he had gotten the victory. R5331:4
Matthew 26:47
Lo, Judas -- He either knew the garden as a spot frequented by Jesus and
his disciples, or had learned at the supper where the company intended to go
subsequently. R3887:2
A great multitude -- Not Roman soldiers, but a rabble of the curious with
certain servants of the high priest, who was also a judge; an impromptu
sheriff's posse. R3887:2
A number of men who served as
policemen in the Temple and its precincts. These were servants of the high
priest. R5561:1
The under-priests and
under-officers of Caiaphas' court, his household of servants. R2780:6
And staves -- Maces. R5561:1
Matthew 26:48
Betrayed him -- There can be no excuse properly offered for treachery to
God and his cause. R5552:4
Matthew 26:49
Hail, master -- Some accompany a denial of the ransom with these words and
a deceitful kiss. R4909:4
And kissed him -- In profession of love. C189
Representatives of the Judas
spirit also betray with a kiss, professing great love and respect for the
members of the body of Christ, which they secretly smite for personal gain.
R3887:6
The mind and conscience must be
perverted before each step of sin. R5552:5
All such should be an abhorrence
to every one who possesses the true, noble, Christ-like spirit. R4909:4
The Greek indicates that he kissed
the Lord repeatedly. R3887:2
Matthew 26:50
Friend -- Not the Greek word philos, beloved, or loving friend; but
from hetaire, which signifies comrade or partner. R3887:3
Mark the calm, dignified fortitude
as a result of his Gethsemane prayers. R1801:6
Matthew 26:51
One of them -- Peter. R3887:6, 4711:3, 3367:4
Drew his sword -- Which was carried as proof that our Lord was not taken
contrary to his own will. R3367:4, 5922:2
The having of the swords made
possible the exhibition of the courage of the disciples and the willingness of
Jesus to submit. R5922:4, 2468:4
Matthew 26:52
Put up again thy sword -- Never afterward do we hear of the disciples using force or
violence in the service of the Lord. R3887:6
Never was there a time when this
admonition was more needed by nominal Christendom than today. R2779:4
That take the sword -- The blending of carnal with spiritual warfare is
impossible, and such a course is sure to cultivate, more and more, the carnal
mind. R1954:1
Shall perish -- A general principle. R5922:4
With the sword -- He who prepares for warfare will be pretty sure to get
plenty of it. R5922:4
We are never to use earthly power
in seeking to promote the cause of the Master. The only sword we may use is
"the sword of the Spirit." (Eph. 6:17) R3888:1
Matthew 26:53
Give me more -- His request would have been honored. Having violated no
law, his life was not forfeited, and we believe could not have been taken from
him. R2037:5, 5046:3
He who declined to ask for
personal help was nevertheless perfectly at liberty to call upon these powers
in the interests of his followers--in the feeding of the multitude, the
stilling of the tempest and the providing of the taxes. F650
He could have escaped the awful
experience, but he did not do so, but willingly gave himself a ransom for
sinners. R959:6
Legions of angels -- If I were willing to use divine power for my personal
comfort. F637, 650
Christ never prayed for
deliverance from his natural troubles, but cheerfully endured them as part of
his sacrifice, and so should we. F636
He did not exercise this power for
his own defence. R2787:6, 3902:1
Matthew 26:54
But how then -- Likewise those who now tread the same narrow way refuse to
ask to escape sacrifice for the same reason, that they may complete their
covenant of sacrifice. R749:5
Our Lord does not indicate by his
language that he could ask for angelic protection and yet retain the full
measure of the Father's approval. R2037:5
Hence we are debarred from asking
for restitution blessings and privileges. R2009:2
Thus it must be -- It would have been sin for him to have called on the divine
power for his relief or protection from any part of the dying processes,
because he had made a covenant of sacrifice. F636; R379:1
Those who consecrated to God, to
be "conformed unto his death" (Phil. 3:10) must not only not keep
back any part of the price, but see so clearly the dependence of their glory on
suffering with him that they ask no physical healing for themselves. R379:1
He laid aside his own will and
carried out the will of God, though it cost him privation at every step and
finally a death most painful and ignominious. R1041:2
The temporal favors were withheld
that the divine purpose might be accomplished in the sacrificial death of his
beloved Son. R1689:6
Matthew 26:56
Forsook him -- Are we prepared for the time when there will possibly be a
general scattering, as these "all forsook him and fled"? R3887:1
And fled -- Our Lord had said, "Let these go their way."
(John 18:8) R3888:1
Matthew 26:57
And they -- Their policy was to curry favor with the Roman Emperor and
to seek to hold the common people in subjection to themselves. R4711:1
Led him away -- Our Lord surrendered voluntarily. R5922:2
At probably three o'clock in the
morning. R5561:1
Probably about one o'clock in the
morning. The examination and trial are supposed to have lasted until half past
five in the morning. R2312:3
To Caiaphas -- Evidently the ringleader in the conspiracy against Jesus.
R2780:6
Some of their highest offices were
held by irreligionists. The Chief Priest was a Sadducee who wholly disbelieved
in the promises of God to Israel. R4710:6 Amongst Christians there are D.D.'s
who are unbelievers. R4711:1
We hearken to St. Peter's words
respecting the transaction, "I wot that through ignorance ye did, as did
also your rulers." (Acts 3:15-17) R4710:3
Were assembled -- Contrary to the Jewish Law, which forbade the trial of any
man between sunset and sunrise. R3367:5, 4711:4, 3888:2, 2781:1
This, being the night of the
paschal supper, made it still more objectionable. R1809:2
Carefully excluding, evidently, a
few such men as Joseph of Arimathea, Nicodemus and probably a few others known
to be favorably inclined toward the new teacher. R1809:2
Matthew 26:58
High priest's palace -- The house of Annas, a superannuated high priest, whose
son-in-law Caiaphas officiated in his stead. R5561:1
Matthew All the council -- The
Sanhedrin, composed of seventy of the most influential Jews, an ecclesiastical
court, whose voice properly had great influence with the Roman governor.
R5561:2
The examination was merely a
preliminary one to get together such evidence as could be rushed through
rapidly at a prearranged session the following morning. R4711:5
Sought false witness -- They did not wish true witnesses who would tell what they
knew about the Master. R3888:3
Everywhere there is a tendency to
make excuse and depart from the laws and from the principles of justice, under
the claim that the circumstances and the conditions of the case make necessary
such a violation of law and just principles. R5560:3
Through bribery. R5561:2
Matthew 26:60
But found none -- They found many who willingly bore false witness against
him, but none whose witness agreed together. R1809:3
It is to the credit of those
connected with the court that they neither seriously misunderstood our Lord's
teachings nor were willing to misrepresent them. R3888:3
Came two false witnesses -- Who falsified by slightly perverting our Lord's statements.
R2312:5
The Jewish Law required at least
two witnesses to any such trial. R2781:2
No attempt was made to bring any
of those whom Jesus had relieved of various sicknesses. R5561:2
Matthew 26:61
I am able -- Nothing about this was false evidence. It was what the
majority of those who heard probably understood our Lord to mean. R3888:3
Destroy the temple -- Not the Jewish Temple, "But this he spake of the
temple of his body." (John 2:19) R638:3*
The true Church. T70
In three days -- The fifth, sixth and seventh thousand-year days. R3375:2
The Sanhedrin decided that he was
a blasphemer for saying this. R5421:2
Matthew 26:62
The high priest arose -- To give the effect that very damaging testimony had been
given. R2781:2
And said -- Caiaphas, not only high priest, but in this particular
case, acting as prosecuting attorney. R5561:2
Answerest thou nothing? -- A different and illegal plan, to excite the prisoner so
that he would make some incriminating confession. R2781:2
Matthew 26:63
Jesus held his peace -- He was not there to defend himself; and, if he had been,
there was no need for defence. There was nothing criminal in what he had said
respecting the Temple. R2781:2
Knowing that the truth was not
desired and would avail nothing with these men who so warmly cherished murder
in their hearts. R1809:5
I adjure thee -- I put thee under oath. R2781:2
The Son of God -- Not Jehovah himself. R2781:4,5
The charge of blasphemy was based
upon his claim of being a Son of God, not the Father himself; that thus he was
placing himself on a parity with God, as being of the same kind or nature.
R2781:5
For Jesus to keep quiet would have
been to deny this great truth and to have failed to give proper witness.
R5561:4
Matthew 26:64
Jesus saith -- Our Lord was not bound to answer this question, which he
well knew would be used to incriminate him as a blasphemer. R2781:3
To have remained silent would have
been to deny himself, denying the truth, and denying the High Priest of the
nation the knowledge and the corresponding responsibility of the hour. R3888:5
Thou hast said -- That is my name. R3888:5
That is, I assent to what you have
said; or, I am the Messiah, the Son of God. R3888:5, 2781:3
Hereafter -- In the Millennial age, at his second coming. R3888:5,
5408:6
Ye shall see -- A declaration that those who there witnessed his
humiliation and mock trial should in due time recognize him as the honored of
God. R2781:3
Right hand of power -- Right hand signifies the chief place, position of
excellence or favor, next to the chief ruler. A92
"Sit thou on my right hand
until I make thine enemies thy footstool." (Psa. 110:1) A92, 93
Seated at the Father's right hand
in the sense of being given this permanent position of honor and dignity.
R5408:6
Honored with a superior station, a
position above all others. R2935:2
Jesus will be on the right hand
when coming, and will remain on the right hand during the Millennial age and
forever. A93
The power and glory of his
Kingdom, which he had previously affirmed was not of this world but of the
world to come, wherein dwelleth righteousness. R1809:5
In the testing of mankind, after
the Mediatorial reign, Jesus will be the Father's representative. R4999:4
In the clouds -- The time of trouble. B138
Of heaven -- The powers of spiritual control. A318
Matthew 26:65
Rent his clothes -- Greek, simla, or upper garment. R2781:3
His very robes were symbolic of
the blessed one who stood in their midst, fulfilling to the letter the
predictions of the prophets. R1809:5
Implying to the Sanhedrin that, as
a representative of God amongst them, he had heard something awful indeed.
R5561:4
As an expression of his pretended
righteous indignation. R3889:1
Spoken blasphemy -- No charges of treason or sedition were made. Such would
have been out of order. Because Jews held their right to freedom from the Roman
yoke, treason to Rome would have been loyalty to Judaism. R2312:6
Matthew 26:66
What think ye? -- Apparently only two refrained from this vote--Nicodemus and
Joseph of Arimathea; both had great respect for Jesus. R5561:4
They answered -- As prearranged. R2781:3 Guilty of death -- Condemned by the
high priest as a blasphemer and malefactor. R5561:5
The Jews, who caused the
crucifixion of Jesus, certainly did so in much the same spirit which led St.
Paul, then Saul of Tarsus, to cause the stoning of St. Stephen. R4710:6
Matthew 26:67
Then -- During the interim between the 3 a.m. examination and the 5
a.m. formal conviction of our Lord. R2470:5
Did they -- The servants, manifesting the same spirit as their masters.
Their methods were ruder because they were more ignorant and coarse. R2470:4
Spit in his face -- "He shall see of the travail of his soul and shall be
satisfied." (Isa. 53:11) E52
Low minds delight in the
misfortunes of those whom they realize to be their superiors. R2470:5
How do we receive the buffetings,
the trials, the "contradictions of sinners"? Are we similarly patient
and long-suffering? R3889:4
Others smote him -- "I gave my back to the smiters and my cheeks to them
that plucked off my hair; I hid not my face for shame and spitting" (Isa.
50:6) E52
"Consider him who endured
such contradiction of sinners against himself." (Heb. 12:3) R2781:6
Matthew 26:69
Peter sat without -- St. John, because of an acquaintance with the high priest's
family, penetrated further into the palace than St. Peter, who stood in the
courtyard. R4712:4
In the palace -- Courageous enough to enter, even after having cut off the
ear of one of the priest's servants. (John 18:15,16) R5202:2, 4711:4
Matthew 26:70
But he denied -- Peter had been too sure of his own stability, too confident
of his loyalty. He was entrapped by the Adversary along the very line of his
boasting. R4712:5
The weaknesses, faults and
blemishes of his character were of his flesh and not of his real heart
intention. R4711:6
Matthew 26:74
Then -- An illustration of God's Temple class upon those who leave
symbolic Babylon, following the casting off of nominal Israel. C188
Began he to curse -- Foreshadowing the testing of the sanctuary class now. C189
I know not the man -- But this sin was before the Spirit was given. F224
Matthew 26:75
And wept bitterly -- We know not what his prayers were, but we may be sure they
were full of deep contrition that he had denied the Master. R5312:5
It is said that for the rest of
his life Peter arose every morning at cock-crowing to remember afresh this
denial of his Lord. R3368:1
The weeping showed that the denial
was merely the result of weakness of the flesh. R5202:2
The weaknesses, the faults, the
blemishes of his character were of his flesh and not of his real heart
intention. R4711:6
Peter was sifted (Luke 22:31), and
almost failed; but, being "clean," true at heart, he was enabled to
come off victorious. Judas also was tested, and he proved to be unclean. C189
Those who fail today should, too, weep
bitterly for transgressions and repent and profit by their experiences. R4712:5
Matthew 27
Matthew 27:1
Morning was come -- As early in the morning as possible, before the people
would be generally astir. R5570:2, 4712:3
The Sanhedrin having been called
together so as to legally confirm the illegal trial of the night previous.
R3368:1, 4712:3, 2781:5, 1809:3
Matthew 27:2
To Pontius Pilate -- Tradition has it that Pilate had heard previously of Jesus,
and even met him by appointment privately, making inquiry respecting his
teachings. R5570:2
The governor -- The Roman Governor of Judea, the representative of Caesar's
government. R5570:2
Matthew 27:3
When he saw -- Implying that he was surprised when Jesus was condemned.
Apparently he surmised that Jesus, brought to the crucial test, would assert
himself as the Master and triumph over his enemies. R5552:4
Repented himself -- Judas was not without conscience, but lacked the genuine
loyalty of heart which, in the Lord's sight, is indispensable; the absence of
which, in Judas' case, was inexcusable. R3760:2
Were Judas' tears better than
those of Esau (Heb. 12:17)? Did his repentance lead to a renewed and reformed
life, or to self-destruction (Heb. 6:6)? R2283:6
Matthew 27:4
See thou to that -- Greek, optomai, attend thou to that. R140:3
Matthew 27:5
And hanged himself -- Acts 1:8 says that, falling headlong, he burst asunder.
Both are true. If he chose the branch of a tree overhanging a precipice to hang
himself, the rope might readily break under the strain and the fall take place.
R5552:6
The rewards of unrighteousness
never yield the honors and blessings coveted. R2469:4
"Woe to that man by whom the
offence cometh." (Matt. 18:7) R3760:3
Every suicide, by his act,
confesses his wish that he had never been born. R3364:3, 5552:5, 4907:3
There may be hope for other
suicides because of the ignorance and because Christ died for all. R5552:5
Matthew 27:9
Thirty pieces of silver -- The price of a slave. R2745:1
Equivalent to about twenty dollars
of our money. R2468:2
Children of Israel -- The whole twelve tribes. C293
Matthew 27:10
Potter's field -- Burial place for strangers. R5552:3
Matthew 27:11
Art thou the King -- Realizing that Pilate would not recognize blasphemy as a
cause for death, the charge against Jesus before Pilate was a totally different
one, namely, that Jesus was a seditionist and raiser of disturbance. R4712:3,
5570:3, 2312:6, 1809:6
Thou sayest -- He makes no response to the various charges and calumnies
which the Jewish elders and priests heaped upon him. R2313:1
Matthew 27:12
Priests and elders -- Having been rejected by them as the king. B251
Matthew 27:14
Never a word -- Jesus made no defense. He knew that the time had come for
him to die. He would not attempt to turn aside that which he knew to be a part
of the divine program for him. R5570:3, 2313:1, 575:4
The governor marvelled -- Amazed that anyone should be so indifferent to the
preservation of his own life. R2313:1, 1810:1
Matthew 27:16
Barabbas -- A highway robber. R5571:2
He evidently thought that, because
Barabbas was so undesirable a person to have at liberty, the Jews would finally
conclude that of the two they would prefer to have Jesus at liberty rather than
Barabbas. R2313:2
Matthew 27:18
For envy -- Typified by the envy of Joseph's brethren. R3971:4
Because he and his teachings were
having more influence with the common people than could be exercised by the
chief priests and scribes. R4712:6, 2316:2
Realizing their own inferiority
and unfitness to be the leaders, they could not brook the appearance of a rival
of superior talents and ability. R1964:1
Matthew 27:19
His wife -- Possibly one of the Lord's followers. R3896:4*
Matthew 27:21
They said, Barabbas -- The world's natural choice is for one of murderous spirit
rather than a saint. R3896:2
Religious fanaticism is the
deepest, wickedest and most conscienceless of hatreds. R2313:2
Matthew 27:22
They all say -- At the close of Jesus' ministry only about 500 worthy ones
had been found. Most Israelites were not ready to be used of God in the
blessing of the other nations. R4593:5
Three classes of criminals come to
view: the Pharisaical class, who for envy delivered him up; the Judas class,
hirelings, ready to sell their services for bribes; and the cold-blooded
menials, who watch on with complacency and indifference. R1964:1-4
Let him be crucified -- The most ignominious and cruel method of death, so that his
memory should be ever covered with infamy. R1810:4
Matthew 27:23
What evil -- Answering "No" to their cry. R2313:2
But they cried -- Judas loved money, and these loved the approval of the
priests and rulers and wanted to be on the popular side. R1964:2
Let him be crucified -- The Jewish aristocracy and democracy united in
demonstration of untruth that "The voice of the people is the voice of
God." R3369:5
Matthew 27:24
A tumult was made -- As a representative and mouthpiece for the Roman empire,
Pilate was required to preserve peace at any cost. R2313:2
And washed his hands -- As a symbol of his own disagreement with the death-decree
which they were compelling him to render. R2786:3
To indicate his dissent and
clearing himself from responsibility. R3896:5
I am innocent -- Manifesting far greater concern than the Papacy would have
done under similar circumstances. B330, 331
Remembering that Pilate was
neither a Jew nor a Christian, but a heathen man, we cannot condemn him as
others have done, but commend him as a man who loved justice. R2786:4
This just person -- While the world blamed Jesus, yet in the private counsels
they recognized the fact that he was harmless. R4797:1
See ye to it -- Greek, optomai, attend ye to it. R140:6
It was policy that he rule justly,
but justice was to be sacrificed at any time in the interests of the Roman
Empire. R5570:2
Look to yourselves, that you are
likewise free from blood-guiltiness. R2313:4
Matthew 27:25
His blood be on us -- The full responsibility of what followed was left with the
Jews. R3896:6, 5721:1; Q356:1
The curse of blindness came as
requested. D571
The Lord took them at their word.
OV77:T
Alas! poor Jews! With what
judgment you judge, you have been judged. R2313:4
The curse which they brought upon
their own heads remains with them. They can only escape the curse of the Law
and this additional curse by having the merit of Christ's blood implied to
them. R3062:3
There is no way to escape from
your self- pronounced curse of his blood, except by accepting his blood.
R2313:4
The better educated Pharisees and
Priests who incited the multitude had more responsibility, and Judas was the
real crucifier because of his knowledge and willfulness. R4909:2
And on our children -- And they also expressed the desire that their posterity
should bear it. Q356:1; R5721:1
It has been so! They have since
suffered as aliens from God, without prophet, priest, sin- offerings or
Atonement Days. R5571:4
The turning point of Israel's
history. OV77:T
Matthew 27:26
Scourged Jesus -- Possibly hoping that the scourging would satisfy his
adversaries' thirst for blood. R3369:1
He delivered him -- Influenced more by considerations of policy than of
principle, and willing to satisfy the people. R1810:4
The Roman government expected
their governors to be absolutely just in respect to Roman citizens; dealings
with others were to be conciliatory. PD69/83
Matthew 27:28
They stripped him -- "He shall see of the travail of his soul and shall be
satisfied." (Isa. 53:11) E52
Matthew 27:29
Mocked him -- The trials, sufferings and contradictions which our Lord
endured, while no part of our ransom-price, were expedient in the Father's
judgment as being a part of his testing. R2316:3
Crown of thorns -- They jeered him upon his claim to kingship. R2786:5
Reed in his right hand -- Without a surmise that he really was the one to whose
scepter every knee shall bow. (Phil. 2:10) R2786:5
Matthew 27:30
They spit upon him -- "I hid not my face from shame and spitting."
(Isa. 50:6) E52
And smote him -- "I gave my back to the smiters and my cheeks to them
that plucked off the hair." (Isa. 50:6) E52
Matthew 27:32
A man of Cyrene -- Where now were Peter, James and John! R3369:6
To bear his cross -- The portion of it which dragged. R3369:6
Because, according to tradition,
our Lord had been compelled to carry the cross and fainted under it. E123
The opportunity to bear the cross
for the members of the Lord's body is still with us. R2787:1, 3370:1
The Lord will send the aid
necessary, even though, as in this case, it be impressed. R3370:1
Matthew 27:33
Golgotha -- In Latin, Calvary. R3900:6, 3370:2
Place of a skull -- Here, in the perpendicular face of a limestone knoll, is
the most remarkable likeness to a skull. R3900:6, 3370:2, 1394:6
Matthew 27:34
Mingled with gall -- To deaden the pain. R3370:2, 3901:1
Not as an injury, but as a
kindness. It is supposed that the mixture would assuage thirst to some degree.
R3562:6
Tasted thereof -- As a token of his appreciation for the kindness expressed
by it. R3370:2, 3901:1
He would not drink -- Preferring to experience the full measure of the pain and
suffering which the Father's wisdom and love and justice had prepared for him.
R3370:2, 3901:1, 2473:3
Matthew 27:35
Parted his garments -- The clothing in which Jesus appeared after his resurrection
was as specially created for the occasion as was the body in which he appeared.
B128
The usual dress of a Jew consisted
of five parts: the head dress, the shoes, the outer garment or toga, the girdle
(one part for each of the soldiers) and the tunic. R3562:4
Some in Christendom are willing to
divide among themselves day by day the blessings and advantages which have come
through his death, but without appreciation or gratitude. R3562:4
Upon my vesture -- His seamless robe, beautifully representing his own
personal perfection; probably a gift from one of the noble women mentioned as
being among his friends. R2316:1
Cast lots -- For the "chilton," the tunic or coat; a kind of
shirt fitting somewhat loosely and reaching from the neck to the ankles.
R3562:4
Matthew 27:36
And sitting down -- Presuming to have no responsibility in the matter, caring
nothing for the honor of justice or the vindication of right. R1964:2
They watched him there -- Depravity of fallen human nature was strikingly illustrated
in those who witnessed the Lord's many wonderful works, and then his
unresisting sacrifice for our sins--they were cold, without appreciation. R2315:6
Resembling, to a considerable
degree, the whole of Christendom who have heard of Jesus and are still totally
unmoved, unconcerned, without thankfulness or appreciation. R3562:4, 2316:2
There are still the cruel
cold-blooded menials who, with complacency and indifference, and yet with
curiosity, sit down and watch the sufferings of the body, and wonder what will
happen next. R1964:6
God of Heaven! forbid that I
should gaze with pitiless eye on a suffering child of thine. R5837:6*
Instead of falling at his feet and
exclaiming, "My Lord and my Redeemer." Many in our day similarly view
the Lord's sufferings with calm indifference. R2316:1
Matthew 27:37
Set up over his head -- The crime of each culprit was, by law, inscribed over his
head. R4713:5
His accusation written -- In three languages--Hebrew, Greek and Latin. R3562:2
KING OF THE JEWS -- Little did Pilate think that this was the true title of the
wonderful man Christ Jesus whom they caused to be put to death. R2316:2
Matthew 27:38
Two thieves -- Crucified as an evildoer. R2316:2
From the standpoint of the priests
and Pharisees, the Lord's crucifixion with the two thieves was specially
desirable; it would help to keep the people from thinking of him as a martyr.
R3561:6
Every noble or pure man or woman,
prizing purity in his own heart, would find it specially detestable to be so
misunderstood as to be numbered with transgressors. R3561:5
Matthew 27:39
They that passed by -- Some of them had probably seen his "many wonderful
works"; yet when they saw the tide turn against him, they seem to have
been easily swayed. R2316:3
Reviled him -- "As he was so are are we in this world." (1 John
4:17) R2316:5
Wagging their heads -- "We did esteem him stricken, smitten of God, and
afflicted." (Isa. 53:4) R2316:5
Matthew 27:40
The temple -- The true Church. T70
In three days -- The fifth, sixth and seventh thousand-year days. R3375:2
Come down -- Weakened by his sufferings, tortured by his merciless
enemies, hanging helpless between heaven and earth, Satan challenged him to
demonstrate his deity by descend- ing from the cross. R5848:2*
Matthew 27:42
He cannot save -- He could have saved himself. (Matt. 26:53) R5195:4
How little they knew that it was
necessary for the Son of Man to suffer these things to enter into his glory.
R2316:4
If Jesus had saved himself, he
could not have been the Savior of the world. R5578:1
King of Israel -- Synonymous with the term "King of the Jews"
(verse 37). R2085:1
The whole twelve tribes of Israel.
C293
Come down -- We are so glad he did not come down and leave us in our
sins. R3370:6
Matthew 27:44
The thieves also -- The only little word of sympathy, however, that he received
on this occasion, so far as the record goes, came later from one of these
thieves. R2316:6
Matthew 27:45
From the sixth hour -- Nine o'clock in the morning, the hour of the morning daily
sacrifice. R2316:6
There was darkness -- It was fitting that nature should veil her glories before
such a scene. There was darkness, not dense darkness, but, simply, darkness.
R2316:6
It must have been supernaturally
dark for, as it was the full moon, a solar eclipse could have lasted but a few
minutes at the most. R2316:6, 1816:4
Picturing the temporary triumph of
the power of darkness over him who was the light of the world. R3902:6
Typifying the alienation from God
which came upon the Jewish people as a result of crucifying the Lord. R1816:4
Unto the ninth hour -- Three o'clock in the afternoon, the time of the offering of
the evening sacrifice, the time when Christ died. R2316:6
Matthew 27:46
My God, my God -- Jesus did not claim to be the Father, but the Son of God.
R5578:5
The wail of a breaking heart.
R84:2*
It is claimed that he died of a
literally broken heart, evidenced by the fact that both blood and water
proceeded from the spear-wound inflicted shortly after his death. R2316:6; E123
Why -- What have I done that I should be denied fellowship with
thee? R4683:5
Hast thou forsaken me -- An actual withdrawal of the Father's favor and communion, a
necessary part of the Lord's suffering as a sin-bearer. The penalty of Adam's
transgression was not only death, but additionally separation or alienation
from God. R2317:1
He had borne the contradiction of
sinners, Peter's denial, and the fact that all his disciples fled; but the
Father's spirit of fellowship withdrawn was more than he could bear. R2316:6
He bore the sinner's penalty in
all particulars. CR392:5; E128
It was necessary that the Father
should hide himself from him as though he had been the sinner. R4713:5, 5578:5,
4683:5, 3903:1
That was the most terrible moment
of all his experiences. CR392:5; R4713:5
Such a dark moment might be
permitted to even the most worthy follower of the Lamb. F143
The language of real, not pro
forma, agony. E94
Matthew 27:48
Gave him to drink -- Doubtless with a fever raging, such as would be induced by
the crucifixion, he had been thirsting for quite a while. R3562:6
Matthew 27:49
Let be -- It is evident, from these words, that Christ's last prayer
was heard even by his enemies. R2252:1
Matthew 27:50
When he had cried -- Matthew does not record the words, but we have them from
Luke and John, "It is finished! Father, into thy hands I commend my
spirit." R2317:2
Yielded up the ghost -- Literally, dismissed his spirit; that is, drew his last
breath, or ceased to live; expired. R700:4, 3903:4
That is, the spirit. Not his
spirit body, for at this time he had no spirit body. R2317:4
Matthew 27:51
Veil of the temple -- 60 feet long, 30 feet wide and about four inches thick.
R3371:2, 2788:4
Was rent in twain -- Representing the opening of the way between the
spirit-begotten condition and heaven itself. R3371:2
Matthew 27:52
And the graves -- There are serious reasons for doubting the genuineness of
this verse and the following; but a portion of it, at least, appears in the
oldest Greek manuscripts yet discovered. R1509:3, 2811:6
Of the saints -- Not the ancient worthies or the saints of the Gospel
church. R2811:5, 833:2
Which slept arose -- The very most that could have taken place at that time
would have been that some might have been awakened in just the same sense that
Lazarus was awakened. Q289:2; R2811:5, 1509:6, 833:2
The word "sleep" used
instead of the word "death." R2197:6
Matthew 27:53
Came out of the graves -- The narrative does not call it a resurrection; it merely
says that they came out of their graves, as Lazarus did. R833:2
His resurrection -- The Greek word is not anastasis, but egersis, an unusual
word for resurrection, signifying resurgence or re-animation. R1509:3; F703
Matthew 27:54
The centurion -- All three centurions mentioned in the New Testament (Luke
7:2; Acts 10:1) were reverential. R3755:4
Matthew 27:55
Ministering unto him -- Providing for the physical wants of Jesus and the twelve.
Christ never solicited alms. F286
Matthew 27:57
A rich man -- "He made his grave with the wicked [the sinful human
race] and with the rich [in the tomb of the rich man, Joseph of Arimathea] in
his death." (Isa. 53:7,9) R1394:4, 1360:1
Matthew 27:60
His own new tomb -- Which contained no other corpses; hence, there could be no
question respecting the body of Christ and its burial. R2476:2, 3903:3
A great stone -- This was not a large boulder, but was shaped like a wheel,
like a large grindstone rolling in a groove. R4713:6
Matthew 27:62
The next day -- Saturday morning. R4212:5*
Matthew 27:64
Be made sure -- The evil suspicions of the religious leaders were overruled
by the Lord for good, and became a testimony of the truth and an assistance to
faith on the part of believers. R2318:1
Matthew 27:65
Ye have a watch -- Giving the chief priests the privilege of hiring some of
the soldiers as watchmen, much the same as anyone today can employ and pay a
policeman for extra service as a watchman. R2476:3
Matthew 27:66
Sealing the stone -- Rendering it secure against intrusion. E246
Setting a watch -- Saturday night. R4212:5*
Matthew 28
Matthew 28:1
End of the sabbath -- Hindered from coming the previous day because it was the
Jewish Sabbath, the day now known as Saturday, the seventh day of the week.
R2477:5
As it began to dawn -- How great the reward of these devoted women--last at the
cross and first at the sepulcher. R1816:6
Improving the very earliest
opportunity to honor him whom they so loved. R1505:5
The same is true of the
resurrection of the Church, in the dawn of this great seventh day. R92:1*
"God shall help her and that
right early." (Psa. 46:5) R3375:3
The first day -- Sunday. This day is reckoned as the third day and night
which Christ spent in the tomb. R4212:5*, 3903:6, 3375:1
Symbolizing a new beginning, a new
dispensation. Q366:2
Typifying the beginning of the
seventh thousand-year day when the Church shall be raised. "Destroy this
temple and in three days I will raise it up." (John 2:19) R3375:1-3
Mary Magdalene -- Out of whom Jesus had cast seven demons and who, from
thenceforth, became one of our Lord's most earnest followers. She had much
forgiven her, she loved much, and her love had brought her early to the
sepulcher. R3375:6
Woman's love and tenderness,
specially endearing charms of the sex, are well illustrated in this incident.
They came with no thought of the resurrection, but to embalm his body more
elaborately than they had had time for previously. R2477:5, 2317:3
Seemingly the Lord recognized that
women can exercise faith more readily than can men, and here he used them as
his servants and mouthpieces to prepare his disciples. R3905:2, 2317:3
And the other Mary -- It does not appear that they came together, but rather that
Mary Magdalene was first to arrive. R2477:5
Matthew 28:2
Rolled back the stone -- Not necessary to our Lord's resurrection, because the body
which he has now is no more his former body of flesh than that body of flesh
was his former spirit body. R2318:2
In their eagerness, they forgot
the great obstacle of the stone; but the sweet incense of their devotion arose
to heaven, and God sent his angel to remove the obstacle. R1816:6
Matthew 28:3
Like lightning -- The angel appeared in dazzling brightness, that he might
not be mistaken for a man. R4714:1
Spirit beings are glorious in their
normal conditions. A183; R579:1; HG25:5, 28:5
Matthew 28:4
Became as dead men -- Almost swooned or fainted; but, recovering, hastened from
the spot to make their report to the chief priests, at whose instance they had
been appointed to this service. R3375:4
Matthew 28:5
Fear not ye -- The angel, so terrible to those out of harmony with the
Lord, spoke graciously to those who were his friends. R3905:1
Matthew 28:6
He is not here -- The removal of the crucified body from the tomb was
necessary to establish, in the minds of the disciples, the fact of his
resurrection; had it remained, it would have been an insurmountable barrier to
their faith. R1817:4
It is not for us to say what
became of the natural body of Jesus. God has not revealed particulars respecting
it, except that it did not corrupt. Perhaps it is yet to be produced by the
Lord as evidence of the truth of the whole transaction. R3376:6
He is risen -- The one that was raised from the dead was the
spirit-begotten new creature. R5158:1
The doctrine of the resurrection
of the dead is peculiar to the Jewish and Christian religions. R3903:5
As it was necessary to know that
Christ died before we could believe in him as our Redeemer; so it was necessary
to believe that he rose again, so that he might be our justifier. R3903:2
The account proves three things:
(1) the fact of the resurrection; (2) the Lord's change of nature in the
resurrection; and (3) his personal identity notwithstanding the change of
nature. R1816:5
Matthew 28:8
They departed quickly -- Though fearful and surprised when they received the angel's
message that the Lord was risen, yet they grasped the fact by
"intuitive" faith. R2317:3
Matthew 28:9
And as they -- With the exception of Mary Magdalene, who separated herself
from them to go and tell Peter and John. B112
Jesus met them -- His second appearance after his resurrection. R3905:3
Appearing first to Mary, who seems
to have been a woman full of faith as well as full of zeal, and one whose word
would have influence upon the apostles. R2808:2
Possibly the same appearance as
that recorded in John 20:14. R2802:3
He appeared as a man, but under
varying conditions, showing that he was not bound by the limitations of the
human nature. R3904:2
Had our Lord appeared in his real
body, as to Paul, the effect would have been less favorable; he therefore
adopted the method used by angels sent on special missions to men. R2318:5
All hail -- In the Greek, the usual salutation, practically signifying,
Rejoice! R3375:6
Held him by his feet -- Had he appeared in the body crucified, they would certainly
have seen the prints of the nails in his feet. R2801:5
His words, "Touch me not
[don't hold on], for I am not yet ascended to my Father and to your Father, to
my God and to your God" (John 20:17), were doubtless uttered at this time.
R2317:3
We are not to assume that we are
merely to hug the truth to our own hearts, but are to remember that it is for
others also. R3375:6
And worshipped him -- It is undoubtedly proper enough for us to address petitions
to our Redeemer and Advocate. R1410:2
Matthew 28:10
Be not afraid -- Do not hold me as though fearful you will never see me any
more. R2317:6
Tell my brethren -- After we have found the Lord, we have a great duty toward
the brethren. R3375:6
Into Galilee -- Their home. B112
Shall they see me -- It was necessary that the twelve apostles should be able to
bear witness to the fact that Jesus had risen from the dead. R5579:2
Matthew 28:11
When they were going -- Having the true love which manifests itself in obedience,
Mary immediately undertook the mission assigned her. R2478:3
An indication that, while never
using women in the public preaching of the Gospel, yet they have a place in the
less public mission in connection with the promulgation of the Gospel. R2316:1
Matthew 28:13
While we slept -- How foolish would be the testimony of men who would say
what took place while they slept! R3375:4
Matthew 28:14
And secure you -- The assurance of protection, security against the ordinary
penalty for a Roman soldier sleeping while on duty. R3375:4
Matthew 28:15
Until this day -- Up to the date of writing Matthew's gospel, which is
supposed to have been written some nine years after the event. R3375:4
Matthew 28:16
The eleven disciples -- Manifesting Jesus' particular selection of them. F214
The apostles were the special
witnesses of the Lord's resurrection, although he was seen by others. R1522:5;
F214
Went away -- Quite probably three weeks intervened without the slightest
communication. Meantime the apostles had re-engaged in the fishing business.
R3905:4, 3377:1, 2809:1
Into Galilee -- Perhaps remembering the message sent to them by the women
(verse 10), that he would go before them into Galilee and meet them there.
R3377:1
Most of our Lord's ministry was
spent in Galilee, and the majority of believers were Galileans. R3376:1
Appointed them -- Hence there was an opportunity for all the deeply
interested ones to be gathered together. (Article specifies 107
individually, plus others).
R2808:6
Matthew 28:17
When they saw him -- Gradually they were taught the fact of our Lord's
resurrection, that he was no longer dead, but alive; and that he was changed,
no longer "the man Christ Jesus." R2809:1
The promise to us now is that we
shall see him as he is--not as he was--because we shall be changed, that we may
be made like him. R4185:5, 2318:6, 1817:5
But some doubted -- An evidence of the candor of the Evangelist's record;
showing, too, that the Lord's followers were not over-credulous, but disposed
to sift and weigh the evidence. R2809:3
Some of the five hundred brethren,
probably none of the disciples. R2809:3
It was for the convincing of such
waverers that Jesus remained during the forty days. R5587:5
Matthew 28:18
And Jesus came -- His eighth appearance after his resurrection. R3905:4
According to our reckoning, the
sixth occasion. R2808:3
It was probably at this time that
he appeared to the five hundred brethren mentioned by Paul. (1 Cor. 15:6)
R2808:3
A new organism, but the same
being; not flesh, but spirit; not weak, but powerful; not corruptible, but
incorruptible; not dishonored, but honored. R1692:1
All power -- Authority. F397; R5587:5
Physical and spiritual. R61:5*
As the agent and representative of
Jehovah. E59
Over angels and men, the dead and
living alike. R43:5*
In itself a proof that Jesus is no
longer human. B111
If the Lord is now merely still a
man, he is still "lower than the angels." (Heb. 2:9) R5223:1
Including a knowledge of the times
and seasons of the divine plan; also intuitive knowledge. R2082:5, 5922:6
He had not lost anything, but had
gained much in passing into death and then out of it. R5625:5
Not that the Father had abdicated
or surrendered any of his own power or authority; rather, the Father is always
excepted. (1 Cor. 15:27) R2809:4
"He is Lord of all"--next
to the Father, for "the head of Christ is God." (1 Cor. 11:3) R296:3
Although Jehovah is the head of
Christ, we see him delighting to honor the Son, making him in turn the head of
all principality and power. (Col. 2:10; 1:16; Eph. 1:10--Diaglott) R1550:1
"It pleased the Father that
in him [the Son] should all fulness dwell"--"the fulness of the
Godhead bodily" (Col. 1:19; 2:9)--so that all God does is through Christ,
and all Christ does is by the power of the Father. R27:2*
Not that our Lord could set aside,
overrule or violate any feature of the divine law and plan. R2809:4
Nothing should be done except at
his command. R2888:3
The title and authority promised
of the Father to belong to the Messiah; that which was once his reckonedly or
prospectively was now his actually. R2809:4
He had delegated power and
prospective authority before. R810:1
His human nature, when sacrificed,
could do nothing more; but the new nature, fully developed in the resurrection,
has all power. R3951:6, 713:6
The might, authority or power was
gained by his sacrifice, recognized of God and declared to men by his
resurrection. R810:1
Strictly speaking, it was from the
moment of our Lord's resurrection that the Father committed all judgment unto
the Son. (John 5:22) F397
It is one thing to have the power,
and quite another thing to use it. HG149:5
The exercise of the power is
delayed for a purpose. D621
At the time appointed, he will
take unto him "his great power and reign." (Rev. 11:17) R1352:2
To be claimed in the kingdom.
Infallible laws will be strictly enforced. That will be the strictest
government the world has ever known; absolutely no liberty will be granted to
do wrong. R1163:6
Eventually all things shall be
subdued under him. R1269:6
Consequently, it is only since his
resurrection that he could be called the Almighty, as in Rev. 1:8. R1515:1
In sharp contrast with his
previous utterances: "Of my own will I can do nothing; as I hear I
speak." (John 8:28) R2318:6, 745:4
Our Lord alone was able to keep
the divine law and to inherit the divine promise. R3789:5
"The keys [power to open]
death and hades." (Rev. 1:18) R485:3
The glory of Moses has been
"done away" (2 Cor. 3:7), the glory of Christ "remaineth."
(2 Cor. 3:11) R1323:3*
"Let all men honor the Son
even as they honor the Father." (John 5:23) R3161:2*
Is given unto me -- Since my resurrection as a spirit being. C240; E281;
R1352:2
He rose again, qualified for the
great work of the world's deliverance. OV429:T; R1670:2
But not exercised until the Body
is made perfect through suffering and joined to the Head. D621
Not until all the members of the
Church have finished their sacrifice in death--then will the Christ be fully
empowered for the great subsequent work of restoring all things. C240
He had not this power and
authority previously, during his earthly ministry. Now he was no longer under
human limitations, or under the limitations of the death covenant. R5567:6
Though he had always occupied the
place of honor in the heavenly courts, it was not until his obedience had been tested
in the changing of his nature to a man, and in providing a ransom, that he
received his present unexcellable glory and honor. R1514:6
Illustrated by the honor and
distinction of Joseph being seated next to Pharaoh. R2888:2
In heaven and in earth -- Full authority in respect to both heavenly and earthly
things; among spiritual as well as among human beings. R5587:5,6; A289
"That at the name of Jesus
every knee should bow, of things in heaven and things in earth." (Phil.
2:10) A289; R5587:6
Matthew 28:19
Go ye -- Now that the Father has accepted the work finished at
Calvary and recognized me as the Messiah. R2809:5
Primarily the eleven apostles, but
subsequently it included St. Paul, who took the place of Judas. They had no
successors; they are with us yet. R5588:1
All true disciples, fully
consecrated, are authorized to preach the Gospel in any and every way, publicly
or privately, by word, pen or printed page. R1720:1
Each royal priest is the peer of
each other one in authority and dignity of priesthood; though in talents,
intelligence, etc., and therefore in fitness, they are not all equals. R1137:4
Some stewards do not quickly
enough note talents which might be utilized in the Lord's service. R1047:5
The commission divides itself into
three parts: (1) make disciples of all nations; (2) baptize them; and (3) teach
them. R2809:5
Any neglect of this commission and
its order of procedure means comparative failure. R2810:1
When the dragnet (Matt. 13:47) is
ordered ashore, this commission should be understood to be at an end. C215
Similarly today, we are following
what we believe to be the direction of the holy Spirit in sending forth the
pilgrims to proclaim the good tidings. R4360:4
Satan perverts the commission:
first, making it mean the conversion of the world; second, destroying the real
idea of baptism; third, confusing the matter of discipling; fourth, by making
them think this is all that is needed, downgrading teaching; fifth, by
misrepresenting the Apostle's statement: "Ye have no need that any man teach
you." (1 John 2:20,27) R2810:5
Therefore -- Their commission to go and spread the truth of his being
their Messiah was based on the fact that the Father had accepted his work,
finished at Calvary. R2809:5
Omit, not in the oldest
manuscripts. R3004:3
And teach -- A different Greek word than in verse 20; this word
signifies proselyting or making disciples of. R2809:5, 5588:2, 4714:5, 4360:4;
Q546:4
Not to make the nations disciples,
but to gather out of all nations those willing to be disciples of Christ.
R5588:2, 4786:4, 4714:5, 2809:5; Q546:4
First, informing those who have
ears to hear that they are sinners through the fall, but that God has made a
provision for their rescue. R2810:2; F447
A commission to the apostles and
each member of the Church, according to opportunity and ability, to proclaim
the Gospel. R5588:1
The work of the Evangelist comes
first, to make disciples. The word "disciple" signifies pupil, in the
school of Christ, in the primary department. R2810:1
It is not necessary to preach in the
usual formal manner. Preach as the twelve disciples preached, by the wayside or
wherever you find a hearing ear. If you lack talent for preparing a discourse,
read forcibly and clearly something touching the subject you consider most
needful to your hearers. R1047:5
All nations -- "This Gospel shall be preached in all the world for a
witness unto all nations." (Matt. 24:14) C215
People of all nationalities.
R4360:4
You are no longer restricted to
the Jews. R3200:1, 5045:4, 4786:4, 4714:5, 3004:6, 2872:1, 2319:1; Q547:T
It required very special
instructions for Peter to preach to the Gentiles also. R3005:1
The disciples seemed to understand
that he meant every Israelite scattered throughout all nations; and it was not
for some years that they learned that the Gentiles were to be fellow-heirs of
the same promises. R1095:2
Gather out of all nations those
willing to be disciples of Christ. R5588:2
"Ye shall be witnesses unto
me, both in Jerusalem and in all Judea and in Samaria, and unto the uttermost
parts of the earth." (Acts 1:8) R3005:1
It is the will of God that the
Gospel should be preached everywhere. R2141:5
To the less degraded first, and to
the more degraded later. R1545:6
The "Gospel of the
Kingdom" is clearly set forth in the Scriptures, which are now published
in all languages (not dialects) of the earth. R2872:2
This permission to disciple people
of all nations did not begin until 3-1/2 years later. R4714:5
Not a command to convert the
world. R4714:5, 3004:3, 2872:1, 2809:5
"Nevertheless, when the Son
of man cometh, shall he find the faith on the earth?" (Luke 18:8) R2809:6
Baptizing -- Immersing, the correct translation and the original method
of baptism, as acknowledged by many authorities. F453, 454
The outward symbol by which
believers were to confess him. R1540:3
Water baptism is only a picture of
the true; they are to be thoroughly immersed into the name of Christ. R5588:4
"Know ye not that so many of
us as were baptized into Jesus Christ were baptized into his death?" (Rom.
6:3) F445, 446
All authorized to teach are
equally authorized to baptize. That includes every follower of Christ, not
excluding females, only that modesty indicates that they should avoid such
public services except in rare necessary cases. R1541:4
All baptized would be commissioned
to perform this symbol for others; and, if no consecrated could be found, an
unconsecrated believer, or even a worldly person or unbeliever, might do it.
F454
The Lord's Supper and Baptism are
the only injunctions of a symbolic character commanded us, and they are new
ones from those of the Jewish dispensation. R1526:6; F228
Not here the Pentecostal baptism
of the spirit, because it was not in the power of the apostles thus to baptize
anyone. NS54:1
Them -- Whoever you can make into a disciple, baptize him. Q547:T
Those who consecrate themselves.
R2810:1,3
In the name of -- By the authority of. R2810:3; Q31:2, 33:2; F447
Into fellowship, or accord, with.
R5588:4; F455
Not into the name of the Father,
Son and holy Spirit; on the contrary, we are baptized into Christ, as members
of his body. (Rom. 6:3-5) R2810:3
We recommend the following words:
Brother ..., in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the holy Spirit,
by this authority, I baptize thee into Christ. F455
The Father -- Become dead to every other principle than that which his
name represents, and be thoroughly immersed into His name of righteousness,
justice and truth. R5588:4
Does not imply three baptisms in
one. The use of the three names is as if you were using a firm name, such as
Smith, Jones and Brown; all three names would be used to show that it has the
authorization of the whole firm. Q33:2
The Divine Three--Father, Son and
holy Spirit--are related to our faith in the Creator, Redeemer and Regenerator;
and this suggests the three steps in bringing men into the divine image.
R197:3*
Of the Son -- Ignoring all sectarian names, Protestant or Catholic.
R5588:4, 2810:3
To recognize his name and to be
his members, his Body, his Church. R5588:4
Holy Ghost -- Holy Spirit. R5588:5; F455
Their own spirit or wills being
dead, God's holy will and mind are to be their will and purpose. R5588:5;
Q31:2,6
Approved by the spirit of
holiness, the spirit of God, the spirit of the truth. Q31:2
It is proper to use the expression
"holy Spirit" when performing symbolic immersion because the Lord so
instructed, and because it is the holy influence and representative of the
Father and the Son in directing the Church into all truth. R2001:2
Matthew 28:20
Teaching them -- Instructing them regarding the divine character and plan,
the graces of the spirit and the rooting out of the spirit of worldliness and
selfishness. R2810:2
Not astronomy, geology, nor any of
the vain philosophies about which the world speculates, but "the things
which I have commanded you." R5045:4, 3200:2
Observe all things -- That all men are sinners, that Christ came to give himself
a ransom, that he is the only way to life, that whosoever would come must take
up his cross, that all believers are one with him, that every branch in him must
bear fruit or be taken away, that those who trust in him are to hope for and
expect his second coming, that the ultimate end of our hope is in a
resurrection, and that love is the fulfilling of the law. R2319:2,4
I am with you alway -- By the holy Spirit and by the Word. A89; E204; R2455:6,
531:2
With his faithful followers, to
bless, comfort, to strengthen, to fellowship and to safeguard their highest
interests, though often at the expense of their temporal interests. R4714:5,
3166:6; B105, 203
In love and thought and care for
you. B105, 203
As the Chief Messenger, or Angel
of Jehovah. R5634:4
To sanctify to them their deepest
distress. R5095:6
Not that he would personally be
present in the world throughout the age; rather, through the holy Spirit, the
power of God. R4185:4, 2810:6
He is absent in body, yet present
in spirit. R102:4*
Meaning that he would supervise
the work. R2811:1
Our Lord has been with his
representatives in all their labors of love and self-denial throughout the
entire age. R3166:6
Now we are not alone. We have the
companionship of him who promised, "I will never leave thee nor forsake
thee." (Heb. 13:5) NS451:3
While he would be absent from his
people during the age, his power, spirit, care and love would be with them to
guard their interests. R2319:5, 1820:6
Showing that the Lord gave the
great commission, not merely to the apostles, but to all who should believe on
him through their word. R2810:6
He was able to provide for them in
one place as in another. R5625:4
Our Lord's statement no more
signifies that he did not leave the world than it signifies that his hearers
would continue to live until the end of the age. R2319:4
Even unto -- He did not tell us how long the age would last, nor all the
trials and difficulties which would intervene; it has been to our advantage
that he has left us in ignorance on this point. R4185:2
End of the world -- Greek, suntelia, end. R223:1*
End of the age. R5727:3, 5625:4;
B105
Down to the time when the Gospel
age will have accomplished its divinely purposed mission of gathering out a
sufficient number of disciples to complete the divine purpose. R5588:5
In the end of the age, he is to be
specially near and precious. R4784:2
How specially true in the end of
the age, in the time of harvest, in the time of our Lord's second presence!
R3166:6
Then he would come again in a
personal and official sense to exalt his Church, establish his Kingdom, bless
Israel with the New Covenant, and thus bless all mankind. R4714:6, 2319:5
We are now down at this end of the
age. CR476:1